This is a modern-English version of The House of the Seven Gables, originally written by Hawthorne, Nathaniel. It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling, and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.

Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.

The House of the Seven Gables

by Nathaniel Hawthorne

With an introduction by George Parsons Lathrop


Contents

INTRODUCTORY NOTE
AUTHOR’S PREFACE

I. THE OLD PYNCHEON FAMILY
II. THE LITTLE SHOP-WINDOW
III. THE FIRST CUSTOMER
IV. A DAY BEHIND THE COUNTER
V. MAY AND NOVEMBER
VI. MAULE’S WELL
VII. THE GUEST
VIII. THE PYNCHEON OF TO-DAY
IX. CLIFFORD AND PHŒBE
X. THE PYNCHEON GARDEN
XI. THE ARCHED WINDOW
XII. THE DAGUERREOTYPIST
XIII. ALICE PYNCHEON
XIV. PHŒBE’S GOOD-BYE
XV. THE SCOWL AND SMILE
XVI. CLIFFORD’S CHAMBER
XVII. THE FLIGHT OF TWO OWLS
XVIII. GOVERNOR PYNCHEON
XIX. ALICE’S POSIES
XX. THE FLOWER OF EDEN
XXI. THE DEPARTURE

INTRODUCTORY NOTE
THE HOUSE OF THE SEVEN GABLES.

In September of the year during the February of which Hawthorne had completed “The Scarlet Letter,” he began “The House of the Seven Gables.” Meanwhile, he had removed from Salem to Lenox, in Berkshire County, Massachusetts, where he occupied with his family a small red wooden house, still standing at the date of this edition, near the Stockbridge Bowl.

In September of the year when Hawthorne finished “The Scarlet Letter” in February, he started “The House of the Seven Gables.” At the same time, he had moved from Salem to Lenox, in Berkshire County, Massachusetts, where he lived with his family in a small red wooden house, which still exists as of this edition, near the Stockbridge Bowl.

“I sha’n’t have the new story ready by November,” he explained to his publisher, on the 1st of October, “for I am never good for anything in the literary way till after the first autumnal frost, which has somewhat such an effect on my imagination that it does on the foliage here about me—multiplying and brightening its hues.” But by vigorous application he was able to complete the new work about the middle of the January following.

“I won’t have the new story ready by November,” he told his publisher on October 1st, “because I can’t do anything creative until after the first autumn frost, which sparks my imagination the same way it changes the colors of the leaves around me—intensifying and brightening them.” However, with focused effort, he managed to finish the new work by mid-January.

Since research has disclosed the manner in which the romance is interwoven with incidents from the history of the Hawthorne family, “The House of the Seven Gables” has acquired an interest apart from that by which it first appealed to the public. John Hathorne (as the name was then spelled), the great-grandfather of Nathaniel Hawthorne, was a magistrate at Salem in the latter part of the seventeenth century, and officiated at the famous trials for witchcraft held there. It is of record that he used peculiar severity towards a certain woman who was among the accused; and the husband of this woman prophesied that God would take revenge upon his wife’s persecutors. This circumstance doubtless furnished a hint for that piece of tradition in the book which represents a Pyncheon of a former generation as having persecuted one Maule, who declared that God would give his enemy “blood to drink.” It became a conviction with the Hawthorne family that a curse had been pronounced upon its members, which continued in force in the time of the romancer; a conviction perhaps derived from the recorded prophecy of the injured woman’s husband, just mentioned; and, here again, we have a correspondence with Maule’s malediction in the story. Furthermore, there occurs in the “American Note-Books” (August 27, 1837), a reminiscence of the author’s family, to the following effect. Philip English, a character well-known in early Salem annals, was among those who suffered from John Hathorne’s magisterial harshness, and he maintained in consequence a lasting feud with the old Puritan official. But at his death English left daughters, one of whom is said to have married the son of Justice John Hathorne, whom English had declared he would never forgive. It is scarcely necessary to point out how clearly this foreshadows the final union of those hereditary foes, the Pyncheons and Maules, through the marriage of Phœbe and Holgrave. The romance, however, describes the Maules as possessing some of the traits known to have been characteristic of the Hawthornes: for example, “so long as any of the race were to be found, they had been marked out from other men—not strikingly, nor as with a sharp line, but with an effect that was felt rather than spoken of—by an hereditary characteristic of reserve.” Thus, while the general suggestion of the Hawthorne line and its fortunes was followed in the romance, the Pyncheons taking the place of the author’s family, certain distinguishing marks of the Hawthornes were assigned to the imaginary Maule posterity.

Since research has shown how the romance connects with events from the history of the Hawthorne family, “The House of the Seven Gables” has gained interest beyond what initially attracted the public. John Hathorne (as the name was then spelled), Nathaniel Hawthorne's great-grandfather, was a magistrate in Salem during the late seventeenth century and was involved in the infamous witchcraft trials there. Records show that he was particularly harsh towards one of the accused women, and her husband predicted that God would take revenge on his wife's persecutors. This incident likely inspired the part of the story where a Pyncheon from an earlier generation persecutes one Maule, who claims that God would give his enemy "blood to drink." The Hawthorne family believed that a curse had been placed on its members, which persisted during the time of the author; this belief might have stemmed from the recorded prophecy of the injured woman’s husband, as mentioned earlier, echoing Maule’s curse in the story. Additionally, in the “American Note-Books” (August 27, 1837), there’s a memory of the author’s family noting that Philip English, a well-known figure in early Salem, suffered from John Hathorne’s harsh rule, resulting in a longstanding feud with the Puritan official. However, upon his death, English left daughters, one of whom is said to have married the son of Justice John Hathorne, whom English claimed he would never forgive. It's clear how this foreshadows the eventual union of the long-standing adversaries, the Pyncheons and Maules, through the marriage of Phœbe and Holgrave. Yet, the romance portrays the Maules as having some traits known to be characteristic of the Hawthornes; for instance, "as long as any of the race were to be found, they had been marked out from other men—not strikingly, nor with a sharp line, but with an effect that was felt rather than spoken of—by an hereditary characteristic of reserve." Thus, while the general theme of the Hawthorne lineage and its fortunes was mirrored in the romance, with the Pyncheons standing in for the author’s family, some distinctive traits of the Hawthornes were attributed to the fictional Maule descendants.

There are one or two other points which indicate Hawthorne’s method of basing his compositions, the result in the main of pure invention, on the solid ground of particular facts. Allusion is made, in the first chapter of the “Seven Gables,” to a grant of lands in Waldo County, Maine, owned by the Pyncheon family. In the “American Note-Books” there is an entry, dated August 12, 1837, which speaks of the Revolutionary general, Knox, and his land-grant in Waldo County, by virtue of which the owner had hoped to establish an estate on the English plan, with a tenantry to make it profitable for him. An incident of much greater importance in the story is the supposed murder of one of the Pyncheons by his nephew, to whom we are introduced as Clifford Pyncheon. In all probability Hawthorne connected with this, in his mind, the murder of Mr. White, a wealthy gentleman of Salem, killed by a man whom his nephew had hired. This took place a few years after Hawthorne’s graduation from college, and was one of the celebrated cases of the day, Daniel Webster taking part prominently in the trial. But it should be observed here that such resemblances as these between sundry elements in the work of Hawthorne’s fancy and details of reality are only fragmentary, and are rearranged to suit the author’s purposes.

There are a couple of other points that show how Hawthorne based his writings, which mainly come from pure invention, on solid facts. In the first chapter of “The House of the Seven Gables,” there's a mention of a land grant in Waldo County, Maine, owned by the Pyncheon family. In the “American Note-Books,” there’s a note from August 12, 1837, discussing Revolutionary War general Knox and his land grant in Waldo County, which the owner hoped would help him create an estate similar to those in England, complete with tenants to make it profitable. A more significant incident in the story is the alleged murder of one of the Pyncheons by his nephew, who we meet as Clifford Pyncheon. It's likely that Hawthorne linked this in his mind to the murder of Mr. White, a wealthy man from Salem, who was killed by a man hired by his nephew. This happened a few years after Hawthorne graduated from college and was one of the high-profile cases of the time, with Daniel Webster playing a prominent role in the trial. However, it's important to note that the similarities between various elements of Hawthorne’s imagination and real-life details are only fragmentary and are rearranged to fit the author's intentions.

In the same way he has made his description of Hepzibah Pyncheon’s seven-gabled mansion conform so nearly to several old dwellings formerly or still extant in Salem, that strenuous efforts have been made to fix upon some one of them as the veritable edifice of the romance. A paragraph in the opening chapter has perhaps assisted this delusion that there must have been a single original House of the Seven Gables, framed by flesh-and-blood carpenters; for it runs thus:—

In the same way he has described Hepzibah Pyncheon’s seven-gabled mansion to closely resemble several old homes that were once or still are in Salem, people have worked hard to identify one of them as the actual house from the story. A paragraph in the opening chapter may have contributed to this misunderstanding that there was a single original House of the Seven Gables, built by real-life carpenters; because it says:—

“Familiar as it stands in the writer’s recollection—for it has been an object of curiosity with him from boyhood, both as a specimen of the best and stateliest architecture of a long-past epoch, and as the scene of events more full of interest perhaps than those of a gray feudal castle—familiar as it stands, in its rusty old age, it is therefore only the more difficult to imagine the bright novelty with which it first caught the sunshine.”

“Familiar as it is in the writer’s memory—since it has intrigued him since childhood, both as an example of the finest and grandest architecture from a long-ago era, and as the setting for events that might be even more captivating than those of an ancient feudal castle—familiar as it seems in its worn, old age, it makes it even harder to envision the fresh brilliance with which it originally caught the sunlight.”

Hundreds of pilgrims annually visit a house in Salem, belonging to one branch of the Ingersoll family of that place, which is stoutly maintained to have been the model for Hawthorne’s visionary dwelling. Others have supposed that the now vanished house of the identical Philip English, whose blood, as we have already noticed, became mingled with that of the Hawthornes, supplied the pattern; and still a third building, known as the Curwen mansion, has been declared the only genuine establishment. Notwithstanding persistent popular belief, the authenticity of all these must positively be denied; although it is possible that isolated reminiscences of all three may have blended with the ideal image in the mind of Hawthorne. He, it will be seen, remarks in the Preface, alluding to himself in the third person, that he trusts not to be condemned for “laying out a street that infringes upon nobody’s private rights... and building a house of materials long in use for constructing castles in the air.” More than this, he stated to persons still living that the house of the romance was not copied from any actual edifice, but was simply a general reproduction of a style of architecture belonging to colonial days, examples of which survived into the period of his youth, but have since been radically modified or destroyed. Here, as elsewhere, he exercised the liberty of a creative mind to heighten the probability of his pictures without confining himself to a literal description of something he had seen.

Every year, hundreds of pilgrims visit a house in Salem that belongs to one branch of the Ingersoll family, which is strongly claimed to have inspired Hawthorne’s fictional home. Others believe that the now-gone house of Philip English, whose lineage, as we’ve noted, mixed with that of the Hawthornes, served as the model; and still another structure, known as the Curwen mansion, has been deemed the only true original. Despite popular belief, the authenticity of all these claims must be firmly rejected; however, it's possible that bits of memory from all three may have merged into the ideal image in Hawthorne's mind. He notes in the Preface, referring to himself in the third person, that he hopes not to be criticized for “laying out a street that infringes upon nobody's private rights... and building a house of materials long in use for constructing castles in the air.” Furthermore, he mentioned to living individuals that the house in the story was not based on any real building, but was merely a general reflection of a style of architecture from colonial times, examples of which existed into his youth but have since been significantly altered or destroyed. Here, as in other instances, he took the liberty of a creative mind to enhance the plausibility of his imagery without sticking to a strict description of something he had observed.

While Hawthorne remained at Lenox, and during the composition of this romance, various other literary personages settled or stayed for a time in the vicinity; among them, Herman Melville, whose intercourse Hawthorne greatly enjoyed, Henry James, Sr., Doctor Holmes, J. T. Headley, James Russell Lowell, Edwin P. Whipple, Frederika Bremer, and J. T. Fields; so that there was no lack of intellectual society in the midst of the beautiful and inspiring mountain scenery of the place. “In the afternoons, nowadays,” he records, shortly before beginning the work, “this valley in which I dwell seems like a vast basin filled with golden Sunshine as with wine;” and, happy in the companionship of his wife and their three children, he led a simple, refined, idyllic life, despite the restrictions of a scanty and uncertain income. A letter written by Mrs. Hawthorne, at this time, to a member of her family, gives incidentally a glimpse of the scene, which may properly find a place here. She says: “I delight to think that you also can look forth, as I do now, upon a broad valley and a fine amphitheater of hills, and are about to watch the stately ceremony of the sunset from your piazza. But you have not this lovely lake, nor, I suppose, the delicate purple mist which folds these slumbering mountains in airy veils. Mr. Hawthorne has been lying down in the sun shine, slightly fleckered with the shadows of a tree, and Una and Julian have been making him look like the mighty Pan, by covering his chin and breast with long grass-blades, that looked like a verdant and venerable beard.” The pleasantness and peace of his surroundings and of his modest home, in Lenox, may be taken into account as harmonizing with the mellow serenity of the romance then produced. Of the work, when it appeared in the early spring of 1851, he wrote to Horatio Bridge these words, now published for the first time:—

While Hawthorne was in Lenox, working on this novel, several other literary figures settled or temporarily visited the area; among them were Herman Melville, whom Hawthorne enjoyed spending time with, Henry James, Sr., Doctor Holmes, J. T. Headley, James Russell Lowell, Edwin P. Whipple, Frederika Bremer, and J. T. Fields, creating a vibrant intellectual community amidst the beautiful and inspiring mountain scenery. “These days,” he noted just before starting the work, “this valley where I live feels like a huge basin filled with golden sunlight like wine;” and, content with the company of his wife and their three children, he lived a simple, refined, idyllic life, despite the challenges of a limited and unpredictable income. A letter from Mrs. Hawthorne during this time to a family member briefly captures the scene and deserves to be included here. She writes: “I love to think that you can also look out, as I do now, onto a wide valley and a stunning amphitheater of hills, and that you’re about to witness the grand show of sunset from your porch. But you don’t have this lovely lake, nor, I guess, the delicate purple mist that drapes over these sleeping mountains like airy veils. Mr. Hawthorne has been lounging in the sunshine, slightly dappled with tree shadows, while Una and Julian have been making him look like the great Pan, by covering his chin and chest with long blades of grass that look like a lush and ancient beard.” The pleasantness and tranquility of his surroundings and his modest home in Lenox contributed to the warm serenity of the romance he was creating. When the work was published in early spring 1851, he wrote to Horatio Bridge these words, now published for the first time:—

“‘The House of the Seven Gables’ in my opinion, is better than ‘The Scarlet Letter:’ but I should not wonder if I had refined upon the principal character a little too much for popular appreciation, nor if the romance of the book should be somewhat at odds with the humble and familiar scenery in which I invest it. But I feel that portions of it are as good as anything I can hope to write, and the publisher speaks encouragingly of its success.”

“‘The House of the Seven Gables’ is, in my opinion, better than ‘The Scarlet Letter.’ However, I wouldn’t be surprised if I’ve made the main character a bit too complex for general appeal, or if the story seems somewhat mismatched with the simple, everyday settings I’ve placed it in. Still, I believe that parts of it are as strong as anything I could ever write, and the publisher has been positive about its chances for success.”

From England, especially, came many warm expressions of praise,—a fact which Mrs. Hawthorne, in a private letter, commented on as the fulfillment of a possibility which Hawthorne, writing in boyhood to his mother, had looked forward to. He had asked her if she would not like him to become an author and have his books read in England.

From England, in particular, there were many heartfelt compliments—something Mrs. Hawthorne mentioned in a private letter as the realization of a dream that Hawthorne, in his boyhood, had shared with his mother. He had asked her if she would like him to become an author and have his books read in England.

G. P. L.

G. P. L.

PREFACE.

When a writer calls his work a Romance, it need hardly be observed that he wishes to claim a certain latitude, both as to its fashion and material, which he would not have felt himself entitled to assume had he professed to be writing a Novel. The latter form of composition is presumed to aim at a very minute fidelity, not merely to the possible, but to the probable and ordinary course of man’s experience. The former—while, as a work of art, it must rigidly subject itself to laws, and while it sins unpardonably so far as it may swerve aside from the truth of the human heart—has fairly a right to present that truth under circumstances, to a great extent, of the writer’s own choosing or creation. If he think fit, also, he may so manage his atmospherical medium as to bring out or mellow the lights and deepen and enrich the shadows of the picture. He will be wise, no doubt, to make a very moderate use of the privileges here stated, and, especially, to mingle the Marvelous rather as a slight, delicate, and evanescent flavor, than as any portion of the actual substance of the dish offered to the public. He can hardly be said, however, to commit a literary crime even if he disregard this caution.

When a writer refers to his work as a Romance, it's clear that he wants to take certain liberties with both its style and content, which he wouldn't feel comfortable claiming if he identified it as a Novel. The latter is expected to strive for a detailed accuracy, not only to what’s possible but also to what’s likely and typical in human experience. On the other hand, while a Romance must adhere to artistic rules and can be severely criticized for straying from genuine human emotions, it has the right to portray those emotions in ways largely dictated by the writer's imagination. If he wishes, he can also manipulate the atmosphere to enhance the highlights and deepen the shadows of the narrative. It's wise, of course, for him to use these creative freedoms sparingly, especially to incorporate the Extraordinary more as a subtle, fleeting touch rather than a core part of the story presented to readers. However, he can’t be deemed guilty of a literary offense even if he chooses to ignore this advice.

In the present work, the author has proposed to himself—but with what success, fortunately, it is not for him to judge—to keep undeviatingly within his immunities. The point of view in which this tale comes under the Romantic definition lies in the attempt to connect a bygone time with the very present that is flitting away from us. It is a legend prolonging itself, from an epoch now gray in the distance, down into our own broad daylight, and bringing along with it some of its legendary mist, which the reader, according to his pleasure, may either disregard, or allow it to float almost imperceptibly about the characters and events for the sake of a picturesque effect. The narrative, it may be, is woven of so humble a texture as to require this advantage, and, at the same time, to render it the more difficult of attainment.

In this work, the author has set a goal for himself—but it's not for him to say how well he's succeeded—to stay consistently within his boundaries. The perspective from which this story fits the Romantic definition lies in the effort to link a past era with the present that is quickly slipping away. It's a legend stretching from a time now faded into the distance, reaching into our clear daylight, and bringing with it some of its mystical haze, which the reader can choose to ignore or let subtly surround the characters and events for a more vivid effect. The narrative might be crafted from such humble material that it needs this advantage, while also making it harder to achieve.

Many writers lay very great stress upon some definite moral purpose, at which they profess to aim their works. Not to be deficient in this particular, the author has provided himself with a moral,—the truth, namely, that the wrong-doing of one generation lives into the successive ones, and, divesting itself of every temporary advantage, becomes a pure and uncontrollable mischief; and he would feel it a singular gratification if this romance might effectually convince mankind—or, indeed, any one man—of the folly of tumbling down an avalanche of ill-gotten gold, or real estate, on the heads of an unfortunate posterity, thereby to maim and crush them, until the accumulated mass shall be scattered abroad in its original atoms. In good faith, however, he is not sufficiently imaginative to flatter himself with the slightest hope of this kind. When romances do really teach anything, or produce any effective operation, it is usually through a far more subtile process than the ostensible one. The author has considered it hardly worth his while, therefore, relentlessly to impale the story with its moral as with an iron rod,—or, rather, as by sticking a pin through a butterfly,—thus at once depriving it of life, and causing it to stiffen in an ungainly and unnatural attitude. A high truth, indeed, fairly, finely, and skilfully wrought out, brightening at every step, and crowning the final development of a work of fiction, may add an artistic glory, but is never any truer, and seldom any more evident, at the last page than at the first.

Many writers place a lot of importance on having a clear moral purpose in their work. To not fall short in this regard, the author has adopted a moral—that the wrongdoings of one generation affect future generations and, shedding any temporary benefits, turn into a pure and uncontrollable harm; he would find it especially gratifying if this story could convincingly show people—or even just one person—the foolishness of dumping a pile of ill-gotten wealth or property onto unfortunate descendants, thereby injuring and crushing them until the accumulated mass is scattered back to its original state. However, to be honest, he doesn’t imagine he has the slightest chance of that happening. When stories do teach something or create any real impact, it’s usually through a much subtler process than the obvious one. Therefore, the author has decided it’s not worth his effort to force the moral onto the story like driving an iron rod through it—or rather, like sticking a pin through a butterfly—thereby killing it and leaving it stiff in an awkward and unnatural position. A profound truth, crafted well and shining at every turn, culminating in the final development of a work of fiction, may add artistic beauty, but it’s never any truer, and often less obvious, by the last page than it was at the first.

The reader may perhaps choose to assign an actual locality to the imaginary events of this narrative. If permitted by the historical connection,—which, though slight, was essential to his plan,—the author would very willingly have avoided anything of this nature. Not to speak of other objections, it exposes the romance to an inflexible and exceedingly dangerous species of criticism, by bringing his fancy-pictures almost into positive contact with the realities of the moment. It has been no part of his object, however, to describe local manners, nor in any way to meddle with the characteristics of a community for whom he cherishes a proper respect and a natural regard. He trusts not to be considered as unpardonably offending by laying out a street that infringes upon nobody’s private rights, and appropriating a lot of land which had no visible owner, and building a house of materials long in use for constructing castles in the air. The personages of the tale—though they give themselves out to be of ancient stability and considerable prominence—are really of the author’s own making, or at all events, of his own mixing; their virtues can shed no lustre, nor their defects redound, in the remotest degree, to the discredit of the venerable town of which they profess to be inhabitants. He would be glad, therefore, if—especially in the quarter to which he alludes—the book may be read strictly as a Romance, having a great deal more to do with the clouds overhead than with any portion of the actual soil of the County of Essex.

The reader might choose to assign a specific location to the fictional events of this story. If the historical connection allowed—though it's minimal, it was important for his plan—the author would have gladly avoided this entirely. Not to mention other issues, it subjects the story to a rigid and extremely risky type of criticism by bringing his imaginative scenes too close to the real world. However, his goal is not to describe local customs or interfere with the traits of a community he respects and cares for. He hopes not to be seen as grievously offending anyone by laying out a street that does not infringe on anyone's private rights, taking a piece of land with no clear owner, and building a house with materials long used for creating fanciful dreams. The characters in the story—though they claim to be of ancient stability and significant importance—are actually the author's own creation or, at least, a mix of his imagination; their strengths won’t reflect any glory, nor will their flaws negatively impact the esteemed town they claim to represent. Therefore, he would appreciate it if—especially in the area he mentions—this book is read as a Romance, with much more to do with the clouds above than with any part of the actual soil of Essex County.

LENOX, January 27, 1851.

LENOX, January 27, 1851.

THE HOUSE OF THE SEVEN GABLES

I.
The Old Pyncheon Family

Halfway down a by-street of one of our New England towns stands a rusty wooden house, with seven acutely peaked gables, facing towards various points of the compass, and a huge, clustered chimney in the midst. The street is Pyncheon Street; the house is the old Pyncheon House; and an elm-tree, of wide circumference, rooted before the door, is familiar to every town-born child by the title of the Pyncheon Elm. On my occasional visits to the town aforesaid, I seldom failed to turn down Pyncheon Street, for the sake of passing through the shadow of these two antiquities,—the great elm-tree and the weather-beaten edifice.

Halfway down a side street in one of our New England towns stands a rusty wooden house with seven sharp-peaked gables facing different directions and a large, clustered chimney in the center. The street is Pyncheon Street; the house is the old Pyncheon House; and a wide-bodied elm tree rooted in front of the door is known to every local kid as the Pyncheon Elm. Whenever I visited the town, I usually didn’t miss the chance to go down Pyncheon Street just to pass under the shade of these two landmarks—the great elm tree and the weathered building.

The aspect of the venerable mansion has always affected me like a human countenance, bearing the traces not merely of outward storm and sunshine, but expressive also, of the long lapse of mortal life, and accompanying vicissitudes that have passed within. Were these to be worthily recounted, they would form a narrative of no small interest and instruction, and possessing, moreover, a certain remarkable unity, which might almost seem the result of artistic arrangement. But the story would include a chain of events extending over the better part of two centuries, and, written out with reasonable amplitude, would fill a bigger folio volume, or a longer series of duodecimos, than could prudently be appropriated to the annals of all New England during a similar period. It consequently becomes imperative to make short work with most of the traditionary lore of which the old Pyncheon House, otherwise known as the House of the Seven Gables, has been the theme. With a brief sketch, therefore, of the circumstances amid which the foundation of the house was laid, and a rapid glimpse at its quaint exterior, as it grew black in the prevalent east wind,—pointing, too, here and there, at some spot of more verdant mossiness on its roof and walls,—we shall commence the real action of our tale at an epoch not very remote from the present day. Still, there will be a connection with the long past—a reference to forgotten events and personages, and to manners, feelings, and opinions, almost or wholly obsolete—which, if adequately translated to the reader, would serve to illustrate how much of old material goes to make up the freshest novelty of human life. Hence, too, might be drawn a weighty lesson from the little-regarded truth, that the act of the passing generation is the germ which may and must produce good or evil fruit in a far-distant time; that, together with the seed of the merely temporary crop, which mortals term expediency, they inevitably sow the acorns of a more enduring growth, which may darkly overshadow their posterity.

The old mansion has always felt to me like a human face, showing not just signs of weathering from storms and sunshine, but also reflecting the long passage of human life and the changes that have occurred within it. If we were to tell its story properly, it would be a fascinating and instructive narrative with a surprising unity, almost as if it were crafted by an artist. However, this tale would span nearly two centuries, and if written out in detail, it would fill a large book or several smaller ones, far more than what the history of all of New England could reasonably cover in that time. Therefore, it’s essential to condense most of the traditional stories surrounding the Pyncheon House, better known as the House of the Seven Gables. So, we'll start with a brief overview of the circumstances under which the house was built and a quick look at its unique exterior as it darkened in the prevailing east wind—also noting a few patches of verdant moss on its roof and walls. We will begin the main story of our tale at a time not too far from today. Still, there will be ties to the distant past, references to forgotten events, people, and customs, feelings, and opinions that are nearly or entirely obsolete—which, if conveyed well to the reader, would show how much of the old influences what is considered fresh and new in human life. Thus, we might glean a significant lesson from the often-overlooked truth that the actions of one generation are the seeds that can and will produce good or bad outcomes far into the future; that, alongside the quick gains mortals call expediency, they inevitably plant the acorns for a longer-lasting growth, which may cast a long shadow over their descendants.

The House of the Seven Gables, antique as it now looks, was not the first habitation erected by civilized man on precisely the same spot of ground. Pyncheon Street formerly bore the humbler appellation of Maule’s Lane, from the name of the original occupant of the soil, before whose cottage-door it was a cow-path. A natural spring of soft and pleasant water—a rare treasure on the sea-girt peninsula where the Puritan settlement was made—had early induced Matthew Maule to build a hut, shaggy with thatch, at this point, although somewhat too remote from what was then the centre of the village. In the growth of the town, however, after some thirty or forty years, the site covered by this rude hovel had become exceedingly desirable in the eyes of a prominent and powerful personage, who asserted plausible claims to the proprietorship of this and a large adjacent tract of land, on the strength of a grant from the legislature. Colonel Pyncheon, the claimant, as we gather from whatever traits of him are preserved, was characterized by an iron energy of purpose. Matthew Maule, on the other hand, though an obscure man, was stubborn in the defence of what he considered his right; and, for several years, he succeeded in protecting the acre or two of earth which, with his own toil, he had hewn out of the primeval forest, to be his garden ground and homestead. No written record of this dispute is known to be in existence. Our acquaintance with the whole subject is derived chiefly from tradition. It would be bold, therefore, and possibly unjust, to venture a decisive opinion as to its merits; although it appears to have been at least a matter of doubt, whether Colonel Pyncheon’s claim were not unduly stretched, in order to make it cover the small metes and bounds of Matthew Maule. What greatly strengthens such a suspicion is the fact that this controversy between two ill-matched antagonists—at a period, moreover, laud it as we may, when personal influence had far more weight than now—remained for years undecided, and came to a close only with the death of the party occupying the disputed soil. The mode of his death, too, affects the mind differently, in our day, from what it did a century and a half ago. It was a death that blasted with strange horror the humble name of the dweller in the cottage, and made it seem almost a religious act to drive the plough over the little area of his habitation, and obliterate his place and memory from among men.

The House of the Seven Gables, old as it looks now, wasn't the first home built by civilized people on this exact spot. Pyncheon Street used to be called Maule’s Lane, named after the original occupant of the land, in front of whose cottage door a cow-path ran. A natural spring with soft, pleasant water—a rare find on the coastal peninsula where the Puritan settlement was established—had prompted Matthew Maule to construct a thatched hut here, though it was somewhat far from what was then the center of the village. However, after about thirty or forty years, as the town grew, the land where this rough little house stood became very desirable to a prominent and powerful figure who claimed ownership of it and a large nearby area based on a grant from the legislature. Colonel Pyncheon, the claimant, as we learn from the bits of information that remain about him, was driven by a strong determination. Matthew Maule, however, though he was an unknown person, was tenacious about defending what he believed was his right; and for several years, he managed to protect the small piece of land that he had carved out of the ancient forest, making it his garden and home. No written record of this dispute is known to exist. Our understanding of the situation comes mostly from tradition. Therefore, it would be risky and possibly unfair to make a final judgment on its merits; although it seems there was at least some doubt about whether Colonel Pyncheon’s claim was stretched too far to include the small plot belonging to Matthew Maule. What adds to this suspicion is the fact that the fight between these mismatched opponents—especially at a time, no matter how we might praise it, when personal influence held much more power than it does today—went on for years without resolution and only ended with the death of the person living on the disputed land. The manner of his death, too, affects how we view it today compared to a century and a half ago. It was a death that cast a strange horror over the humble name of the cottage dweller, making it seem almost a sacred duty to plow over the small space where he lived and erase his name and memory from people’s minds.

Old Matthew Maule, in a word, was executed for the crime of witchcraft. He was one of the martyrs to that terrible delusion, which should teach us, among its other morals, that the influential classes, and those who take upon themselves to be leaders of the people, are fully liable to all the passionate error that has ever characterized the maddest mob. Clergymen, judges, statesmen,—the wisest, calmest, holiest persons of their day stood in the inner circle round about the gallows, loudest to applaud the work of blood, latest to confess themselves miserably deceived. If any one part of their proceedings can be said to deserve less blame than another, it was the singular indiscrimination with which they persecuted, not merely the poor and aged, as in former judicial massacres, but people of all ranks; their own equals, brethren, and wives. Amid the disorder of such various ruin, it is not strange that a man of inconsiderable note, like Maule, should have trodden the martyr’s path to the hill of execution almost unremarked in the throng of his fellow sufferers. But, in after days, when the frenzy of that hideous epoch had subsided, it was remembered how loudly Colonel Pyncheon had joined in the general cry, to purge the land from witchcraft; nor did it fail to be whispered, that there was an invidious acrimony in the zeal with which he had sought the condemnation of Matthew Maule. It was well known that the victim had recognized the bitterness of personal enmity in his persecutor’s conduct towards him, and that he declared himself hunted to death for his spoil. At the moment of execution—with the halter about his neck, and while Colonel Pyncheon sat on horseback, grimly gazing at the scene Maule had addressed him from the scaffold, and uttered a prophecy, of which history, as well as fireside tradition, has preserved the very words. “God,” said the dying man, pointing his finger, with a ghastly look, at the undismayed countenance of his enemy,—“God will give him blood to drink!”

Old Matthew Maule was executed for witchcraft. He became one of the victims of that terrible delusion, which teaches us, among other lessons, that the influential classes and those who see themselves as leaders of the people are just as susceptible to the irrational errors that have characterized the wildest mobs. Clergymen, judges, statesmen—the wisest, calmest, and holiest people of their time stood in the inner circle around the gallows, most eager to cheer the bloodshed and the last to admit they had been terribly deceived. If any part of their actions can be said to deserve less blame than another, it was their indiscriminate persecution of not just the poor and elderly, as in previous judicial massacres, but people from all walks of life; their equals, peers, and wives. Amid the chaos of such widespread destruction, it’s no surprise that a man of little significance like Maule went to the gallows almost unnoticed among his fellow victims. However, later on, when the madness of that horrible time had calmed down, people remembered how emphatically Colonel Pyncheon had joined the outcry to rid the land of witchcraft; whispers circulated about the spiteful eagerness with which he pursued Matthew Maule’s condemnation. It was well-known that the victim had sensed the personal hatred in his persecutor’s actions and claimed he was hunted down for his property. At the moment of execution—with the noose around his neck, and while Colonel Pyncheon sat on horseback, grimly watching—Maule addressed him from the scaffold and made a prophecy that history and local legend have preserved word for word. “God,” said the dying man, pointing a finger with a ghastly expression at the unflinching face of his enemy, “God will give him blood to drink!”

After the reputed wizard’s death, his humble homestead had fallen an easy spoil into Colonel Pyncheon’s grasp. When it was understood, however, that the Colonel intended to erect a family mansion—spacious, ponderously framed of oaken timber, and calculated to endure for many generations of his posterity over the spot first covered by the log-built hut of Matthew Maule, there was much shaking of the head among the village gossips. Without absolutely expressing a doubt whether the stalwart Puritan had acted as a man of conscience and integrity throughout the proceedings which have been sketched, they, nevertheless, hinted that he was about to build his house over an unquiet grave. His home would include the home of the dead and buried wizard, and would thus afford the ghost of the latter a kind of privilege to haunt its new apartments, and the chambers into which future bridegrooms were to lead their brides, and where children of the Pyncheon blood were to be born. The terror and ugliness of Maule’s crime, and the wretchedness of his punishment, would darken the freshly plastered walls, and infect them early with the scent of an old and melancholy house. Why, then,—while so much of the soil around him was bestrewn with the virgin forest leaves,—why should Colonel Pyncheon prefer a site that had already been accurst?

After the well-known wizard's death, his modest home quickly fell into Colonel Pyncheon's hands. However, when it became clear that the Colonel planned to build a large family mansion—spacious, heavily constructed with oak, and meant to last for many generations over the spot where Matthew Maule's log cabin once stood—there was a lot of head-shaking among the local gossipers. Without directly stating any doubt about whether the strong Puritan had acted with conscience and integrity in the matters discussed, they still suggested that he was building his house over a restless grave. His home would include the resting place of the deceased wizard, which would give the ghost a sort of right to haunt its new rooms, including those where future grooms would bring their brides and where the children of the Pyncheon lineage would be born. The horror and ugliness of Maule's crime, along with the misery of his punishment, would cast a shadow over the freshly plastered walls and soon infuse them with the smell of an old, sorrowful house. So why, while so much of the land around him was covered in fresh forest leaves, would Colonel Pyncheon choose a site that had already been cursed?

But the Puritan soldier and magistrate was not a man to be turned aside from his well-considered scheme, either by dread of the wizard’s ghost, or by flimsy sentimentalities of any kind, however specious. Had he been told of a bad air, it might have moved him somewhat; but he was ready to encounter an evil spirit on his own ground. Endowed with commonsense, as massive and hard as blocks of granite, fastened together by stern rigidity of purpose, as with iron clamps, he followed out his original design, probably without so much as imagining an objection to it. On the score of delicacy, or any scrupulousness which a finer sensibility might have taught him, the Colonel, like most of his breed and generation, was impenetrable. He therefore dug his cellar, and laid the deep foundations of his mansion, on the square of earth whence Matthew Maule, forty years before, had first swept away the fallen leaves. It was a curious, and, as some people thought, an ominous fact, that, very soon after the workmen began their operations, the spring of water, above mentioned, entirely lost the deliciousness of its pristine quality. Whether its sources were disturbed by the depth of the new cellar, or whatever subtler cause might lurk at the bottom, it is certain that the water of Maule’s Well, as it continued to be called, grew hard and brackish. Even such we find it now; and any old woman of the neighborhood will certify that it is productive of intestinal mischief to those who quench their thirst there.

But the Puritan soldier and magistrate wasn't someone who could be swayed from his carefully thought-out plan, whether by fear of the wizard’s ghost or by any flimsy sentimental feelings, no matter how convincing they might seem. If he had heard about bad air, it might have concerned him a bit; but he was ready to confront an evil spirit on its own terms. With common sense as solid and unwavering as granite, held together by a stern determination like iron clamps, he pursued his original plan, probably without even considering any objections to it. In terms of sensitivity or any scrupulousness that a more refined sensibility might have taught him, the Colonel, like most of his kind and era, was unyielding. So, he dug his cellar and laid the deep foundations of his mansion on the very spot where Matthew Maule, forty years earlier, had first cleared away the fallen leaves. It was an interesting, and as some believed, a foreboding fact that, shortly after the workers began their tasks, the spring of water mentioned earlier completely lost its original delightful quality. Whether the new cellar's depth disturbed its sources, or some other subtle cause was at play, it’s certain that the water from Maule’s Well, as it continued to be known, became hard and brackish. Even now, that's how it is; and any old woman in the neighborhood will confirm that it causes digestive problems for anyone who drinks from it.

The reader may deem it singular that the head carpenter of the new edifice was no other than the son of the very man from whose dead gripe the property of the soil had been wrested. Not improbably he was the best workman of his time; or, perhaps, the Colonel thought it expedient, or was impelled by some better feeling, thus openly to cast aside all animosity against the race of his fallen antagonist. Nor was it out of keeping with the general coarseness and matter-of-fact character of the age, that the son should be willing to earn an honest penny, or, rather, a weighty amount of sterling pounds, from the purse of his father’s deadly enemy. At all events, Thomas Maule became the architect of the House of the Seven Gables, and performed his duty so faithfully that the timber framework fastened by his hands still holds together.

The reader might find it unusual that the head carpenter of the new building was none other than the son of the man from whom the property had been taken after his death. It’s likely he was the best worker of his time; or maybe the Colonel thought it was wise—or felt compelled for some better reason—to openly let go of any bitterness toward the family of his late rival. It also fit with the general roughness and straightforward nature of the time that the son would be eager to earn a decent living, or rather, a significant amount of money, from the wallet of his father’s sworn enemy. In any case, Thomas Maule became the architect of the House of the Seven Gables and did his job so well that the wooden framework he constructed still stands strong.

Thus the great house was built. Familiar as it stands in the writer’s recollection,—for it has been an object of curiosity with him from boyhood, both as a specimen of the best and stateliest architecture of a longpast epoch, and as the scene of events more full of human interest, perhaps, than those of a gray feudal castle,—familiar as it stands, in its rusty old age, it is therefore only the more difficult to imagine the bright novelty with which it first caught the sunshine. The impression of its actual state, at this distance of a hundred and sixty years, darkens inevitably through the picture which we would fain give of its appearance on the morning when the Puritan magnate bade all the town to be his guests. A ceremony of consecration, festive as well as religious, was now to be performed. A prayer and discourse from the Rev. Mr. Higginson, and the outpouring of a psalm from the general throat of the community, was to be made acceptable to the grosser sense by ale, cider, wine, and brandy, in copious effusion, and, as some authorities aver, by an ox, roasted whole, or at least, by the weight and substance of an ox, in more manageable joints and sirloins. The carcass of a deer, shot within twenty miles, had supplied material for the vast circumference of a pasty. A codfish of sixty pounds, caught in the bay, had been dissolved into the rich liquid of a chowder. The chimney of the new house, in short, belching forth its kitchen smoke, impregnated the whole air with the scent of meats, fowls, and fishes, spicily concocted with odoriferous herbs, and onions in abundance. The mere smell of such festivity, making its way to everybody’s nostrils, was at once an invitation and an appetite.

So, the grand house was built. It's familiar to the writer's memory—it's been a source of curiosity for him since childhood, both as an example of the finest and most impressive architecture from a long-ago era, and as the backdrop for events filled with more human interest, perhaps, than those of a dull feudal castle. Familiar as it is now, in its rusty old age, it makes it all the harder to picture the bright freshness with which it first caught the sunlight. The impression of its current state, viewed from a distance of a hundred and sixty years, inevitably clouds the image we want to portray of how it looked that morning when the Puritan leader invited the whole town to be his guests. A ceremony of dedication, both festive and religious, was set to take place. A prayer and sermon from Rev. Mr. Higginson, along with the congregation’s communal singing of a psalm, would be complemented by a generous serving of ale, cider, wine, and brandy, and, according to some sources, a whole roasted ox, or at least the equivalent weight of an ox, in more manageable cuts and roasts. The carcass of a deer, shot within twenty miles, provided the filling for a massive pie. A sixty-pound cod caught in the bay was transformed into a rich chowder. In short, the chimney of the new house, puffing out kitchen smoke, filled the air with the tantalizing aromas of meats, poultry, and fish, all richly seasoned with fragrant herbs and plenty of onions. The very scent of this celebration wafting into everyone’s noses was both an invitation and a provocation for hunger.

Maule’s Lane, or Pyncheon Street, as it were now more decorous to call it, was thronged, at the appointed hour, as with a congregation on its way to church. All, as they approached, looked upward at the imposing edifice, which was henceforth to assume its rank among the habitations of mankind. There it rose, a little withdrawn from the line of the street, but in pride, not modesty. Its whole visible exterior was ornamented with quaint figures, conceived in the grotesqueness of a Gothic fancy, and drawn or stamped in the glittering plaster, composed of lime, pebbles, and bits of glass, with which the woodwork of the walls was overspread. On every side the seven gables pointed sharply towards the sky, and presented the aspect of a whole sisterhood of edifices, breathing through the spiracles of one great chimney. The many lattices, with their small, diamond-shaped panes, admitted the sunlight into hall and chamber, while, nevertheless, the second story, projecting far over the base, and itself retiring beneath the third, threw a shadowy and thoughtful gloom into the lower rooms. Carved globes of wood were affixed under the jutting stories. Little spiral rods of iron beautified each of the seven peaks. On the triangular portion of the gable, that fronted next the street, was a dial, put up that very morning, and on which the sun was still marking the passage of the first bright hour in a history that was not destined to be all so bright. All around were scattered shavings, chips, shingles, and broken halves of bricks; these, together with the lately turned earth, on which the grass had not begun to grow, contributed to the impression of strangeness and novelty proper to a house that had yet its place to make among men’s daily interests.

Maule’s Lane, or Pyncheon Street, as it was now more appropriately called, was bustling at the designated hour, like a crowd heading to church. Everyone, as they approached, looked up at the grand building, which was about to take its place among the dwellings of people. There it stood, slightly set back from the street, but with an air of pride, not modesty. Its entire visible exterior was decorated with quirky figures, designed in the eccentric style of Gothic art, etched or stamped in the shiny plaster made of lime, pebbles, and bits of glass covering the wooden walls. The seven gables pointed sharply upwards, resembling a complete sisterhood of buildings, breathing through the openings of one large chimney. The numerous windows, with their small diamond-shaped panes, let sunlight into the rooms, yet the second story, which jutted out far over the base and receded beneath the third, cast a shadowy and contemplative gloom into the lower rooms. Carved wooden globes were attached beneath the protruding stories. Little spiral iron rods adorned each of the seven peaks. On the triangular portion of the gable facing the street was a sundial, installed just that morning, with the sun still marking the passing of the first bright hour in a history that was not destined to be entirely bright. Scattered around were shavings, chips, shingles, and broken pieces of bricks; these, along with the recently turned earth where grass had yet to sprout, contributed to the sense of strangeness and novelty fitting for a house that still had to find its place among people’s daily lives.

The principal entrance, which had almost the breadth of a church-door, was in the angle between the two front gables, and was covered by an open porch, with benches beneath its shelter. Under this arched doorway, scraping their feet on the unworn threshold, now trod the clergymen, the elders, the magistrates, the deacons, and whatever of aristocracy there was in town or county. Thither, too, thronged the plebeian classes as freely as their betters, and in larger number. Just within the entrance, however, stood two serving-men, pointing some of the guests to the neighborhood of the kitchen and ushering others into the statelier rooms,—hospitable alike to all, but still with a scrutinizing regard to the high or low degree of each. Velvet garments sombre but rich, stiffly plaited ruffs and bands, embroidered gloves, venerable beards, the mien and countenance of authority, made it easy to distinguish the gentleman of worship, at that period, from the tradesman, with his plodding air, or the laborer, in his leathern jerkin, stealing awe-stricken into the house which he had perhaps helped to build.

The main entrance, almost as wide as a church door, was located at the angle between the two front gables and was sheltered by an open porch that had benches underneath. Under this arched doorway, scraping their feet on the unmarked threshold, stepped in the clergymen, the elders, the magistrates, the deacons, and anyone of higher status from the town or county. The common people also gathered there just as freely as their betters, and in even greater numbers. Just inside the entrance, two servants stood, directing some guests towards the kitchen area while ushering others into the more formal rooms—welcoming to all, yet still paying attention to the social status of each. Rich but dark velvet garments, stiffly plaited ruffs and collars, embroidered gloves, dignified beards, and an air of authority made it easy to tell apart the gentleman of importance from the tradesman, who had a serious demeanor, or the laborer in his leather jacket, who entered in awe, perhaps even ashamed, into a house he might have helped build.

One inauspicious circumstance there was, which awakened a hardly concealed displeasure in the breasts of a few of the more punctilious visitors. The founder of this stately mansion—a gentleman noted for the square and ponderous courtesy of his demeanor, ought surely to have stood in his own hall, and to have offered the first welcome to so many eminent personages as here presented themselves in honor of his solemn festival. He was as yet invisible; the most favored of the guests had not beheld him. This sluggishness on Colonel Pyncheon’s part became still more unaccountable, when the second dignitary of the province made his appearance, and found no more ceremonious a reception. The lieutenant-governor, although his visit was one of the anticipated glories of the day, had alighted from his horse, and assisted his lady from her side-saddle, and crossed the Colonel’s threshold, without other greeting than that of the principal domestic.

One unfortunate situation arose that stirred barely concealed annoyance among some of the more particular guests. The founder of this impressive mansion—a gentleman known for his formal and heavy courtesy—should have definitely been present in his own hall to offer a warm welcome to the many distinguished guests who had gathered to honor his significant celebration. However, he remained unseen; even the most favored guests had yet to catch a glimpse of him. This absence of Colonel Pyncheon became even more puzzling when the second-highest official in the province arrived and received no more formal welcome. The lieutenant-governor, despite his visit being one of the highlights of the day, dismounted from his horse, helped his wife down from her side-saddle, and entered the Colonel’s home with no greeting other than that from the main servant.

This person—a gray-headed man, of quiet and most respectful deportment—found it necessary to explain that his master still remained in his study, or private apartment; on entering which, an hour before, he had expressed a wish on no account to be disturbed.

This person—a gray-haired man, with a calm and very respectful manner—felt it was important to explain that his employer was still in his study, or private room; upon entering it an hour earlier, he had made it clear that he did not want to be disturbed under any circumstances.

“Do not you see, fellow,” said the high-sheriff of the county, taking the servant aside, “that this is no less a man than the lieutenant-governor? Summon Colonel Pyncheon at once! I know that he received letters from England this morning; and, in the perusal and consideration of them, an hour may have passed away without his noticing it. But he will be ill-pleased, I judge, if you suffer him to neglect the courtesy due to one of our chief rulers, and who may be said to represent King William, in the absence of the governor himself. Call your master instantly.”

“Don’t you see, my friend,” said the county sheriff, pulling the servant aside, “that this is none other than the lieutenant governor? Get Colonel Pyncheon here right away! I know he received letters from England this morning, and he might have spent an hour reading them without even realizing it. But I think he’ll be annoyed if you let him ignore the courtesy owed to one of our top officials, who can be considered to represent King William while the governor is away. Call your master immediately.”

“Nay, please your worship,” answered the man, in much perplexity, but with a backwardness that strikingly indicated the hard and severe character of Colonel Pyncheon’s domestic rule; “my master’s orders were exceeding strict; and, as your worship knows, he permits of no discretion in the obedience of those who owe him service. Let who list open yonder door; I dare not, though the governor’s own voice should bid me do it!”

“Please, your honor,” the man replied, clearly confused, but with a hesitation that showed how strict Colonel Pyncheon was at home. “My master’s orders were very strict, and, as you know, he doesn’t allow any leeway in how those who serve him should obey. Let whoever wants to open that door do it; I can’t, even if the governor himself told me to!”

“Pooh, pooh, master high sheriff!” cried the lieutenant-governor, who had overheard the foregoing discussion, and felt himself high enough in station to play a little with his dignity. “I will take the matter into my own hands. It is time that the good Colonel came forth to greet his friends; else we shall be apt to suspect that he has taken a sip too much of his Canary wine, in his extreme deliberation which cask it were best to broach in honor of the day! But since he is so much behindhand, I will give him a remembrancer myself!”

“Enough of that, master high sheriff!” shouted the lieutenant-governor, who had been listening to the conversation and felt important enough to mess around with his dignity a bit. “I’ll handle this myself. It’s time for the good Colonel to come out and greet his friends; otherwise, we might start to think he’s had one too many sips of his Canary wine, trying to figure out which cask to open for the occasion! But since he’s so lagging behind, I’ll remind him myself!”

Accordingly, with such a tramp of his ponderous riding-boots as might of itself have been audible in the remotest of the seven gables, he advanced to the door, which the servant pointed out, and made its new panels reecho with a loud, free knock. Then, looking round, with a smile, to the spectators, he awaited a response. As none came, however, he knocked again, but with the same unsatisfactory result as at first. And now, being a trifle choleric in his temperament, the lieutenant-governor uplifted the heavy hilt of his sword, wherewith he so beat and banged upon the door, that, as some of the bystanders whispered, the racket might have disturbed the dead. Be that as it might, it seemed to produce no awakening effect on Colonel Pyncheon. When the sound subsided, the silence through the house was deep, dreary, and oppressive, notwithstanding that the tongues of many of the guests had already been loosened by a surreptitious cup or two of wine or spirits.

With the heavy thud of his riding boots that could probably be heard even in the farthest corner of the seven gables, he walked up to the door the servant indicated and gave it a loud, confident knock. Then, turning to the onlookers with a smile, he waited for a reply. When no one answered, he knocked again but got the same disappointing result. Now a bit irritable, the lieutenant-governor raised the heavy hilt of his sword and struck the door so hard that, as some of the onlookers whispered, it might have disturbed the dead. Regardless, it seemed to have no effect on Colonel Pyncheon. As the noise faded, the silence that filled the house was deep, gloomy, and oppressive, even though many of the guests had already started chatting after sneaking a glass or two of wine or spirits.

“Strange, forsooth!—very strange!” cried the lieutenant-governor, whose smile was changed to a frown. “But seeing that our host sets us the good example of forgetting ceremony, I shall likewise throw it aside, and make free to intrude on his privacy.”

“Strange, indeed!—very strange!” exclaimed the lieutenant-governor, whose smile turned into a frown. “But since our host is setting a good example by forgetting formalities, I too will set them aside and feel free to intrude on his privacy.”

He tried the door, which yielded to his hand, and was flung wide open by a sudden gust of wind that passed, as with a loud sigh, from the outermost portal through all the passages and apartments of the new house. It rustled the silken garments of the ladies, and waved the long curls of the gentlemen’s wigs, and shook the window-hangings and the curtains of the bedchambers; causing everywhere a singular stir, which yet was more like a hush. A shadow of awe and half-fearful anticipation—nobody knew wherefore, nor of what—had all at once fallen over the company.

He tried the door, which opened easily, and was pushed wide by a sudden gust of wind that swept through the outer entrance and into all the rooms of the new house with a loud sigh. It rustled the silky dresses of the women, waved the long curls of the men’s wigs, and shook the window drapes and the curtains in the bedrooms, creating a strange commotion that felt more like silence. A sense of awe and vague, fearful anticipation—no one knew why or for what—had suddenly settled over the group.

They thronged, however, to the now open door, pressing the lieutenant-governor, in the eagerness of their curiosity, into the room in advance of them. At the first glimpse they beheld nothing extraordinary: a handsomely furnished room, of moderate size, somewhat darkened by curtains; books arranged on shelves; a large map on the wall, and likewise a portrait of Colonel Pyncheon, beneath which sat the original Colonel himself, in an oaken elbow-chair, with a pen in his hand. Letters, parchments, and blank sheets of paper were on the table before him. He appeared to gaze at the curious crowd, in front of which stood the lieutenant-governor; and there was a frown on his dark and massive countenance, as if sternly resentful of the boldness that had impelled them into his private retirement.

They crowded around the now open door, pushing the lieutenant-governor ahead of them as their curiosity got the better of them. At first glance, they saw nothing unusual: a nicely furnished room, fairly sized, slightly dimmed by the curtains; books neatly arranged on shelves; a large map on the wall, along with a portrait of Colonel Pyncheon, beneath which sat the original Colonel himself in an oak armchair, pen in hand. Letters, documents, and blank sheets of paper were spread out on the table in front of him. He seemed to look at the curious crowd, with the lieutenant-governor standing in front of them; his dark and stern face bore a frown, as if he disapproved of their boldness that had led them into his private space.

A little boy—the Colonel’s grandchild, and the only human being that ever dared to be familiar with him—now made his way among the guests, and ran towards the seated figure; then pausing halfway, he began to shriek with terror. The company, tremulous as the leaves of a tree, when all are shaking together, drew nearer, and perceived that there was an unnatural distortion in the fixedness of Colonel Pyncheon’s stare; that there was blood on his ruff, and that his hoary beard was saturated with it. It was too late to give assistance. The iron-hearted Puritan, the relentless persecutor, the grasping and strong-willed man was dead! Dead, in his new house! There is a tradition, only worth alluding to as lending a tinge of superstitious awe to a scene perhaps gloomy enough without it, that a voice spoke loudly among the guests, the tones of which were like those of old Matthew Maule, the executed wizard,—“God hath given him blood to drink!”

A little boy—the Colonel’s grandchild and the only person brave enough to be friendly with him—now made his way through the guests and ran toward the seated figure; then pausing halfway, he started to scream in terror. The crowd, trembling like the leaves of a tree all shaking at once, moved closer and noticed the unnatural fixity in Colonel Pyncheon’s stare; there was blood on his collar, and his gray beard was soaked with it. It was too late to help. The iron-willed Puritan, the relentless persecutor, the greedy and strong-minded man was dead! Dead, in his new house! There’s a tradition, which only adds a touch of superstitious dread to a scene that might be gloomy enough without it, that a voice echoed among the guests, sounding like old Matthew Maule, the executed wizard—“God has given him blood to drink!”

Thus early had that one guest,—the only guest who is certain, at one time or another, to find his way into every human dwelling,—thus early had Death stepped across the threshold of the House of the Seven Gables!

Thus early had that one guest—the only guest who is guaranteed, at some point or another, to enter every human home—thus early had Death stepped across the threshold of the House of the Seven Gables!

Colonel Pyncheon’s sudden and mysterious end made a vast deal of noise in its day. There were many rumors, some of which have vaguely drifted down to the present time, how that appearances indicated violence; that there were the marks of fingers on his throat, and the print of a bloody hand on his plaited ruff; and that his peaked beard was dishevelled, as if it had been fiercely clutched and pulled. It was averred, likewise, that the lattice window, near the Colonel’s chair, was open; and that, only a few minutes before the fatal occurrence, the figure of a man had been seen clambering over the garden fence, in the rear of the house. But it were folly to lay any stress on stories of this kind, which are sure to spring up around such an event as that now related, and which, as in the present case, sometimes prolong themselves for ages afterwards, like the toadstools that indicate where the fallen and buried trunk of a tree has long since mouldered into the earth. For our own part, we allow them just as little credence as to that other fable of the skeleton hand which the lieutenant-governor was said to have seen at the Colonel’s throat, but which vanished away, as he advanced farther into the room. Certain it is, however, that there was a great consultation and dispute of doctors over the dead body. One,—John Swinnerton by name,—who appears to have been a man of eminence, upheld it, if we have rightly understood his terms of art, to be a case of apoplexy. His professional brethren, each for himself, adopted various hypotheses, more or less plausible, but all dressed out in a perplexing mystery of phrase, which, if it do not show a bewilderment of mind in these erudite physicians, certainly causes it in the unlearned peruser of their opinions. The coroner’s jury sat upon the corpse, and, like sensible men, returned an unassailable verdict of “Sudden Death!”

Colonel Pyncheon’s sudden and mysterious death caused a huge stir in its time. There were many rumors, some of which have vaguely lingered to this day, suggesting that there were signs of violence; that there were marks of fingers on his throat, and the print of a bloody hand on his ruffled collar; and that his pointed beard was messy, as if it had been roughly grabbed and pulled. It was also claimed that the window near the Colonel’s chair was open; and that just minutes before the tragic event, a man had been seen climbing over the garden fence at the back of the house. However, it's foolish to put much weight on stories like this, which are sure to arise around such an event and, as in this case, sometimes last for ages, like the mushrooms that show where a fallen and buried tree trunk has long since rotted into the earth. For our part, we give them as little credibility as that other tale about the skeleton hand which the lieutenant-governor supposedly saw at the Colonel’s throat, but which disappeared as he moved further into the room. It is certain, though, that there was a significant consultation and debate among doctors over the dead body. One—John Swinnerton, by name—who seemed to be a notable figure, maintained, if we've understood his technical language correctly, that it was a case of apoplexy. His professional colleagues, each on their own, proposed various theories, more or less convincing, but all wrapped in confusing terminology that, while it may not indicate a lack of clarity among these learned doctors, certainly creates confusion for the average reader of their opinions. The coroner’s jury examined the corpse and, like practical individuals, reached a solid verdict of “Sudden Death!”

It is indeed difficult to imagine that there could have been a serious suspicion of murder, or the slightest grounds for implicating any particular individual as the perpetrator. The rank, wealth, and eminent character of the deceased must have insured the strictest scrutiny into every ambiguous circumstance. As none such is on record, it is safe to assume that none existed. Tradition,—which sometimes brings down truth that history has let slip, but is oftener the wild babble of the time, such as was formerly spoken at the fireside and now congeals in newspapers,—tradition is responsible for all contrary averments. In Colonel Pyncheon’s funeral sermon, which was printed, and is still extant, the Rev. Mr. Higginson enumerates, among the many felicities of his distinguished parishioner’s earthly career, the happy seasonableness of his death. His duties all performed,—the highest prosperity attained,—his race and future generations fixed on a stable basis, and with a stately roof to shelter them for centuries to come,—what other upward step remained for this good man to take, save the final step from earth to the golden gate of heaven! The pious clergyman surely would not have uttered words like these had he in the least suspected that the Colonel had been thrust into the other world with the clutch of violence upon his throat.

It's really hard to believe there was ever a serious suspicion of murder, or even a hint that any specific person could be the culprit. The status, wealth, and respected character of the deceased would have ensured a thorough investigation into any questionable circumstances. Since there's no record of any such circumstances, we can assume they didn’t exist. Tradition—sometimes it preserves truths that history has overlooked, but more often it’s just the chatter of the times, like what was once shared around the fire and now finds its way into newspapers—tradition is behind all the contradictory claims. In Colonel Pyncheon’s funeral sermon, which was published and still exists, Rev. Mr. Higginson lists, among the many achievements of his notable parishioner’s life, the fortunate timing of his death. With all his duties completed, having reached the peak of prosperity, and with a secure legacy for his family for centuries to come, what other step was left for this good man but to make the final journey from earth to the golden gates of heaven? The devoted clergyman wouldn't have spoken these words if he suspected in any way that the Colonel had been violently forced into the afterlife.

The family of Colonel Pyncheon, at the epoch of his death, seemed destined to as fortunate a permanence as can anywise consist with the inherent instability of human affairs. It might fairly be anticipated that the progress of time would rather increase and ripen their prosperity, than wear away and destroy it. For, not only had his son and heir come into immediate enjoyment of a rich estate, but there was a claim through an Indian deed, confirmed by a subsequent grant of the General Court, to a vast and as yet unexplored and unmeasured tract of Eastern lands. These possessions—for as such they might almost certainly be reckoned—comprised the greater part of what is now known as Waldo County, in the state of Maine, and were more extensive than many a dukedom, or even a reigning prince’s territory, on European soil. When the pathless forest that still covered this wild principality should give place—as it inevitably must, though perhaps not till ages hence—to the golden fertility of human culture, it would be the source of incalculable wealth to the Pyncheon blood. Had the Colonel survived only a few weeks longer, it is probable that his great political influence, and powerful connections at home and abroad, would have consummated all that was necessary to render the claim available. But, in spite of good Mr. Higginson’s congratulatory eloquence, this appeared to be the one thing which Colonel Pyncheon, provident and sagacious as he was, had allowed to go at loose ends. So far as the prospective territory was concerned, he unquestionably died too soon. His son lacked not merely the father’s eminent position, but the talent and force of character to achieve it: he could, therefore, effect nothing by dint of political interest; and the bare justice or legality of the claim was not so apparent, after the Colonel’s decease, as it had been pronounced in his lifetime. Some connecting link had slipped out of the evidence, and could not anywhere be found.

The family of Colonel Pyncheon, at the time of his death, seemed destined for a lasting fortune, as much as can be expected given the unpredictable nature of human affairs. It was reasonable to expect that as time went on, their prosperity would grow and flourish rather than fade away. Not only had his son and heir come into immediate possession of a wealthy estate, but there was also a claim based on an Indian deed, reinforced by a later grant from the General Court, to a vast area of unexplored land in the East. These assets—almost certainly considered possessions—covered the majority of what is now known as Waldo County in Maine, and were more extensive than many duchies or even territories of reigning princes in Europe. When the untamed forest that still blanketed this wild expanse eventually gave way—as it surely would, though perhaps not for many years—to the prosperous development of human activity, it would become a source of immense wealth for the Pyncheon lineage. If the Colonel had survived just a few more weeks, it’s likely that his considerable political influence and strong connections both at home and abroad would have secured everything needed to make the claim viable. However, despite Mr. Higginson’s well-meaning congratulations, this was seemingly the one matter that Colonel Pyncheon, as foresighted and wise as he was, failed to properly address. Regarding the potential territory, he undoubtedly passed away too soon. His son not only lacked his father’s prominent status but also the ability and strength of character to attain it; therefore, he couldn’t accomplish anything through political influence, and the mere justice or legality of the claim wasn’t as obvious after the Colonel’s death as it had been while he was alive. Some crucial connection had slipped away from the evidence and couldn't be found anywhere.

Efforts, it is true, were made by the Pyncheons, not only then, but at various periods for nearly a hundred years afterwards, to obtain what they stubbornly persisted in deeming their right. But, in course of time, the territory was partly regranted to more favored individuals, and partly cleared and occupied by actual settlers. These last, if they ever heard of the Pyncheon title, would have laughed at the idea of any man’s asserting a right—on the strength of mouldy parchments, signed with the faded autographs of governors and legislators long dead and forgotten—to the lands which they or their fathers had wrested from the wild hand of nature by their own sturdy toil. This impalpable claim, therefore, resulted in nothing more solid than to cherish, from generation to generation, an absurd delusion of family importance, which all along characterized the Pyncheons. It caused the poorest member of the race to feel as if he inherited a kind of nobility, and might yet come into the possession of princely wealth to support it. In the better specimens of the breed, this peculiarity threw an ideal grace over the hard material of human life, without stealing away any truly valuable quality. In the baser sort, its effect was to increase the liability to sluggishness and dependence, and induce the victim of a shadowy hope to remit all self-effort, while awaiting the realization of his dreams. Years and years after their claim had passed out of the public memory, the Pyncheons were accustomed to consult the Colonel’s ancient map, which had been projected while Waldo County was still an unbroken wilderness. Where the old land surveyor had put down woods, lakes, and rivers, they marked out the cleared spaces, and dotted the villages and towns, and calculated the progressively increasing value of the territory, as if there were yet a prospect of its ultimately forming a princedom for themselves.

Efforts were made by the Pyncheons, not just back then, but at various times for nearly a hundred years afterward, to claim what they stubbornly believed was their right. Over time, the land was partly regranted to more favored individuals and partly cleared and settled by actual inhabitants. Those latter settlers, if they ever heard of the Pyncheon claim, would have laughed at the idea of anyone asserting a right based on old parchments signed by governors and lawmakers long dead and forgotten to the lands they or their ancestors had claimed through hard work. This vague claim resulted in nothing more concrete than a long-standing delusion of family significance that marked the Pyncheons. It led even the poorest member of the family to feel like they had some kind of nobility and might one day come into wealth to support it. For the better members of the family, this belief added a touch of grace to the harsh realities of life without diminishing any true value. For the less fortunate, it made them more prone to laziness and dependence, causing them to give up on self-reliance while waiting for their dreams to come true. Years after their claim had faded from public memory, the Pyncheons still looked at the Colonel’s old map, which had been made when Waldo County was still a wild wilderness. Where the old land surveyor had noted forests, lakes, and rivers, they mapped out the cleared areas, marked the villages and towns, and estimated the growing value of the land, as if there was still hope of it becoming a principality for themselves.

In almost every generation, nevertheless, there happened to be some one descendant of the family gifted with a portion of the hard, keen sense, and practical energy, that had so remarkably distinguished the original founder. His character, indeed, might be traced all the way down, as distinctly as if the Colonel himself, a little diluted, had been gifted with a sort of intermittent immortality on earth. At two or three epochs, when the fortunes of the family were low, this representative of hereditary qualities had made his appearance, and caused the traditionary gossips of the town to whisper among themselves, “Here is the old Pyncheon come again! Now the Seven Gables will be new-shingled!” From father to son, they clung to the ancestral house with singular tenacity of home attachment. For various reasons, however, and from impressions often too vaguely founded to be put on paper, the writer cherishes the belief that many, if not most, of the successive proprietors of this estate were troubled with doubts as to their moral right to hold it. Of their legal tenure there could be no question; but old Matthew Maule, it is to be feared, trode downward from his own age to a far later one, planting a heavy footstep, all the way, on the conscience of a Pyncheon. If so, we are left to dispose of the awful query, whether each inheritor of the property—conscious of wrong, and failing to rectify it—did not commit anew the great guilt of his ancestor, and incur all its original responsibilities. And supposing such to be the case, would it not be a far truer mode of expression to say of the Pyncheon family, that they inherited a great misfortune, than the reverse?

In almost every generation, there was usually a descendant of the family who had a bit of the sharp, practical sense and energy that characterized the original founder. You could trace his character down the family line as clearly as if the Colonel himself had somehow gained a sort of intermittent immortality on Earth. At a few times, when the family’s fortunes were struggling, this representative of those inherited traits would show up, making the townspeople whisper, “Look, it’s the old Pyncheon returning! The Seven Gables will be renovated now!” From father to son, they held on to the family home with a strong sense of attachment. However, for various reasons—and based on impressions that are often too vague to put into words—the writer believes that many, if not most, of the successive owners of this estate had doubts about their moral right to possess it. There was no question about their legal ownership, but old Matthew Maule, it seems, left a dark mark on the conscience of a Pyncheon that continued well into the future. If that’s the case, we have to confront the troubling question of whether each inheritor of the property—aware of wrongdoing and doing nothing to correct it—didn't repeat the significant guilt of his ancestor, taking on all its original responsibilities. And if this is true, wouldn’t it be more accurate to say that the Pyncheon family inherited a great misfortune instead of the opposite?

We have already hinted that it is not our purpose to trace down the history of the Pyncheon family, in its unbroken connection with the House of the Seven Gables; nor to show, as in a magic picture, how the rustiness and infirmity of age gathered over the venerable house itself. As regards its interior life, a large, dim looking-glass used to hang in one of the rooms, and was fabled to contain within its depths all the shapes that had ever been reflected there,—the old Colonel himself, and his many descendants, some in the garb of antique babyhood, and others in the bloom of feminine beauty or manly prime, or saddened with the wrinkles of frosty age. Had we the secret of that mirror, we would gladly sit down before it, and transfer its revelations to our page. But there was a story, for which it is difficult to conceive any foundation, that the posterity of Matthew Maule had some connection with the mystery of the looking-glass, and that, by what appears to have been a sort of mesmeric process, they could make its inner region all alive with the departed Pyncheons; not as they had shown themselves to the world, nor in their better and happier hours, but as doing over again some deed of sin, or in the crisis of life’s bitterest sorrow. The popular imagination, indeed, long kept itself busy with the affair of the old Puritan Pyncheon and the wizard Maule; the curse which the latter flung from his scaffold was remembered, with the very important addition, that it had become a part of the Pyncheon inheritance. If one of the family did but gurgle in his throat, a bystander would be likely enough to whisper, between jest and earnest, “He has Maule’s blood to drink!” The sudden death of a Pyncheon, about a hundred years ago, with circumstances very similar to what have been related of the Colonel’s exit, was held as giving additional probability to the received opinion on this topic. It was considered, moreover, an ugly and ominous circumstance, that Colonel Pyncheon’s picture—in obedience, it was said, to a provision of his will—remained affixed to the wall of the room in which he died. Those stern, immitigable features seemed to symbolize an evil influence, and so darkly to mingle the shadow of their presence with the sunshine of the passing hour, that no good thoughts or purposes could ever spring up and blossom there. To the thoughtful mind there will be no tinge of superstition in what we figuratively express, by affirming that the ghost of a dead progenitor—perhaps as a portion of his own punishment—is often doomed to become the Evil Genius of his family.

We’ve already mentioned that we’re not here to trace the history of the Pyncheon family in its unbroken connection with the House of the Seven Gables, nor to illustrate, like in a magic picture, how age and decay have settled over the historic house itself. Regarding its inner life, a large, dim mirror used to hang in one of the rooms, said to contain all the reflections that had ever appeared in it—the old Colonel himself, along with his many descendants, some in the attire of childhood, others in the beauty of youth or the vigor of adulthood, or burdened with the wrinkles of old age. If we had the secret of that mirror, we would gladly sit before it and record its revelations. There was a tale, though it’s hard to see how it started, that the descendants of Matthew Maule had some link to the mystery of the mirror, claiming that, through what seemed to be a kind of hypnotic means, they could bring to life the images of the departed Pyncheons; not as they had shown themselves in life, nor in their happiest moments, but reenacting some misdeed or during the darkest times of sorrow. The public imagination was indeed long captivated by the story of the old Puritan Pyncheon and the wizard Maule; the curse that Maule cast from his scaffold was remembered, with the significant addition that it had become part of the Pyncheon legacy. If one of the family merely made a sound, a bystander would likely whisper, half-jokingly and half-seriously, “He’s got Maule’s blood in him!” The sudden death of a Pyncheon about a hundred years ago, which echoed the circumstances of the Colonel’s death, was believed to add credibility to this idea. Additionally, it was seen as a nasty and ominous fact that Colonel Pyncheon’s portrait—following a provision in his will—remained on the wall of the room where he died. Those stern, unyielding features seemed to represent a dark influence so deeply infused with the atmosphere that no good thoughts or intentions could ever take root and flourish there. To a reflective mind, there’s no hint of superstition in what we suggest when we say that the spirit of a deceased ancestor—perhaps as part of his own punishment—often ends up being the Evil Genius of his family.

The Pyncheons, in brief, lived along, for the better part of two centuries, with perhaps less of outward vicissitude than has attended most other New England families during the same period of time. Possessing very distinctive traits of their own, they nevertheless took the general characteristics of the little community in which they dwelt; a town noted for its frugal, discreet, well-ordered, and home-loving inhabitants, as well as for the somewhat confined scope of its sympathies; but in which, be it said, there are odder individuals, and, now and then, stranger occurrences, than one meets with almost anywhere else. During the Revolution, the Pyncheon of that epoch, adopting the royal side, became a refugee; but repented, and made his reappearance, just at the point of time to preserve the House of the Seven Gables from confiscation. For the last seventy years the most noted event in the Pyncheon annals had been likewise the heaviest calamity that ever befell the race; no less than the violent death—for so it was adjudged—of one member of the family by the criminal act of another. Certain circumstances attending this fatal occurrence had brought the deed irresistibly home to a nephew of the deceased Pyncheon. The young man was tried and convicted of the crime; but either the circumstantial nature of the evidence, and possibly some lurking doubts in the breast of the executive, or, lastly—an argument of greater weight in a republic than it could have been under a monarchy,—the high respectability and political influence of the criminal’s connections, had availed to mitigate his doom from death to perpetual imprisonment. This sad affair had chanced about thirty years before the action of our story commences. Latterly, there were rumors (which few believed, and only one or two felt greatly interested in) that this long-buried man was likely, for some reason or other, to be summoned forth from his living tomb.

The Pyncheons lived for about two centuries with less change than most other New England families during that time. Although they had unique characteristics, they also reflected the general traits of the small community they were part of—a town known for its thrifty, discreet, orderly, and family-oriented residents, as well as its somewhat narrow-mindedness. However, there were still some eccentric people and occasional strange events that were more unusual than what you’d find almost anywhere else. During the Revolution, the Pyncheon from that time chose the royal side and became a refugee, but later regretted it and returned just in time to save the House of the Seven Gables from being taken away. For the last seventy years, the most significant event in the Pyncheon history was also the worst tragedy that hit the family: the violent death—so it was determined—of one family member at the hands of another. Certain circumstances surrounding this tragic event pointed directly to a nephew of the deceased Pyncheon. The young man was put on trial and found guilty; however, due to the circumstantial nature of the evidence and possibly some doubts from those in power, alongside the esteemed reputation and political influence of the criminal's family, his sentence was reduced from death to life in prison. This unfortunate incident occurred about thirty years before our story begins. Recently, there have been rumors (which few believed and only a couple showed genuine interest in) that this long-imprisoned man might be called out of his living grave for some unknown reason.

It is essential to say a few words respecting the victim of this now almost forgotten murder. He was an old bachelor, and possessed of great wealth, in addition to the house and real estate which constituted what remained of the ancient Pyncheon property. Being of an eccentric and melancholy turn of mind, and greatly given to rummaging old records and hearkening to old traditions, he had brought himself, it is averred, to the conclusion that Matthew Maule, the wizard, had been foully wronged out of his homestead, if not out of his life. Such being the case, and he, the old bachelor, in possession of the ill-gotten spoil,—with the black stain of blood sunken deep into it, and still to be scented by conscientious nostrils,—the question occurred, whether it were not imperative upon him, even at this late hour, to make restitution to Maule’s posterity. To a man living so much in the past, and so little in the present, as the secluded and antiquarian old bachelor, a century and a half seemed not so vast a period as to obviate the propriety of substituting right for wrong. It was the belief of those who knew him best, that he would positively have taken the very singular step of giving up the House of the Seven Gables to the representative of Matthew Maule, but for the unspeakable tumult which a suspicion of the old gentleman’s project awakened among his Pyncheon relatives. Their exertions had the effect of suspending his purpose; but it was feared that he would perform, after death, by the operation of his last will, what he had so hardly been prevented from doing in his proper lifetime. But there is no one thing which men so rarely do, whatever the provocation or inducement, as to bequeath patrimonial property away from their own blood. They may love other individuals far better than their relatives,—they may even cherish dislike, or positive hatred, to the latter; but yet, in view of death, the strong prejudice of propinquity revives, and impels the testator to send down his estate in the line marked out by custom so immemorial that it looks like nature. In all the Pyncheons, this feeling had the energy of disease. It was too powerful for the conscientious scruples of the old bachelor; at whose death, accordingly, the mansion-house, together with most of his other riches, passed into the possession of his next legal representative.

It’s important to mention a few things about the victim of this now nearly forgotten murder. He was an older bachelor with significant wealth, which, along with the house and real estate that made up what was left of the ancient Pyncheon property, formed his estate. With an eccentric and melancholic nature, he spent a lot of time going through old records and listening to old stories. It was said that he had come to believe that Matthew Maule, the wizard, had been unjustly deprived of his home, if not his life. Given this situation, and the fact that the old bachelor held onto this ill-gotten gain—tainted by a deep bloodstain that still lingered for those with a keen sense of conscience—he wondered whether it was not his duty, even at this late stage, to make amends to Maule’s descendants. For someone so wrapped up in the past and so detached from the present, a century and a half didn’t seem like such a long time to prevent him from correcting a wrong. Those who knew him best believed he would have actually gone so far as to give up the House of the Seven Gables to Matthew Maule’s heir if it hadn’t been for the uproar that his relatives created at the mere thought of it. Their efforts prevented him from carrying out his plan, but there was concern that he might do with his will what he had been thwarted from doing in life. However, one thing people rarely do, no matter the circumstances, is leave inherited property to someone outside their own family. They might love others more than their relatives, or even harbor dislike or hatred for them, but when facing death, the strong instinct of family ties often prevails, compelling the person to pass on their estate in the traditional manner that feels almost instinctual. In the Pyncheon family, this urge was especially intense. It was too strong for the old bachelor’s moral qualms, so upon his death, the mansion and most of his wealth went to his closest legal heir.

This was a nephew, the cousin of the miserable young man who had been convicted of the uncle’s murder. The new heir, up to the period of his accession, was reckoned rather a dissipated youth, but had at once reformed, and made himself an exceedingly respectable member of society. In fact, he showed more of the Pyncheon quality, and had won higher eminence in the world, than any of his race since the time of the original Puritan. Applying himself in earlier manhood to the study of the law, and having a natural tendency towards office, he had attained, many years ago, to a judicial situation in some inferior court, which gave him for life the very desirable and imposing title of judge. Later, he had engaged in politics, and served a part of two terms in Congress, besides making a considerable figure in both branches of the State legislature. Judge Pyncheon was unquestionably an honor to his race. He had built himself a country-seat within a few miles of his native town, and there spent such portions of his time as could be spared from public service in the display of every grace and virtue—as a newspaper phrased it, on the eve of an election—befitting the Christian, the good citizen, the horticulturist, and the gentleman.

This was a nephew, the cousin of the unfortunate young man who had been convicted of the uncle’s murder. The new heir, until he took over, was seen as a bit of a wild youth, but he quickly turned things around and became a highly respected member of society. In fact, he embodied more of the Pyncheon legacy and achieved greater recognition in the world than any of his relatives since the original Puritan. He focused on studying law in his younger years and naturally gravitated toward public office, eventually landing a judicial position in a lower court many years ago, which granted him the impressive title of judge for life. Later on, he got into politics and served part of two terms in Congress, making a notable impact in both branches of the State legislature. Judge Pyncheon was undeniably a credit to his family. He built a country house just a few miles from his hometown and spent whatever time he could spare from public duties showcasing every grace and virtue—as a newspaper described it on the eve of an election—fitting of a Christian, a good citizen, a horticulturist, and a gentleman.

There were few of the Pyncheons left to sun themselves in the glow of the Judge’s prosperity. In respect to natural increase, the breed had not thriven; it appeared rather to be dying out. The only members of the family known to be extant were, first, the Judge himself, and a single surviving son, who was now travelling in Europe; next, the thirty years’ prisoner, already alluded to, and a sister of the latter, who occupied, in an extremely retired manner, the House of the Seven Gables, in which she had a life-estate by the will of the old bachelor. She was understood to be wretchedly poor, and seemed to make it her choice to remain so; inasmuch as her affluent cousin, the Judge, had repeatedly offered her all the comforts of life, either in the old mansion or his own modern residence. The last and youngest Pyncheon was a little country-girl of seventeen, the daughter of another of the Judge’s cousins, who had married a young woman of no family or property, and died early and in poor circumstances. His widow had recently taken another husband.

There were few Pyncheons left to bask in the glow of the Judge’s success. When it came to family growth, the lineage seemed to be dwindling; it looked like they were dying out. The only known surviving members were, first, the Judge himself, and a single son who was currently traveling in Europe; next, there was the thirty-year prisoner mentioned earlier, and a sister of his who lived a very secluded life in the House of the Seven Gables, where she held a life-estate according to the will of the old bachelor. She was believed to be very poor and seemed to prefer it that way, since her wealthy cousin, the Judge, had repeatedly offered her all the comforts of life, either in the old mansion or his own modern home. The last and youngest Pyncheon was a little country girl of seventeen, the daughter of another cousin of the Judge’s, who had married a woman without family or property, and died young and in poor conditions. His widow had recently remarried.

As for Matthew Maule’s posterity, it was supposed now to be extinct. For a very long period after the witchcraft delusion, however, the Maules had continued to inhabit the town where their progenitor had suffered so unjust a death. To all appearance, they were a quiet, honest, well-meaning race of people, cherishing no malice against individuals or the public for the wrong which had been done them; or if, at their own fireside, they transmitted from father to child any hostile recollection of the wizard’s fate and their lost patrimony, it was never acted upon, nor openly expressed. Nor would it have been singular had they ceased to remember that the House of the Seven Gables was resting its heavy framework on a foundation that was rightfully their own. There is something so massive, stable, and almost irresistibly imposing in the exterior presentment of established rank and great possessions, that their very existence seems to give them a right to exist; at least, so excellent a counterfeit of right, that few poor and humble men have moral force enough to question it, even in their secret minds. Such is the case now, after so many ancient prejudices have been overthrown; and it was far more so in ante-Revolutionary days, when the aristocracy could venture to be proud, and the low were content to be abased. Thus the Maules, at all events, kept their resentments within their own breasts. They were generally poverty-stricken; always plebeian and obscure; working with unsuccessful diligence at handicrafts; laboring on the wharves, or following the sea, as sailors before the mast; living here and there about the town, in hired tenements, and coming finally to the almshouse as the natural home of their old age. At last, after creeping, as it were, for such a length of time along the utmost verge of the opaque puddle of obscurity, they had taken that downright plunge which, sooner or later, is the destiny of all families, whether princely or plebeian. For thirty years past, neither town-record, nor gravestone, nor the directory, nor the knowledge or memory of man, bore any trace of Matthew Maule’s descendants. His blood might possibly exist elsewhere; here, where its lowly current could be traced so far back, it had ceased to keep an onward course.

As for Matthew Maule’s descendants, they were thought to be extinct. For a long time after the witchcraft hoax, however, the Maules continued to live in the town where their ancestor had experienced such an unjust death. To all appearances, they were a quiet, honest, well-meaning group of people, holding no grudges against individuals or society for the wrongs done to them; or if they shared any bitter memories of the wizard’s fate and their lost inheritance at home, it never showed in their actions or spoken words. It wouldn’t have been surprising if they had stopped remembering that the House of the Seven Gables was built on a foundation that rightfully belonged to them. There’s something so grand, solid, and almost unavoidably impressive about the outward appearance of established rank and wealth that their mere existence seems to justify their place; at least, it creates such a convincing illusion of right that few poor and humble individuals have the moral strength to question it, even in their private thoughts. This is true now, after so many old prejudices have been shattered; and it was even more so in the pre-Revolution days when the aristocracy could afford to be proud, and the lower classes were content to be looked down upon. Thus, the Maules kept their grievances to themselves. They generally lived in poverty; always lowly and obscure; working tirelessly at trades that didn’t pan out; laboring on the docks, or sailing the seas as deckhands; residing here and there in rented homes, and eventually ending up in the almshouse as the natural resting place of their old age. Finally, after dragging along the edges of obscurity for so long, they took that inevitable plunge which is the fate of all families, whether noble or humble. For the past thirty years, neither town records, gravestones, directories, nor anyone’s knowledge or memory provided any evidence of Matthew Maule’s descendants. His blood might still exist elsewhere; but here, where its humble current could be traced so far back, it had stopped flowing entirely.

So long as any of the race were to be found, they had been marked out from other men—not strikingly, nor as with a sharp line, but with an effect that was felt rather than spoken of—by an hereditary character of reserve. Their companions, or those who endeavored to become such, grew conscious of a circle round about the Maules, within the sanctity or the spell of which, in spite of an exterior of sufficient frankness and good-fellowship, it was impossible for any man to step. It was this indefinable peculiarity, perhaps, that, by insulating them from human aid, kept them always so unfortunate in life. It certainly operated to prolong in their case, and to confirm to them as their only inheritance, those feelings of repugnance and superstitious terror with which the people of the town, even after awakening from their frenzy, continued to regard the memory of the reputed witches. The mantle, or rather the ragged cloak, of old Matthew Maule had fallen upon his children. They were half believed to inherit mysterious attributes; the family eye was said to possess strange power. Among other good-for-nothing properties and privileges, one was especially assigned them,—that of exercising an influence over people’s dreams. The Pyncheons, if all stories were true, haughtily as they bore themselves in the noonday streets of their native town, were no better than bond-servants to these plebeian Maules, on entering the topsy-turvy commonwealth of sleep. Modern psychology, it may be, will endeavor to reduce these alleged necromancies within a system, instead of rejecting them as altogether fabulous.

As long as any of this family could be found, they stood apart from others—not in a dramatic way, but in a subtle manner that people felt more than discussed—due to their inherited tendency towards reserve. Those around them, or those who tried to be close, sensed an invisible barrier surrounding the Maules, within which, despite a seemingly open and friendly demeanor, no one could truly enter. This unique quality, perhaps, meant that they were cut off from human support, causing them to be perpetually unlucky in life. It certainly contributed to the lingering feelings of disdain and superstitious fear that the townspeople continued to have about the memory of the supposed witches, even after coming to their senses. The tattered cloak of old Matthew Maule had been passed down to his descendants. They were half-believed to inherit mysterious traits; it was said their eyes held strange power. Among various worthless traits and supposed privileges, one was particularly attributed to them—an ability to influence people’s dreams. The Pyncheons, as the stories went, though they walked proudly through the streets of their hometown during the day, were nothing more than servants to these common Maules when they entered the bizarre world of dreams. Modern psychology might attempt to categorize these alleged powers within a framework rather than dismissing them as entirely fictional.

A descriptive paragraph or two, treating of the seven-gabled mansion in its more recent aspect, will bring this preliminary chapter to a close. The street in which it upreared its venerable peaks has long ceased to be a fashionable quarter of the town; so that, though the old edifice was surrounded by habitations of modern date, they were mostly small, built entirely of wood, and typical of the most plodding uniformity of common life. Doubtless, however, the whole story of human existence may be latent in each of them, but with no picturesqueness, externally, that can attract the imagination or sympathy to seek it there. But as for the old structure of our story, its white-oak frame, and its boards, shingles, and crumbling plaster, and even the huge, clustered chimney in the midst, seemed to constitute only the least and meanest part of its reality. So much of mankind’s varied experience had passed there,—so much had been suffered, and something, too, enjoyed,—that the very timbers were oozy, as with the moisture of a heart. It was itself like a great human heart, with a life of its own, and full of rich and sombre reminiscences.

A descriptive paragraph or two about the seven-gabled mansion in its more recent state will wrap up this introductory chapter. The street where it stands with its old peaks has long stopped being a trendy part of town; so, although the old building is surrounded by newer homes, most of them are small, made entirely of wood, and reflect the dull uniformity of everyday life. Certainly, the entire story of human existence could be hidden in each of them, but there is nothing visually appealing about them that would draw the imagination or sympathy to look for it there. As for the old structure in our story, its white-oak frame, boards, shingles, crumbling plaster, and even the large, clustered chimney in the center seemed to make up only a small part of its true essence. So much of humanity's diverse experiences occurred there—so much that was suffered, and some joy as well—that the very timbers felt saturated, like they were filled with the warmth of a heart. It was like a great human heart, with its own life, brimming with rich and deep memories.

The deep projection of the second story gave the house such a meditative look, that you could not pass it without the idea that it had secrets to keep, and an eventful history to moralize upon. In front, just on the edge of the unpaved sidewalk, grew the Pyncheon Elm, which, in reference to such trees as one usually meets with, might well be termed gigantic. It had been planted by a great-grandson of the first Pyncheon, and, though now four-score years of age, or perhaps nearer a hundred, was still in its strong and broad maturity, throwing its shadow from side to side of the street, overtopping the seven gables, and sweeping the whole black roof with its pendant foliage. It gave beauty to the old edifice, and seemed to make it a part of nature. The street having been widened about forty years ago, the front gable was now precisely on a line with it. On either side extended a ruinous wooden fence of open lattice-work, through which could be seen a grassy yard, and, especially in the angles of the building, an enormous fertility of burdocks, with leaves, it is hardly an exaggeration to say, two or three feet long. Behind the house there appeared to be a garden, which undoubtedly had once been extensive, but was now infringed upon by other enclosures, or shut in by habitations and outbuildings that stood on another street. It would be an omission, trifling, indeed, but unpardonable, were we to forget the green moss that had long since gathered over the projections of the windows, and on the slopes of the roof nor must we fail to direct the reader’s eye to a crop, not of weeds, but flower-shrubs, which were growing aloft in the air, not a great way from the chimney, in the nook between two of the gables. They were called Alice’s Posies. The tradition was, that a certain Alice Pyncheon had flung up the seeds, in sport, and that the dust of the street and the decay of the roof gradually formed a kind of soil for them, out of which they grew, when Alice had long been in her grave. However the flowers might have come there, it was both sad and sweet to observe how Nature adopted to herself this desolate, decaying, gusty, rusty old house of the Pyncheon family; and how the ever-returning Summer did her best to gladden it with tender beauty, and grew melancholy in the effort.

The deep overhang of the second story gave the house a contemplative vibe, making it hard to walk by without thinking it had secrets and an interesting past to reflect on. In front, right at the edge of the unpaved sidewalk, stood the Pyncheon Elm, which, compared to the usual trees, could easily be called gigantic. It had been planted by a great-grandson of the first Pyncheon, and even though it was now eighty years old, or maybe closer to a hundred, it was still in its robust and broad prime, casting its shadow across the street, towering over the seven gables, and draping the entire dark roof with its hanging leaves. It added beauty to the old building and made it feel connected to nature. About forty years ago, the street was widened, aligning the front gable perfectly with it. On either side, a rundown wooden fence with open lattice could be seen, revealing a grassy yard and, particularly in the corners of the building, an impressive growth of burdocks, with leaves that were, quite frankly, two or three feet long. Behind the house, there seemed to be a garden that must have once been vast, but it was now encroached upon by nearby buildings and fenced areas from another street. It would be a small but unforgivable oversight to forget the green moss that had long settled on the window ledges and the roof slopes, nor should we overlook the cluster of not weeds but flowering shrubs growing up in the air, not far from the chimney, nestled between two of the gables. They were called Alice’s Posies. The story goes that a certain Alice Pyncheon threw the seeds there in a playful moment, and over time, the dust from the street and the decay of the roof created a sort of soil for them to grow, long after Alice had passed away. Regardless of how the flowers got there, it was both sad and sweet to see how nature embraced this desolate, worn-down, windy, rusty old Pyncheon house; and how the returning summer tried its best to brighten it with gentle beauty while feeling a bit sorrowful in doing so.

There is one other feature, very essential to be noticed, but which, we greatly fear, may damage any picturesque and romantic impression which we have been willing to throw over our sketch of this respectable edifice. In the front gable, under the impending brow of the second story, and contiguous to the street, was a shop-door, divided horizontally in the midst, and with a window for its upper segment, such as is often seen in dwellings of a somewhat ancient date. This same shop-door had been a subject of no slight mortification to the present occupant of the august Pyncheon House, as well as to some of her predecessors. The matter is disagreeably delicate to handle; but, since the reader must needs be let into the secret, he will please to understand, that, about a century ago, the head of the Pyncheons found himself involved in serious financial difficulties. The fellow (gentleman, as he styled himself) can hardly have been other than a spurious interloper; for, instead of seeking office from the king or the royal governor, or urging his hereditary claim to Eastern lands, he bethought himself of no better avenue to wealth than by cutting a shop-door through the side of his ancestral residence. It was the custom of the time, indeed, for merchants to store their goods and transact business in their own dwellings. But there was something pitifully small in this old Pyncheon’s mode of setting about his commercial operations; it was whispered, that, with his own hands, all beruffled as they were, he used to give change for a shilling, and would turn a half-penny twice over, to make sure that it was a good one. Beyond all question, he had the blood of a petty huckster in his veins, through whatever channel it may have found its way there.

There’s one more thing we need to point out, which, unfortunately, might ruin any charming and romantic impression we've tried to create about this respectable building. In the front gable, just under the overhang of the second story and next to the street, there was a shop door, divided in the middle horizontally, with a window in the top half, resembling those often found in somewhat older houses. This shop door had been a source of significant embarrassment for the current occupant of the esteemed Pyncheon House, as well as some of her predecessors. The issue is a bit awkward to address, but since the reader must know the truth, please understand that about a hundred years ago, the head of the Pyncheons found himself in serious financial trouble. The guy (who called himself a gentleman) must have been a questionable outsider; instead of seeking a position from the king or the royal governor, or pushing his hereditary claim to Eastern lands, he came up with no better way to make money than to cut a shop door into the side of his family home. At that time, it was common for merchants to store their goods and do business from their own homes. However, there was something painfully small about this old Pyncheon’s approach to running his business; rumors suggested that he would personally give change for a shilling, all flustered, and would check a half-penny multiple times to make sure it was a good one. Without a doubt, he had the blood of a petty merchant in his veins, wherever it might have come from.

Immediately on his death, the shop-door had been locked, bolted, and barred, and, down to the period of our story, had probably never once been opened. The old counter, shelves, and other fixtures of the little shop remained just as he had left them. It used to be affirmed, that the dead shop-keeper, in a white wig, a faded velvet coat, an apron at his waist, and his ruffles carefully turned back from his wrists, might be seen through the chinks of the shutters, any night of the year, ransacking his till, or poring over the dingy pages of his day-book. From the look of unutterable woe upon his face, it appeared to be his doom to spend eternity in a vain effort to make his accounts balance.

Immediately after his death, the shop door was locked, bolted, and barred, and probably hadn’t been opened since. The old counter, shelves, and other fixtures of the little shop remained exactly as he had left them. People used to say that the deceased shopkeeper, wearing a white wig, a faded velvet coat, an apron around his waist, and with his ruffles neatly turned back from his wrists, could be seen through the gaps in the shutters any night of the year, rummaging through his till or poring over the dingy pages of his daybook. From the look of immense sorrow on his face, it seemed he was doomed to spend eternity trying in vain to balance his accounts.

And now—in a very humble way, as will be seen—we proceed to open our narrative.

And now—in a very modest way, as you’ll see—we begin our story.

II.
The Little Shop-Window

It still lacked half an hour of sunrise, when Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon—we will not say awoke, it being doubtful whether the poor lady had so much as closed her eyes during the brief night of midsummer—but, at all events, arose from her solitary pillow, and began what it would be mockery to term the adornment of her person. Far from us be the indecorum of assisting, even in imagination, at a maiden lady’s toilet! Our story must therefore await Miss Hepzibah at the threshold of her chamber; only presuming, meanwhile, to note some of the heavy sighs that labored from her bosom, with little restraint as to their lugubrious depth and volume of sound, inasmuch as they could be audible to nobody save a disembodied listener like ourself. The Old Maid was alone in the old house. Alone, except for a certain respectable and orderly young man, an artist in the daguerreotype line, who, for about three months back, had been a lodger in a remote gable,—quite a house by itself, indeed,—with locks, bolts, and oaken bars on all the intervening doors. Inaudible, consequently, were poor Miss Hepzibah’s gusty sighs. Inaudible the creaking joints of her stiffened knees, as she knelt down by the bedside. And inaudible, too, by mortal ear, but heard with all-comprehending love and pity in the farthest heaven, that almost agony of prayer—now whispered, now a groan, now a struggling silence—wherewith she besought the Divine assistance through the day! Evidently, this is to be a day of more than ordinary trial to Miss Hepzibah, who, for above a quarter of a century gone by, has dwelt in strict seclusion, taking no part in the business of life, and just as little in its intercourse and pleasures. Not with such fervor prays the torpid recluse, looking forward to the cold, sunless, stagnant calm of a day that is to be like innumerable yesterdays.

It was still half an hour before sunrise when Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon—we won’t say she awoke, since it’s questionable whether the poor woman even closed her eyes during the short midsummer night—but, in any case, she got out of her lonely bed and began what would be a joke to call the beautification of herself. Let’s avoid the indecency of picturing a single woman’s morning routine! So, we will wait for Miss Hepzibah at the door of her room; only daring to note some of the heavy sighs escaping from her chest, with little restraint regarding their mournful depth and volume, since they could be heard by no one but an otherworldly listener like us. The Old Maid was alone in the old house. Alone, except for a respectable young man, an artist in the field of daguerreotypes, who had been living in a distant gable for about three months—truly a separate little house—with locks, bolts, and wooden bars on all the doors in between. Thus, poor Miss Hepzibah’s deep sighs went unheard. The creaking joints of her stiff knees were inaudible as she knelt by the bedside. And inaudible too to human ears, but heard with all-encompassing love and compassion in the farthest heaven, was the almost agonizing prayer—sometimes whispered, sometimes groaned, sometimes in a struggle for silence—with which she pleaded for Divine help throughout the day! Clearly, this was going to be a day of more than usual hardship for Miss Hepzibah, who for over twenty-five years had lived in strict isolation, taking no part in the events of life, just as little in its social interactions and joys. The sluggish recluse does not pray with the same intensity, looking forward to the cold, sunless, stagnant calm of a day that will be like countless yesterdays.

The maiden lady’s devotions are concluded. Will she now issue forth over the threshold of our story? Not yet, by many moments. First, every drawer in the tall, old-fashioned bureau is to be opened, with difficulty, and with a succession of spasmodic jerks then, all must close again, with the same fidgety reluctance. There is a rustling of stiff silks; a tread of backward and forward footsteps to and fro across the chamber. We suspect Miss Hepzibah, moreover, of taking a step upward into a chair, in order to give heedful regard to her appearance on all sides, and at full length, in the oval, dingy-framed toilet-glass, that hangs above her table. Truly! well, indeed! who would have thought it! Is all this precious time to be lavished on the matutinal repair and beautifying of an elderly person, who never goes abroad, whom nobody ever visits, and from whom, when she shall have done her utmost, it were the best charity to turn one’s eyes another way?

The old maid has finished her morning routine. Will she finally step out into our story? Not just yet, it seems. First, she has to open every drawer in the tall, vintage dresser, which takes some effort and a series of jerky movements; then, they all have to be closed again with the same restless reluctance. There's a rustling of stiff silks and the sound of her pacing back and forth across the room. We also suspect Miss Hepzibah might be climbing onto a chair to carefully check her reflection from all angles in the oval, dingy-framed mirror hanging above her table. Honestly! Who would have thought! Is all this precious time really going to be spent on the morning grooming of an elderly woman who never goes out, no one ever visits, and from whom it would be kindest to look away once she’s done her best?

Now she is almost ready. Let us pardon her one other pause; for it is given to the sole sentiment, or, we might better say,—heightened and rendered intense, as it has been, by sorrow and seclusion,—to the strong passion of her life. We heard the turning of a key in a small lock; she has opened a secret drawer of an escritoire, and is probably looking at a certain miniature, done in Malbone’s most perfect style, and representing a face worthy of no less delicate a pencil. It was once our good fortune to see this picture. It is a likeness of a young man, in a silken dressing-gown of an old fashion, the soft richness of which is well adapted to the countenance of reverie, with its full, tender lips, and beautiful eyes, that seem to indicate not so much capacity of thought, as gentle and voluptuous emotion. Of the possessor of such features we shall have a right to ask nothing, except that he would take the rude world easily, and make himself happy in it. Can it have been an early lover of Miss Hepzibah? No; she never had a lover—poor thing, how could she?—nor ever knew, by her own experience, what love technically means. And yet, her undying faith and trust, her fresh remembrance, and continual devotedness towards the original of that miniature, have been the only substance for her heart to feed upon.

Now she is almost ready. Let's give her one more moment; for it’s the deep feeling—intensified by sadness and solitude—that drives her strong passion for life. We heard a key turning in a small lock; she has opened a hidden drawer in a writing desk, and she’s probably looking at a certain miniature, created in Malbone’s most perfect style, depicting a face worthy of such delicate artistry. We once had the good fortune to see this picture. It shows a young man in an old-fashioned silk dressing gown, the soft richness of which perfectly suits his dreamy expression, with full, tender lips and beautiful eyes that suggest gentle and sensual emotions rather than deep thoughts. For someone with such features, we can only wish that he would take the harsh world lightly and find happiness in it. Could he have been an early lover of Miss Hepzibah? No; she never had a lover—poor thing, how could she?—and never truly understood what love means through her own experience. Yet, her unwavering faith and trust, her vivid memories, and her constant devotion to the one depicted in that miniature have been the only nourishment for her heart.

She seems to have put aside the miniature, and is standing again before the toilet-glass. There are tears to be wiped off. A few more footsteps to and fro; and here, at last,—with another pitiful sigh, like a gust of chill, damp wind out of a long-closed vault, the door of which has accidentally been set, ajar—here comes Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon! Forth she steps into the dusky, time-darkened passage; a tall figure, clad in black silk, with a long and shrunken waist, feeling her way towards the stairs like a near-sighted person, as in truth she is.

She seems to have set the miniature aside and is standing in front of the mirror again. There are tears to wipe away. A few more steps back and forth; and finally,—with another sad sigh, like a chill, damp breeze coming from a long-closed vault that has accidentally been left ajar—here comes Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon! She steps into the dim, time-worn hallway; a tall figure in black silk, with a long, slender waist, carefully making her way toward the stairs like a near-sighted person, which she indeed is.

The sun, meanwhile, if not already above the horizon, was ascending nearer and nearer to its verge. A few clouds, floating high upward, caught some of the earliest light, and threw down its golden gleam on the windows of all the houses in the street, not forgetting the House of the Seven Gables, which—many such sunrises as it had witnessed—looked cheerfully at the present one. The reflected radiance served to show, pretty distinctly, the aspect and arrangement of the room which Hepzibah entered, after descending the stairs. It was a low-studded room, with a beam across the ceiling, panelled with dark wood, and having a large chimney-piece, set round with pictured tiles, but now closed by an iron fire-board, through which ran the funnel of a modern stove. There was a carpet on the floor, originally of rich texture, but so worn and faded in these latter years that its once brilliant figure had quite vanished into one indistinguishable hue. In the way of furniture, there were two tables: one, constructed with perplexing intricacy and exhibiting as many feet as a centipede; the other, most delicately wrought, with four long and slender legs, so apparently frail that it was almost incredible what a length of time the ancient tea-table had stood upon them. Half a dozen chairs stood about the room, straight and stiff, and so ingeniously contrived for the discomfort of the human person that they were irksome even to sight, and conveyed the ugliest possible idea of the state of society to which they could have been adapted. One exception there was, however, in a very antique elbow-chair, with a high back, carved elaborately in oak, and a roomy depth within its arms, that made up, by its spacious comprehensiveness, for the lack of any of those artistic curves which abound in a modern chair.

The sun, meanwhile, if it wasn't already up, was getting closer and closer to the horizon. A few clouds floating high above caught some of the first light and cast a golden glow on the windows of all the houses on the street, including the House of the Seven Gables, which, having seen many sunrises before, looked cheerfully at the current one. The reflected light clearly showed the layout of the room that Hepzibah entered after coming down the stairs. It was a low-ceilinged room with a beam across the ceiling, paneled in dark wood, and had a large fireplace decorated with picture tiles, but now covered by an iron fireboard, through which the flue of a modern stove ran. The floor had a carpet that was originally made of rich material, but over the years it had become so worn and faded that its once brilliant design had completely blended into a single, dull color. In terms of furniture, there were two tables: one was intricately designed with as many legs as a centipede, while the other was delicately made with four long and slender legs that looked so fragile it was hard to believe the old tea table had stood on them for so long. A half dozen chairs were arranged around the room, straight-backed and stiff, so cleverly designed for discomfort that they were unpleasant to even look at, conveying the worst possible impression of the society they were meant for. One exception, however, was a very old armchair with a high back, intricately carved out of oak, and a deep seat that made up for the lack of the artistic curves found in modern chairs.

As for ornamental articles of furniture, we recollect but two, if such they may be called. One was a map of the Pyncheon territory at the eastward, not engraved, but the handiwork of some skilful old draughtsman, and grotesquely illuminated with pictures of Indians and wild beasts, among which was seen a lion; the natural history of the region being as little known as its geography, which was put down most fantastically awry. The other adornment was the portrait of old Colonel Pyncheon, at two thirds length, representing the stern features of a Puritanic-looking personage, in a skull-cap, with a laced band and a grizzly beard; holding a Bible with one hand, and in the other uplifting an iron sword-hilt. The latter object, being more successfully depicted by the artist, stood out in far greater prominence than the sacred volume. Face to face with this picture, on entering the apartment, Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon came to a pause; regarding it with a singular scowl, a strange contortion of the brow, which, by people who did not know her, would probably have been interpreted as an expression of bitter anger and ill-will. But it was no such thing. She, in fact, felt a reverence for the pictured visage, of which only a far-descended and time-stricken virgin could be susceptible; and this forbidding scowl was the innocent result of her near-sightedness, and an effort so to concentrate her powers of vision as to substitute a firm outline of the object instead of a vague one.

As for decorative furniture, we can only recall two pieces, if they can even be called that. One was a map of the Pyncheon land to the east, not engraved but created by a skilled old draftsman, and oddly illustrated with pictures of Native Americans and wild animals, including a lion; the natural history of the area was as unknown as its geography, which was depicted in a wildly inaccurate way. The other decoration was the portrait of old Colonel Pyncheon, shown two-thirds of the way down, capturing the stern features of a Puritan-looking man in a skullcap, wearing a laced band and a gray beard; holding a Bible in one hand and raising the hilt of an iron sword in the other. The sword-hilt was portrayed more effectively by the artist, making it stand out much more than the sacred book. Facing this picture, upon entering the room, Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon paused; looking at it with a strange scowl, a peculiar twist of her brow that people who didn't know her might interpret as bitter anger or hostility. However, it was nothing of the sort. In reality, she felt a deep reverence for the pictured face, something only an aging and time-worn woman could feel; and this intimidating scowl was simply the innocent result of her nearsightedness and an effort to sharpen her focus so she could see the object clearly instead of vaguely.

We must linger a moment on this unfortunate expression of poor Hepzibah’s brow. Her scowl,—as the world, or such part of it as sometimes caught a transitory glimpse of her at the window, wickedly persisted in calling it,—her scowl had done Miss Hepzibah a very ill office, in establishing her character as an ill-tempered old maid; nor does it appear improbable that, by often gazing at herself in a dim looking-glass, and perpetually encountering her own frown with its ghostly sphere, she had been led to interpret the expression almost as unjustly as the world did. “How miserably cross I look!” she must often have whispered to herself; and ultimately have fancied herself so, by a sense of inevitable doom. But her heart never frowned. It was naturally tender, sensitive, and full of little tremors and palpitations; all of which weaknesses it retained, while her visage was growing so perversely stern, and even fierce. Nor had Hepzibah ever any hardihood, except what came from the very warmest nook in her affections.

We need to take a moment to reflect on the unfortunate look on poor Hepzibah’s face. Her scowl—something the world, or at least those who occasionally caught a fleeting glimpse of her at the window, cruelly insisted on calling it—had unfairly shaped Miss Hepzibah’s reputation as a grumpy old maid. It doesn’t seem unlikely that, by frequently staring at herself in a dim mirror and constantly confronting her own frown in its ghostly reflection, she had come to interpret her expression almost as unjustly as others did. “I look so miserably cranky!” she must have often whispered to herself, eventually convincing herself of it, as if it were her fate. But her heart never frowned. It was naturally tender, sensitive, and full of little tremors and palpitations; all these vulnerabilities remained while her face became increasingly stern and even fierce. Hepzibah never possessed any bravado, except for what came from the warmest corners of her affections.

All this time, however, we are loitering faintheartedly on the threshold of our story. In very truth, we have an invincible reluctance to disclose what Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon was about to do.

All this time, though, we are hesitantly hanging around the edge of our story. The truth is, we have an undeniable reluctance to reveal what Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon was planning to do.

It has already been observed, that, in the basement story of the gable fronting on the street, an unworthy ancestor, nearly a century ago, had fitted up a shop. Ever since the old gentleman retired from trade, and fell asleep under his coffin-lid, not only the shop-door, but the inner arrangements, had been suffered to remain unchanged; while the dust of ages gathered inch-deep over the shelves and counter, and partly filled an old pair of scales, as if it were of value enough to be weighed. It treasured itself up, too, in the half-open till, where there still lingered a base sixpence, worth neither more nor less than the hereditary pride which had here been put to shame. Such had been the state and condition of the little shop in old Hepzibah’s childhood, when she and her brother used to play at hide-and-seek in its forsaken precincts. So it had remained, until within a few days past.

It has already been noted that, in the basement of the gable facing the street, an unworthy ancestor had set up a shop nearly a century ago. Ever since the old gentleman retired from business and passed away, not only the shop door but also the interior layout had been left unchanged; while layers of dust piled up over the shelves and counter, even partially filling an old pair of scales, as if it were valuable enough to weigh. It also accumulated in the half-open cash register, where a worthless sixpence still lingered, of no more value than the family pride that had been embarrassed here. This was the condition of the little shop during old Hepzibah’s childhood when she and her brother used to play hide-and-seek in its abandoned corners. It had remained this way until just a few days ago.

But now, though the shop-window was still closely curtained from the public gaze, a remarkable change had taken place in its interior. The rich and heavy festoons of cobweb, which it had cost a long ancestral succession of spiders their life’s labor to spin and weave, had been carefully brushed away from the ceiling. The counter, shelves, and floor had all been scoured, and the latter was overstrewn with fresh blue sand. The brown scales, too, had evidently undergone rigid discipline, in an unavailing effort to rub off the rust, which, alas! had eaten through and through their substance. Neither was the little old shop any longer empty of merchantable goods. A curious eye, privileged to take an account of stock and investigate behind the counter, would have discovered a barrel, yea, two or three barrels and half ditto,—one containing flour, another apples, and a third, perhaps, Indian meal. There was likewise a square box of pine-wood, full of soap in bars; also, another of the same size, in which were tallow candles, ten to the pound. A small stock of brown sugar, some white beans and split peas, and a few other commodities of low price, and such as are constantly in demand, made up the bulkier portion of the merchandise. It might have been taken for a ghostly or phantasmagoric reflection of the old shop-keeper Pyncheon’s shabbily provided shelves, save that some of the articles were of a description and outward form which could hardly have been known in his day. For instance, there was a glass pickle-jar, filled with fragments of Gibraltar rock; not, indeed, splinters of the veritable stone foundation of the famous fortress, but bits of delectable candy, neatly done up in white paper. Jim Crow, moreover, was seen executing his world-renowned dance, in gingerbread. A party of leaden dragoons were galloping along one of the shelves, in equipments and uniform of modern cut; and there were some sugar figures, with no strong resemblance to the humanity of any epoch, but less unsatisfactorily representing our own fashions than those of a hundred years ago. Another phenomenon, still more strikingly modern, was a package of lucifer matches, which, in old times, would have been thought actually to borrow their instantaneous flame from the nether fires of Tophet.

But now, even though the shop window was still tightly covered from public view, a significant change had occurred inside. The rich and heavy cobwebs, which had taken a long line of spiders a lifetime to spin and weave, had been carefully wiped away from the ceiling. The counter, shelves, and floor had all been thoroughly cleaned, and the floor was sprinkled with fresh blue sand. The brown scales appeared to have been rigorously scrubbed in a futile attempt to remove the rust that, unfortunately, had completely worn through them. The little old shop was no longer empty of goods for sale. A curious person, allowed to take inventory and look behind the counter, would have found a barrel, yes, two or three barrels and half of one—one filled with flour, another with apples, and a third, perhaps, with cornmeal. There was also a square pine box full of bars of soap; another of the same size contained tallow candles, ten to the pound. A small supply of brown sugar, some white beans and split peas, and a few other inexpensive items, which are always in demand, made up the bulk of the merchandise. It might have seemed like a ghostly or phantasmagoric reflection of the shabby shelves of the old shopkeeper Pyncheon, except that some of the items were of a kind and shape that could hardly have existed in his time. For example, there was a glass jar filled with pieces of Gibraltar rock; not actual chunks of the famous fortress’s foundation, but bits of delicious candy neatly wrapped in white paper. Additionally, Jim Crow was seen performing his famous dance in gingerbread. A group of lead soldiers were galloping along one of the shelves, dressed in modern-style gear and uniforms; there were also some sugar figures that bore little resemblance to humans from any time period, but they represented our own styles better than those from a hundred years ago. An even more strikingly modern item was a pack of lucifer matches, which in the past would have been thought to draw their instant flame from the fires of Hell.

In short, to bring the matter at once to a point, it was incontrovertibly evident that somebody had taken the shop and fixtures of the long-retired and forgotten Mr. Pyncheon, and was about to renew the enterprise of that departed worthy, with a different set of customers. Who could this bold adventurer be? And, of all places in the world, why had he chosen the House of the Seven Gables as the scene of his commercial speculations?

To get straight to the point, it was obviously clear that someone had taken over the shop and fixtures of the long-retired and forgotten Mr. Pyncheon and was planning to restart the business of that departed individual, but with a different set of customers. Who could this daring entrepreneur be? And out of all the places in the world, why had he chosen the House of the Seven Gables as the setting for his business ventures?

We return to the elderly maiden. She at length withdrew her eyes from the dark countenance of the Colonel’s portrait, heaved a sigh,—indeed, her breast was a very cave of Aolus that morning,—and stept across the room on tiptoe, as is the customary gait of elderly women. Passing through an intervening passage, she opened a door that communicated with the shop, just now so elaborately described. Owing to the projection of the upper story—and still more to the thick shadow of the Pyncheon Elm, which stood almost directly in front of the gable—the twilight, here, was still as much akin to night as morning. Another heavy sigh from Miss Hepzibah! After a moment’s pause on the threshold, peering towards the window with her near-sighted scowl, as if frowning down some bitter enemy, she suddenly projected herself into the shop. The haste, and, as it were, the galvanic impulse of the movement, were really quite startling.

We go back to the elderly woman. She finally took her eyes off the dark face of the Colonel’s portrait, let out a sigh— really, her chest felt like a stormy cave that morning—and tiptoed across the room, which is how older women usually move. Passing through a small hallway, she opened a door that led to the shop, which had just been described in detail. Because of the overhanging upper floor—and even more so due to the thick shadow of the Pyncheon Elm, which stood almost directly in front of the gable—the twilight here was as much like night as it was like morning. Another deep sigh from Miss Hepzibah! After a moment's pause on the threshold, squinting toward the window with her near-sighted scowl, as if glaring at some bitter opponent, she suddenly launched herself into the shop. The rush, and almost electric energy of the movement, were really quite surprising.

Nervously—in a sort of frenzy, we might almost say—she began to busy herself in arranging some children’s playthings, and other little wares, on the shelves and at the shop-window. In the aspect of this dark-arrayed, pale-faced, ladylike old figure there was a deeply tragic character that contrasted irreconcilably with the ludicrous pettiness of her employment. It seemed a queer anomaly, that so gaunt and dismal a personage should take a toy in hand; a miracle, that the toy did not vanish in her grasp; a miserably absurd idea, that she should go on perplexing her stiff and sombre intellect with the question how to tempt little boys into her premises! Yet such is undoubtedly her object. Now she places a gingerbread elephant against the window, but with so tremulous a touch that it tumbles upon the floor, with the dismemberment of three legs and its trunk; it has ceased to be an elephant, and has become a few bits of musty gingerbread. There, again, she has upset a tumbler of marbles, all of which roll different ways, and each individual marble, devil-directed, into the most difficult obscurity that it can find. Heaven help our poor old Hepzibah, and forgive us for taking a ludicrous view of her position! As her rigid and rusty frame goes down upon its hands and knees, in quest of the absconding marbles, we positively feel so much the more inclined to shed tears of sympathy, from the very fact that we must needs turn aside and laugh at her. For here,—and if we fail to impress it suitably upon the reader, it is our own fault, not that of the theme, here is one of the truest points of melancholy interest that occur in ordinary life. It was the final throe of what called itself old gentility. A lady—who had fed herself from childhood with the shadowy food of aristocratic reminiscences, and whose religion it was that a lady’s hand soils itself irremediably by doing aught for bread,—this born lady, after sixty years of narrowing means, is fain to step down from her pedestal of imaginary rank. Poverty, treading closely at her heels for a lifetime, has come up with her at last. She must earn her own food, or starve! And we have stolen upon Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon, too irreverently, at the instant of time when the patrician lady is to be transformed into the plebeian woman.

Nervously—in kind of a frenzy, we might say—she started to keep herself busy by arranging some children's toys and other little items on the shelves and in the shop window. The sight of this dark-clad, pale-faced, ladylike old figure was deeply tragic, sharply contrasting with the ridiculous smallness of her task. It seemed odd that such a gaunt and gloomy person would be handling a toy; it felt miraculous that the toy didn’t vanish in her grasp; and it was absurd to think that she was trying to figure out how to attract little boys to her shop! Yet that was undoubtedly her goal. Now she places a gingerbread elephant in the window, but her trembling hands cause it to fall to the floor, breaking three legs and its trunk; it has stopped being an elephant and has turned into some old pieces of gingerbread. Again, she accidentally knocks over a tumbler of marbles, sending them rolling in all directions, each marble darting away into whatever dark corners it can find. Heaven help our poor old Hepzibah, and forgive us for viewing her situation as comical! As her stiff, rusty frame drops to the ground to look for the escaping marbles, we feel even more inclined to shed tears of sympathy, simply because we can’t help but laugh at her. Because here—if we fail to convey this properly, it’s our shortcoming, not the theme’s—here lies one of the truest points of heartbreaking interest in everyday life. It was the last gasp of what used to be old gentility. A lady—who had lived her whole life off the intangible sustenance of aristocratic memories, believing that a lady’s hand becomes irreparably soiled by doing anything for money—this born lady, after sixty years of dwindling means, is finally forced to step down from her imagined pedestal. Poverty, having followed her closely for a lifetime, has finally caught up with her. She must earn her own living or starve! And we’ve intruded upon Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon at the very moment when the patrician lady is about to transform into the common woman.

In this republican country, amid the fluctuating waves of our social life, somebody is always at the drowning-point. The tragedy is enacted with as continual a repetition as that of a popular drama on a holiday, and, nevertheless, is felt as deeply, perhaps, as when an hereditary noble sinks below his order. More deeply; since, with us, rank is the grosser substance of wealth and a splendid establishment, and has no spiritual existence after the death of these, but dies hopelessly along with them. And, therefore, since we have been unfortunate enough to introduce our heroine at so inauspicious a juncture, we would entreat for a mood of due solemnity in the spectators of her fate. Let us behold, in poor Hepzibah, the immemorial, lady—two hundred years old, on this side of the water, and thrice as many on the other,—with her antique portraits, pedigrees, coats of arms, records and traditions, and her claim, as joint heiress, to that princely territory at the eastward, no longer a wilderness, but a populous fertility,—born, too, in Pyncheon Street, under the Pyncheon Elm, and in the Pyncheon House, where she has spent all her days,—reduced. Now, in that very house, to be the hucksteress of a cent-shop.

In this republic, amidst the shifting tides of our social life, someone is always on the brink of drowning. The tragedy unfolds with a frequency similar to that of a popular play during a holiday, and yet, it is felt just as intensely, maybe even more so, than when an aristocrat falls from grace. More intensely; because, for us, status is tied to material wealth and a grand home, lacking any spiritual significance after they fade away, and goes down hopelessly with them. Therefore, since we have unfortunately introduced our heroine at such an inauspicious moment, we ask for the audience to adopt a mood of appropriate seriousness regarding her fate. Let us look upon poor Hepzibah, the ancient lady—two hundred years old here, and three times that across the ocean—with her old portraits, family trees, coats of arms, records and traditions, along with her claim as a joint heiress to that once-wilderness territory to the east, now a bustling and fertile land—born, too, on Pyncheon Street, under the Pyncheon Elm, and in the Pyncheon House, where she has spent her whole life—now reduced. In that very house, she is to become the shopkeeper of a small store.

This business of setting up a petty shop is almost the only resource of women, in circumstances at all similar to those of our unfortunate recluse. With her near-sightedness, and those tremulous fingers of hers, at once inflexible and delicate, she could not be a seamstress; although her sampler, of fifty years gone by, exhibited some of the most recondite specimens of ornamental needlework. A school for little children had been often in her thoughts; and, at one time, she had begun a review of her early studies in the New England Primer, with a view to prepare herself for the office of instructress. But the love of children had never been quickened in Hepzibah’s heart, and was now torpid, if not extinct; she watched the little people of the neighborhood from her chamber-window, and doubted whether she could tolerate a more intimate acquaintance with them. Besides, in our day, the very ABC has become a science greatly too abstruse to be any longer taught by pointing a pin from letter to letter. A modern child could teach old Hepzibah more than old Hepzibah could teach the child. So—with many a cold, deep heart-quake at the idea of at last coming into sordid contact with the world, from which she had so long kept aloof, while every added day of seclusion had rolled another stone against the cavern door of her hermitage—the poor thing bethought herself of the ancient shop-window, the rusty scales, and dusty till. She might have held back a little longer; but another circumstance, not yet hinted at, had somewhat hastened her decision. Her humble preparations, therefore, were duly made, and the enterprise was now to be commenced. Nor was she entitled to complain of any remarkable singularity in her fate; for, in the town of her nativity, we might point to several little shops of a similar description, some of them in houses as ancient as that of the Seven Gables; and one or two, it may be, where a decayed gentlewoman stands behind the counter, as grim an image of family pride as Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon herself.

Setting up a small shop was basically the only option for women in situations similar to that of our unfortunate recluse. With her poor eyesight and those trembling fingers, both stiff and delicate, she couldn’t be a seamstress; although her sampler from fifty years ago displayed some of the most intricate examples of decorative needlework. She often thought about starting a school for young children and even began reviewing her early studies in the New England Primer to prepare for the role of teacher. But Hepzibah had never really felt a strong affection for kids, and any love she might have had was now dormant, if not completely gone; she observed the neighborhood children from her window, unsure if she could handle a closer relationship with them. Moreover, in today’s world, the very basics of reading have become so complex that they can’t simply be taught by pointing a pin from one letter to another. A modern child could probably teach old Hepzibah more than she could teach the child. So, with many cold, intense feelings about the idea of finally engaging with the world she had kept herself away from for so long, while each passing day of isolation added another obstacle to the entrance of her hermitage, she began to consider the old shop window, the rusty scales, and the dusty cash register. She might have hesitated a bit longer, but another, yet-to-be-mentioned factor had expedited her decision. Thus, her modest preparations were made, and she was set to begin the venture. She had no reason to bemoan any unusual twists in her fate; in her hometown, there were several small shops like hers, some in buildings as old as the Seven Gables, and one or two where an elderly woman stood behind the counter, as grim a symbol of family pride as Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon herself.

It was overpoweringly ridiculous,—we must honestly confess it,—the deportment of the maiden lady while setting her shop in order for the public eye. She stole on tiptoe to the window, as cautiously as if she conceived some bloody-minded villain to be watching behind the elm-tree, with intent to take her life. Stretching out her long, lank arm, she put a paper of pearl-buttons, a jew’s-harp, or whatever the small article might be, in its destined place, and straightway vanished back into the dusk, as if the world need never hope for another glimpse of her. It might have been fancied, indeed, that she expected to minister to the wants of the community unseen, like a disembodied divinity or enchantress, holding forth her bargains to the reverential and awe-stricken purchaser in an invisible hand. But Hepzibah had no such flattering dream. She was well aware that she must ultimately come forward, and stand revealed in her proper individuality; but, like other sensitive persons, she could not bear to be observed in the gradual process, and chose rather to flash forth on the world’s astonished gaze at once.

It was ridiculously overwhelming, and we have to admit it—the way the single lady acted while getting her shop ready for customers was just too much. She tiptoed to the window, as if she thought some evil villain was hiding behind the elm tree, ready to take her life. Reaching out her long, thin arm, she placed a packet of pearl buttons, a jew's harp, or whatever small item it was, in its proper spot and then quickly disappeared back into the shadows, as if the world would never see her again. It might have seemed like she hoped to serve the community unnoticed, like a ghostly spirit or enchantress, offering her goods to an awed and respectful buyer with an invisible hand. But Hepzibah didn’t have such lofty delusions. She knew she would eventually have to come out and reveal herself, but like many sensitive people, she couldn't stand being seen during that gradual process and would rather make a dramatic entrance all at once for the world to see.

The inevitable moment was not much longer to be delayed. The sunshine might now be seen stealing down the front of the opposite house, from the windows of which came a reflected gleam, struggling through the boughs of the elm-tree, and enlightening the interior of the shop more distinctly than heretofore. The town appeared to be waking up. A baker’s cart had already rattled through the street, chasing away the latest vestige of night’s sanctity with the jingle-jangle of its dissonant bells. A milkman was distributing the contents of his cans from door to door; and the harsh peal of a fisherman’s conch shell was heard far off, around the corner. None of these tokens escaped Hepzibah’s notice. The moment had arrived. To delay longer would be only to lengthen out her misery. Nothing remained, except to take down the bar from the shop-door, leaving the entrance free—more than free—welcome, as if all were household friends—to every passer-by, whose eyes might be attracted by the commodities at the window. This last act Hepzibah now performed, letting the bar fall with what smote upon her excited nerves as a most astounding clatter. Then—as if the only barrier betwixt herself and the world had been thrown down, and a flood of evil consequences would come tumbling through the gap—she fled into the inner parlor, threw herself into the ancestral elbow-chair, and wept.

The inevitable moment was just around the corner. The sunlight could now be seen streaming down the front of the house across the street, with a reflected gleam coming from the windows that broke through the elm-tree branches, lighting up the interior of the shop more clearly than before. The town seemed to be waking up. A baker’s cart had already rattled down the street, chasing away the last remnants of the night’s quiet with the noisy jingle of its mismatched bells. A milkman was going door to door, distributing milk from his cans; and the sharp sound of a fisherman’s conch shell echoed from around the corner. Hepzibah noticed all of this. The moment had come. To wait any longer would only prolong her misery. All that was left was to take down the bar from the shop door, leaving the entrance wide open—more than open—welcoming, as if inviting all friendly passers-by to check out the goods in the window. This final action Hepzibah now took, letting the bar drop with what felt like an overwhelming crash to her frayed nerves. Then—like the only barrier between herself and the world had been removed, and a rush of negative outcomes would come pouring in through the opening—she dashed into the inner parlor, threw herself into the family elbow-chair, and wept.

Our miserable old Hepzibah! It is a heavy annoyance to a writer, who endeavors to represent nature, its various attitudes and circumstances, in a reasonably correct outline and true coloring, that so much of the mean and ludicrous should be hopelessly mixed up with the purest pathos which life anywhere supplies to him. What tragic dignity, for example, can be wrought into a scene like this! How can we elevate our history of retribution for the sin of long ago, when, as one of our most prominent figures, we are compelled to introduce—not a young and lovely woman, nor even the stately remains of beauty, storm-shattered by affliction—but a gaunt, sallow, rusty-jointed maiden, in a long-waisted silk gown, and with the strange horror of a turban on her head! Her visage is not even ugly. It is redeemed from insignificance only by the contraction of her eyebrows into a near-sighted scowl. And, finally, her great life-trial seems to be, that, after sixty years of idleness, she finds it convenient to earn comfortable bread by setting up a shop in a small way. Nevertheless, if we look through all the heroic fortunes of mankind, we shall find this same entanglement of something mean and trivial with whatever is noblest in joy or sorrow. Life is made up of marble and mud. And, without all the deeper trust in a comprehensive sympathy above us, we might hence be led to suspect the insult of a sneer, as well as an immitigable frown, on the iron countenance of fate. What is called poetic insight is the gift of discerning, in this sphere of strangely mingled elements, the beauty and the majesty which are compelled to assume a garb so sordid.

Our poor old Hepzibah! It's a real struggle for a writer trying to capture nature, in all its forms and situations, with a reasonably accurate outline and true colors, when so much of the silly and petty is hopelessly intertwined with the deepest pathos that life offers. What tragic dignity can we bring to a scene like this? How can we elevate our tale of retribution for past sins when one of our most significant characters is not a young and beautiful woman, or even a dignified remnant of beauty wrecked by suffering, but a thin, pale, rusty-jointed maiden in a long-waisted silk dress, topped with the bizarre horror of a turban? Her face isn’t even ugly; it's saved from being forgettable only by her near-sighted scowl. And in the end, her major life challenge seems to be that, after sixty years of doing nothing, she decides it's time to make a living by running a small shop. Still, if we look through all of humanity’s heroic stories, we’ll see this same mix of the trivial and the noble in joy or sorrow. Life is made up of both marble and mud. Without a deeper belief in a greater empathy guiding us, we might be led to think that fate wears a sneering expression, as well as a grim scowl. What we call poetic insight is the ability to find the beauty and majesty in this strange mix of elements, even when they are forced into such a shabby disguise.

III.
The First Customer

Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon sat in the oaken elbow-chair, with her hands over her face, giving way to that heavy down-sinking of the heart which most persons have experienced, when the image of hope itself seems ponderously moulded of lead, on the eve of an enterprise at once doubtful and momentous. She was suddenly startled by the tinkling alarum—high, sharp, and irregular—of a little bell. The maiden lady arose upon her feet, as pale as a ghost at cock-crow; for she was an enslaved spirit, and this the talisman to which she owed obedience. This little bell,—to speak in plainer terms,—being fastened over the shop-door, was so contrived as to vibrate by means of a steel spring, and thus convey notice to the inner regions of the house when any customer should cross the threshold. Its ugly and spiteful little din (heard now for the first time, perhaps, since Hepzibah’s periwigged predecessor had retired from trade) at once set every nerve of her body in responsive and tumultuous vibration. The crisis was upon her! Her first customer was at the door!

Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon sat in the oak armchair, covering her face with her hands, giving in to that heavy sinking feeling in her heart that most people have felt, when the very image of hope feels like it's made of lead, right before an uncertain and significant venture. She was suddenly jolted by the sharp, high, and erratic sound of a little bell. The spinster rose to her feet, as pale as a ghost at dawn; for she was trapped, and this was the trigger she had to respond to. This little bell—in simpler terms—was attached to the shop door and designed to ring via a steel spring, alerting the inner parts of the house when a customer came through the door. Its unpleasant and annoying sound (probably the first time she’d heard it since Hepzibah’s wig-wearing predecessor had closed shop) instantly set every nerve in her body vibrating in response. The moment had arrived! Her first customer was at the door!

Without giving herself time for a second thought, she rushed into the shop, pale, wild, desperate in gesture and expression, scowling portentously, and looking far better qualified to do fierce battle with a housebreaker than to stand smiling behind the counter, bartering small wares for a copper recompense. Any ordinary customer, indeed, would have turned his back and fled. And yet there was nothing fierce in Hepzibah’s poor old heart; nor had she, at the moment, a single bitter thought against the world at large, or one individual man or woman. She wished them all well, but wished, too, that she herself were done with them, and in her quiet grave.

Without taking a moment to think, she rushed into the shop, pale, wild, desperate in her movements and expression, scowling ominously, and looking much more suited to battle a burglar than to stand smiling behind the counter, trading small items for a few pennies. Any regular customer would have turned and run away. Yet, there was nothing fierce in Hepzibah’s frail heart; nor did she, at that moment, have a single harsh thought against the world or any individual person. She wished everyone well but also hoped that she herself could be done with them and resting peacefully in her grave.

The applicant, by this time, stood within the doorway. Coming freshly, as he did, out of the morning light, he appeared to have brought some of its cheery influences into the shop along with him. It was a slender young man, not more than one or two and twenty years old, with rather a grave and thoughtful expression for his years, but likewise a springy alacrity and vigor. These qualities were not only perceptible, physically, in his make and motions, but made themselves felt almost immediately in his character. A brown beard, not too silken in its texture, fringed his chin, but as yet without completely hiding it; he wore a short mustache, too, and his dark, high-featured countenance looked all the better for these natural ornaments. As for his dress, it was of the simplest kind; a summer sack of cheap and ordinary material, thin checkered pantaloons, and a straw hat, by no means of the finest braid. Oak Hall might have supplied his entire equipment. He was chiefly marked as a gentleman—if such, indeed, he made any claim to be—by the rather remarkable whiteness and nicety of his clean linen.

The applicant stood in the doorway. Coming straight out of the morning light, he seemed to bring some of its cheerful energy into the shop with him. He was a slim young man, not more than twenty-one or twenty-two years old, with a serious and thoughtful expression for his age, yet also a lively eagerness and energy. These traits were not just visible in his physique and movements but were also felt almost immediately in his character. A brown beard, not too soft in texture, framed his chin, though it didn’t completely cover it; he also had a short mustache, and his dark, well-defined face looked even better with these natural features. His clothing was very simple: a summer jacket made of cheap, ordinary material, thin checked pants, and a straw hat that wasn’t made of the finest braid. He could have easily been outfitted by Oak Hall. He was mainly recognized as a gentleman—if he claimed to be one—by the rather impressive whiteness and neatness of his clean linens.

He met the scowl of old Hepzibah without apparent alarm, as having heretofore encountered it and found it harmless.

He faced the frown of old Hepzibah without showing any fear, as he had come across it before and found it harmless.

“So, my dear Miss Pyncheon,” said the daguerreotypist,—for it was that sole other occupant of the seven-gabled mansion,—“I am glad to see that you have not shrunk from your good purpose. I merely look in to offer my best wishes, and to ask if I can assist you any further in your preparations.”

“So, my dear Miss Pyncheon,” said the daguerreotypist—who was the only other person in the seven-gabled mansion—“I’m glad to see that you haven’t backed away from your good intentions. I just came by to offer my best wishes and to see if I can help you further with your preparations.”

People in difficulty and distress, or in any manner at odds with the world, can endure a vast amount of harsh treatment, and perhaps be only the stronger for it; whereas they give way at once before the simplest expression of what they perceive to be genuine sympathy. So it proved with poor Hepzibah; for, when she saw the young man’s smile,—looking so much the brighter on a thoughtful face,—and heard his kindly tone, she broke first into a hysteric giggle and then began to sob.

People who are struggling or having a hard time can handle a lot of harsh treatment, and they might even come out stronger because of it; however, they often crumble at the first sign of what they recognize as true sympathy. This is exactly what happened with poor Hepzibah; when she saw the young man’s smile—so much brighter on his thoughtful face—and heard his gentle voice, she first burst into nervous laughter and then started to cry.

“Ah, Mr. Holgrave,” cried she, as soon as she could speak, “I never can go through with it! Never, never, never! I wish I were dead, and in the old family tomb, with all my forefathers! With my father, and my mother, and my sister! Yes, and with my brother, who had far better find me there than here! The world is too chill and hard,—and I am too old, and too feeble, and too hopeless!”

“Ah, Mr. Holgrave,” she exclaimed as soon as she could speak, “I can’t go through with it! Never, never, never! I wish I were dead and in the old family tomb with all my ancestors! With my father, my mother, and my sister! Yes, and with my brother, who would be much better off finding me there than here! The world is too cold and harsh—and I am too old, too weak, and too hopeless!”

“Oh, believe me, Miss Hepzibah,” said the young man quietly, “these feelings will not trouble you any longer, after you are once fairly in the midst of your enterprise. They are unavoidable at this moment, standing, as you do, on the outer verge of your long seclusion, and peopling the world with ugly shapes, which you will soon find to be as unreal as the giants and ogres of a child’s story-book. I find nothing so singular in life, as that everything appears to lose its substance the instant one actually grapples with it. So it will be with what you think so terrible.”

“Oh, trust me, Miss Hepzibah,” the young man said softly, “these feelings won’t bother you anymore once you’re really in the thick of your project. They’re unavoidable right now, since you’re standing at the edge of your long isolation, filling your mind with ugly images that you’ll soon realize are just as unreal as the giants and monsters from a fairy tale. I find nothing more fascinating in life than how everything seems to lose its weight the moment you actually confront it. It will be the same with what you think is so terrifying.”

“But I am a woman!” said Hepzibah piteously. “I was going to say, a lady,—but I consider that as past.”

“But I am a woman!” Hepzibah said sadly. “I was going to say, a lady—but I think of that as a thing of the past.”

“Well; no matter if it be past!” answered the artist, a strange gleam of half-hidden sarcasm flashing through the kindliness of his manner. “Let it go! You are the better without it. I speak frankly, my dear Miss Pyncheon!—for are we not friends? I look upon this as one of the fortunate days of your life. It ends an epoch and begins one. Hitherto, the life-blood has been gradually chilling in your veins as you sat aloof, within your circle of gentility, while the rest of the world was fighting out its battle with one kind of necessity or another. Henceforth, you will at least have the sense of healthy and natural effort for a purpose, and of lending your strength be it great or small—to the united struggle of mankind. This is success,—all the success that anybody meets with!”

“Well, it doesn’t matter if it’s in the past!” replied the artist, a flicker of hidden sarcasm shining through his kind demeanor. “Let it go! You’re better off without it. I’ll be honest, my dear Miss Pyncheon!—after all, we’re friends, right? I see this as one of the lucky days of your life. It marks the end of one chapter and the beginning of another. Until now, your life’s energy has been gradually fading as you stayed distanced within your circle of privilege, while the rest of the world was engaged in its struggles with various hardships. From now on, you'll at least experience the feeling of healthy, genuine effort towards a purpose, and contribute your strength—whether big or small—to the collective struggle of humanity. This is success—all the success anyone can achieve!”

“It is natural enough, Mr. Holgrave, that you should have ideas like these,” rejoined Hepzibah, drawing up her gaunt figure with slightly offended dignity. “You are a man, a young man, and brought up, I suppose, as almost everybody is nowadays, with a view to seeking your fortune. But I was born a lady, and have always lived one; no matter in what narrowness of means, always a lady.”

“It’s understandable, Mr. Holgrave, that you would have thoughts like these,” Hepzibah replied, straightening her thin figure with a hint of offended dignity. “You’re a man, a young man, and I assume you were raised like almost everyone else today, with the idea of making your way in the world. But I was born a lady, and I’ve always lived as one; no matter how limited my means have been, I’ve always been a lady.”

“But I was not born a gentleman; neither have I lived like one,” said Holgrave, slightly smiling; “so, my dear madam, you will hardly expect me to sympathize with sensibilities of this kind; though, unless I deceive myself, I have some imperfect comprehension of them. These names of gentleman and lady had a meaning, in the past history of the world, and conferred privileges, desirable or otherwise, on those entitled to bear them. In the present—and still more in the future condition of society-they imply, not privilege, but restriction!”

“But I wasn't born a gentleman, and I haven't lived like one,” said Holgrave, with a slight smile. “So, my dear madam, you can’t really expect me to empathize with feelings like this; though, if I'm not mistaken, I do have some imperfect understanding of them. In the past, the titles of gentleman and lady meant something and granted certain privileges, whether desirable or not, to those who held them. But in today's society—and even more so in the future—they represent not privilege, but limitation!”

“These are new notions,” said the old gentlewoman, shaking her head. “I shall never understand them; neither do I wish it.”

“These are new ideas,” said the old lady, shaking her head. “I will never understand them; nor do I want to.”

“We will cease to speak of them, then,” replied the artist, with a friendlier smile than his last one, “and I will leave you to feel whether it is not better to be a true woman than a lady. Do you really think, Miss Hepzibah, that any lady of your family has ever done a more heroic thing, since this house was built, than you are performing in it to-day? Never; and if the Pyncheons had always acted so nobly, I doubt whether an old wizard Maule’s anathema, of which you told me once, would have had much weight with Providence against them.”

“We won't talk about them anymore,” the artist said, smiling more warmly than he had before. “I’ll let you figure out if it’s better to be a real woman than just a lady. Do you really believe, Miss Hepzibah, that any lady in your family has ever done something more heroic, since this house was built, than what you’re doing today? Never; and if the Pyncheons had always acted with such nobility, I doubt old wizard Maule’s curse, which you once told me about, would have had much influence with Providence against them.”

“Ah!—no, no!” said Hepzibah, not displeased at this allusion to the sombre dignity of an inherited curse. “If old Maule’s ghost, or a descendant of his, could see me behind the counter to-day, he would call it the fulfillment of his worst wishes. But I thank you for your kindness, Mr. Holgrave, and will do my utmost to be a good shop-keeper.”

“Ah!—no, no!” said Hepzibah, not unhappy about this reference to the heavy weight of a family curse. “If old Maule’s ghost, or one of his descendants, could see me behind the counter today, he would think it’s the realization of his worst hopes. But I appreciate your kindness, Mr. Holgrave, and I will do my best to be a good shopkeeper.”

“Pray do” said Holgrave, “and let me have the pleasure of being your first customer. I am about taking a walk to the seashore, before going to my rooms, where I misuse Heaven’s blessed sunshine by tracing out human features through its agency. A few of those biscuits, dipt in sea-water, will be just what I need for breakfast. What is the price of half a dozen?”

“Please do,” said Holgrave, “and let me be your first customer. I'm about to take a walk to the seashore before heading to my place, where I waste Heaven’s precious sunshine by sketching human faces with its help. A few of those biscuits dipped in seawater will be just what I need for breakfast. How much is half a dozen?”

“Let me be a lady a moment longer,” replied Hepzibah, with a manner of antique stateliness to which a melancholy smile lent a kind of grace. She put the biscuits into his hand, but rejected the compensation. “A Pyncheon must not, at all events under her forefathers’ roof, receive money for a morsel of bread from her only friend!”

“Let me be a lady for just a moment longer,” Hepzibah replied, her antique elegance softened by a sad smile. She placed the biscuits in his hand but turned down the payment. “A Pyncheon must not, especially under her ancestors’ roof, accept money for a piece of bread from her only friend!”

Holgrave took his departure, leaving her, for the moment, with spirits not quite so much depressed. Soon, however, they had subsided nearly to their former dead level. With a beating heart, she listened to the footsteps of early passengers, which now began to be frequent along the street. Once or twice they seemed to linger; these strangers, or neighbors, as the case might be, were looking at the display of toys and petty commodities in Hepzibah’s shop-window. She was doubly tortured; in part, with a sense of overwhelming shame that strange and unloving eyes should have the privilege of gazing, and partly because the idea occurred to her, with ridiculous importunity, that the window was not arranged so skilfully, nor nearly to so much advantage, as it might have been. It seemed as if the whole fortune or failure of her shop might depend on the display of a different set of articles, or substituting a fairer apple for one which appeared to be specked. So she made the change, and straightway fancied that everything was spoiled by it; not recognizing that it was the nervousness of the juncture, and her own native squeamishness as an old maid, that wrought all the seeming mischief.

Holgrave left, and for a moment, she felt a bit less down. Soon, though, her spirits sank back to how they were before. With her heart racing, she listened to the footsteps of early passersby that now became more common along the street. A couple of times, they seemed to stick around; these strangers, or neighbors, were checking out the toys and little items in Hepzibah’s shop window. She felt a mix of overwhelming shame at the thought of unkind, unfamiliar eyes looking in, and then there was this persistent thought that the window display could be arranged better. It felt like her shop’s success or failure hinged on showcasing different items or replacing a bruised apple with a prettier one. So she made the change and immediately thought she had ruined everything, not realizing that it was just her nerves and her own pickiness as an old maid that caused her to feel that way.

Anon, there was an encounter, just at the door-step, betwixt two laboring men, as their rough voices denoted them to be. After some slight talk about their own affairs, one of them chanced to notice the shop-window, and directed the other’s attention to it.

Soon, there was a meeting right at the doorstep between two working men, as their rough voices suggested. After a bit of small talk about their own business, one of them happened to notice the shop window and pointed it out to the other.

“See here!” cried he; “what do you think of this? Trade seems to be looking up in Pyncheon Street!”

“Look here!” he shouted; “what do you make of this? Business seems to be picking up on Pyncheon Street!”

“Well, well, this is a sight, to be sure!” exclaimed the other. “In the old Pyncheon House, and underneath the Pyncheon Elm! Who would have thought it? Old Maid Pyncheon is setting up a cent-shop!”

“Well, well, this is quite a sight!” exclaimed the other. “In the old Pyncheon House, and underneath the Pyncheon Elm! Who would have thought it? Old Maid Pyncheon is opening a dollar store!”

“Will she make it go, think you, Dixey?” said his friend. “I don’t call it a very good stand. There’s another shop just round the corner.”

“Do you think she’ll be able to do it, Dixey?” said his friend. “I don’t think this is a very good spot. There’s another shop just around the corner.”

“Make it go!” cried Dixey, with a most contemptuous expression, as if the very idea were impossible to be conceived. “Not a bit of it! Why, her face—I’ve seen it, for I dug her garden for her one year—her face is enough to frighten the Old Nick himself, if he had ever so great a mind to trade with her. People can’t stand it, I tell you! She scowls dreadfully, reason or none, out of pure ugliness of temper.”

“Make it happen!” shouted Dixey, with a really scornful look, as if the idea was completely ridiculous. “Not a chance! I mean, her face—I’ve seen it because I did some gardening for her one year—her face could scare the devil himself, if he ever thought about dealing with her. People can’t handle it, I’m telling you! She glares fiercely, whether it makes sense or not, just out of sheer bad attitude.”

“Well, that’s not so much matter,” remarked the other man. “These sour-tempered folks are mostly handy at business, and know pretty well what they are about. But, as you say, I don’t think she’ll do much. This business of keeping cent-shops is overdone, like all other kinds of trade, handicraft, and bodily labor. I know it, to my cost! My wife kept a cent-shop three months, and lost five dollars on her outlay.”

"Well, that’s not really a big deal," the other man said. "These grumpy people are usually good at business and know what they're doing. But, as you mentioned, I don't think she'll accomplish much. Running a dollar store is overdone, just like every other type of business, craft, and manual work. I learned that the hard way! My wife ran a dollar store for three months and lost five dollars on her investment."

“Poor business!” responded Dixey, in a tone as if he were shaking his head,—“poor business.”

“Bad business!” Dixey replied, shaking his head as he said it—“bad business.”

For some reason or other, not very easy to analyze, there had hardly been so bitter a pang in all her previous misery about the matter as what thrilled Hepzibah’s heart on overhearing the above conversation. The testimony in regard to her scowl was frightfully important; it seemed to hold up her image wholly relieved from the false light of her self-partialities, and so hideous that she dared not look at it. She was absurdly hurt, moreover, by the slight and idle effect that her setting up shop—an event of such breathless interest to herself—appeared to have upon the public, of which these two men were the nearest representatives. A glance; a passing word or two; a coarse laugh; and she was doubtless forgotten before they turned the corner. They cared nothing for her dignity, and just as little for her degradation. Then, also, the augury of ill-success, uttered from the sure wisdom of experience, fell upon her half-dead hope like a clod into a grave. The man’s wife had already tried the same experiment, and failed! How could the born lady—the recluse of half a lifetime, utterly unpractised in the world, at sixty years of age,—how could she ever dream of succeeding, when the hard, vulgar, keen, busy, hackneyed New England woman had lost five dollars on her little outlay! Success presented itself as an impossibility, and the hope of it as a wild hallucination.

For some reason that’s hard to pinpoint, Hepzibah felt a deeper pain upon overhearing the conversation than she had felt throughout her entire previous misery. The comments about her scowl were devastating; they stripped away her self-deceptions and revealed an image she found horrifying, one she didn’t dare to confront. She was also strangely hurt by how little impact her opening a shop—something that was incredibly significant to her—seemed to have on the public represented by the two men. They exchanged a glance, a couple of casual words, a loud laugh, and she was likely forgotten before they even turned the corner. They had no regard for her dignity, nor did they care about her downfall. Then, the prediction of failure, grounded in the harsh reality of experience, crushed her already fragile hope like a stone in a grave. The man’s wife had attempted the same venture and failed! How could a born lady—the recluse of half a lifetime, completely inexperienced in the world, at sixty years old—ever imagine she could succeed when a tough, vulgar, pushy New England woman had lost five dollars on her small investment? Success seemed impossible, and the hope for it felt like a delusion.

Some malevolent spirit, doing his utmost to drive Hepzibah mad, unrolled before her imagination a kind of panorama, representing the great thoroughfare of a city all astir with customers. So many and so magnificent shops as there were! Groceries, toy-shops, drygoods stores, with their immense panes of plate-glass, their gorgeous fixtures, their vast and complete assortments of merchandise, in which fortunes had been invested; and those noble mirrors at the farther end of each establishment, doubling all this wealth by a brightly burnished vista of unrealities! On one side of the street this splendid bazaar, with a multitude of perfumed and glossy salesmen, smirking, smiling, bowing, and measuring out the goods. On the other, the dusky old House of the Seven Gables, with the antiquated shop-window under its projecting story, and Hepzibah herself, in a gown of rusty black silk, behind the counter, scowling at the world as it went by! This mighty contrast thrust itself forward as a fair expression of the odds against which she was to begin her struggle for a subsistence. Success? Preposterous! She would never think of it again! The house might just as well be buried in an eternal fog while all other houses had the sunshine on them; for not a foot would ever cross the threshold, nor a hand so much as try the door!

Some evil spirit, doing everything it could to drive Hepzibah insane, unfolded in her mind a kind of scene, showing a busy city street filled with shoppers. There were so many amazing shops! Grocery stores, toy stores, and dry goods stores, all with huge glass windows, beautiful displays, and a wide variety of products that represented huge investments; and those grand mirrors at the back of each store, reflecting all this wealth with a shiny, dream-like view! On one side of the street was this lavish marketplace, with a crowd of well-groomed salespeople, smiling, nodding, and handing out products. On the other side stood the gloomy old House of the Seven Gables, with its outdated shop window under a protruding upper floor, and Hepzibah herself, in a faded black silk dress, behind the counter, glaring at the world as it passed by! This stark contrast highlighted the challenges she faced in her struggle to make a living. Success? Ridiculous! She wouldn’t even think about it anymore! The house might as well be lost in an endless fog while all the other houses basked in sunlight; because not a single person would ever step inside, nor would anyone even try to open the door!

But, at this instant, the shop-bell, right over her head, tinkled as if it were bewitched. The old gentlewoman’s heart seemed to be attached to the same steel spring, for it went through a series of sharp jerks, in unison with the sound. The door was thrust open, although no human form was perceptible on the other side of the half-window. Hepzibah, nevertheless, stood at a gaze, with her hands clasped, looking very much as if she had summoned up an evil spirit, and were afraid, yet resolved, to hazard the encounter.

But at that moment, the shop bell right above her tinkled as if it were enchanted. The old lady’s heart felt like it was synced to that same spring as it jolted in sync with the sound. The door swung open, but there was no one visible on the other side of the half-window. Hepzibah stood there, hands clasped, looking as if she had summoned an evil spirit and was both scared and determined to face whatever came next.

“Heaven help me!” she groaned mentally. “Now is my hour of need!”

“Heaven help me!” she thought to herself. “Now is when I really need help!”

The door, which moved with difficulty on its creaking and rusty hinges, being forced quite open, a square and sturdy little urchin became apparent, with cheeks as red as an apple. He was clad rather shabbily (but, as it seemed, more owing to his mother’s carelessness than his father’s poverty), in a blue apron, very wide and short trousers, shoes somewhat out at the toes, and a chip hat, with the frizzles of his curly hair sticking through its crevices. A book and a small slate, under his arm, indicated that he was on his way to school. He stared at Hepzibah a moment, as an elder customer than himself would have been likely enough to do, not knowing what to make of the tragic attitude and queer scowl wherewith she regarded him.

The door, which struggled to open on its creaky, rusty hinges, swung wide, revealing a sturdy little kid with cheeks as red as an apple. He was dressed a bit shabby (though it seemed more due to his mother’s carelessness than his father’s lack of money), in a blue apron, very baggy short trousers, shoes that were a bit worn at the toes, and a chip hat with his curly hair peeking through the gaps. He held a book and a small slate under his arm, showing he was on his way to school. He stared at Hepzibah for a moment, as any older customer might, unsure of what to make of her dramatic expression and strange scowl as she looked at him.

“Well, child,” said she, taking heart at sight of a personage so little formidable,—“well, my child, what did you wish for?”

“Well, kid,” she said, feeling braver at the sight of someone who seemed so harmless, “well, my kid, what did you wish for?”

“That Jim Crow there in the window,” answered the urchin, holding out a cent, and pointing to the gingerbread figure that had attracted his notice, as he loitered along to school; “the one that has not a broken foot.”

“That Jim Crow there in the window,” replied the kid, holding out a cent and pointing to the gingerbread figure that had caught his eye as he walked to school; “the one that doesn’t have a broken foot.”

So Hepzibah put forth her lank arm, and, taking the effigy from the shop-window, delivered it to her first customer.

So Hepzibah reached out her thin arm, and, taking the statue from the shop window, handed it to her first customer.

“No matter for the money,” said she, giving him a little push towards the door; for her old gentility was contumaciously squeamish at sight of the copper coin, and, besides, it seemed such pitiful meanness to take the child’s pocket-money in exchange for a bit of stale gingerbread. “No matter for the cent. You are welcome to Jim Crow.”

“No need to worry about the money,” she said, giving him a little push toward the door; her old sense of propriety was stubbornly uneasy at the sight of the copper coin, and besides, it felt so petty to take the child's pocket money for a piece of stale gingerbread. “No need for the cent. You can have Jim Crow.”

The child, staring with round eyes at this instance of liberality, wholly unprecedented in his large experience of cent-shops, took the man of gingerbread, and quitted the premises. No sooner had he reached the sidewalk (little cannibal that he was!) than Jim Crow’s head was in his mouth. As he had not been careful to shut the door, Hepzibah was at the pains of closing it after him, with a pettish ejaculation or two about the troublesomeness of young people, and particularly of small boys. She had just placed another representative of the renowned Jim Crow at the window, when again the shop-bell tinkled clamorously, and again the door being thrust open, with its characteristic jerk and jar, disclosed the same sturdy little urchin who, precisely two minutes ago, had made his exit. The crumbs and discoloration of the cannibal feast, as yet hardly consummated, were exceedingly visible about his mouth.

The child, eyes wide with amazement at this unexpected display of generosity, which was unlike anything he had seen in his many visits to dime stores, grabbed the gingerbread man and left the shop. As soon as he hit the sidewalk (the little scavenger that he was!), he shoved Jim Crow's head into his mouth. Since he hadn’t bothered to close the door, Hepzibah had to take the time to shut it behind him, muttering a few annoyed remarks about the nuisances of kids, especially little boys. She had just put another Jim Crow figure in the window when the shop bell rang loudly again, and the door flew open with its usual jolt, revealing the same sturdy little rascal who had left just two minutes earlier. The crumbs and remnants of his gluttonous feast were clearly visible around his mouth.

“What is it now, child?” asked the maiden lady rather impatiently; “did you come back to shut the door?”

“What is it now, kid?” the maiden lady asked a bit impatiently; “did you come back to close the door?”

“No,” answered the urchin, pointing to the figure that had just been put up; “I want that other Jim Crow.”

“No,” replied the kid, pointing to the figure that had just been set up; “I want that other Jim Crow.”

“Well, here it is for you,” said Hepzibah, reaching it down; but recognizing that this pertinacious customer would not quit her on any other terms, so long as she had a gingerbread figure in her shop, she partly drew back her extended hand, “Where is the cent?”

“Well, here it is for you,” said Hepzibah, reaching it down; but realizing that this persistent customer wouldn’t leave her alone as long as she had a gingerbread figure in her shop, she pulled her hand back a bit, “Where’s the cent?”

The little boy had the cent ready, but, like a true-born Yankee, would have preferred the better bargain to the worse. Looking somewhat chagrined, he put the coin into Hepzibah’s hand, and departed, sending the second Jim Crow in quest of the former one. The new shop-keeper dropped the first solid result of her commercial enterprise into the till. It was done! The sordid stain of that copper coin could never be washed away from her palm. The little schoolboy, aided by the impish figure of the negro dancer, had wrought an irreparable ruin. The structure of ancient aristocracy had been demolished by him, even as if his childish gripe had torn down the seven-gabled mansion. Now let Hepzibah turn the old Pyncheon portraits with their faces to the wall, and take the map of her Eastern territory to kindle the kitchen fire, and blow up the flame with the empty breath of her ancestral traditions! What had she to do with ancestry? Nothing; no more than with posterity! No lady, now, but simply Hepzibah Pyncheon, a forlorn old maid, and keeper of a cent-shop!

The little boy had the penny ready, but, like a true-born American, he would have preferred a better deal. Looking a bit disappointed, he placed the coin in Hepzibah’s hand and left, sending the second Jim Crow to look for the first one. The new shopkeeper dropped the first tangible result of her business venture into the cash register. It was done! The dirty mark of that copper coin could never be scrubbed off her palm. The little schoolboy, with the mischievous figure of the black dancer at his side, had caused an irreparable ruin. He had brought down the foundation of the old aristocracy, as if his small hands had demolished the seven-gabled mansion. Now, Hepzibah could turn the old Pyncheon portraits to face the wall, take the map of her Eastern territory to start the kitchen fire, and blow on the flames with the empty breath of her ancestral traditions! What did she care about ancestry? Nothing; no more than about the future! No lady now, but just Hepzibah Pyncheon, a lonely old maid, and run of a penny candy shop!

Nevertheless, even while she paraded these ideas somewhat ostentatiously through her mind, it is altogether surprising what a calmness had come over her. The anxiety and misgivings which had tormented her, whether asleep or in melancholy day-dreams, ever since her project began to take an aspect of solidity, had now vanished quite away. She felt the novelty of her position, indeed, but no longer with disturbance or affright. Now and then, there came a thrill of almost youthful enjoyment. It was the invigorating breath of a fresh outward atmosphere, after the long torpor and monotonous seclusion of her life. So wholesome is effort! So miraculous the strength that we do not know of! The healthiest glow that Hepzibah had known for years had come now in the dreaded crisis, when, for the first time, she had put forth her hand to help herself. The little circlet of the schoolboy’s copper coin—dim and lustreless though it was, with the small services which it had been doing here and there about the world—had proved a talisman, fragrant with good, and deserving to be set in gold and worn next her heart. It was as potent, and perhaps endowed with the same kind of efficacy, as a galvanic ring! Hepzibah, at all events, was indebted to its subtile operation both in body and spirit; so much the more, as it inspired her with energy to get some breakfast, at which, still the better to keep up her courage, she allowed herself an extra spoonful in her infusion of black tea.

Still, even while she paraded these thoughts somewhat dramatically in her mind, it was surprising how calm she had become. The anxiety and doubts that had tormented her, whether she was sleeping or lost in gloomy daydreams, since her project began to feel real, had completely vanished. She felt the novelty of her situation, but it no longer disturbed or frightened her. Occasionally, she felt a thrill of almost youthful enjoyment. It was like a refreshing breath of fresh air after a long stretch of dull and monotonous isolation in her life. Effort is so beneficial! The strength we are unaware of can be miraculous! The healthiest feeling Hepzibah had experienced in years came during this dreaded crisis, when, for the first time, she had reached out to help herself. The little circle of the schoolboy’s copper coin—dull and lackluster as it was, with the minor tasks it had done here and there in the world—had turned out to be a charm, filled with goodness, and worthy of being set in gold and worn close to her heart. It was as effective, and perhaps possessed the same kind of power, as a galvanic ring! Hepzibah, in any case, owed its subtle influence to both her body and spirit; especially since it inspired her with the energy to make some breakfast, at which, to boost her courage, she treated herself to an extra spoonful of her black tea.

Her introductory day of shop-keeping did not run on, however, without many and serious interruptions of this mood of cheerful vigor. As a general rule, Providence seldom vouchsafes to mortals any more than just that degree of encouragement which suffices to keep them at a reasonably full exertion of their powers. In the case of our old gentlewoman, after the excitement of new effort had subsided, the despondency of her whole life threatened, ever and anon, to return. It was like the heavy mass of clouds which we may often see obscuring the sky, and making a gray twilight everywhere, until, towards nightfall, it yields temporarily to a glimpse of sunshine. But, always, the envious cloud strives to gather again across the streak of celestial azure.

Her first day of running the shop didn’t go by without many serious interruptions to her cheerful energy. Generally speaking, fate rarely gives people more encouragement than what’s just enough to keep them putting in a decent effort. For our old lady, once the thrill of starting something new faded, the gloom of her entire life kept threatening to return, now and then. It felt like the thick clouds that often hide the sky, creating a gray twilight everywhere, until, towards evening, they briefly gave way to a peek of sunshine. But the jealous cloud always tries to creep back over the slice of blue sky.

Customers came in, as the forenoon advanced, but rather slowly; in some cases, too, it must be owned, with little satisfaction either to themselves or Miss Hepzibah; nor, on the whole, with an aggregate of very rich emolument to the till. A little girl, sent by her mother to match a skein of cotton thread, of a peculiar hue, took one that the near-sighted old lady pronounced extremely like, but soon came running back, with a blunt and cross message, that it would not do, and, besides, was very rotten! Then, there was a pale, care-wrinkled woman, not old but haggard, and already with streaks of gray among her hair, like silver ribbons; one of those women, naturally delicate, whom you at once recognize as worn to death by a brute—probably a drunken brute—of a husband, and at least nine children. She wanted a few pounds of flour, and offered the money, which the decayed gentlewoman silently rejected, and gave the poor soul better measure than if she had taken it. Shortly afterwards, a man in a blue cotton frock, much soiled, came in and bought a pipe, filling the whole shop, meanwhile, with the hot odor of strong drink, not only exhaled in the torrid atmosphere of his breath, but oozing out of his entire system, like an inflammable gas. It was impressed on Hepzibah’s mind that this was the husband of the care-wrinkled woman. He asked for a paper of tobacco; and as she had neglected to provide herself with the article, her brutal customer dashed down his newly-bought pipe and left the shop, muttering some unintelligible words, which had the tone and bitterness of a curse. Hereupon Hepzibah threw up her eyes, unintentionally scowling in the face of Providence!

Customers trickled in as the morning wore on, but not very quickly; in some cases, it must be acknowledged, with little satisfaction for themselves or Miss Hepzibah; and overall, not much profit for the register. A little girl, sent by her mother to find a skein of cotton thread in a specific color, picked one that the near-sighted old lady thought was very similar, but soon came running back with a blunt and irritated message that it wouldn’t work and, besides, was of poor quality! Then there was a pale, worn-out woman, not old but haggard, with streaks of gray in her hair like silver ribbons; one of those naturally delicate women you immediately recognize as being worn down by a brute—probably a drunken brute—husband, and at least nine kids. She wanted a few pounds of flour and offered money, which the faded gentlewoman silently refused, giving the poor woman more than if she had accepted it. Shortly afterward, a man in a soiled blue cotton coat came in and bought a pipe, filling the whole shop with the heavy smell of strong alcohol, not only wafting from his breath but seeping out of him like flammable gas. Hepzibah was convinced this was the husband of the care-wrinkled woman. He asked for a pack of tobacco; and since she hadn’t stocked up on it, her rude customer slammed down his newly bought pipe and stormed out of the shop, muttering some incomprehensible phrases that sounded like a curse. At this, Hepzibah rolled her eyes, unintentionally scowling at fate!

No less than five persons, during the forenoon, inquired for ginger-beer, or root-beer, or any drink of a similar brewage, and, obtaining nothing of the kind, went off in an exceedingly bad humor. Three of them left the door open, and the other two pulled it so spitefully in going out that the little bell played the very deuce with Hepzibah’s nerves. A round, bustling, fire-ruddy housewife of the neighborhood burst breathless into the shop, fiercely demanding yeast; and when the poor gentlewoman, with her cold shyness of manner, gave her hot customer to understand that she did not keep the article, this very capable housewife took upon herself to administer a regular rebuke.

At least five people, during the morning, asked for ginger beer, root beer, or any similar drink, and when they found nothing like that, they left in a really bad mood. Three of them walked out with the door left open, and the other two slammed it so hard behind them that the little bell drove Hepzibah crazy. A round, bustling, red-faced housewife from the neighborhood rushed into the shop, demanding yeast, and when the poor woman with her awkward shyness indicated that she didn’t have any, this very capable housewife felt entitled to give her a proper scolding.

“A cent-shop, and no yeast!” quoth she; “That will never do! Who ever heard of such a thing? Your loaf will never rise, no more than mine will to-day. You had better shut up shop at once.”

"A penny shop, and no yeast!" she said. "That’s just not right! Who’s ever heard of such a thing? Your bread won’t rise, just like mine won’t today. You’d better close up shop right away."

“Well,” said Hepzibah, heaving a deep sigh, “perhaps I had!”

"Well," said Hepzibah, taking a deep breath, "maybe I did!"

Several times, moreover, besides the above instance, her lady-like sensibilities were seriously infringed upon by the familiar, if not rude, tone with which people addressed her. They evidently considered themselves not merely her equals, but her patrons and superiors. Now, Hepzibah had unconsciously flattered herself with the idea that there would be a gleam or halo, of some kind or other, about her person, which would insure an obeisance to her sterling gentility, or, at least, a tacit recognition of it. On the other hand, nothing tortured her more intolerably than when this recognition was too prominently expressed. To one or two rather officious offers of sympathy, her responses were little short of acrimonious; and, we regret to say, Hepzibah was thrown into a positively unchristian state of mind by the suspicion that one of her customers was drawn to the shop, not by any real need of the article which she pretended to seek, but by a wicked wish to stare at her. The vulgar creature was determined to see for herself what sort of a figure a mildewed piece of aristocracy, after wasting all the bloom and much of the decline of her life apart from the world, would cut behind a counter. In this particular case, however mechanical and innocuous it might be at other times, Hepzibah’s contortion of brow served her in good stead.

Several times, in addition to the earlier example, her refined sensibilities were seriously impacted by the casual, if not impolite, way people spoke to her. They clearly saw themselves not just as her equals but as her patrons and superiors. Hepzibah had unconsciously convinced herself that there would be some kind of glow or aura around her that would ensure people acknowledged her genuine gentility, or at least recognize it in a subtle way. On the flip side, nothing irritated her more than when this acknowledgment became too obvious. To a couple of rather pushy offers of sympathy, her replies were nearly biting; and, regrettably, Hepzibah found herself in a decidedly uncharitable state of mind at the suspicion that one of her customers was drawn to the store not out of any real need for the item they pretended to want, but out of a cruel desire to gawk at her. The rude person was determined to see for herself what a faded piece of aristocracy, after spending all the prime and much of the later part of her life away from society, would look like behind a counter. In this particular situation, no matter how uneventful and harmless it might be at other times, Hepzibah's furrowed brow worked in her favor.

“I never was so frightened in my life!” said the curious customer, in describing the incident to one of her acquaintances. “She’s a real old vixen, take my word of it! She says little, to be sure; but if you could only see the mischief in her eye!”

“I’ve never been so scared in my life!” said the curious customer, while describing the incident to one of her friends. “She’s a real old trickster, trust me! She doesn’t say much, that’s for sure; but if you could just see the mischief in her eye!”

On the whole, therefore, her new experience led our decayed gentlewoman to very disagreeable conclusions as to the temper and manners of what she termed the lower classes, whom heretofore she had looked down upon with a gentle and pitying complaisance, as herself occupying a sphere of unquestionable superiority. But, unfortunately, she had likewise to struggle against a bitter emotion of a directly opposite kind: a sentiment of virulence, we mean, towards the idle aristocracy to which it had so recently been her pride to belong. When a lady, in a delicate and costly summer garb, with a floating veil and gracefully swaying gown, and, altogether, an ethereal lightness that made you look at her beautifully slippered feet, to see whether she trod on the dust or floated in the air,—when such a vision happened to pass through this retired street, leaving it tenderly and delusively fragrant with her passage, as if a bouquet of tea-roses had been borne along,—then again, it is to be feared, old Hepzibah’s scowl could no longer vindicate itself entirely on the plea of near-sightedness.

Overall, her new experiences led our fallen gentlewoman to really unpleasant conclusions about the behavior and attitudes of what she called the lower classes, whom she had previously looked down on with a gentle and pitying attitude, seeing herself as undeniably superior. Unfortunately, she also had to grapple with a strong feeling that was completely the opposite: a deep resentment toward the idle aristocracy that she had recently taken pride in belonging to. When a lady dressed in delicate and expensive summer attire, with a flowing veil and an elegantly swaying gown—a whole ethereal presence that made you want to check her beautifully slippered feet to see if she was walking on dust or floating above it—when such a vision passed through this quiet street, leaving it softly and deceptively fragrant in her wake, as if a bouquet of tea roses had been carried along, then again, it’s to be feared, old Hepzibah’s scowl could no longer be entirely justified by her near-sightedness.

“For what end,” thought she, giving vent to that feeling of hostility which is the only real abasement of the poor in presence of the rich,—“for what good end, in the wisdom of Providence, does that woman live? Must the whole world toil, that the palms of her hands may be kept white and delicate?”

“For what purpose,” she thought, expressing that sense of resentment that’s the only true humiliation of the poor in front of the rich, “for what good reason, in the wisdom of Providence, does that woman exist? Does everyone have to work hard just so her hands can stay soft and pristine?”

Then, ashamed and penitent, she hid her face.

Then, feeling ashamed and sorry, she covered her face.

“May God forgive me!” said she.

“God, please forgive me!” she said.

Doubtless, God did forgive her. But, taking the inward and outward history of the first half-day into consideration, Hepzibah began to fear that the shop would prove her ruin in a moral and religious point of view, without contributing very essentially towards even her temporal welfare.

Undoubtedly, God forgave her. However, considering the internal and external experiences of the first half-day, Hepzibah started to worry that the shop would lead to her downfall morally and spiritually, without really helping her financial situation.

IV.
A Day Behind the Counter

Towards noon, Hepzibah saw an elderly gentleman, large and portly, and of remarkably dignified demeanor, passing slowly along on the opposite side of the white and dusty street. On coming within the shadow of the Pyncheon Elm, he stopt, and (taking off his hat, meanwhile, to wipe the perspiration from his brow) seemed to scrutinize, with especial interest, the dilapidated and rusty-visaged House of the Seven Gables. He himself, in a very different style, was as well worth looking at as the house. No better model need be sought, nor could have been found, of a very high order of respectability, which, by some indescribable magic, not merely expressed itself in his looks and gestures, but even governed the fashion of his garments, and rendered them all proper and essential to the man. Without appearing to differ, in any tangible way, from other people’s clothes, there was yet a wide and rich gravity about them that must have been a characteristic of the wearer, since it could not be defined as pertaining either to the cut or material. His gold-headed cane, too,—a serviceable staff, of dark polished wood,—had similar traits, and, had it chosen to take a walk by itself, would have been recognized anywhere as a tolerably adequate representative of its master. This character—which showed itself so strikingly in everything about him, and the effect of which we seek to convey to the reader—went no deeper than his station, habits of life, and external circumstances. One perceived him to be a personage of marked influence and authority; and, especially, you could feel just as certain that he was opulent as if he had exhibited his bank account, or as if you had seen him touching the twigs of the Pyncheon Elm, and, Midas-like, transmuting them to gold.

Around noon, Hepzibah saw a large, portly older man with a remarkably dignified presence slowly making his way along the opposite side of the dusty white street. When he reached the shade of the Pyncheon Elm, he stopped and took off his hat to wipe the sweat from his forehead. He seemed particularly interested in the rundown, rusty-looking House of the Seven Gables. In a very different style, he was just as noteworthy as the house. No better example could be found of a person who carried a high level of respectability, which somehow shone through not just in his appearance and gestures but also influenced the way he dressed, making his clothing seem perfectly suited to him. While his clothes didn’t appear different in any obvious way from anyone else's, they had a unique and rich seriousness about them that had to come from the person wearing them, as it couldn’t be attributed to the design or fabric. His cane, too—a practical staff made of dark polished wood with a gold head—had similar qualities, and if it had decided to stroll on its own, it would have easily been recognized as a fitting representative of its owner. This character trait, evident in everything about him, seemed to come from his social position, lifestyle, and external circumstances. It was clear that he was a person of significant influence and authority, and you could almost feel certain of his wealth as if he had shown you his bank account or if you had seen him touching the branches of the Pyncheon Elm, turning them into gold like Midas.

In his youth, he had probably been considered a handsome man; at his present age, his brow was too heavy, his temples too bare, his remaining hair too gray, his eye too cold, his lips too closely compressed, to bear any relation to mere personal beauty. He would have made a good and massive portrait; better now, perhaps, than at any previous period of his life, although his look might grow positively harsh in the process of being fixed upon the canvas. The artist would have found it desirable to study his face, and prove its capacity for varied expression; to darken it with a frown,—to kindle it up with a smile.

In his younger days, he was likely seen as a good-looking guy; but at his current age, his brow was too heavy, his temples too bare, his remaining hair too gray, his eye too cold, and his lips too tightly pressed together to be considered attractive. He would have made a striking and strong portrait; maybe even better now than at any other time in his life, even though his expression might appear quite harsh once captured on the canvas. The artist would have found it useful to study his face and demonstrate its ability to show varied emotions; to darken it with a frown—and to light it up with a smile.

While the elderly gentleman stood looking at the Pyncheon House, both the frown and the smile passed successively over his countenance. His eye rested on the shop-window, and putting up a pair of gold-bowed spectacles, which he held in his hand, he minutely surveyed Hepzibah’s little arrangement of toys and commodities. At first it seemed not to please him,—nay, to cause him exceeding displeasure,—and yet, the very next moment, he smiled. While the latter expression was yet on his lips, he caught a glimpse of Hepzibah, who had involuntarily bent forward to the window; and then the smile changed from acrid and disagreeable to the sunniest complacency and benevolence. He bowed, with a happy mixture of dignity and courteous kindliness, and pursued his way.

While the elderly man stood there looking at the Pyncheon House, both a frown and a smile crossed his face in succession. His gaze landed on the shop window, and after putting on a pair of gold-bowed glasses he held in his hand, he carefully examined Hepzibah’s little display of toys and goods. At first, it seemed to upset him—indeed, it appeared to cause him great displeasure—yet, in the very next moment, he smiled. While the smile was still on his lips, he caught sight of Hepzibah, who had involuntarily leaned forward to the window; and then his smile shifted from something sharp and unpleasant to the brightest warmth and kindness. He bowed, with a happy blend of dignity and friendly courtesy, and continued on his way.

“There he is!” said Hepzibah to herself, gulping down a very bitter emotion, and, since she could not rid herself of it, trying to drive it back into her heart. “What does he think of it, I wonder? Does it please him? Ah! he is looking back!”

“There he is!” Hepzibah said to herself, swallowing a very bitter emotion, and, since she couldn’t shake it off, trying to push it back down into her heart. “I wonder what he thinks of it? Does it make him happy? Ah! He’s looking back!”

The gentleman had paused in the street, and turned himself half about, still with his eyes fixed on the shop-window. In fact, he wheeled wholly round, and commenced a step or two, as if designing to enter the shop; but, as it chanced, his purpose was anticipated by Hepzibah’s first customer, the little cannibal of Jim Crow, who, staring up at the window, was irresistibly attracted by an elephant of gingerbread. What a grand appetite had this small urchin!—Two Jim Crows immediately after breakfast!—and now an elephant, as a preliminary whet before dinner. By the time this latter purchase was completed, the elderly gentleman had resumed his way, and turned the street corner.

The man had stopped in the street and turned halfway around, still staring at the shop window. In fact, he turned completely around and took a couple of steps, as if he intended to go into the shop; but, as it turned out, his intention was interrupted by Hepzibah’s first customer, the little kid from Jim Crow, who was gazing up at the window and was easily drawn in by a gingerbread elephant. What a big appetite this little kid had!—Two Jim Crows right after breakfast!—and now an elephant, as a little snack before dinner. By the time this last purchase was made, the older man had continued on his way and turned the corner.

“Take it as you like, Cousin Jaffrey,” muttered the maiden lady, as she drew back, after cautiously thrusting out her head, and looking up and down the street,—“Take it as you like! You have seen my little shop-window. Well!—what have you to say?—is not the Pyncheon House my own, while I’m alive?”

“Take it however you want, Cousin Jaffrey,” muttered the single lady, as she pulled back after carefully sticking her head out and looking up and down the street,—“Take it however you want! You’ve seen my little shop window. So!—what do you have to say?—isn’t the Pyncheon House mine while I’m still alive?”

After this incident, Hepzibah retreated to the back parlor, where she at first caught up a half-finished stocking, and began knitting at it with nervous and irregular jerks; but quickly finding herself at odds with the stitches, she threw it aside, and walked hurriedly about the room. At length she paused before the portrait of the stern old Puritan, her ancestor, and the founder of the house. In one sense, this picture had almost faded into the canvas, and hidden itself behind the duskiness of age; in another, she could not but fancy that it had been growing more prominent and strikingly expressive, ever since her earliest familiarity with it as a child. For, while the physical outline and substance were darkening away from the beholder’s eye, the bold, hard, and, at the same time, indirect character of the man seemed to be brought out in a kind of spiritual relief. Such an effect may occasionally be observed in pictures of antique date. They acquire a look which an artist (if he have anything like the complacency of artists nowadays) would never dream of presenting to a patron as his own characteristic expression, but which, nevertheless, we at once recognize as reflecting the unlovely truth of a human soul. In such cases, the painter’s deep conception of his subject’s inward traits has wrought itself into the essence of the picture, and is seen after the superficial coloring has been rubbed off by time.

After this incident, Hepzibah stepped into the back parlor, where at first she picked up a half-finished stocking and started to knit it with nervous, uneven movements. But quickly struggling with the stitches, she tossed it aside and began to pace around the room anxiously. Eventually, she stopped in front of the portrait of her stern ancestor, the old Puritan who founded the house. In one way, the picture had almost blended into the canvas, fading behind the wear of time; in another, she sensed that it had become more prominent and strikingly expressive since she was a child. While the physical details of the painting were darkening and fading from view, the bold and somewhat indirect characteristics of the man seemed to stand out in a spiritual way. This effect can sometimes be observed in older paintings. They take on a look that an artist today (if they have the same confidence as modern artists) would never think to present to a client as their own style, yet we immediately recognize it as reflecting the harsh truth of a human soul. In such cases, the painter's deep understanding of their subject’s inner qualities has infused the essence of the painting and reveals itself after the superficial colors have been worn away by time.

While gazing at the portrait, Hepzibah trembled under its eye. Her hereditary reverence made her afraid to judge the character of the original so harshly as a perception of the truth compelled her to do. But still she gazed, because the face of the picture enabled her—at least, she fancied so—to read more accurately, and to a greater depth, the face which she had just seen in the street.

While staring at the portrait, Hepzibah felt uneasy under its gaze. Her inherited respect made her reluctant to judge the original too harshly, despite what her understanding of the truth urged her to do. Yet she continued to look, because she believed that the image allowed her—at least she thought so—to understand more clearly and deeply the face she had just seen on the street.

“This is the very man!” murmured she to herself. “Let Jaffrey Pyncheon smile as he will, there is that look beneath! Put on him a skull-cap, and a band, and a black cloak, and a Bible in one hand and a sword in the other,—then let Jaffrey smile as he might,—nobody would doubt that it was the old Pyncheon come again. He has proved himself the very man to build up a new house! Perhaps, too, to draw down a new curse!”

“This is the guy!” she whispered to herself. “Let Jaffrey Pyncheon smile all he wants, there’s that look underneath! If you put a skullcap on him, a band, a black cloak, a Bible in one hand and a sword in the other—then let Jaffrey smile as much as he likes—nobody would doubt that it was the old Pyncheon come back. He’s shown himself to be the exact person to build a new house! Maybe, too, to bring down a new curse!”

Thus did Hepzibah bewilder herself with these fantasies of the old time. She had dwelt too much alone,—too long in the Pyncheon House,—until her very brain was impregnated with the dry-rot of its timbers. She needed a walk along the noonday street to keep her sane.

Thus did Hepzibah confuse herself with these fantasies of the past. She had spent too much time alone—too long in the Pyncheon House—until her very mind was filled with the decay of its wooden structure. She needed a walk along the busy street at noon to stay grounded.

By the spell of contrast, another portrait rose up before her, painted with more daring flattery than any artist would have ventured upon, but yet so delicately touched that the likeness remained perfect. Malbone’s miniature, though from the same original, was far inferior to Hepzibah’s air-drawn picture, at which affection and sorrowful remembrance wrought together. Soft, mildly, and cheerfully contemplative, with full, red lips, just on the verge of a smile, which the eyes seemed to herald by a gentle kindling-up of their orbs! Feminine traits, moulded inseparably with those of the other sex! The miniature, likewise, had this last peculiarity; so that you inevitably thought of the original as resembling his mother, and she a lovely and lovable woman, with perhaps some beautiful infirmity of character, that made it all the pleasanter to know and easier to love her.

By the power of contrast, another image appeared before her, crafted with more bold flattery than any artist would have dared, yet so delicately rendered that the resemblance was flawless. Malbone’s miniature, though from the same original, was much inferior to Hepzibah’s imagined portrait, shaped by affection and bittersweet memory. Soft, gently, and cheerfully reflective, with full, red lips just hinting at a smile, which her eyes seemed to signal with a gentle spark! Feminine qualities seamlessly blended with those of the other gender! The miniature also had this last trait, so you inevitably thought of the original as resembling his mother, a lovely and lovable woman, perhaps with some charming imperfections in her character that made her all the more delightful to know and easy to love.

“Yes,” thought Hepzibah, with grief of which it was only the more tolerable portion that welled up from her heart to her eyelids, “they persecuted his mother in him! He never was a Pyncheon!”

“Yes,” thought Hepzibah, with a sorrow that was only a little more bearable as it rose from her heart to her eyelids, “they persecuted his mother through him! He was never a Pyncheon!”

But here the shop-bell rang; it was like a sound from a remote distance,—so far had Hepzibah descended into the sepulchral depths of her reminiscences. On entering the shop, she found an old man there, a humble resident of Pyncheon Street, and whom, for a great many years past, she had suffered to be a kind of familiar of the house. He was an immemorial personage, who seemed always to have had a white head and wrinkles, and never to have possessed but a single tooth, and that a half-decayed one, in the front of the upper jaw. Well advanced as Hepzibah was, she could not remember when Uncle Venner, as the neighborhood called him, had not gone up and down the street, stooping a little and drawing his feet heavily over the gravel or pavement. But still there was something tough and vigorous about him, that not only kept him in daily breath, but enabled him to fill a place which would else have been vacant in the apparently crowded world. To go of errands with his slow and shuffling gait, which made you doubt how he ever was to arrive anywhere; to saw a small household’s foot or two of firewood, or knock to pieces an old barrel, or split up a pine board for kindling-stuff; in summer, to dig the few yards of garden ground appertaining to a low-rented tenement, and share the produce of his labor at the halves; in winter, to shovel away the snow from the sidewalk, or open paths to the woodshed, or along the clothes-line; such were some of the essential offices which Uncle Venner performed among at least a score of families. Within that circle, he claimed the same sort of privilege, and probably felt as much warmth of interest, as a clergyman does in the range of his parishioners. Not that he laid claim to the tithe pig; but, as an analogous mode of reverence, he went his rounds, every morning, to gather up the crumbs of the table and overflowings of the dinner-pot, as food for a pig of his own.

But just then the shop bell rang; it sounded like it was coming from far away—Hepzibah had sunk so deep into her memories. When she entered the shop, she found an old man there, a humble resident of Pyncheon Street, who, for many years, had become a sort of familiar face in the house. He was a longtime figure, who seemed to have always had a white head and wrinkles, and never more than one tooth, which was a half-decayed one, in the front of his upper jaw. Even though Hepzibah was getting on in years, she couldn’t remember a time when Uncle Venner, as the neighborhood called him, hadn’t been shuffling up and down the street, stooping slightly and dragging his feet over the gravel or pavement. Yet there was something tough and lively about him that not only kept him going each day but also allowed him to fill a spot that would otherwise have been empty in the seemingly busy world. Running errands with his slow and shuffling pace made you wonder if he would ever get anywhere; he would saw a bit of firewood for a household, break apart an old barrel, or split a pine board for kindling. In the summer, he would dig up a few yards of garden space belonging to a low-rent apartment and share the fruits of his labor half-and-half; in winter, he would shovel snow from the sidewalk or clear paths to the woodshed or along the clothesline. These were just some of the vital tasks Uncle Venner took on for at least twenty families. Within that community, he claimed a similar kind of privilege and probably felt as much affection as a clergyman feels for his parishioners. Not that he expected anything in return; but, in a similar spirit of gratitude, he went around every morning to collect the scraps from tables and leftovers from cooking pots, as food for his own pig.

In his younger days—for, after all, there was a dim tradition that he had been, not young, but younger—Uncle Venner was commonly regarded as rather deficient, than otherwise, in his wits. In truth he had virtually pleaded guilty to the charge, by scarcely aiming at such success as other men seek, and by taking only that humble and modest part in the intercourse of life which belongs to the alleged deficiency. But now, in his extreme old age,—whether it were that his long and hard experience had actually brightened him, or that his decaying judgment rendered him less capable of fairly measuring himself,—the venerable man made pretensions to no little wisdom, and really enjoyed the credit of it. There was likewise, at times, a vein of something like poetry in him; it was the moss or wall-flower of his mind in its small dilapidation, and gave a charm to what might have been vulgar and commonplace in his earlier and middle life. Hepzibah had a regard for him, because his name was ancient in the town and had formerly been respectable. It was a still better reason for awarding him a species of familiar reverence that Uncle Venner was himself the most ancient existence, whether of man or thing, in Pyncheon Street, except the House of the Seven Gables, and perhaps the elm that overshadowed it.

In his younger days—though there was a vague tradition that he had been not just young, but younger—Uncle Venner was generally seen as somewhat lacking in intelligence. In fact, he almost accepted this reputation by not pursuing the kind of success that other men chased and by taking on only a humble and modest role in social interactions that fit with this perceived deficiency. However, now in his old age—whether it was that his long, tough experiences had actually made him wiser, or that his fading judgment made him less capable of accurately assessing himself—the old man claimed quite a bit of wisdom and genuinely enjoyed the recognition that came with it. At times, there was also a hint of poetry in him; it was like the moss or wallflower growing in the cracked walls of his mind, adding charm to what might have otherwise seemed ordinary or mundane during his younger years. Hepzibah held him in esteem because his name had deep roots in the town and had once carried respect. An even better reason for giving him a type of familiar reverence was that Uncle Venner was the oldest living being, whether human or otherwise, on Pyncheon Street, apart from the House of the Seven Gables, and perhaps the elm tree that shaded it.

This patriarch now presented himself before Hepzibah, clad in an old blue coat, which had a fashionable air, and must have accrued to him from the cast-off wardrobe of some dashing clerk. As for his trousers, they were of tow-cloth, very short in the legs, and bagging down strangely in the rear, but yet having a suitableness to his figure which his other garment entirely lacked. His hat had relation to no other part of his dress, and but very little to the head that wore it. Thus Uncle Venner was a miscellaneous old gentleman, partly himself, but, in good measure, somebody else; patched together, too, of different epochs; an epitome of times and fashions.

This old man now stood in front of Hepzibah, wearing an old blue coat that had a stylish vibe, likely taken from the discarded wardrobe of a flashy clerk. His trousers were made of rough fabric, very short in the legs, and bagging oddly in the back, yet they somehow suited his figure in a way that his coat did not. His hat had no connection to the rest of his outfit and fit his head only loosely. In this way, Uncle Venner was a mixed bag—partly himself but mostly someone else; a patchwork of different times and styles.

“So, you have really begun trade,” said he,—“really begun trade! Well, I’m glad to see it. Young people should never live idle in the world, nor old ones neither, unless when the rheumatize gets hold of them. It has given me warning already; and in two or three years longer, I shall think of putting aside business and retiring to my farm. That’s yonder,—the great brick house, you know,—the workhouse, most folks call it; but I mean to do my work first, and go there to be idle and enjoy myself. And I’m glad to see you beginning to do your work, Miss Hepzibah!”

“So, you’ve really started a business,” he said, “really started a business! Well, I’m glad to hear it. Young people should never be idle in this world, and neither should older folks, unless they're dealing with arthritis. It has already warned me; in two or three more years, I’ll think about stepping back from business and retiring to my farm. That one over there—the big brick house, you know—the workhouse, as most people call it; but I plan to finish my work first and then go there to relax and enjoy myself. And I’m happy to see you beginning your work, Miss Hepzibah!”

“Thank you, Uncle Venner” said Hepzibah, smiling; for she always felt kindly towards the simple and talkative old man. Had he been an old woman, she might probably have repelled the freedom, which she now took in good part. “It is time for me to begin work, indeed! Or, to speak the truth, I have just begun when I ought to be giving it up.”

“Thank you, Uncle Venner,” said Hepzibah, smiling; she always felt warmly towards the simple and chatty old man. If he had been an old woman, she might have been put off by the familiarity that she now accepted with ease. “It’s really time for me to start working! Or, to be honest, I’ve just started when I should actually be stopping.”

“Oh, never say that, Miss Hepzibah!” answered the old man. “You are a young woman yet. Why, I hardly thought myself younger than I am now, it seems so little while ago since I used to see you playing about the door of the old house, quite a small child! Oftener, though, you used to be sitting at the threshold, and looking gravely into the street; for you had always a grave kind of way with you,—a grown-up air, when you were only the height of my knee. It seems as if I saw you now; and your grandfather with his red cloak, and his white wig, and his cocked hat, and his cane, coming out of the house, and stepping so grandly up the street! Those old gentlemen that grew up before the Revolution used to put on grand airs. In my young days, the great man of the town was commonly called King; and his wife, not Queen to be sure, but Lady. Nowadays, a man would not dare to be called King; and if he feels himself a little above common folks, he only stoops so much the lower to them. I met your cousin, the Judge, ten minutes ago; and, in my old tow-cloth trousers, as you see, the Judge raised his hat to me, I do believe! At any rate, the Judge bowed and smiled!”

“Oh, don’t say that, Miss Hepzibah!” replied the old man. “You’re still a young woman. I barely feel younger than I am now; it doesn’t seem that long ago since I’d see you playing by the door of the old house, just a small child! More often, though, you were sitting at the threshold, looking seriously into the street; you always had a serious demeanor—an adult vibe, even when you were just the size of my knee. It feels like I see you clearly now; and your grandfather with his red cloak, white wig, cocked hat, and cane, stepping proudly up the street! Those old gentlemen before the Revolution had such a grand presence. In my younger days, the biggest man in town was often called King; and his wife, not Queen of course, but Lady. Nowadays, a man wouldn’t dare call himself King; if he thinks he’s a bit above regular folks, he just bends down even lower to them. I ran into your cousin, the Judge, ten minutes ago; and in my old tow-cloth trousers, as you see, the Judge actually tipped his hat to me, I’m sure of it! At least, the Judge bowed and smiled!”

“Yes,” said Hepzibah, with something bitter stealing unawares into her tone; “my cousin Jaffrey is thought to have a very pleasant smile!”

“Yes,” said Hepzibah, with a hint of bitterness creeping into her tone; “my cousin Jaffrey is believed to have a rather nice smile!”

“And so he has” replied Uncle Venner. “And that’s rather remarkable in a Pyncheon; for, begging your pardon, Miss Hepzibah, they never had the name of being an easy and agreeable set of folks. There was no getting close to them. But Now, Miss Hepzibah, if an old man may be bold to ask, why don’t Judge Pyncheon, with his great means, step forward, and tell his cousin to shut up her little shop at once? It’s for your credit to be doing something, but it’s not for the Judge’s credit to let you!”

“And so he has,” replied Uncle Venner. “And that’s pretty impressive for a Pyncheon; no offense, Miss Hepzibah, but they haven’t exactly been known for being friendly or approachable. You could never really get close to them. But now, Miss Hepzibah, if an old man can be frank, why doesn’t Judge Pyncheon, with all his wealth, step up and tell his cousin to close her little shop right away? It would reflect well on you to be doing something, but it doesn’t look good for the Judge to let you continue!”

“We won’t talk of this, if you please, Uncle Venner,” said Hepzibah coldly. “I ought to say, however, that, if I choose to earn bread for myself, it is not Judge Pyncheon’s fault. Neither will he deserve the blame,” added she more kindly, remembering Uncle Venner’s privileges of age and humble familiarity, “if I should, by and by, find it convenient to retire with you to your farm.”

“We won’t discuss this, if you don’t mind, Uncle Venner,” Hepzibah said coldly. “I should mention, though, that if I decide to earn my own living, it isn’t Judge Pyncheon’s fault. He won’t deserve the blame,” she added more gently, recalling Uncle Venner’s seniority and their comfortable relationship, “if I later find it easier to go with you to your farm.”

“And it’s no bad place, either, that farm of mine!” cried the old man cheerily, as if there were something positively delightful in the prospect. “No bad place is the great brick farm-house, especially for them that will find a good many old cronies there, as will be my case. I quite long to be among them, sometimes, of the winter evenings; for it is but dull business for a lonesome elderly man, like me, to be nodding, by the hour together, with no company but his air-tight stove. Summer or winter, there’s a great deal to be said in favor of my farm! And, take it in the autumn, what can be pleasanter than to spend a whole day on the sunny side of a barn or a wood-pile, chatting with somebody as old as one’s self; or, perhaps, idling away the time with a natural-born simpleton, who knows how to be idle, because even our busy Yankees never have found out how to put him to any use? Upon my word, Miss Hepzibah, I doubt whether I’ve ever been so comfortable as I mean to be at my farm, which most folks call the workhouse. But you,—you’re a young woman yet,—you never need go there! Something still better will turn up for you. I’m sure of it!”

“And it’s not a bad place, either, that farm of mine!” the old man said cheerfully, as if there was something really delightful about the idea. “That big brick farmhouse is great, especially for those who will find a lot of old friends there, like me. I often look forward to being among them on those winter evenings; it can be pretty dull for a lonely old man like me just nodding off for hours with only my airtight stove for company. Whether it’s summer or winter, there’s a lot to love about my farm! And in the fall, what could be nicer than spending an entire day on the sunny side of a barn or a woodpile, chatting with someone as old as you are; or maybe just passing the time with a natural-born simpleton, who knows how to relax because even our busy Yankees have never figured out how to put him to good use? Honestly, Miss Hepzibah, I doubt I’ve ever been as comfortable as I plan to be at my farm, which most people call the workhouse. But you—you’re still a young woman—you never have to go there! Something even better will come along for you. I’m sure of it!”

Hepzibah fancied that there was something peculiar in her venerable friend’s look and tone; insomuch, that she gazed into his face with considerable earnestness, endeavoring to discover what secret meaning, if any, might be lurking there. Individuals whose affairs have reached an utterly desperate crisis almost invariably keep themselves alive with hopes, so much the more airily magnificent as they have the less of solid matter within their grasp whereof to mould any judicious and moderate expectation of good. Thus, all the while Hepzibah was perfecting the scheme of her little shop, she had cherished an unacknowledged idea that some harlequin trick of fortune would intervene in her favor. For example, an uncle—who had sailed for India fifty years before, and never been heard of since—might yet return, and adopt her to be the comfort of his very extreme and decrepit age, and adorn her with pearls, diamonds, and Oriental shawls and turbans, and make her the ultimate heiress of his unreckonable riches. Or the member of Parliament, now at the head of the English branch of the family,—with which the elder stock, on this side of the Atlantic, had held little or no intercourse for the last two centuries,—this eminent gentleman might invite Hepzibah to quit the ruinous House of the Seven Gables, and come over to dwell with her kindred at Pyncheon Hall. But, for reasons the most imperative, she could not yield to his request. It was more probable, therefore, that the descendants of a Pyncheon who had emigrated to Virginia, in some past generation, and became a great planter there,—hearing of Hepzibah’s destitution, and impelled by the splendid generosity of character with which their Virginian mixture must have enriched the New England blood,—would send her a remittance of a thousand dollars, with a hint of repeating the favor annually. Or,—and, surely, anything so undeniably just could not be beyond the limits of reasonable anticipation,—the great claim to the heritage of Waldo County might finally be decided in favor of the Pyncheons; so that, instead of keeping a cent-shop, Hepzibah would build a palace, and look down from its highest tower on hill, dale, forest, field, and town, as her own share of the ancestral territory.

Hepzibah thought there was something strange about her elderly friend’s expression and tone; so much so that she looked into his face with real intensity, trying to uncover any hidden meaning that might be there. People whose lives have hit a completely desperate point usually keep themselves going with hopes that are grander the less they actually have to create any realistic or moderate expectations for something good. While Hepzibah was putting together her little shop, she secretly believed that some lucky twist of fate would come through for her. For instance, an uncle—who had left for India fifty years ago and had never been heard from again—might somehow return and take her in to be the source of comfort in his old age, showering her with pearls, diamonds, and luxurious shawls and turbans, making her the ultimate heiress to his uncountable wealth. Or the member of Parliament, who now leads the English branch of the family—which had barely communicated with this side of the Atlantic for the last two centuries—might invite Hepzibah to leave the deteriorating House of the Seven Gables and come stay with her relatives at Pyncheon Hall. But, for very strong reasons, she couldn’t accept his invitation. It was much more likely that the descendants of a Pyncheon who had moved to Virginia generations ago and became a wealthy planter there would hear about Hepzibah’s situation and, inspired by the generous spirit they must have inherited, send her a thousand-dollar check, with a suggestion of making it a regular gift. Or—surely, something so undeniably fair couldn’t be completely out of reach—the major claim to the inheritance in Waldo County might eventually be resolved in favor of the Pyncheons; so that instead of running a shop, Hepzibah would build a palace and look down from its highest tower over the hills, valleys, forests, fields, and towns, all as her rightful share of the ancestral land.

These were some of the fantasies which she had long dreamed about; and, aided by these, Uncle Venner’s casual attempt at encouragement kindled a strange festal glory in the poor, bare, melancholy chambers of her brain, as if that inner world were suddenly lighted up with gas. But either he knew nothing of her castles in the air,—as how should he?—or else her earnest scowl disturbed his recollection, as it might a more courageous man’s. Instead of pursuing any weightier topic, Uncle Venner was pleased to favor Hepzibah with some sage counsel in her shop-keeping capacity.

These were some of the dreams she had long envisioned; and with these thoughts, Uncle Venner’s casual attempt at encouragement sparked a strange festive light in the poor, empty, sorrowful corners of her mind, as if that inner world had suddenly been illuminated by gaslights. But either he had no idea about her daydreams—how could he?—or her serious frown threw him off, just like it might with a braver man. Instead of diving into a deeper conversation, Uncle Venner chose to give Hepzibah some wise advice about her work in the shop.

“Give no credit!”—these were some of his golden maxims,—“Never take paper-money. Look well to your change! Ring the silver on the four-pound weight! Shove back all English half-pence and base copper tokens, such as are very plenty about town! At your leisure hours, knit children’s woollen socks and mittens! Brew your own yeast, and make your own ginger-beer!”

“Don’t trust anyone!”—these were some of his key rules,—“Never accept paper money. Always check your change! Weigh the silver on a four-pound scale! Reject all English half-pennies and low-quality copper coins, which are very common around here! In your free time, knit wool socks and mittens for kids! Brew your own yeast, and make your own ginger beer!”

And while Hepzibah was doing her utmost to digest the hard little pellets of his already uttered wisdom, he gave vent to his final, and what he declared to be his all-important advice, as follows:—

And while Hepzibah was doing her best to process the tough little bits of his previously shared wisdom, he expressed his final, and what he claimed to be his crucial advice, as follows:—

“Put on a bright face for your customers, and smile pleasantly as you hand them what they ask for! A stale article, if you dip it in a good, warm, sunny smile, will go off better than a fresh one that you’ve scowled upon.”

“Put on a cheerful face for your customers, and smile genuinely as you give them what they ask for! A stale item, if you present it with a warm, sunny smile, will be better received than a fresh one that you’ve scowled at.”

To this last apothegm poor Hepzibah responded with a sigh so deep and heavy that it almost rustled Uncle Venner quite away, like a withered leaf,—as he was,—before an autumnal gale. Recovering himself, however, he bent forward, and, with a good deal of feeling in his ancient visage, beckoned her nearer to him.

To this last saying, poor Hepzibah let out a sigh that was so deep and heavy it almost blew Uncle Venner away, like a dried-up leaf—just like he was—before an autumn wind. However, he got himself together, leaned forward, and with deep emotion in his aged face, signaled for her to come closer.

“When do you expect him home?” whispered he.

“When do you expect him back?” he whispered.

“Whom do you mean?” asked Hepzibah, turning pale.

“Who do you mean?” asked Hepzibah, turning pale.

“Ah!—You don’t love to talk about it,” said Uncle Venner. “Well, well! we’ll say no more, though there’s word of it all over town. I remember him, Miss Hepzibah, before he could run alone!”

“Ah!—You don’t like to talk about it,” said Uncle Venner. “Well, well! We won’t say anything more, even though everyone is talking about it around town. I remember him, Miss Hepzibah, before he could walk on his own!”

During the remainder of the day, poor Hepzibah acquitted herself even less creditably, as a shop-keeper, than in her earlier efforts. She appeared to be walking in a dream; or, more truly, the vivid life and reality assumed by her emotions made all outward occurrences unsubstantial, like the teasing phantasms of a half-conscious slumber. She still responded, mechanically, to the frequent summons of the shop-bell, and, at the demand of her customers, went prying with vague eyes about the shop, proffering them one article after another, and thrusting aside—perversely, as most of them supposed—the identical thing they asked for. There is sad confusion, indeed, when the spirit thus flits away into the past, or into the more awful future, or, in any manner, steps across the spaceless boundary betwixt its own region and the actual world; where the body remains to guide itself as best it may, with little more than the mechanism of animal life. It is like death, without death’s quiet privilege,—its freedom from mortal care. Worst of all, when the actual duties are comprised in such petty details as now vexed the brooding soul of the old gentlewoman. As the animosity of fate would have it, there was a great influx of custom in the course of the afternoon. Hepzibah blundered to and fro about her small place of business, committing the most unheard-of errors: now stringing up twelve, and now seven, tallow-candles, instead of ten to the pound; selling ginger for Scotch snuff, pins for needles, and needles for pins; misreckoning her change, sometimes to the public detriment, and much oftener to her own; and thus she went on, doing her utmost to bring chaos back again, until, at the close of the day’s labor, to her inexplicable astonishment, she found the money-drawer almost destitute of coin. After all her painful traffic, the whole proceeds were perhaps half a dozen coppers, and a questionable ninepence which ultimately proved to be copper likewise.

Throughout the rest of the day, poor Hepzibah performed even worse as a shopkeeper than she had earlier. She seemed to be in a daze; or rather, the intense emotions she was feeling made everything happening around her feel insubstantial, like the fleeting illusions of a half-conscious dream. She still responded mechanically to the constant ringing of the shop bell and, at her customers’ requests, wandered with unfocused eyes around the shop, offering them item after item, and stubbornly ignoring—the very things they asked for. It’s a sad kind of confusion when the mind drifts away into the past, or into a more terrifying future, or steps across the invisible line between its own world and reality; where the body has to manage as best it can, relying mostly on instinct. It’s like experiencing death, without the peaceful release from life’s worries—especially frustrating when the actual tasks involve such trivial details that now troubled the elderly lady's mind. As fate would have it, there was a large influx of customers that afternoon. Hepzibah stumbled around her small store, making the most unbelievable mistakes: sometimes hanging up twelve, and sometimes seven, tallow candles instead of ten to a pound; selling ginger as if it were Scotch snuff, pins instead of needles, and needles instead of pins; miscalculating her change, often to the public's disadvantage, and even more so to her own; and she continued like this, doing her best to create chaos, until, at the end of the day, to her utter shock, she found the money drawer nearly empty of coins. After all her hard work, the total earnings were maybe six copper coins, and a doubtful ninepence that eventually turned out to be copper as well.

At this price, or at whatever price, she rejoiced that the day had reached its end. Never before had she had such a sense of the intolerable length of time that creeps between dawn and sunset, and of the miserable irksomeness of having aught to do, and of the better wisdom that it would be to lie down at once, in sullen resignation, and let life, and its toils and vexations, trample over one’s prostrate body as they may! Hepzibah’s final operation was with the little devourer of Jim Crow and the elephant, who now proposed to eat a camel. In her bewilderment, she offered him first a wooden dragoon, and next a handful of marbles; neither of which being adapted to his else omnivorous appetite, she hastily held out her whole remaining stock of natural history in gingerbread, and huddled the small customer out of the shop. She then muffled the bell in an unfinished stocking, and put up the oaken bar across the door.

At this price, or at any price, she was glad the day had finally come to an end. She had never felt so acutely how unbearably long the stretch of time felt between dawn and sunset, nor the miserable annoyance of having things to do, and how wise it would be to just lie down right then, in quiet defeat, and let life, along with its troubles and annoyances, walk all over her. Hepzibah’s last task was with the little creature that devoured Jim Crow and the elephant, who was now asking to eat a camel. In her confusion, she first offered him a wooden dragoon, and then a handful of marbles; neither suited his otherwise insatiable appetite, so she quickly presented her entire remaining stock of natural history in gingerbread and ushered the small customer out of the shop. She then muffled the bell in an unfinished stocking and put the oak bar across the door.

During the latter process, an omnibus came to a stand-still under the branches of the elm-tree. Hepzibah’s heart was in her mouth. Remote and dusky, and with no sunshine on all the intervening space, was that region of the Past whence her only guest might be expected to arrive! Was she to meet him now?

During the latter process, a bus came to a stop under the branches of the elm tree. Hepzibah's heart raced. Remote and shadowy, and with no sunlight on all the distance in between, was that part of the past from which her only guest might be expected to arrive! Was she about to meet him now?

Somebody, at all events, was passing from the farthest interior of the omnibus towards its entrance. A gentleman alighted; but it was only to offer his hand to a young girl whose slender figure, nowise needing such assistance, now lightly descended the steps, and made an airy little jump from the final one to the sidewalk. She rewarded her cavalier with a smile, the cheery glow of which was seen reflected on his own face as he reentered the vehicle. The girl then turned towards the House of the Seven Gables, to the door of which, meanwhile,—not the shop-door, but the antique portal,—the omnibus-man had carried a light trunk and a bandbox. First giving a sharp rap of the old iron knocker, he left his passenger and her luggage at the door-step, and departed.

Someone was making their way from the back of the bus toward the entrance. A gentleman got off, but it was just to help a young girl whose slender figure clearly didn’t need any assistance; she easily descended the steps and jumped lightly from the last one to the sidewalk. She rewarded her gallant helper with a smile, the cheerful glow of which was reflected on his face as he got back into the vehicle. The girl then turned toward the House of the Seven Gables, to the door of which—not the shop door, but the ancient entrance—the bus driver had carried a light trunk and a hatbox. After giving a sharp knock on the old iron knocker, he left his passenger and her luggage on the doorstep and left.

“Who can it be?” thought Hepzibah, who had been screwing her visual organs into the acutest focus of which they were capable. “The girl must have mistaken the house.” She stole softly into the hall, and, herself invisible, gazed through the dusty side-lights of the portal at the young, blooming, and very cheerful face which presented itself for admittance into the gloomy old mansion. It was a face to which almost any door would have opened of its own accord.

“Who could it be?” thought Hepzibah, straining her eyes to see as clearly as possible. “The girl must have the wrong house.” She quietly walked into the hallway and, still unseen, peeked through the dusty sidelights of the door at the young, radiant, and very cheerful face that was looking to enter the gloomy old mansion. It was a face that would have made almost any door open on its own.

The young girl, so fresh, so unconventional, and yet so orderly and obedient to common rules, as you at once recognized her to be, was widely in contrast, at that moment, with everything about her. The sordid and ugly luxuriance of gigantic weeds that grew in the angle of the house, and the heavy projection that overshadowed her, and the time-worn framework of the door,—none of these things belonged to her sphere. But, even as a ray of sunshine, fall into what dismal place it may, instantaneously creates for itself a propriety in being there, so did it seem altogether fit that the girl should be standing at the threshold. It was no less evidently proper that the door should swing open to admit her. The maiden lady herself, sternly inhospitable in her first purposes, soon began to feel that the door ought to be shoved back, and the rusty key be turned in the reluctant lock.

The young girl, so fresh, so unconventional, and yet so orderly and obedient to common rules, as you immediately recognized her to be, sharply contrasted with everything around her at that moment. The grim and ugly overgrowth of gigantic weeds in the corner of the house, the heavy eave that shaded her, and the worn-out door frame—none of these things were part of her world. But just like a ray of sunshine, no matter how dreary the place, can quickly establish its own right to be there, it seemed completely right for the girl to be standing at the threshold. It was equally clear that the door should swing open to let her in. The maiden lady herself, initially cold and unwelcoming, soon started to feel that the door needed to be pushed back, and the rusty key should be turned in the stubborn lock.

“Can it be Phœbe?” questioned she within herself. “It must be little Phœbe; for it can be nobody else,—and there is a look of her father about her, too! But what does she want here? And how like a country cousin, to come down upon a poor body in this way, without so much as a day’s notice, or asking whether she would be welcome! Well; she must have a night’s lodging, I suppose; and to-morrow the child shall go back to her mother.”

“Could it be Phoebe?” she wondered to herself. “It has to be little Phoebe; it can’t be anyone else—and she even looks a bit like her father! But what is she doing here? And how typical of a country cousin to just show up without any notice or even asking if she’d be welcome! Well, I guess she’ll have to stay the night, and tomorrow the kid will go back to her mom.”

Phœbe, it must be understood, was that one little offshoot of the Pyncheon race to whom we have already referred, as a native of a rural part of New England, where the old fashions and feelings of relationship are still partially kept up. In her own circle, it was regarded as by no means improper for kinsfolk to visit one another without invitation, or preliminary and ceremonious warning. Yet, in consideration of Miss Hepzibah’s recluse way of life, a letter had actually been written and despatched, conveying information of Phœbe’s projected visit. This epistle, for three or four days past, had been in the pocket of the penny-postman, who, happening to have no other business in Pyncheon Street, had not yet made it convenient to call at the House of the Seven Gables.

Phoebe, it should be noted, was that one little branch of the Pyncheon family we’ve mentioned before, a local from a rural part of New England, where the old traditions and family connections are still somewhat maintained. In her community, it was viewed as quite normal for relatives to visit one another without an invitation, or any prior formal notice. However, considering Miss Hepzibah’s reclusive lifestyle, a letter had actually been written and sent out to inform her about Phoebe’s planned visit. This letter had been in the pocket of the penny-postman for three or four days, who, without any other business in Pyncheon Street, had yet to find a convenient time to stop by the House of the Seven Gables.

“No—she can stay only one night,” said Hepzibah, unbolting the door. “If Clifford were to find her here, it might disturb him!”

“No—she can stay only one night,” said Hepzibah, unlocking the door. “If Clifford finds her here, it might upset him!”

V.
May and November

Phœbe Pyncheon slept, on the night of her arrival, in a chamber that looked down on the garden of the old house. It fronted towards the east, so that at a very seasonable hour a glow of crimson light came flooding through the window, and bathed the dingy ceiling and paper-hangings in its own hue. There were curtains to Phœbe’s bed; a dark, antique canopy, and ponderous festoons of a stuff which had been rich, and even magnificent, in its time; but which now brooded over the girl like a cloud, making a night in that one corner, while elsewhere it was beginning to be day. The morning light, however, soon stole into the aperture at the foot of the bed, betwixt those faded curtains. Finding the new guest there,—with a bloom on her cheeks like the morning’s own, and a gentle stir of departing slumber in her limbs, as when an early breeze moves the foliage,—the dawn kissed her brow. It was the caress which a dewy maiden—such as the Dawn is, immortally—gives to her sleeping sister, partly from the impulse of irresistible fondness, and partly as a pretty hint that it is time now to unclose her eyes.

Phœbe Pyncheon slept that night in a room overlooking the garden of the old house. It faced east, so at a reasonable hour, a warm, crimson light poured through the window, washing over the dull ceiling and wallpaper. There were curtains around Phœbe's bed; a dark, old canopy and heavy drapes made from material that had once been rich and even magnificent, but now hung over the girl like a cloud, creating darkness in that corner while daylight was starting to emerge elsewhere. However, the morning light soon sneaked in through the gap at the foot of the bed, between those faded curtains. When it found the new guest there—her cheeks flushed like the morning itself, and a gentle stir of waking sleep in her limbs, like when an early breeze rustles the leaves—the dawn touched her forehead. It was the kind of gentle kiss a dewy maiden—like the Dawn, forever—gives to her sleeping sister, partly out of irresistible affection and partly as a sweet hint that it's time to open her eyes.

At the touch of those lips of light, Phœbe quietly awoke, and, for a moment, did not recognize where she was, nor how those heavy curtains chanced to be festooned around her. Nothing, indeed, was absolutely plain to her, except that it was now early morning, and that, whatever might happen next, it was proper, first of all, to get up and say her prayers. She was the more inclined to devotion from the grim aspect of the chamber and its furniture, especially the tall, stiff chairs; one of which stood close by her bedside, and looked as if some old-fashioned personage had been sitting there all night, and had vanished only just in season to escape discovery.

At the touch of those glowing lips, Phœbe woke up quietly and, for a moment, didn’t recognize where she was or why those heavy curtains were draped around her. Nothing was completely clear to her except that it was early morning and that, no matter what happened next, the first thing she should do was get up and say her prayers. She felt even more inclined to pray because of the gloomy look of the room and its furniture, especially the tall, stiff chairs; one of which was right by her bedside and seemed like some old-fashioned person had been sitting there all night and had just disappeared in time to avoid being noticed.

When Phœbe was quite dressed, she peeped out of the window, and saw a rosebush in the garden. Being a very tall one, and of luxuriant growth, it had been propped up against the side of the house, and was literally covered with a rare and very beautiful species of white rose. A large portion of them, as the girl afterwards discovered, had blight or mildew at their hearts; but, viewed at a fair distance, the whole rosebush looked as if it had been brought from Eden that very summer, together with the mould in which it grew. The truth was, nevertheless, that it had been planted by Alice Pyncheon,—she was Phœbe’s great-great-grand-aunt,—in soil which, reckoning only its cultivation as a garden-plat, was now unctuous with nearly two hundred years of vegetable decay. Growing as they did, however, out of the old earth, the flowers still sent a fresh and sweet incense up to their Creator; nor could it have been the less pure and acceptable because Phœbe’s young breath mingled with it, as the fragrance floated past the window. Hastening down the creaking and carpetless staircase, she found her way into the garden, gathered some of the most perfect of the roses, and brought them to her chamber.

When Phoebe finished getting ready, she peeked out of the window and saw a rosebush in the garden. Being very tall and lush, it had been propped up against the side of the house and was completely covered with a rare and beautiful type of white rose. A large part of them, as the girl later discovered, had blight or mildew at their centers; but, from a distance, the whole bush looked like it had come straight from Eden that very summer, along with the soil it grew in. The truth was, however, that it had been planted by Alice Pyncheon—Phoebe's great-great-great-grand-aunt—in soil that, if considering only its use as a garden, was now rich with nearly two hundred years of organic matter. Despite this, the flowers still sent a fresh and sweet scent up to their Creator, and it couldn’t have been any less pure or acceptable because Phoebe's young breath mingled with it as the fragrance floated past the window. Rushing down the creaking and bare staircase, she made her way into the garden, picked some of the most perfect roses, and brought them to her room.

Little Phœbe was one of those persons who possess, as their exclusive patrimony, the gift of practical arrangement. It is a kind of natural magic that enables these favored ones to bring out the hidden capabilities of things around them; and particularly to give a look of comfort and habitableness to any place which, for however brief a period, may happen to be their home. A wild hut of underbrush, tossed together by wayfarers through the primitive forest, would acquire the home aspect by one night’s lodging of such a woman, and would retain it long after her quiet figure had disappeared into the surrounding shade. No less a portion of such homely witchcraft was requisite to reclaim, as it were, Phœbe’s waste, cheerless, and dusky chamber, which had been untenanted so long—except by spiders, and mice, and rats, and ghosts—that it was all overgrown with the desolation which watches to obliterate every trace of man’s happier hours. What was precisely Phœbe’s process we find it impossible to say. She appeared to have no preliminary design, but gave a touch here and another there; brought some articles of furniture to light and dragged others into the shadow; looped up or let down a window-curtain; and, in the course of half an hour, had fully succeeded in throwing a kindly and hospitable smile over the apartment. No longer ago than the night before, it had resembled nothing so much as the old maid’s heart; for there was neither sunshine nor household fire in one nor the other, and, save for ghosts and ghostly reminiscences, not a guest, for many years gone by, had entered the heart or the chamber.

Little Phœbe was one of those people who possess, as their unique gift, the talent for practical organization. It’s a kind of natural magic that allows these lucky individuals to bring out the hidden potential of everything around them; especially to make any place they temporarily call home feel cozy and welcoming. A simple hut made of branches thrown together by travelers in the primitive forest would take on a homey feel after just one night’s stay from such a woman, and it would keep that feeling long after she had quietly slipped away into the surrounding trees. It took no less of this homely magic to transform Phœbe’s neglected, gloomy, and dark room, which had been empty for so long—except for spiders, mice, rats, and ghosts—that it was completely overrun with the sadness that erases every trace of happier times. What exactly Phœbe did to change things is hard to say. She didn’t seem to have a plan, but just added a touch here and there; unearthed some pieces of furniture and pushed others into the shadows; adjusted a window curtain; and, in the span of half an hour, completely managed to cast a warm and welcoming glow over the space. Just the night before, the room looked like nothing so much as an old maid’s heart; for there was neither sunshine nor warmth in either, and aside from ghosts and ghostly memories, not a single visitor had entered either the heart or the room for many years.

There was still another peculiarity of this inscrutable charm. The bedchamber, no doubt, was a chamber of very great and varied experience, as a scene of human life: the joy of bridal nights had throbbed itself away here; new immortals had first drawn earthly breath here; and here old people had died. But—whether it were the white roses, or whatever the subtile influence might be—a person of delicate instinct would have known at once that it was now a maiden’s bedchamber, and had been purified of all former evil and sorrow by her sweet breath and happy thoughts. Her dreams of the past night, being such cheerful ones, had exorcised the gloom, and now haunted the chamber in its stead.

There was one more unique aspect to this mysterious charm. The bedroom was undoubtedly a place of significant and diverse experiences, a backdrop for human life: the joy of wedding nights had resonated here; new lives had taken their first breath here; and elderly people had passed away here. But—whether it was the white roses or some other subtle influence—a person with refined sensibilities would have instantly recognized that it was now a young woman’s bedroom, cleansed of all previous pain and sorrow by her gentle presence and positive thoughts. Her cheerful dreams from the past night had chased away the darkness, leaving a lightness in the room instead.

After arranging matters to her satisfaction, Phœbe emerged from her chamber, with a purpose to descend again into the garden. Besides the rosebush, she had observed several other species of flowers growing there in a wilderness of neglect, and obstructing one another’s development (as is often the parallel case in human society) by their uneducated entanglement and confusion. At the head of the stairs, however, she met Hepzibah, who, it being still early, invited her into a room which she would probably have called her boudoir, had her education embraced any such French phrase. It was strewn about with a few old books, and a work-basket, and a dusty writing-desk; and had, on one side, a large black article of furniture, of very strange appearance, which the old gentlewoman told Phœbe was a harpsichord. It looked more like a coffin than anything else; and, indeed,—not having been played upon, or opened, for years,—there must have been a vast deal of dead music in it, stifled for want of air. Human finger was hardly known to have touched its chords since the days of Alice Pyncheon, who had learned the sweet accomplishment of melody in Europe.

After sorting things out to her liking, Phœbe came out of her room, intending to go back down to the garden. Besides the rosebush, she noticed several other types of flowers growing there in a neglected mess, blocking each other's growth (which often mirrors what happens in human society) due to their tangled and chaotic state. At the top of the stairs, though, she ran into Hepzibah, who, since it was still early, invited her into a room she probably would have called her boudoir if she had known any French. It was cluttered with a few old books, a sewing basket, and a dusty writing desk; on one side, there was a large black piece of furniture that looked very strange, which the old woman told Phœbe was a harpsichord. It looked more like a coffin than anything else; and, in fact—having not been played or opened for years—there must have been a lot of dead music trapped inside it, suffocated from lack of air. Human fingers had hardly touched its strings since the times of Alice Pyncheon, who had learned the wonderful skill of making music in Europe.

Hepzibah bade her young guest sit down, and, herself taking a chair near by, looked as earnestly at Phœbe’s trim little figure as if she expected to see right into its springs and motive secrets.

Hepzibah asked her young guest to sit down, and as she took a chair nearby, she looked intently at Phœbe’s neat little figure as if she hoped to see straight into its inner workings and hidden reasons.

“Cousin Phœbe,” said she, at last, “I really can’t see my way clear to keep you with me.”

“Cousin Phoebe,” she said finally, “I really can’t see how I can keep you with me.”

These words, however, had not the inhospitable bluntness with which they may strike the reader; for the two relatives, in a talk before bedtime, had arrived at a certain degree of mutual understanding. Hepzibah knew enough to enable her to appreciate the circumstances (resulting from the second marriage of the girl’s mother) which made it desirable for Phœbe to establish herself in another home. Nor did she misinterpret Phœbe’s character, and the genial activity pervading it,—one of the most valuable traits of the true New England woman,—which had impelled her forth, as might be said, to seek her fortune, but with a self-respecting purpose to confer as much benefit as she could anywise receive. As one of her nearest kindred, she had naturally betaken herself to Hepzibah, with no idea of forcing herself on her cousin’s protection, but only for a visit of a week or two, which might be indefinitely extended, should it prove for the happiness of both.

These words, however, didn’t have the unfriendly bluntness they might seem to have at first; because the two relatives, during a conversation before bed, had reached a certain level of understanding. Hepzibah knew enough about the situation (stemming from the girl’s mother’s second marriage) to recognize that it was important for Phœbe to establish herself in a new home. Nor did she misunderstand Phœbe’s character and the lively spirit that was a key quality of a true New England woman, which had motivated her to go out and seek her fortune, but with a self-respecting desire to give as much help as she could receive. As one of her closest relatives, Phœbe naturally turned to Hepzibah, with no intention of imposing on her cousin’s support, but just for a visit of a week or two, which could be extended indefinitely if it turned out to be beneficial for both of them.

To Hepzibah’s blunt observation, therefore, Phœbe replied as frankly, and more cheerfully.

To Hepzibah’s straightforward comment, Phœbe responded just as openly, and with a more cheerful tone.

“Dear cousin, I cannot tell how it will be,” said she. “But I really think we may suit one another much better than you suppose.”

“Dear cousin, I can’t say how it will turn out,” she said. “But I honestly believe we might be a better match than you think.”

“You are a nice girl,—I see it plainly,” continued Hepzibah; “and it is not any question as to that point which makes me hesitate. But, Phœbe, this house of mine is but a melancholy place for a young person to be in. It lets in the wind and rain, and the snow, too, in the garret and upper chambers, in winter-time, but it never lets in the sunshine. And as for myself, you see what I am,—a dismal and lonesome old woman (for I begin to call myself old, Phœbe), whose temper, I am afraid, is none of the best, and whose spirits are as bad as can be! I cannot make your life pleasant, Cousin Phœbe, neither can I so much as give you bread to eat.”

“You're a kind girl, and I see that clearly,” Hepzibah continued. “It’s not about that that makes me hesitate. But, Phœbe, this house of mine is a sad place for a young person to be. It lets in the wind and rain, and even the snow in the attic and upper rooms during winter, but it never lets in the sunshine. And as for me, you see what I am—a gloomy and lonely old woman (I’m starting to call myself old, Phœbe), whose temper isn’t the best, and whose spirits are at an all-time low! I can’t make your life enjoyable, Cousin Phœbe, and I can't even provide you with bread to eat.”

“You will find me a cheerful little body” answered Phœbe, smiling, and yet with a kind of gentle dignity, “and I mean to earn my bread. You know I have not been brought up a Pyncheon. A girl learns many things in a New England village.”

“You'll find me to be a cheerful little person,” Phœbe replied, smiling but still with a certain gentle dignity. “And I plan to earn my living. You know I wasn't raised a Pyncheon. A girl learns a lot of things in a New England village.”

“Ah! Phœbe,” said Hepzibah, sighing, “your knowledge would do but little for you here! And then it is a wretched thought that you should fling away your young days in a place like this. Those cheeks would not be so rosy after a month or two. Look at my face!” and, indeed, the contrast was very striking,—“you see how pale I am! It is my idea that the dust and continual decay of these old houses are unwholesome for the lungs.”

“Ah! Phoebe,” Hepzibah said with a sigh, “your knowledge wouldn’t get you far here! And it’s a miserable thought that you should waste your youth in a place like this. Your cheeks wouldn’t stay so rosy after a month or two. Look at my face!” and indeed, the difference was very noticeable—“you can see how pale I am! I think the dust and constant decay of these old houses are bad for the lungs.”

“There is the garden,—the flowers to be taken care of,” observed Phœbe. “I should keep myself healthy with exercise in the open air.”

“There's the garden—the flowers need care,” observed Phoebe. “I should stay healthy by exercising outside.”

“And, after all, child,” exclaimed Hepzibah, suddenly rising, as if to dismiss the subject, “it is not for me to say who shall be a guest or inhabitant of the old Pyncheon House. Its master is coming.”

“And, after all, kid,” Hepzibah exclaimed, suddenly getting up as if to drop the topic, “it’s not up to me to decide who can be a guest or resident of the old Pyncheon House. Its owner is coming.”

“Do you mean Judge Pyncheon?” asked Phœbe in surprise.

“Are you talking about Judge Pyncheon?” Phœbe asked, surprised.

“Judge Pyncheon!” answered her cousin angrily. “He will hardly cross the threshold while I live! No, no! But, Phœbe, you shall see the face of him I speak of.”

“Judge Pyncheon!” her cousin replied angrily. “He won't set foot in here as long as I’m alive! No way! But, Phœbe, you will see the face of the person I'm talking about.”

She went in quest of the miniature already described, and returned with it in her hand. Giving it to Phœbe, she watched her features narrowly, and with a certain jealousy as to the mode in which the girl would show herself affected by the picture.

She set out to find the miniature she had described earlier and came back with it in her hand. Handing it to Phœbe, she closely observed her expression, feeling a bit jealous about how the girl would react to the picture.

“How do you like the face?” asked Hepzibah.

“How do you like the face?” asked Hepzibah.

“It is handsome!—it is very beautiful!” said Phœbe admiringly. “It is as sweet a face as a man’s can be, or ought to be. It has something of a child’s expression,—and yet not childish,—only one feels so very kindly towards him! He ought never to suffer anything. One would bear much for the sake of sparing him toil or sorrow. Who is it, Cousin Hepzibah?”

“It’s gorgeous!—it’s really beautiful!” said Phœbe admiringly. “It has the sweetest face a man can have, or should have. There’s something of a childlike expression in it—but it’s not childish—just makes you feel really fond of him! He should never have to go through anything difficult. You’d do a lot to spare him from hard work or sadness. Who is he, Cousin Hepzibah?”

“Did you never hear,” whispered her cousin, bending towards her, “of Clifford Pyncheon?”

“Have you never heard,” whispered her cousin, leaning toward her, “of Clifford Pyncheon?”

“Never. I thought there were no Pyncheons left, except yourself and our cousin Jaffrey,” answered Phœbe. “And yet I seem to have heard the name of Clifford Pyncheon. Yes!—from my father or my mother; but has he not been a long while dead?”

“Never. I thought there were no Pyncheons left, except you and our cousin Jaffrey,” answered Phoebe. “But I feel like I’ve heard the name Clifford Pyncheon. Yes!—from my dad or my mom; but hasn’t he been dead for a long time?”

“Well, well, child, perhaps he has!” said Hepzibah with a sad, hollow laugh; “but, in old houses like this, you know, dead people are very apt to come back again! We shall see. And, Cousin Phœbe, since, after all that I have said, your courage does not fail you, we will not part so soon. You are welcome, my child, for the present, to such a home as your kinswoman can offer you.”

“Well, well, kid, maybe he has!” said Hepzibah with a sad, hollow laugh. “But you know, in old houses like this, dead people have a way of coming back! We’ll see. And, Cousin Phoebe, since your courage hasn’t wavered after everything I’ve said, we won’t say goodbye just yet. You’re welcome, my child, to the best home I can offer for now.”

With this measured, but not exactly cold assurance of a hospitable purpose, Hepzibah kissed her cheek.

With this calm, but not entirely distant, confidence in a welcoming intention, Hepzibah kissed her cheek.

They now went below stairs, where Phœbe—not so much assuming the office as attracting it to herself, by the magnetism of innate fitness—took the most active part in preparing breakfast. The mistress of the house, meanwhile, as is usual with persons of her stiff and unmalleable cast, stood mostly aside; willing to lend her aid, yet conscious that her natural inaptitude would be likely to impede the business in hand. Phœbe and the fire that boiled the teakettle were equally bright, cheerful, and efficient, in their respective offices. Hepzibah gazed forth from her habitual sluggishness, the necessary result of long solitude, as from another sphere. She could not help being interested, however, and even amused, at the readiness with which her new inmate adapted herself to the circumstances, and brought the house, moreover, and all its rusty old appliances, into a suitableness for her purposes. Whatever she did, too, was done without conscious effort, and with frequent outbreaks of song, which were exceedingly pleasant to the ear. This natural tunefulness made Phœbe seem like a bird in a shadowy tree; or conveyed the idea that the stream of life warbled through her heart as a brook sometimes warbles through a pleasant little dell. It betokened the cheeriness of an active temperament, finding joy in its activity, and, therefore, rendering it beautiful; it was a New England trait,—the stern old stuff of Puritanism with a gold thread in the web.

They went downstairs, where Phœbe—naturally drawing attention by her undeniable ability—played a major role in making breakfast. The mistress of the house, as often happens with rigid people like her, mostly stood to the side; she was willing to help but knew her lack of skill would probably slow things down. Phœbe and the kettle on the stove were equally bright, cheerful, and efficient in their tasks. Hepzibah watched from her usual sluggishness, a result of her long solitude, as if from another realm. However, she couldn't help being interested, even amused, by how quickly her new housemate adapted to the situation and made the entire place and its rusty old tools suitable for her needs. Everything Phœbe did seemed effortless, accompanied by frequent bursts of song that were very pleasant to hear. This natural melodic quality made Phœbe feel like a bird in a dark tree or suggested that the joy of life flowed through her as a brook sometimes does in a lovely little valley. It reflected the cheerfulness of a lively spirit, finding joy in its activity and making it beautiful; it was a New England trait—the serious old fabric of Puritanism woven with a golden thread.

Hepzibah brought out some old silver spoons with the family crest upon them, and a china tea-set painted over with grotesque figures of man, bird, and beast, in as grotesque a landscape. These pictured people were odd humorists, in a world of their own,—a world of vivid brilliancy, so far as color went, and still unfaded, although the teapot and small cups were as ancient as the custom itself of tea-drinking.

Hepzibah brought out some old silver spoons with the family crest on them, and a china tea set decorated with strange figures of people, birds, and animals, set against an equally bizarre landscape. These illustrated figures were quirky humorists, living in their own unique world—a world full of bright colors, which remained vivid even though the teapot and small cups were as old as the tradition of tea-drinking itself.

“Your great-great-great-great-grandmother had these cups, when she was married,” said Hepzibah to Phœbe. “She was a Davenport, of a good family. They were almost the first teacups ever seen in the colony; and if one of them were to be broken, my heart would break with it. But it is nonsense to speak so about a brittle teacup, when I remember what my heart has gone through without breaking.”

“Your great-great-great-great-grandmother had these cups when she got married,” Hepzibah said to Phœbe. “She was a Davenport from a good family. They were nearly the first teacups ever seen in the colony, and if one of them were to break, my heart would break along with it. But it’s silly to talk like that about a fragile teacup when I think of everything my heart has endured without breaking.”

The cups—not having been used, perhaps, since Hepzibah’s youth—had contracted no small burden of dust, which Phœbe washed away with so much care and delicacy as to satisfy even the proprietor of this invaluable china.

The cups—probably not used since Hepzibah’s youth—had gathered a fair amount of dust, which Phœbe carefully washed away with such attention and gentleness that it would please even the owner of this priceless china.

“What a nice little housewife you are!” exclaimed the latter, smiling, and at the same time frowning so prodigiously that the smile was sunshine under a thunder-cloud. “Do you do other things as well? Are you as good at your book as you are at washing teacups?”

“What a lovely little housewife you are!” said the latter, smiling, but at the same time frowning so much that the smile felt like sunshine under a thundercloud. “Do you do other things too? Are you as good at reading as you are at washing teacups?”

“Not quite, I am afraid,” said Phœbe, laughing at the form of Hepzibah’s question. “But I was schoolmistress for the little children in our district last summer, and might have been so still.”

“Not exactly, I’m afraid,” said Phœbe, laughing at the way Hepzibah asked the question. “But I was the schoolteacher for the little kids in our area last summer, and I could still be.”

“Ah! ’tis all very well!” observed the maiden lady, drawing herself up. “But these things must have come to you with your mother’s blood. I never knew a Pyncheon that had any turn for them.”

“Ah! That’s all fine!” said the spinster, straightening herself. “But these things must have come to you from your mother’s side. I’ve never known a Pyncheon who had any talent for them.”

It is very queer, but not the less true, that people are generally quite as vain, or even more so, of their deficiencies than of their available gifts; as was Hepzibah of this native inapplicability, so to speak, of the Pyncheons to any useful purpose. She regarded it as an hereditary trait; and so, perhaps, it was, but unfortunately a morbid one, such as is often generated in families that remain long above the surface of society.

It's very strange, but still true, that people are usually just as vain, or even more so, about their flaws than about their strengths; just like Hepzibah felt about the Pyncheons' inability to be useful. She saw it as an inherited trait; and maybe it was, but unfortunately, it was an unhealthy one, often found in families that stay prominent in society for too long.

Before they left the breakfast-table, the shop-bell rang sharply, and Hepzibah set down the remnant of her final cup of tea, with a look of sallow despair that was truly piteous to behold. In cases of distasteful occupation, the second day is generally worse than the first. We return to the rack with all the soreness of the preceding torture in our limbs. At all events, Hepzibah had fully satisfied herself of the impossibility of ever becoming wonted to this peevishly obstreperous little bell. Ring as often as it might, the sound always smote upon her nervous system rudely and suddenly. And especially now, while, with her crested teaspoons and antique china, she was flattering herself with ideas of gentility, she felt an unspeakable disinclination to confront a customer.

Before they left the breakfast table, the shop bell rang sharply, and Hepzibah set down the remains of her last cup of tea, looking pale and desperate in a way that was truly pitiful to see. In situations we don’t enjoy, the second day is usually worse than the first. We return to the grind with all the pain from yesterday’s suffering still in our limbs. In any case, Hepzibah had completely convinced herself that she could never get used to this annoyingly loud little bell. No matter how often it rang, the sound always struck her nerves harshly and suddenly. Especially now, while she was surrounded by her fancy teaspoons and antique china, feeling a sense of elegance, she felt a deep reluctance to face a customer.

“Do not trouble yourself, dear cousin!” cried Phœbe, starting lightly up. “I am shop-keeper to-day.”

“Don't worry about it, dear cousin!” exclaimed Phoebe, getting up lightly. “I’m the shopkeeper today.”

“You, child!” exclaimed Hepzibah. “What can a little country girl know of such matters?”

"You, kid!" exclaimed Hepzibah. "What could a little country girl know about such things?"

“Oh, I have done all the shopping for the family at our village store,” said Phœbe. “And I have had a table at a fancy fair, and made better sales than anybody. These things are not to be learnt; they depend upon a knack that comes, I suppose,” added she, smiling, “with one’s mother’s blood. You shall see that I am as nice a little saleswoman as I am a housewife!”

“Oh, I’ve done all the shopping for our family at the village store,” said Phœbe. “And I had a table at a fancy fair, and I made better sales than anyone else. These things can't be learned; they depend on a talent that, I guess,” she added with a smile, “comes from your mother’s genes. You’ll see that I’m as good a little saleswoman as I am a housewife!”

The old gentlewoman stole behind Phœbe, and peeped from the passageway into the shop, to note how she would manage her undertaking. It was a case of some intricacy. A very ancient woman, in a white short gown and a green petticoat, with a string of gold beads about her neck, and what looked like a nightcap on her head, had brought a quantity of yarn to barter for the commodities of the shop. She was probably the very last person in town who still kept the time-honored spinning-wheel in constant revolution. It was worth while to hear the croaking and hollow tones of the old lady, and the pleasant voice of Phœbe, mingling in one twisted thread of talk; and still better to contrast their figures,—so light and bloomy,—so decrepit and dusky,—with only the counter betwixt them, in one sense, but more than threescore years, in another. As for the bargain, it was wrinkled slyness and craft pitted against native truth and sagacity.

The old woman quietly sneaked up behind Phœbe and peeked from the hallway into the shop to see how she would handle her task. It was a complicated situation. An extremely old woman, dressed in a short white gown and a green petticoat, with a string of gold beads around her neck and what looked like a nightcap on her head, had brought a bunch of yarn to exchange for items from the shop. She was likely the last person in town who still used a spinning wheel regularly. It was interesting to hear the croaky, hollow voice of the old lady mixed with Phœbe's pleasant tone, creating a single thread of conversation; even more fascinating was the contrast between their appearances—so light and blooming versus so frail and dark—with only the counter separating them in one sense, but more than sixty years in another. As for the deal, it was a matchup of the old woman’s crafty cunning against Phœbe's straightforward honesty and wisdom.

“Was not that well done?” asked Phœbe, laughing, when the customer was gone.

“Wasn’t that well done?” asked Phoebe, laughing, once the customer left.

“Nicely done, indeed, child!” answered Hepzibah. “I could not have gone through with it nearly so well. As you say, it must be a knack that belongs to you on the mother’s side.”

“Nicely done, indeed, kid!” responded Hepzibah. “I couldn’t have handled it nearly as well. As you said, it must be a talent that comes from your mom’s side.”

It is a very genuine admiration, that with which persons too shy or too awkward to take a due part in the bustling world regard the real actors in life’s stirring scenes; so genuine, in fact, that the former are usually fain to make it palatable to their self-love, by assuming that these active and forcible qualities are incompatible with others, which they choose to deem higher and more important. Thus, Hepzibah was well content to acknowledge Phœbe’s vastly superior gifts as a shop-keeper; she listened, with compliant ear, to her suggestion of various methods whereby the influx of trade might be increased, and rendered profitable, without a hazardous outlay of capital. She consented that the village maiden should manufacture yeast, both liquid and in cakes; and should brew a certain kind of beer, nectareous to the palate, and of rare stomachic virtues; and, moreover, should bake and exhibit for sale some little spice-cakes, which whosoever tasted would longingly desire to taste again. All such proofs of a ready mind and skilful handiwork were highly acceptable to the aristocratic hucksteress, so long as she could murmur to herself with a grim smile, and a half-natural sigh, and a sentiment of mixed wonder, pity, and growing affection:—

It's a sincere admiration that shy or awkward people feel toward those who take an active role in life’s busy scenes; so genuine, in fact, that the former typically try to comfort their self-esteem by claiming that these active and forceful traits don’t mix with the qualities they consider to be better or more important. So, Hepzibah was quite happy to admit Phœbe’s much greater skills as a shopkeeper; she listened carefully to her ideas on different ways to boost trade without risking a lot of capital. She agreed that the village girl should make yeast, both liquid and in cakes; brew a type of beer that was delightful to drink and had wonderful digestive benefits; and, on top of that, bake and sell small spice cakes that anyone who tasted them would long to have more. All these signs of a quick mind and skillful hands were very welcomed by the aristocratic shopkeeper, as long as she could whisper to herself with a wry smile, a semi-natural sigh, and a feeling of mixed wonder, pity, and growing affection:—

“What a nice little body she is! If she only could be a lady; too—but that’s impossible! Phœbe is no Pyncheon. She takes everything from her mother!”

“What a nice little body she is! If only she could be a lady too—but that’s impossible! Phoebe is no Pyncheon. She gets everything from her mother!”

As to Phœbe’s not being a lady, or whether she were a lady or no, it was a point, perhaps, difficult to decide, but which could hardly have come up for judgment at all in any fair and healthy mind. Out of New England, it would be impossible to meet with a person combining so many ladylike attributes with so many others that form no necessary (if compatible) part of the character. She shocked no canon of taste; she was admirably in keeping with herself, and never jarred against surrounding circumstances. Her figure, to be sure,—so small as to be almost childlike, and so elastic that motion seemed as easy or easier to it than rest, would hardly have suited one’s idea of a countess. Neither did her face—with the brown ringlets on either side, and the slightly piquant nose, and the wholesome bloom, and the clear shade of tan, and the half dozen freckles, friendly remembrances of the April sun and breeze—precisely give us a right to call her beautiful. But there was both lustre and depth in her eyes. She was very pretty; as graceful as a bird, and graceful much in the same way; as pleasant about the house as a gleam of sunshine falling on the floor through a shadow of twinkling leaves, or as a ray of firelight that dances on the wall while evening is drawing nigh. Instead of discussing her claim to rank among ladies, it would be preferable to regard Phœbe as the example of feminine grace and availability combined, in a state of society, if there were any such, where ladies did not exist. There it should be woman’s office to move in the midst of practical affairs, and to gild them all, the very homeliest,—were it even the scouring of pots and kettles,—with an atmosphere of loveliness and joy.

As for whether Phœbe was a lady or not, it was a tough question to answer, but it shouldn't have even come up for debate in any fair and rational mind. Outside of New England, it would be hard to find someone who had so many ladylike qualities mixed with traits that didn’t necessarily define a lady, even if they were compatible. She didn’t offend any standards of taste; she was perfectly herself and never clashed with her surroundings. Her figure—small enough to be almost childlike and so energetic that movement seemed easier for her than standing still—would hardly fit the image of a countess. Her face, too—with the brown ringlets on either side, the slightly sharp nose, the healthy glow, the light tan, and the few freckles, reminders of the April sun and breeze—didn’t exactly give us a reason to call her beautiful. But her eyes had both shine and depth. She was very pretty, graceful like a bird in the same way; as delightful around the house as a beam of sunlight streaming in through the shadows of rustling leaves or a flickering firelight dancing on the wall as evening approaches. Rather than arguing about her status among ladies, it would be better to see Phœbe as the embodiment of feminine grace and approachability in a society—if there were such a thing—where ladies didn’t exist. There, it should be a woman’s role to engage in practical matters and to infuse even the most mundane tasks—even those as basic as scrubbing pots and pans—with an atmosphere of beauty and joy.

Such was the sphere of Phœbe. To find the born and educated lady, on the other hand, we need look no farther than Hepzibah, our forlorn old maid, in her rustling and rusty silks, with her deeply cherished and ridiculous consciousness of long descent, her shadowy claims to princely territory, and, in the way of accomplishment, her recollections, it may be, of having formerly thrummed on a harpsichord, and walked a minuet, and worked an antique tapestry-stitch on her sampler. It was a fair parallel between new Plebeianism and old Gentility.

Such was the realm of Phoebe. To find the refined and educated lady, we need look no further than Hepzibah, our lonely old maid, in her rustling yet faded silks, with her deep-seated and somewhat ridiculous sense of noble ancestry, her vague claims to royal land, and, in terms of skills, perhaps her memories of once playing a harpsichord, dancing a minuet, and working an old-fashioned tapestry stitch on her sampler. It created a striking contrast between new working-class values and old aristocracy.

It really seemed as if the battered visage of the House of the Seven Gables, black and heavy-browed as it still certainly looked, must have shown a kind of cheerfulness glimmering through its dusky windows as Phœbe passed to and fro in the interior. Otherwise, it is impossible to explain how the people of the neighborhood so soon became aware of the girl’s presence. There was a great run of custom, setting steadily in, from about ten o’clock until towards noon,—relaxing, somewhat, at dinner-time, but recommencing in the afternoon, and, finally, dying away a half an hour or so before the long day’s sunset. One of the stanchest patrons was little Ned Higgins, the devourer of Jim Crow and the elephant, who to-day signalized his omnivorous prowess by swallowing two dromedaries and a locomotive. Phœbe laughed, as she summed up her aggregate of sales upon the slate; while Hepzibah, first drawing on a pair of silk gloves, reckoned over the sordid accumulation of copper coin, not without silver intermixed, that had jingled into the till.

It really felt like the worn face of the House of the Seven Gables, dark and heavy-looking as it still was, might have shown a hint of cheerfulness shining through its gloomy windows as Phœbe moved around inside. Otherwise, it’s hard to explain how the locals became aware of the girl’s presence so quickly. There was a steady stream of customers from about ten o’clock until around noon, lightening up a bit at lunch but starting again in the afternoon and finally tapering off about half an hour before sunset. One of the most loyal customers was little Ned Higgins, the fan of Jim Crow and the elephant, who today showed off his impressive appetite by downing two camels and a train. Phœbe chuckled as she totaled up her sales on the slate, while Hepzibah, after putting on a pair of silk gloves, counted the dingy pile of coins, mostly pennies but with some silver mixed in, that had jingled into the cash register.

“We must renew our stock, Cousin Hepzibah!” cried the little saleswoman. “The gingerbread figures are all gone, and so are those Dutch wooden milkmaids, and most of our other playthings. There has been constant inquiry for cheap raisins, and a great cry for whistles, and trumpets, and jew’s-harps; and at least a dozen little boys have asked for molasses-candy. And we must contrive to get a peck of russet apples, late in the season as it is. But, dear cousin, what an enormous heap of copper! Positively a copper mountain!”

“We need to restock, Cousin Hepzibah!” shouted the little saleswoman. “The gingerbread figures are all sold out, and so are the Dutch wooden milkmaids, along with most of our other toys. There’s been a constant demand for cheap raisins, and a lot of requests for whistles, trumpets, and Jew’s harps; at least a dozen little boys have asked for molasses candy. We also need to find a peck of russet apples, even though it's late in the season. But, dear cousin, what a huge pile of copper! It’s like a mountain of coins!”

“Well done! well done! well done!” quoth Uncle Venner, who had taken occasion to shuffle in and out of the shop several times in the course of the day. “Here’s a girl that will never end her days at my farm! Bless my eyes, what a brisk little soul!”

“Well done! well done! well done!” said Uncle Venner, who had popped in and out of the shop several times throughout the day. “Here’s a girl who will never spend her days at my farm! Bless my eyes, what a lively little spirit!”

“Yes, Phœbe is a nice girl!” said Hepzibah, with a scowl of austere approbation. “But, Uncle Venner, you have known the family a great many years. Can you tell me whether there ever was a Pyncheon whom she takes after?”

“Yes, Phoebe is a nice girl!” said Hepzibah, with a scowl of stern approval. “But, Uncle Venner, you’ve known the family for many years. Can you tell me if there was ever a Pyncheon that she resembles?”

“I don’t believe there ever was,” answered the venerable man. “At any rate, it never was my luck to see her like among them, nor, for that matter, anywhere else. I’ve seen a great deal of the world, not only in people’s kitchens and back-yards but at the street-corners, and on the wharves, and in other places where my business calls me; and I’m free to say, Miss Hepzibah, that I never knew a human creature do her work so much like one of God’s angels as this child Phœbe does!”

“I don’t believe there ever was,” the old man replied. “Either way, I’ve never had the luck to see anyone like her among them, or anywhere else for that matter. I’ve traveled a lot, not just through people’s kitchens and backyards but at street corners, on the docks, and other places where my work takes me. And I can honestly say, Miss Hepzibah, that I’ve never seen anyone do their work like this child Phœbe does—she’s like one of God’s angels!”

Uncle Venner’s eulogium, if it appear rather too high-strained for the person and occasion, had, nevertheless, a sense in which it was both subtile and true. There was a spiritual quality in Phœbe’s activity. The life of the long and busy day—spent in occupations that might so easily have taken a squalid and ugly aspect—had been made pleasant, and even lovely, by the spontaneous grace with which these homely duties seemed to bloom out of her character; so that labor, while she dealt with it, had the easy and flexible charm of play. Angels do not toil, but let their good works grow out of them; and so did Phœbe.

Uncle Venner’s praise, while it might seem a bit exaggerated for the person and situation, still carried a sense in which it was both subtle and true. There was a spiritual quality to Phœbe’s actions. The long and busy day—filled with tasks that could easily have seemed dull and unpleasant—was made enjoyable, even beautiful, by the natural grace with which these everyday responsibilities seemed to flow from her character; so that work, while she engaged in it, had the effortless and flexible charm of play. Angels don’t struggle, but allow their good deeds to emerge from within them; and Phœbe was the same way.

The two relatives—the young maid and the old one—found time before nightfall, in the intervals of trade, to make rapid advances towards affection and confidence. A recluse, like Hepzibah, usually displays remarkable frankness, and at least temporary affability, on being absolutely cornered, and brought to the point of personal intercourse; like the angel whom Jacob wrestled with, she is ready to bless you when once overcome.

The two relatives—the young maid and the older one—managed to make quick strides toward affection and trust before night fell, during breaks in their work. A recluse, like Hepzibah, often shows notable openness and a temporary friendliness when forced into a situation that requires personal interaction; like the angel that Jacob wrestled with, she is willing to bless you once she is finally engaged.

The old gentlewoman took a dreary and proud satisfaction in leading Phœbe from room to room of the house, and recounting the traditions with which, as we may say, the walls were lugubriously frescoed. She showed the indentations made by the lieutenant-governor’s sword-hilt in the door-panels of the apartment where old Colonel Pyncheon, a dead host, had received his affrighted visitors with an awful frown. The dusky terror of that frown, Hepzibah observed, was thought to be lingering ever since in the passageway. She bade Phœbe step into one of the tall chairs, and inspect the ancient map of the Pyncheon territory at the eastward. In a tract of land on which she laid her finger, there existed a silver mine, the locality of which was precisely pointed out in some memoranda of Colonel Pyncheon himself, but only to be made known when the family claim should be recognized by government. Thus it was for the interest of all New England that the Pyncheons should have justice done them. She told, too, how that there was undoubtedly an immense treasure of English guineas hidden somewhere about the house, or in the cellar, or possibly in the garden.

The old woman took a gloomy yet proud pleasure in leading Phœbe from room to room of the house, sharing the stories that, we might say, the walls mournfully displayed. She pointed out the marks left by the lieutenant-governor’s sword-hilt on the door panels of the room where old Colonel Pyncheon, a deceased host, had greeted his terrified visitors with a terrifying scowl. Hepzibah noted that the dark fear of that scowl was said to linger in the hallway to this day. She instructed Phœbe to sit in one of the tall chairs and take a look at the ancient map of the Pyncheon territory to the east. On a section of land where she placed her finger, there was a silver mine, the exact location of which was detailed in some notes by Colonel Pyncheon himself, but it would only be revealed when the family’s claim was recognized by the government. Therefore, it was in the best interest of all New England that justice be served for the Pyncheons. She also mentioned that there was certainly a huge stash of English guineas hidden somewhere in the house, or in the cellar, or maybe even in the garden.

“If you should happen to find it, Phœbe,” said Hepzibah, glancing aside at her with a grim yet kindly smile, “we will tie up the shop-bell for good and all!”

“If you happen to find it, Phœbe,” said Hepzibah, glancing at her with a serious yet warm smile, “we will tie up the shop bell for good!”

“Yes, dear cousin,” answered Phœbe; “but, in the mean time, I hear somebody ringing it!”

“Yes, dear cousin,” answered Phoebe; “but in the meantime, I hear someone ringing it!”

When the customer was gone, Hepzibah talked rather vaguely, and at great length, about a certain Alice Pyncheon, who had been exceedingly beautiful and accomplished in her lifetime, a hundred years ago. The fragrance of her rich and delightful character still lingered about the place where she had lived, as a dried rose-bud scents the drawer where it has withered and perished. This lovely Alice had met with some great and mysterious calamity, and had grown thin and white, and gradually faded out of the world. But, even now, she was supposed to haunt the House of the Seven Gables, and, a great many times,—especially when one of the Pyncheons was to die,—she had been heard playing sadly and beautifully on the harpsichord. One of these tunes, just as it had sounded from her spiritual touch, had been written down by an amateur of music; it was so exquisitely mournful that nobody, to this day, could bear to hear it played, unless when a great sorrow had made them know the still profounder sweetness of it.

When the customer left, Hepzibah spoke rather vaguely and at length about a certain Alice Pyncheon, who had been incredibly beautiful and talented in her lifetime, a hundred years ago. The memory of her rich and delightful character still lingered in the place where she had lived, like a dried rosebud scenting the drawer where it had withered away. This lovely Alice had experienced some great and mysterious tragedy, causing her to become thin and pale, and she gradually faded from the world. Even now, she was believed to haunt the House of the Seven Gables, and many times—especially when a Pyncheon was about to die—people had heard her sadly and beautifully playing the harpsichord. One of these tunes, exactly as it had sounded from her ethereal touch, was written down by a music enthusiast; it was so exquisitely mournful that no one could bear to hear it played unless a deep sorrow had made them appreciate its profound sweetness even more.

“Was it the same harpsichord that you showed me?” inquired Phœbe.

“Was it the same harpsichord you showed me?” asked Phoebe.

“The very same,” said Hepzibah. “It was Alice Pyncheon’s harpsichord. When I was learning music, my father would never let me open it. So, as I could only play on my teacher’s instrument, I have forgotten all my music long ago.”

“The very same,” said Hepzibah. “It was Alice Pyncheon’s harpsichord. When I was learning music, my father wouldn’t let me touch it. So, since I could only play on my teacher’s instrument, I forgot all my music a long time ago.”

Leaving these antique themes, the old lady began to talk about the daguerreotypist, whom, as he seemed to be a well-meaning and orderly young man, and in narrow circumstances, she had permitted to take up his residence in one of the seven gables. But, on seeing more of Mr. Holgrave, she hardly knew what to make of him. He had the strangest companions imaginable; men with long beards, and dressed in linen blouses, and other such new-fangled and ill-fitting garments; reformers, temperance lecturers, and all manner of cross-looking philanthropists; community-men, and come-outers, as Hepzibah believed, who acknowledged no law, and ate no solid food, but lived on the scent of other people’s cookery, and turned up their noses at the fare. As for the daguerreotypist, she had read a paragraph in a penny paper, the other day, accusing him of making a speech full of wild and disorganizing matter, at a meeting of his banditti-like associates. For her own part, she had reason to believe that he practised animal magnetism, and, if such things were in fashion nowadays, should be apt to suspect him of studying the Black Art up there in his lonesome chamber.

Leaving these old themes behind, the old lady started to talk about the daguerreotypist, whom she allowed to live in one of the seven gables because he seemed like a well-meaning and tidy young man, despite his limited means. However, after getting to know Mr. Holgrave better, she was unsure what to think of him. He had the most unusual friends; men with long beards, wearing linen shirts and other odd, ill-fitting clothes; reformers, temperance speakers, and all kinds of grumpy philanthropists; community enthusiasts and dropouts, as Hepzibah thought, who didn’t recognize any laws and ate no solid food, living off the aroma of other people's cooking, while turning up their noses at actual meals. As for the daguerreotypist, she had recently read a blurb in a cheap newspaper, accusing him of giving a speech full of wild and disturbing ideas at a meeting with his shady associates. For her part, she had reason to think he practiced animal magnetism and, if such things were trendy these days, she would be inclined to suspect he was studying witchcraft up there in his solitary room.

“But, dear cousin,” said Phœbe, “if the young man is so dangerous, why do you let him stay? If he does nothing worse, he may set the house on fire!”

“But, dear cousin,” said Phoebe, “if the young man is so dangerous, why are you allowing him to stay? If he doesn't do anything worse, he could end up setting the house on fire!”

“Why, sometimes,” answered Hepzibah, “I have seriously made it a question, whether I ought not to send him away. But, with all his oddities, he is a quiet kind of a person, and has such a way of taking hold of one’s mind, that, without exactly liking him (for I don’t know enough of the young man), I should be sorry to lose sight of him entirely. A woman clings to slight acquaintances when she lives so much alone as I do.”

“Sometimes,” Hepzibah replied, “I’ve actually wondered if I should just send him away. But despite his quirks, he’s a pretty quiet person and has a way of grabbing your attention, so even though I don’t really like him (because I don’t know him well enough), I’d be sad to completely lose track of him. A woman tends to hold on to even casual acquaintances when she’s as lonely as I am.”

“But if Mr. Holgrave is a lawless person!” remonstrated Phœbe, a part of whose essence it was to keep within the limits of law.

“But what if Mr. Holgrave is an unlawful person?” protested Phœbe, as it was in her nature to stay within the boundaries of the law.

“Oh!” said Hepzibah carelessly,—for, formal as she was, still, in her life’s experience, she had gnashed her teeth against human law,—“I suppose he has a law of his own!”

“Oh!” said Hepzibah casually—for, as formal as she was, she had still had her moments of frustration with human law in her life—“I guess he has his own rules!”

VI.
Maule’s Well

After an early tea, the little country-girl strayed into the garden. The enclosure had formerly been very extensive, but was now contracted within small compass, and hemmed about, partly by high wooden fences, and partly by the outbuildings of houses that stood on another street. In its centre was a grass-plat, surrounding a ruinous little structure, which showed just enough of its original design to indicate that it had once been a summer-house. A hop-vine, springing from last year’s root, was beginning to clamber over it, but would be long in covering the roof with its green mantle. Three of the seven gables either fronted or looked sideways, with a dark solemnity of aspect, down into the garden.

After an early tea, the little country girl wandered into the garden. The area used to be quite large, but now it was much smaller, bordered by high wooden fences and the outbuildings of houses on another street. In the center was a grassy patch, surrounding a rundown little structure that still showed hints of its original design, indicating it had once been a summer house. A hop vine, sprouting from last year’s roots, was starting to climb over it, but it would take a while before it completely covered the roof with its green leaves. Three of the seven gables either faced directly or looked sideways, casting a serious shadow down into the garden.

The black, rich soil had fed itself with the decay of a long period of time; such as fallen leaves, the petals of flowers, and the stalks and seed-vessels of vagrant and lawless plants, more useful after their death than ever while flaunting in the sun. The evil of these departed years would naturally have sprung up again, in such rank weeds (symbolic of the transmitted vices of society) as are always prone to root themselves about human dwellings. Phœbe saw, however, that their growth must have been checked by a degree of careful labor, bestowed daily and systematically on the garden. The white double rosebush had evidently been propped up anew against the house since the commencement of the season; and a pear-tree and three damson-trees, which, except a row of currant-bushes, constituted the only varieties of fruit, bore marks of the recent amputation of several superfluous or defective limbs. There were also a few species of antique and hereditary flowers, in no very flourishing condition, but scrupulously weeded; as if some person, either out of love or curiosity, had been anxious to bring them to such perfection as they were capable of attaining. The remainder of the garden presented a well-selected assortment of esculent vegetables, in a praiseworthy state of advancement. Summer squashes almost in their golden blossom; cucumbers, now evincing a tendency to spread away from the main stock, and ramble far and wide; two or three rows of string-beans and as many more that were about to festoon themselves on poles; tomatoes, occupying a site so sheltered and sunny that the plants were already gigantic, and promised an early and abundant harvest.

The rich, black soil had nourished itself over a long period with decay—fallen leaves, flower petals, and the stalks and seed pods of wild, untamed plants that were more valuable in death than when they basked in the sun. The negativity from those past years would have naturally regrown in the form of thick weeds (symbolic of society's transmitted vices) that always tend to establish themselves around human homes. However, Phœbe noticed that their growth must have been restrained through careful daily maintenance of the garden. The white double rosebush had clearly been propped up against the house again since the season began, and a pear tree along with three damson trees, which, except for a row of currant bushes, were the only types of fruit, showed signs of recent trimming of several unnecessary or unhealthy branches. There were also a few kinds of old-fashioned flowers, not in great condition but meticulously weeded, as if someone—either out of love or curiosity—had been eager to help them reach their maximum potential. The rest of the garden showcased a well-chosen mix of edible vegetables in a commendable state of growth: summer squashes almost in their golden bloom, cucumbers starting to spread away from the main plant, two or three rows of string beans, and several more about to climb up poles; tomatoes in such a sheltered and sunny spot that the plants had already grown huge and promised an early and plentiful harvest.

Phœbe wondered whose care and toil it could have been that had planted these vegetables, and kept the soil so clean and orderly. Not surely her cousin Hepzibah’s, who had no taste nor spirits for the lady-like employment of cultivating flowers, and—with her recluse habits, and tendency to shelter herself within the dismal shadow of the house—would hardly have come forth under the speck of open sky to weed and hoe among the fraternity of beans and squashes.

Phœbe wondered whose effort and hard work had planted these vegetables and kept the soil so neat and tidy. It definitely wasn’t her cousin Hepzibah's, who had no interest or energy for the feminine task of growing flowers and—with her reclusive habits and tendency to stay sheltered in the gloomy shadow of the house—would hardly step out into the open sky to weed and tend to the patch of beans and squashes.

It being her first day of complete estrangement from rural objects, Phœbe found an unexpected charm in this little nook of grass, and foliage, and aristocratic flowers, and plebeian vegetables. The eye of Heaven seemed to look down into it pleasantly, and with a peculiar smile, as if glad to perceive that nature, elsewhere overwhelmed, and driven out of the dusty town, had here been able to retain a breathing-place. The spot acquired a somewhat wilder grace, and yet a very gentle one, from the fact that a pair of robins had built their nest in the pear-tree, and were making themselves exceedingly busy and happy in the dark intricacy of its boughs. Bees, too,—strange to say,—had thought it worth their while to come hither, possibly from the range of hives beside some farm-house miles away. How many aerial voyages might they have made, in quest of honey, or honey-laden, betwixt dawn and sunset! Yet, late as it now was, there still arose a pleasant hum out of one or two of the squash-blossoms, in the depths of which these bees were plying their golden labor. There was one other object in the garden which Nature might fairly claim as her inalienable property, in spite of whatever man could do to render it his own. This was a fountain, set round with a rim of old mossy stones, and paved, in its bed, with what appeared to be a sort of mosaic-work of variously colored pebbles. The play and slight agitation of the water, in its upward gush, wrought magically with these variegated pebbles, and made a continually shifting apparition of quaint figures, vanishing too suddenly to be definable. Thence, swelling over the rim of moss-grown stones, the water stole away under the fence, through what we regret to call a gutter, rather than a channel. Nor must we forget to mention a hen-coop of very reverend antiquity that stood in the farther corner of the garden, not a great way from the fountain. It now contained only Chanticleer, his two wives, and a solitary chicken. All of them were pure specimens of a breed which had been transmitted down as an heirloom in the Pyncheon family, and were said, while in their prime, to have attained almost the size of turkeys, and, on the score of delicate flesh, to be fit for a prince’s table. In proof of the authenticity of this legendary renown, Hepzibah could have exhibited the shell of a great egg, which an ostrich need hardly have been ashamed of. Be that as it might, the hens were now scarcely larger than pigeons, and had a queer, rusty, withered aspect, and a gouty kind of movement, and a sleepy and melancholy tone throughout all the variations of their clucking and cackling. It was evident that the race had degenerated, like many a noble race besides, in consequence of too strict a watchfulness to keep it pure. These feathered people had existed too long in their distinct variety; a fact of which the present representatives, judging by their lugubrious deportment, seemed to be aware. They kept themselves alive, unquestionably, and laid now and then an egg, and hatched a chicken; not for any pleasure of their own, but that the world might not absolutely lose what had once been so admirable a breed of fowls. The distinguishing mark of the hens was a crest of lamentably scanty growth, in these latter days, but so oddly and wickedly analogous to Hepzibah’s turban, that Phœbe—to the poignant distress of her conscience, but inevitably—was led to fancy a general resemblance betwixt these forlorn bipeds and her respectable relative.

On her first day completely away from the countryside, Phœbe unexpectedly found charm in this little patch of grass, leaves, elegant flowers, and humble vegetables. It felt like the sky was looking down with a pleasant smile, happy to see that nature, overwhelmed and pushed out of the dusty town, had found a place to breathe here. The spot had a wild but gentle beauty, especially because a pair of robins had built their nest in the pear tree, happily busy in the tangled branches. Strangely, some bees had also decided to come here, probably from a beehive miles away at a farmhouse. They must have made countless trips searching for honey between dawn and sunset! Even though it was getting late, a pleasant buzzing came from one or two squash blossoms where these bees were hard at work gathering nectar. There was another feature in the garden that Nature could rightfully claim as her own, no matter what humans did to try to own it. This was a fountain, surrounded by old mossy stones and filled with a mosaic of colorful pebbles. The water’s play and slight movement as it gushed upward danced beautifully with the pebbles, creating ever-changing patterns that vanished too quickly to define. From there, the water flowed over the mossy stones and under the fence, through what we unfortunately refer to as a gutter instead of a channel. We shouldn't forget an ancient hen coop that stood in the far corner of the garden, not far from the fountain. It only held Chanticleer, his two wives, and a lone chick. All were pure examples of a breed that had been handed down in the Pyncheon family, said to be almost the size of turkeys in their prime and fit for a prince’s table due to their exquisite meat. To prove this legendary claim, Hepzibah could have shown a gigantic egg shell that even an ostrich would not have been ashamed of. However, the hens now were hardly larger than pigeons, with an odd, rusty, frail appearance, a clumsy way of moving, and a dreary tone throughout their clucking and cackling. It was clear that their breed had declined, like many noble breeds, from being overly protected to keep it pure. These chickens had existed too long in their distinct variety; judging by their mournful behavior, the current generation seemed aware of this. They survived, laid the occasional egg, and hatched a chick, not for their own joy, but to ensure the world didn’t entirely lose what had once been such an admirable breed. The hens were marked by a sadly sparse crest that, in these days, closely resembled Hepzibah’s turban, leading Phœbe—much to her guilty distress—to imagine a general resemblance between these forlorn creatures and her respectable relative.

The girl ran into the house to get some crumbs of bread, cold potatoes, and other such scraps as were suitable to the accommodating appetite of fowls. Returning, she gave a peculiar call, which they seemed to recognize. The chicken crept through the pales of the coop and ran, with some show of liveliness, to her feet; while Chanticleer and the ladies of his household regarded her with queer, sidelong glances, and then croaked one to another, as if communicating their sage opinions of her character. So wise, as well as antique, was their aspect, as to give color to the idea, not merely that they were the descendants of a time-honored race, but that they had existed, in their individual capacity, ever since the House of the Seven Gables was founded, and were somehow mixed up with its destiny. They were a species of tutelary sprite, or Banshee; although winged and feathered differently from most other guardian angels.

The girl dashed into the house to grab some crumbs of bread, cold potatoes, and other scraps that were good enough for the hungry birds. When she came back, she made a distinct call that they seemed to recognize. The chicken squeezed through the slats of the coop and hurried, looking a bit lively, to her feet; while Chanticleer and the other hens watched her with strange, sideways glances, then murmured to each other as if sharing their wise opinions about her. Their wise and old-fashioned appearance suggested not just that they were the descendants of an ancient lineage, but that they had been around as individuals ever since the House of the Seven Gables was established, and were somehow intertwined with its fate. They were like a kind of guardian spirit or Banshee, though they were winged and feathered in a way different from most other guardian angels.

“Here, you odd little chicken!” said Phœbe; “here are some nice crumbs for you!”

“Hey there, you quirky little chicken!” said Phœbe; “I've got some tasty crumbs for you!”

The chicken, hereupon, though almost as venerable in appearance as its mother—possessing, indeed, the whole antiquity of its progenitors in miniature,—mustered vivacity enough to flutter upward and alight on Phœbe’s shoulder.

The chicken, now almost as old-looking as its mother—carrying the entire history of its ancestors in a smaller form—managed to gather enough energy to flutter up and land on Phœbe’s shoulder.

“That little fowl pays you a high compliment!” said a voice behind Phœbe.

“That little bird is giving you a big compliment!” said a voice behind Phœbe.

Turning quickly, she was surprised at sight of a young man, who had found access into the garden by a door opening out of another gable than that whence she had emerged. He held a hoe in his hand, and, while Phœbe was gone in quest of the crumbs, had begun to busy himself with drawing up fresh earth about the roots of the tomatoes.

Turning quickly, she was surprised to see a young man who had entered the garden through a door from a different side than the one she had come out of. He was holding a hoe, and while Phœbe was off looking for crumbs, he had started working on piling fresh soil around the roots of the tomatoes.

“The chicken really treats you like an old acquaintance,” continued he in a quiet way, while a smile made his face pleasanter than Phœbe at first fancied it. “Those venerable personages in the coop, too, seem very affably disposed. You are lucky to be in their good graces so soon! They have known me much longer, but never honor me with any familiarity, though hardly a day passes without my bringing them food. Miss Hepzibah, I suppose, will interweave the fact with her other traditions, and set it down that the fowls know you to be a Pyncheon!”

“The chicken really treats you like an old friend,” he continued quietly, a smile on his face making him more pleasant than Phoebe initially thought. “Those old birds in the coop also seem pretty friendly. You’re lucky to have won them over so quickly! They’ve known me a lot longer, but they never act friendly toward me, even though I bring them food almost every day. I guess Miss Hepzibah will blend this with her other stories and note that the hens recognize you as a Pyncheon!”

“The secret is,” said Phœbe, smiling, “that I have learned how to talk with hens and chickens.”

“The secret is,” said Phœbe, smiling, “that I’ve learned how to talk to hens and chicks.”

“Ah, but these hens,” answered the young man,—“these hens of aristocratic lineage would scorn to understand the vulgar language of a barn-yard fowl. I prefer to think—and so would Miss Hepzibah—that they recognize the family tone. For you are a Pyncheon?”

“Ah, but these hens,” replied the young man, “these aristocratic hens would reject the common language of a barnyard bird. I like to believe—and so would Miss Hepzibah—that they can sense the family vibe. Because you are a Pyncheon?”

“My name is Phœbe Pyncheon,” said the girl, with a manner of some reserve; for she was aware that her new acquaintance could be no other than the daguerreotypist, of whose lawless propensities the old maid had given her a disagreeable idea. “I did not know that my cousin Hepzibah’s garden was under another person’s care.”

“My name is Phoebe Pyncheon,” the girl said, holding back a bit; she knew that her new acquaintance could only be the daguerreotypist, of whom the old maid had given her an unpleasant impression. “I didn’t realize that my cousin Hepzibah’s garden was being taken care of by someone else.”

“Yes,” said Holgrave, “I dig, and hoe, and weed, in this black old earth, for the sake of refreshing myself with what little nature and simplicity may be left in it, after men have so long sown and reaped here. I turn up the earth by way of pastime. My sober occupation, so far as I have any, is with a lighter material. In short, I make pictures out of sunshine; and, not to be too much dazzled with my own trade, I have prevailed with Miss Hepzibah to let me lodge in one of these dusky gables. It is like a bandage over one’s eyes, to come into it. But would you like to see a specimen of my productions?”

“Yes,” said Holgrave, “I dig, hoe, and weed in this dark old soil to refresh myself with whatever little nature and simplicity is left here after people have been sowing and reaping for so long. I turn up the earth as a pastime. My serious work, as far as I have any, involves lighter materials. In short, I create pictures out of sunshine; and, not wanting to be too dazzled by my own craft, I convinced Miss Hepzibah to let me stay in one of these dim gables. It's like putting a blindfold over your eyes when you step inside. But would you like to see a sample of my work?”

“A daguerreotype likeness, do you mean?” asked Phœbe with less reserve; for, in spite of prejudice, her own youthfulness sprang forward to meet his. “I don’t much like pictures of that sort,—they are so hard and stern; besides dodging away from the eye, and trying to escape altogether. They are conscious of looking very unamiable, I suppose, and therefore hate to be seen.”

“A daguerreotype picture, you mean?” Phoebe asked, feeling more open; despite her biases, her youthful spirit was eager to connect with him. “I’m not a big fan of pictures like that—they come off as so harsh and rigid; they seem to shy away from the eye and want to hide completely. I guess they realize they look pretty unfriendly and don’t want to be seen.”

“If you would permit me,” said the artist, looking at Phœbe, “I should like to try whether the daguerreotype can bring out disagreeable traits on a perfectly amiable face. But there certainly is truth in what you have said. Most of my likenesses do look unamiable; but the very sufficient reason, I fancy, is, because the originals are so. There is a wonderful insight in Heaven’s broad and simple sunshine. While we give it credit only for depicting the merest surface, it actually brings out the secret character with a truth that no painter would ever venture upon, even could he detect it. There is, at least, no flattery in my humble line of art. Now, here is a likeness which I have taken over and over again, and still with no better result. Yet the original wears, to common eyes, a very different expression. It would gratify me to have your judgment on this character.”

“If you don’t mind,” said the artist, looking at Phoebe, “I’d like to see if the daguerreotype can reveal unpleasant traits on a perfectly friendly face. But you’re definitely right about what you said. Most of my portraits do look unfriendly, but I think the main reason is that the originals are that way. There’s amazing clarity in the broad and simple sunlight from above. While we typically acknowledge it only for showing the surface, it actually reveals the hidden character with a truth that no painter would ever dare to portray, even if he could see it. At least, there’s no flattery in my modest art. Now, here’s a portrait I’ve tried to capture over and over again, and still haven’t improved the outcome. Yet the original appears, to most people, to have a very different expression. I would appreciate your opinion on this character.”

He exhibited a daguerreotype miniature in a morocco case. Phœbe merely glanced at it, and gave it back.

He showed a daguerreotype picture in a fancy leather case. Phœbe just took a quick look at it and handed it back.

“I know the face,” she replied; “for its stern eye has been following me about all day. It is my Puritan ancestor, who hangs yonder in the parlor. To be sure, you have found some way of copying the portrait without its black velvet cap and gray beard, and have given him a modern coat and satin cravat, instead of his cloak and band. I don’t think him improved by your alterations.”

“I know that face,” she replied; “because its serious gaze has been following me around all day. It’s my Puritan ancestor, who is hanging over there in the parlor. You must have figured out how to copy the portrait without its black velvet cap and gray beard, giving him a modern coat and satin cravat instead of his cloak and collar. I don’t think he looks better with your changes.”

“You would have seen other differences had you looked a little longer,” said Holgrave, laughing, yet apparently much struck. “I can assure you that this is a modern face, and one which you will very probably meet. Now, the remarkable point is, that the original wears, to the world’s eye,—and, for aught I know, to his most intimate friends,—an exceedingly pleasant countenance, indicative of benevolence, openness of heart, sunny good-humor, and other praiseworthy qualities of that cast. The sun, as you see, tells quite another story, and will not be coaxed out of it, after half a dozen patient attempts on my part. Here we have the man, sly, subtle, hard, imperious, and, withal, cold as ice. Look at that eye! Would you like to be at its mercy? At that mouth! Could it ever smile? And yet, if you could only see the benign smile of the original! It is so much the more unfortunate, as he is a public character of some eminence, and the likeness was intended to be engraved.”

“You would have noticed more differences if you had looked a bit longer,” Holgrave said, laughing but clearly impressed. “I can tell you that this is a modern face, one you’re likely to come across. Now, the interesting part is that the original presents, to the world's view—and, for all I know, to his closest friends—a very pleasant appearance, showing kindness, openness, cheerful disposition, and other admirable traits of that kind. The sunlight, as you can see, reveals a completely different story and won't be persuaded otherwise, even after several patient tries on my part. Here we see the man, sly, subtle, tough, dominating, and, with all that, as cold as ice. Look at that eye! Would you want to be at its mercy? At that mouth! Could it ever smile? And yet, if you could only witness the kind smile of the original! It’s particularly unfortunate since he is a prominent public figure, and the likeness was meant to be engraved.”

“Well, I don’t wish to see it any more,” observed Phœbe, turning away her eyes. “It is certainly very like the old portrait. But my cousin Hepzibah has another picture,—a miniature. If the original is still in the world, I think he might defy the sun to make him look stern and hard.”

“Well, I don’t want to see it anymore,” said Phœbe, turning her eyes away. “It definitely looks a lot like the old portrait. But my cousin Hepzibah has another picture—a miniature. If the original is still around, I think he could challenge the sun to make him look stern and hard.”

“You have seen that picture, then!” exclaimed the artist, with an expression of much interest. “I never did, but have a great curiosity to do so. And you judge favorably of the face?”

“You’ve seen that painting, then!” the artist exclaimed, looking very interested. “I’ve never seen it, but I’m really curious to. And you think the face looks good?”

“There never was a sweeter one,” said Phœbe. “It is almost too soft and gentle for a man’s.”

“There never was a sweeter one,” said Phoebe. “It’s almost too soft and gentle for a man.”

“Is there nothing wild in the eye?” continued Holgrave, so earnestly that it embarrassed Phœbe, as did also the quiet freedom with which he presumed on their so recent acquaintance. “Is there nothing dark or sinister anywhere? Could you not conceive the original to have been guilty of a great crime?”

“Is there nothing wild in the eye?” Holgrave continued, so earnestly that it made Phœbe uncomfortable, as did the casual way he relied on their recent acquaintance. “Is there nothing dark or sinister at all? Can you not imagine that the original might have committed a terrible crime?”

“It is nonsense,” said Phœbe a little impatiently, “for us to talk about a picture which you have never seen. You mistake it for some other. A crime, indeed! Since you are a friend of my cousin Hepzibah’s, you should ask her to show you the picture.”

“It’s ridiculous,” Phœbe said a bit impatiently, “for us to discuss a picture you’ve never seen. You’re confusing it with something else. A crime, really! Since you’re a friend of my cousin Hepzibah, you should ask her to show you the picture.”

“It will suit my purpose still better to see the original,” replied the daguerreotypist coolly. “As to his character, we need not discuss its points; they have already been settled by a competent tribunal, or one which called itself competent. But, stay! Do not go yet, if you please! I have a proposition to make you.”

“It would work even better for me to see the original,” the photographer said calmly. “As for his character, we don’t need to go over the details; they’ve already been decided by a qualified court, or one that claimed to be. But wait! Please don’t leave yet! I have a suggestion for you.”

Phœbe was on the point of retreating, but turned back, with some hesitation; for she did not exactly comprehend his manner, although, on better observation, its feature seemed rather to be lack of ceremony than any approach to offensive rudeness. There was an odd kind of authority, too, in what he now proceeded to say, rather as if the garden were his own than a place to which he was admitted merely by Hepzibah’s courtesy.

Phœbe was about to back away, but hesitated and turned around; she didn’t quite understand his behavior, though upon closer look, it appeared to lack formality rather than being outright rude. There was also a strange kind of authority in what he said next, as if the garden belonged to him rather than being a place he was allowed into just because of Hepzibah’s kindness.

“If agreeable to you,” he observed, “it would give me pleasure to turn over these flowers, and those ancient and respectable fowls, to your care. Coming fresh from country air and occupations, you will soon feel the need of some such out-of-door employment. My own sphere does not so much lie among flowers. You can trim and tend them, therefore, as you please; and I will ask only the least trifle of a blossom, now and then, in exchange for all the good, honest kitchen vegetables with which I propose to enrich Miss Hepzibah’s table. So we will be fellow-laborers, somewhat on the community system.”

“If it’s okay with you,” he said, “I’d be happy to hand over these flowers and those old, respected chickens to your care. Since you’re coming fresh from the country and its activities, you’ll soon want some outdoor work. I don’t really spend much time with flowers, so you can prune and take care of them however you like; I’ll just ask for a small blossom now and then in exchange for the good, fresh kitchen vegetables I plan to bring to Miss Hepzibah’s table. So, we’ll be working together, sort of like a community.”

Silently, and rather surprised at her own compliance, Phœbe accordingly betook herself to weeding a flower-bed, but busied herself still more with cogitations respecting this young man, with whom she so unexpectedly found herself on terms approaching to familiarity. She did not altogether like him. His character perplexed the little country-girl, as it might a more practised observer; for, while the tone of his conversation had generally been playful, the impression left on her mind was that of gravity, and, except as his youth modified it, almost sternness. She rebelled, as it were, against a certain magnetic element in the artist’s nature, which he exercised towards her, possibly without being conscious of it.

Silently, and somewhat surprised at her own willingness, Phœbe set to work on weeding a flower bed, but she also spent even more time thinking about this young man with whom she had unexpectedly become somewhat familiar. She didn’t entirely like him. His character puzzled the little country girl, just as it might confuse a more seasoned observer; for, while his conversation was usually playful, the impression he left on her was serious and, aside from his youth softening it, almost stern. She resisted, in a way, a certain magnetic quality in the artist’s nature that he directed toward her, perhaps without even realizing it.

After a little while, the twilight, deepened by the shadows of the fruit-trees and the surrounding buildings, threw an obscurity over the garden.

After a while, the twilight, deepened by the shadows of the fruit trees and the nearby buildings, cast a gloom over the garden.

“There,” said Holgrave, “it is time to give over work! That last stroke of the hoe has cut off a beanstalk. Good-night, Miss Phœbe Pyncheon! Any bright day, if you will put one of those rosebuds in your hair, and come to my rooms in Central Street, I will seize the purest ray of sunshine, and make a picture of the flower and its wearer.” He retired towards his own solitary gable, but turned his head, on reaching the door, and called to Phœbe, with a tone which certainly had laughter in it, yet which seemed to be more than half in earnest.

“There,” Holgrave said, “it’s time to stop working! That last stroke of the hoe just broke a beanstalk. Good night, Miss Phœbe Pyncheon! Any bright day, if you want to put one of those rosebuds in your hair and come to my place on Central Street, I’ll capture the purest ray of sunshine and create a picture of you and the flower.” He walked back to his own solitary gable but turned his head as he reached the door and called to Phœbe, his tone definitely mixed with laughter but also sounding more than half serious.

“Be careful not to drink at Maule’s well!” said he. “Neither drink nor bathe your face in it!”

“Be careful not to drink from Maule’s well!” he said. “Don’t even wash your face in it!”

“Maule’s well!” answered Phœbe. “Is that it with the rim of mossy stones? I have no thought of drinking there,—but why not?”

“Maule’s well!” replied Phœbe. “Is that the one with the mossy stone edge? I don't plan on drinking from it—but why not?”

“Oh,” rejoined the daguerreotypist, “because, like an old lady’s cup of tea, it is water bewitched!”

“Oh,” replied the daguerreotypist, “because, like an old lady’s cup of tea, it’s water enchanted!”

He vanished; and Phœbe, lingering a moment, saw a glimmering light, and then the steady beam of a lamp, in a chamber of the gable. On returning into Hepzibah’s apartment of the house, she found the low-studded parlor so dim and dusky that her eyes could not penetrate the interior. She was indistinctly aware, however, that the gaunt figure of the old gentlewoman was sitting in one of the straight-backed chairs, a little withdrawn from the window, the faint gleam of which showed the blanched paleness of her cheek, turned sideways towards a corner.

He disappeared, and Phœbe, lingering for a moment, noticed a flickering light and then the steady glow of a lamp in a room in the gable. When she returned to Hepzibah's room in the house, she found the low-ceilinged parlor so dim and dark that her eyes couldn't make out anything inside. She was vaguely aware, though, that the thin figure of the old woman was sitting in one of the straight-backed chairs, slightly pulled away from the window, the faint light revealing the pale whiteness of her cheek, which was turned toward a corner.

“Shall I light a lamp, Cousin Hepzibah?” she asked.

“Should I light a lamp, Cousin Hepzibah?” she asked.

“Do, if you please, my dear child,” answered Hepzibah. “But put it on the table in the corner of the passage. My eyes are weak; and I can seldom bear the lamplight on them.”

“Go ahead, my dear child,” replied Hepzibah. “But please put it on the table in the corner of the hallway. My eyes are weak; I can hardly stand the bright light.”

What an instrument is the human voice! How wonderfully responsive to every emotion of the human soul! In Hepzibah’s tone, at that moment, there was a certain rich depth and moisture, as if the words, commonplace as they were, had been steeped in the warmth of her heart. Again, while lighting the lamp in the kitchen, Phœbe fancied that her cousin spoke to her.

What an instrument the human voice is! It's so wonderfully in tune with every emotion of the human soul! In Hepzibah’s tone at that moment, there was a certain rich depth and warmth, making the words, though ordinary, feel infused with the warmth of her heart. Again, while she was lighting the lamp in the kitchen, Phœbe thought she heard her cousin speaking to her.

“In a moment, cousin!” answered the girl. “These matches just glimmer, and go out.”

“In a second, cousin!” the girl replied. “These matches just flicker and then go out.”

But, instead of a response from Hepzibah, she seemed to hear the murmur of an unknown voice. It was strangely indistinct, however, and less like articulate words than an unshaped sound, such as would be the utterance of feeling and sympathy, rather than of the intellect. So vague was it, that its impression or echo in Phœbe’s mind was that of unreality. She concluded that she must have mistaken some other sound for that of the human voice; or else that it was altogether in her fancy.

But instead of hearing a reply from Hepzibah, she felt she could hear the faint sound of an unknown voice. It was oddly unclear, more like a vague noise expressing emotion and empathy rather than clear words produced by thought. It was so indistinct that it left Phœbe with a sense of unreality. She decided that she must have confused some other sound with the human voice, or that it was just a figment of her imagination.

She set the lighted lamp in the passage, and again entered the parlor. Hepzibah’s form, though its sable outline mingled with the dusk, was now less imperfectly visible. In the remoter parts of the room, however, its walls being so ill adapted to reflect light, there was nearly the same obscurity as before.

She placed the lit lamp in the hallway and went back into the living room. Hepzibah's shape, although its dark outline blended with the dim light, was now somewhat clearer. In the farther corners of the room, though, the walls were still so poorly suited to reflect light that it remained almost as dark as before.

“Cousin,” said Phœbe, “did you speak to me just now?”

“Cousin,” said Phoebe, “did you just talk to me?”

“No, child!” replied Hepzibah.

“No, kid!” replied Hepzibah.

Fewer words than before, but with the same mysterious music in them! Mellow, melancholy, yet not mournful, the tone seemed to gush up out of the deep well of Hepzibah’s heart, all steeped in its profoundest emotion. There was a tremor in it, too, that—as all strong feeling is electric—partly communicated itself to Phœbe. The girl sat silently for a moment. But soon, her senses being very acute, she became conscious of an irregular respiration in an obscure corner of the room. Her physical organization, moreover, being at once delicate and healthy, gave her a perception, operating with almost the effect of a spiritual medium, that somebody was near at hand.

Fewer words than before, but still carrying the same mysterious vibe! Deep, reflective, but not sad, the tone seemed to flow from the depths of Hepzibah’s heart, filled with its deepest emotions. There was also a slight tremor in it that—like all strong feelings—had an electric quality that partly resonated with Phœbe. The girl sat quietly for a moment. But soon, with her keen senses, she noticed a faint, irregular breathing in a shadowy corner of the room. Additionally, her careful yet robust physique gave her an intuition, almost like a spiritual connection, that someone was close by.

“My dear cousin,” asked she, overcoming an indefinable reluctance, “is there not some one in the room with us?”

“My dear cousin,” she asked, pushing past an unexplainable hesitation, “isn’t there someone else in the room with us?”

“Phœbe, my dear little girl,” said Hepzibah, after a moment’s pause, “you were up betimes, and have been busy all day. Pray go to bed; for I am sure you must need rest. I will sit in the parlor awhile, and collect my thoughts. It has been my custom for more years, child, than you have lived!” While thus dismissing her, the maiden lady stept forward, kissed Phœbe, and pressed her to her heart, which beat against the girl’s bosom with a strong, high, and tumultuous swell. How came there to be so much love in this desolate old heart, that it could afford to well over thus abundantly?

“Phoebe, my dear little girl,” said Hepzibah after a brief pause, “you've been up early and busy all day. Please go to bed; I'm sure you need some rest. I'll sit in the parlor for a while and gather my thoughts. I've been doing this for many more years than you've been alive!” As she sent her off, the old lady stepped forward, kissed Phoebe, and held her close to her heart, which was beating strongly against the girl’s chest with a powerful, high, and tumultuous rhythm. How could there be so much love in this lonely old heart that it overflowed so abundantly?

“Goodnight, cousin,” said Phœbe, strangely affected by Hepzibah’s manner. “If you begin to love me, I am glad!”

“Goodnight, cousin,” said Phœbe, feeling oddly touched by Hepzibah’s behavior. “If you’re starting to love me, I’m happy!”

She retired to her chamber, but did not soon fall asleep, nor then very profoundly. At some uncertain period in the depths of night, and, as it were, through the thin veil of a dream, she was conscious of a footstep mounting the stairs heavily, but not with force and decision. The voice of Hepzibah, with a hush through it, was going up along with the footsteps; and, again, responsive to her cousin’s voice, Phœbe heard that strange, vague murmur, which might be likened to an indistinct shadow of human utterance.

She went to her room, but she didn’t fall asleep quickly, and when she did, it wasn’t very deep. At some unclear point in the middle of the night, and almost like through a thin layer of a dream, she sensed a heavy footstep climbing the stairs—not with force or confidence. Hepzibah’s voice, hushed, accompanied the footsteps; and again, in response to her cousin's voice, Phœbe heard that strange, vague murmur, which resembled a faint echo of human speech.

VII.
The Guest

When Phœbe awoke,—which she did with the early twittering of the conjugal couple of robins in the pear-tree,—she heard movements below stairs, and, hastening down, found Hepzibah already in the kitchen. She stood by a window, holding a book in close contiguity to her nose, as if with the hope of gaining an olfactory acquaintance with its contents, since her imperfect vision made it not very easy to read them. If any volume could have manifested its essential wisdom in the mode suggested, it would certainly have been the one now in Hepzibah’s hand; and the kitchen, in such an event, would forthwith have streamed with the fragrance of venison, turkeys, capons, larded partridges, puddings, cakes, and Christmas pies, in all manner of elaborate mixture and concoction. It was a cookery book, full of innumerable old fashions of English dishes, and illustrated with engravings, which represented the arrangements of the table at such banquets as it might have befitted a nobleman to give in the great hall of his castle. And, amid these rich and potent devices of the culinary art (not one of which, probably, had been tested, within the memory of any man’s grandfather), poor Hepzibah was seeking for some nimble little titbit, which, with what skill she had, and such materials as were at hand, she might toss up for breakfast.

When Phoebe woke up—prompted by the early chirping of the married robins in the pear tree—she heard noises downstairs and quickly went down to find Hepzibah already in the kitchen. Hepzibah was standing by a window, holding a book close to her nose, as if trying to get a whiff of its contents since her poor eyesight made it hard to read. If any book could reveal its wisdom in the way suggested, it would definitely have been the one in Hepzibah’s hands; and in that case, the kitchen would have been filled with the smell of venison, turkeys, capons, stuffed partridges, puddings, cakes, and Christmas pies, all in a complex mix. It was a cookbook packed with countless traditional English recipes, illustrated with engravings showing table setups for banquets fit for a nobleman in the grand hall of his castle. And among these rich and elaborate culinary creations (not one of which had probably been tried in the memory of anyone’s grandfather), poor Hepzibah was looking for a quick little dish that, with her limited skills and whatever ingredients she had on hand, she could whip up for breakfast.

Soon, with a deep sigh, she put aside the savory volume, and inquired of Phœbe whether old Speckle, as she called one of the hens, had laid an egg the preceding day. Phœbe ran to see, but returned without the expected treasure in her hand. At that instant, however, the blast of a fish-dealer’s conch was heard, announcing his approach along the street. With energetic raps at the shop-window, Hepzibah summoned the man in, and made purchase of what he warranted as the finest mackerel in his cart, and as fat a one as ever he felt with his finger so early in the season. Requesting Phœbe to roast some coffee,—which she casually observed was the real Mocha, and so long kept that each of the small berries ought to be worth its weight in gold,—the maiden lady heaped fuel into the vast receptacle of the ancient fireplace in such quantity as soon to drive the lingering dusk out of the kitchen. The country-girl, willing to give her utmost assistance, proposed to make an Indian cake, after her mother’s peculiar method, of easy manufacture, and which she could vouch for as possessing a richness, and, if rightly prepared, a delicacy, unequalled by any other mode of breakfast-cake. Hepzibah gladly assenting, the kitchen was soon the scene of savory preparation. Perchance, amid their proper element of smoke, which eddied forth from the ill-constructed chimney, the ghosts of departed cook-maids looked wonderingly on, or peeped down the great breadth of the flue, despising the simplicity of the projected meal, yet ineffectually pining to thrust their shadowy hands into each inchoate dish. The half-starved rats, at any rate, stole visibly out of their hiding-places, and sat on their hind-legs, snuffing the fumy atmosphere, and wistfully awaiting an opportunity to nibble.

Soon, with a deep sigh, she set aside the savory book and asked Phœbe if old Speckle, as she called one of the hens, had laid an egg the day before. Phœbe ran to check but came back without the expected treasure in her hand. At that moment, however, the sound of a fishmonger’s conch was heard, announcing his arrival along the street. With firm knocks on the shop window, Hepzibah called the man in and bought what he claimed was the finest mackerel in his cart, the fattest one he’d felt so early in the season. Asking Phœbe to roast some coffee— which she casually noted was the real Mocha, and so old that each of the small beans should be worth its weight in gold—the maiden lady piled wood into the huge fireplace, driving the fading light out of the kitchen. The country girl, eager to help, suggested making an Indian cake, using her mother’s special, simple method, which she promised would have a richness and, if done right, a delicacy unmatched by any other breakfast cake. Hepzibah happily agreed, and soon the kitchen was filled with delicious preparations. Perhaps, amidst the smoke swirling from the poorly constructed chimney, the ghosts of former cooks looked on in wonder or peeked down the wide flue, looking down on the simplicity of the meal they were preparing, yet longing to stir their ethereal hands into each incomplete dish. The half-starved rats, at least, crept out of their hiding spots and sat on their hind legs, sniffing the smoky air and eagerly waiting for a chance to nibble.

Hepzibah had no natural turn for cookery, and, to say the truth, had fairly incurred her present meagreness by often choosing to go without her dinner rather than be attendant on the rotation of the spit, or ebullition of the pot. Her zeal over the fire, therefore, was quite an heroic test of sentiment. It was touching, and positively worthy of tears (if Phœbe, the only spectator, except the rats and ghosts aforesaid, had not been better employed than in shedding them), to see her rake out a bed of fresh and glowing coals, and proceed to broil the mackerel. Her usually pale cheeks were all ablaze with heat and hurry. She watched the fish with as much tender care and minuteness of attention as if,—we know not how to express it otherwise,—as if her own heart were on the gridiron, and her immortal happiness were involved in its being done precisely to a turn!

Hepzibah had no natural talent for cooking, and honestly, she had brought her current thinness on herself by often choosing to skip dinner rather than deal with tending to the rotisserie or the boiling pot. Her commitment to the fire was therefore quite a brave display of feeling. It was touching and truly worthy of tears (if Phœbe, the only other spectator besides the rats and ghosts mentioned, hadn’t been too busy to shed any), to watch her rake out a bed of fresh, glowing coals and start broiling the mackerel. Her usually pale cheeks were flushed with heat and urgency. She watched the fish with as much care and detailed attention as if—there's no better way to say it—as if her own heart were on the grill and her happiness depended on it being cooked just right!

Life, within doors, has few pleasanter prospects than a neatly arranged and well-provisioned breakfast-table. We come to it freshly, in the dewy youth of the day, and when our spiritual and sensual elements are in better accord than at a later period; so that the material delights of the morning meal are capable of being fully enjoyed, without any very grievous reproaches, whether gastric or conscientious, for yielding even a trifle overmuch to the animal department of our nature. The thoughts, too, that run around the ring of familiar guests have a piquancy and mirthfulness, and oftentimes a vivid truth, which more rarely find their way into the elaborate intercourse of dinner. Hepzibah’s small and ancient table, supported on its slender and graceful legs, and covered with a cloth of the richest damask, looked worthy to be the scene and centre of one of the cheerfullest of parties. The vapor of the broiled fish arose like incense from the shrine of a barbarian idol, while the fragrance of the Mocha might have gratified the nostrils of a tutelary Lar, or whatever power has scope over a modern breakfast-table. Phœbe’s Indian cakes were the sweetest offering of all,—in their hue befitting the rustic altars of the innocent and golden age,—or, so brightly yellow were they, resembling some of the bread which was changed to glistening gold when Midas tried to eat it. The butter must not be forgotten,—butter which Phœbe herself had churned, in her own rural home, and brought it to her cousin as a propitiatory gift,—smelling of clover-blossoms, and diffusing the charm of pastoral scenery through the dark-panelled parlor. All this, with the quaint gorgeousness of the old china cups and saucers, and the crested spoons, and a silver cream-jug (Hepzibah’s only other article of plate, and shaped like the rudest porringer), set out a board at which the stateliest of old Colonel Pyncheon’s guests need not have scorned to take his place. But the Puritan’s face scowled down out of the picture, as if nothing on the table pleased his appetite.

Life indoors offers few things nicer than a well-set and well-stocked breakfast table. We approach it fresh, in the early hours of the day, when our spiritual and physical sides are more in sync than later on; this allows us to fully enjoy the material pleasures of breakfast without feeling too guilty, whether it’s about indulging our stomachs or our conscience just a bit too much. The conversations among familiar company are lively and fun, often filled with a sharp truth that’s less common during the more formal discussions at dinner. Hepzibah’s small, old table, with its slender and elegant legs, covered in the richest damask, seemed perfect to host one of the jolliest gatherings. The steam from the grilled fish rose like incense from a primitive idol, while the aroma of Mocha could have pleased the senses of a protective spirit—or whatever force oversees a modern breakfast table. Phœbe’s Indian cakes were the sweetest offering—colored like the rustic altars of an innocent golden age—or so brilliantly yellow they reminded one of the bread that turned into shiny gold when Midas tried to eat it. And let’s not forget the butter—freshly churned by Phœbe herself in her rural home, brought as a token of goodwill to her cousin—smelling of clover blossoms and spreading the charm of countryside scenery through the dark-paneled parlor. All of this, combined with the quirky elegance of the old china cups and saucers, decorated spoons, and a silver cream jug (Hepzibah’s only other piece of silverware, shaped like a simple bowl), set a table that even the most distinguished guests of old Colonel Pyncheon wouldn’t have hesitated to sit at. But the Puritan’s face loomed from the picture, as if nothing on the table appealed to his appetite.

By way of contributing what grace she could, Phœbe gathered some roses and a few other flowers, possessing either scent or beauty, and arranged them in a glass pitcher, which, having long ago lost its handle, was so much the fitter for a flower-vase. The early sunshine—as fresh as that which peeped into Eve’s bower while she and Adam sat at breakfast there—came twinkling through the branches of the pear-tree, and fell quite across the table. All was now ready. There were chairs and plates for three. A chair and plate for Hepzibah,—the same for Phœbe,—but what other guest did her cousin look for?

In an effort to add whatever charm she could, Phœbe picked some roses and a few other flowers that had either fragrance or beauty, and arranged them in a glass pitcher that had lost its handle long ago, making it perfect for a flower vase. The early morning sun—just as bright as the light that filtered into Eve’s garden while she and Adam had breakfast—shimmered through the branches of the pear tree and spread across the table. Everything was now set. There were chairs and plates for three. One chair and plate for Hepzibah, another for Phœbe—but who was her cousin expecting as the third guest?

Throughout this preparation there had been a constant tremor in Hepzibah’s frame; an agitation so powerful that Phœbe could see the quivering of her gaunt shadow, as thrown by the firelight on the kitchen wall, or by the sunshine on the parlor floor. Its manifestations were so various, and agreed so little with one another, that the girl knew not what to make of it. Sometimes it seemed an ecstasy of delight and happiness. At such moments, Hepzibah would fling out her arms, and infold Phœbe in them, and kiss her cheek as tenderly as ever her mother had; she appeared to do so by an inevitable impulse, and as if her bosom were oppressed with tenderness, of which she must needs pour out a little, in order to gain breathing-room. The next moment, without any visible cause for the change, her unwonted joy shrank back, appalled, as it were, and clothed itself in mourning; or it ran and hid itself, so to speak, in the dungeon of her heart, where it had long lain chained, while a cold, spectral sorrow took the place of the imprisoned joy, that was afraid to be enfranchised,—a sorrow as black as that was bright. She often broke into a little, nervous, hysteric laugh, more touching than any tears could be; and forthwith, as if to try which was the most touching, a gush of tears would follow; or perhaps the laughter and tears came both at once, and surrounded our poor Hepzibah, in a moral sense, with a kind of pale, dim rainbow. Towards Phœbe, as we have said, she was affectionate,—far tenderer than ever before, in their brief acquaintance, except for that one kiss on the preceding night,—yet with a continually recurring pettishness and irritability. She would speak sharply to her; then, throwing aside all the starched reserve of her ordinary manner, ask pardon, and the next instant renew the just-forgiven injury.

Throughout this preparation, Hepzibah constantly trembled; her agitation was so intense that Phœbe could see her thin shadow quivering, cast by the firelight on the kitchen wall, or by the sunlight on the parlor floor. Its expressions were so varied and contradictory that the girl didn’t know what to make of it. Sometimes, it seemed like an overwhelming joy and happiness. In those moments, Hepzibah would throw her arms around Phœbe, hug her, and kiss her cheek as tenderly as her mother once had. It seemed to come from an unavoidable impulse, as if her heart were overflowing with tenderness that she needed to release to find some relief. In the next instant, without any clear reason for the shift, her unusual joy would vanish, as if frightened, and transform into sorrow, or it would retreat and hide in the depths of her heart, where it had long been imprisoned, while a cold, ghostly sadness took its place—one as dark as the joy had been bright. She often broke into a nervous, hysterical laugh that was more poignant than any tears; immediately afterward, as if to test which was more moving, a wave of tears would follow. Sometimes, the laughter and tears would come together, surrounding poor Hepzibah with a kind of pale, dim rainbow. As we mentioned, she was affectionate toward Phœbe—more tender than ever before in their short time together, except for that one kiss the night before—but she also exhibited a recurring petulance and irritability. She would speak sharply to her, then, dropping the usual stiffness of her demeanor, apologize, only to immediately renew the just-forgiven offense.

At last, when their mutual labor was all finished, she took Phœbe’s hand in her own trembling one.

At last, when their shared work was done, she took Phœbe’s hand in her own shaky one.

“Bear with me, my dear child,” she cried; “for truly my heart is full to the brim! Bear with me; for I love you, Phœbe, though I speak so roughly. Think nothing of it, dearest child! By and by, I shall be kind, and only kind!”

“Please be patient with me, my dear child,” she said; “because my heart is overflowing! Be patient; I love you, Phœbe, even though I may sound harsh. Don’t think anything of it, dear child! Soon, I will be kind, and only kind!”

“My dearest cousin, cannot you tell me what has happened?” asked Phœbe, with a sunny and tearful sympathy. “What is it that moves you so?”

“My dearest cousin, can you please tell me what’s going on?” asked Phœbe, with a bright yet tearful empathy. “What is it that is bothering you so much?”

“Hush! hush! He is coming!” whispered Hepzibah, hastily wiping her eyes. “Let him see you first, Phœbe; for you are young and rosy, and cannot help letting a smile break out whether or no. He always liked bright faces! And mine is old now, and the tears are hardly dry on it. He never could abide tears. There; draw the curtain a little, so that the shadow may fall across his side of the table! But let there be a good deal of sunshine, too; for he never was fond of gloom, as some people are. He has had but little sunshine in his life,—poor Clifford,—and, oh, what a black shadow. Poor, poor Clifford!”

“Hush! Hush! He’s coming!” whispered Hepzibah, quickly wiping her eyes. “Let him see you first, Phœbe; you’re young and bright, and you can’t help but smile. He always liked cheerful faces! And mine is old now, and the tears are barely dry. He never could stand tears. There—draw the curtain a little, so the shadow falls across his side of the table! But let there be plenty of sunshine too; he never liked gloom, unlike some people. He hasn’t had much sunshine in his life—poor Clifford—and oh, what a dark shadow. Poor, poor Clifford!”

Thus murmuring in an undertone, as if speaking rather to her own heart than to Phœbe, the old gentlewoman stepped on tiptoe about the room, making such arrangements as suggested themselves at the crisis.

Thus murmuring quietly, as if she were speaking more to herself than to Phœbe, the old lady tiptoed around the room, making such arrangements as came to her mind in that moment.

Meanwhile there was a step in the passage-way, above stairs. Phœbe recognized it as the same which had passed upward, as through her dream, in the night-time. The approaching guest, whoever it might be, appeared to pause at the head of the staircase; he paused twice or thrice in the descent; he paused again at the foot. Each time, the delay seemed to be without purpose, but rather from a forgetfulness of the purpose which had set him in motion, or as if the person’s feet came involuntarily to a stand-still because the motive-power was too feeble to sustain his progress. Finally, he made a long pause at the threshold of the parlor. He took hold of the knob of the door; then loosened his grasp without opening it. Hepzibah, her hands convulsively clasped, stood gazing at the entrance.

Meanwhile, there was a step in the hallway upstairs. Phœbe recognized it as the same one that had passed up during her dream the night before. The approaching guest, whoever it was, seemed to pause at the top of the staircase; he paused two or three times on his way down; he paused again at the bottom. Each time, the hesitation seemed pointless, almost as if he had forgotten why he started moving, or as if his feet just stopped because the motivation to keep going was too weak. Finally, he made a long pause at the entrance to the parlor. He grabbed the door handle, then let go without opening it. Hepzibah, her hands tightly clasped, stood staring at the doorway.

“Dear Cousin Hepzibah, pray don’t look so!” said Phœbe, trembling; for her cousin’s emotion, and this mysteriously reluctant step, made her feel as if a ghost were coming into the room. “You really frighten me! Is something awful going to happen?”

“Dear Cousin Hepzibah, please don’t look like that!” said Phœbe, trembling; her cousin's emotion and this strangely hesitant movement made her feel like a ghost was entering the room. “You really scare me! Is something terrible going to happen?”

“Hush!” whispered Hepzibah. “Be cheerful! whatever may happen, be nothing but cheerful!”

“Hush!” whispered Hepzibah. “Stay positive! No matter what happens, just keep being cheerful!”

The final pause at the threshold proved so long, that Hepzibah, unable to endure the suspense, rushed forward, threw open the door, and led in the stranger by the hand. At the first glance, Phœbe saw an elderly personage, in an old-fashioned dressing-gown of faded damask, and wearing his gray or almost white hair of an unusual length. It quite overshadowed his forehead, except when he thrust it back, and stared vaguely about the room. After a very brief inspection of his face, it was easy to conceive that his footstep must necessarily be such an one as that which, slowly and with as indefinite an aim as a child’s first journey across a floor, had just brought him hitherward. Yet there were no tokens that his physical strength might not have sufficed for a free and determined gait. It was the spirit of the man that could not walk. The expression of his countenance—while, notwithstanding it had the light of reason in it—seemed to waver, and glimmer, and nearly to die away, and feebly to recover itself again. It was like a flame which we see twinkling among half-extinguished embers; we gaze at it more intently than if it were a positive blaze, gushing vividly upward,—more intently, but with a certain impatience, as if it ought either to kindle itself into satisfactory splendor, or be at once extinguished.

The final pause at the door felt so long that Hepzibah, unable to bear the suspense, rushed forward, flung open the door, and brought the stranger in by the hand. At first glance, Phœbe saw an elderly man in an old-fashioned, faded damask dressing gown, with unusually long gray or almost white hair. It almost covered his forehead unless he pushed it back, and then he stared vaguely around the room. After a quick look at his face, it was clear that his footsteps must have been slow and aimless, like a child's first attempt to cross a room, which had just brought him here. However, there were no signs that his physical strength wouldn't have been enough for a confident stride. It was the man's spirit that couldn't walk. The expression on his face—while it still had the light of reason—seemed to waver, flicker, and nearly fade away, before weakly recovering again. It was like a flame flickering among half-extinguished embers; we focus on it more intently than if it were a strong blaze rising up vividly—more intently, but with a certain impatience, as if it should either ignite into brilliant splendor or be extinguished at once.

For an instant after entering the room, the guest stood still, retaining Hepzibah’s hand instinctively, as a child does that of the grown person who guides it. He saw Phœbe, however, and caught an illumination from her youthful and pleasant aspect, which, indeed, threw a cheerfulness about the parlor, like the circle of reflected brilliancy around the glass vase of flowers that was standing in the sunshine. He made a salutation, or, to speak nearer the truth, an ill-defined, abortive attempt at curtsy. Imperfect as it was, however, it conveyed an idea, or, at least, gave a hint, of indescribable grace, such as no practised art of external manners could have attained. It was too slight to seize upon at the instant; yet, as recollected afterwards, seemed to transfigure the whole man.

For a moment after entering the room, the guest stood still, instinctively holding onto Hepzibah's hand, like a child does with the adult guiding it. However, he caught sight of Phœbe, and her youthful, pleasant presence filled the parlor with a cheerfulness, like the light reflecting off a glass vase of flowers in the sunshine. He greeted her with what was, to be honest, a vague and clumsy attempt at a curtsy. Even though it was imperfect, it suggested an idea, or at least hinted at an indescribable grace that no practiced manner could replicate. It was too subtle to grasp in the moment; but in hindsight, it seemed to transform the whole man.

“Dear Clifford,” said Hepzibah, in the tone with which one soothes a wayward infant, “this is our cousin Phœbe,—little Phœbe Pyncheon,—Arthur’s only child, you know. She has come from the country to stay with us awhile; for our old house has grown to be very lonely now.”

“Dear Clifford,” said Hepzibah in a soothing tone like one would use for a wayward child, “this is our cousin Phoebe—little Phoebe Pyncheon, Arthur’s only child, you know. She’s come from the country to stay with us for a while because our old house has become very lonely now.”

“Phœbe—Phœbe Pyncheon?—Phœbe?” repeated the guest, with a strange, sluggish, ill-defined utterance. “Arthur’s child! Ah, I forget! No matter. She is very welcome!”

“Phoebe—Phoebe Pyncheon?—Phoebe?” the guest repeated, with a strange, slow, unclear way of speaking. “Arthur’s child! Ah, I forget! No matter. She is very welcome!”

“Come, dear Clifford, take this chair,” said Hepzibah, leading him to his place. “Pray, Phœbe, lower the curtain a very little more. Now let us begin breakfast.”

“Come on, dear Clifford, take this chair,” said Hepzibah, guiding him to his seat. “Please, Phœbe, lower the curtain just a bit more. Now let’s start breakfast.”

The guest seated himself in the place assigned him, and looked strangely around. He was evidently trying to grapple with the present scene, and bring it home to his mind with a more satisfactory distinctness. He desired to be certain, at least, that he was here, in the low-studded, cross-beamed, oaken-panelled parlor, and not in some other spot, which had stereotyped itself into his senses. But the effort was too great to be sustained with more than a fragmentary success. Continually, as we may express it, he faded away out of his place; or, in other words, his mind and consciousness took their departure, leaving his wasted, gray, and melancholy figure—a substantial emptiness, a material ghost—to occupy his seat at table. Again, after a blank moment, there would be a flickering taper-gleam in his eyeballs. It betokened that his spiritual part had returned, and was doing its best to kindle the heart’s household fire, and light up intellectual lamps in the dark and ruinous mansion, where it was doomed to be a forlorn inhabitant.

The guest sat down in the assigned seat and looked around, clearly trying to make sense of what he was seeing and really grasp it. He wanted to be sure that he was actually in this low-ceilinged, wooden-beamed, oak-paneled room, and not in some other familiar place that had etched itself into his memory. But the effort was just too much for him to maintain, resulting in only partial success. Over and over, it seemed like he faded away from his seat; in other words, his mind and awareness would drift off, leaving behind his wasted, gray, and sad figure—a tangible emptiness, a physical ghost—filling his spot at the table. Then, after a moment of blankness, there would be a brief flicker in his eyes. It signaled that his spirit had returned, trying its best to reignite the warmth of his heart and illuminate the dim, dilapidated house where he was stuck as a lonely resident.

At one of these moments of less torpid, yet still imperfect animation, Phœbe became convinced of what she had at first rejected as too extravagant and startling an idea. She saw that the person before her must have been the original of the beautiful miniature in her cousin Hepzibah’s possession. Indeed, with a feminine eye for costume, she had at once identified the damask dressing-gown, which enveloped him, as the same in figure, material, and fashion, with that so elaborately represented in the picture. This old, faded garment, with all its pristine brilliancy extinct, seemed, in some indescribable way, to translate the wearer’s untold misfortune, and make it perceptible to the beholder’s eye. It was the better to be discerned, by this exterior type, how worn and old were the soul’s more immediate garments; that form and countenance, the beauty and grace of which had almost transcended the skill of the most exquisite of artists. It could the more adequately be known that the soul of the man must have suffered some miserable wrong, from its earthly experience. There he seemed to sit, with a dim veil of decay and ruin betwixt him and the world, but through which, at flitting intervals, might be caught the same expression, so refined, so softly imaginative, which Malbone—venturing a happy touch, with suspended breath—had imparted to the miniature! There had been something so innately characteristic in this look, that all the dusky years, and the burden of unfit calamity which had fallen upon him, did not suffice utterly to destroy it.

At one of those moments of less sluggish yet still imperfect energy, Phœbe became convinced of what she had initially dismissed as an extravagant and shocking idea. She realized that the person in front of her must have been the original of the beautiful miniature in her cousin Hepzibah’s possession. In fact, with a woman’s eye for fashion, she had immediately recognized the damask dressing gown enveloping him as the same in design, material, and style as that depicted so elaborately in the picture. This old, faded garment, now lacking all its original brilliance, seemed to somehow convey the wearer's untold misfortune, making it visible to the observer. It was easier to see through this outward appearance how worn and aged the soul’s more immediate attire was; that form and face, the beauty and grace of which had almost surpassed even the most skilled artist's talent. It was clearer that the man must have endured some terrible wrong due to his earthly experiences. He seemed to sit there, with a faint veil of decay and ruin between him and the world, through which, at fleeting moments, one could glimpse the same expression—so refined, so softly imaginative—that Malbone had captured in the miniature. There was something so uniquely characteristic about this look that the passing years and the weight of misfortune he had endured were not enough to completely erase it.

Hepzibah had now poured out a cup of deliciously fragrant coffee, and presented it to her guest. As his eyes met hers, he seemed bewildered and disquieted.

Hepzibah had now poured a cup of wonderfully aromatic coffee and handed it to her guest. When his eyes met hers, he looked confused and unsettled.

“Is this you, Hepzibah?” he murmured sadly; then, more apart, and perhaps unconscious that he was overheard, “How changed! how changed! And is she angry with me? Why does she bend her brow so?”

“Is this you, Hepzibah?” he murmured sadly; then, more to himself, and perhaps unaware that he was being overheard, “How different! how different! And is she upset with me? Why does she furrow her brow like that?”

Poor Hepzibah! It was that wretched scowl which time and her near-sightedness, and the fret of inward discomfort, had rendered so habitual that any vehemence of mood invariably evoked it. But at the indistinct murmur of his words her whole face grew tender, and even lovely, with sorrowful affection; the harshness of her features disappeared, as it were, behind the warm and misty glow.

Poor Hepzibah! That unfortunate scowl, made habitual by time, her poor eyesight, and constant inner discomfort, always came out with any strong emotion. But at the soft sound of his words, her entire face softened and even looked beautiful with a sorrowful affection; the harshness of her features seemed to fade away behind a warm and dreamy glow.

“Angry!” she repeated; “angry with you, Clifford!”

“Angry!” she said again. “Angry with you, Clifford!”

Her tone, as she uttered the exclamation, had a plaintive and really exquisite melody thrilling through it, yet without subduing a certain something which an obtuse auditor might still have mistaken for asperity. It was as if some transcendent musician should draw a soul-thrilling sweetness out of a cracked instrument, which makes its physical imperfection heard in the midst of ethereal harmony,—so deep was the sensibility that found an organ in Hepzibah’s voice!

Her tone when she exclaimed it had a mournful yet beautiful melody flowing through it, but without suppressing a quality that a dull listener might still misinterpret as harshness. It was like a transcendent musician pulling a soul-stirring sweetness from a damaged instrument, making its flaws evident amidst an otherworldly harmony—such was the depth of feeling that resonated in Hepzibah’s voice!

“There is nothing but love here, Clifford,” she added,—“nothing but love! You are at home!”

“There’s just love here, Clifford,” she added,—“just love! You’re at home!”

The guest responded to her tone by a smile, which did not half light up his face. Feeble as it was, however, and gone in a moment, it had a charm of wonderful beauty. It was followed by a coarser expression; or one that had the effect of coarseness on the fine mould and outline of his countenance, because there was nothing intellectual to temper it. It was a look of appetite. He ate food with what might almost be termed voracity; and seemed to forget himself, Hepzibah, the young girl, and everything else around him, in the sensual enjoyment which the bountifully spread table afforded. In his natural system, though high-wrought and delicately refined, a sensibility to the delights of the palate was probably inherent. It would have been kept in check, however, and even converted into an accomplishment, and one of the thousand modes of intellectual culture, had his more ethereal characteristics retained their vigor. But as it existed now, the effect was painful and made Phœbe droop her eyes.

The guest responded to her tone with a smile that lit up his face, even if only briefly. Although it was faint and gone in an instant, it had a remarkable charm. It was soon replaced by a rougher expression, one that seemed coarse against the fine features of his face, lacking any intellectual balance. His look was one of hunger. He ate with almost a ravenousness and seemed to lose himself, along with Hepzibah and everyone else around him, in the sheer pleasure of the abundant spread on the table. In his natural disposition, though highly refined and delicate, there was likely an inherent sensitivity to the pleasures of taste. However, that sensitivity might have been kept in check and even turned into a skill, a part of the many ways to cultivate the mind, if his more elevated traits had remained strong. But in its current state, it was uncomfortable and made Phœbe lower her gaze.

In a little while the guest became sensible of the fragrance of the yet untasted coffee. He quaffed it eagerly. The subtle essence acted on him like a charmed draught, and caused the opaque substance of his animal being to grow transparent, or, at least, translucent; so that a spiritual gleam was transmitted through it, with a clearer lustre than hitherto.

In a little while, the guest noticed the smell of the coffee he hadn't tasted yet. He drank it eagerly. The delicate flavor hit him like a magical potion, making the solid part of his physical self feel clearer, or at least, more see-through; so that a spiritual light shone through him, brighter than before.

“More, more!” he cried, with nervous haste in his utterance, as if anxious to retain his grasp of what sought to escape him. “This is what I need! Give me more!”

“More, more!” he shouted, with a frantic urgency in his voice, as if he was desperate to hold on to what was trying to slip away from him. “This is what I need! Give me more!”

Under this delicate and powerful influence he sat more erect, and looked out from his eyes with a glance that took note of what it rested on. It was not so much that his expression grew more intellectual; this, though it had its share, was not the most peculiar effect. Neither was what we call the moral nature so forcibly awakened as to present itself in remarkable prominence. But a certain fine temper of being was now not brought out in full relief, but changeably and imperfectly betrayed, of which it was the function to deal with all beautiful and enjoyable things. In a character where it should exist as the chief attribute, it would bestow on its possessor an exquisite taste, and an enviable susceptibility of happiness. Beauty would be his life; his aspirations would all tend toward it; and, allowing his frame and physical organs to be in consonance, his own developments would likewise be beautiful. Such a man should have nothing to do with sorrow; nothing with strife; nothing with the martyrdom which, in an infinite variety of shapes, awaits those who have the heart, and will, and conscience, to fight a battle with the world. To these heroic tempers, such martyrdom is the richest meed in the world’s gift. To the individual before us, it could only be a grief, intense in due proportion with the severity of the infliction. He had no right to be a martyr; and, beholding him so fit to be happy and so feeble for all other purposes, a generous, strong, and noble spirit would, methinks, have been ready to sacrifice what little enjoyment it might have planned for itself,—it would have flung down the hopes, so paltry in its regard,—if thereby the wintry blasts of our rude sphere might come tempered to such a man.

Under this delicate and powerful influence, he sat up straighter and looked out with a gaze that took in everything around him. It wasn't just that his expression became more thoughtful; while that played a part, it wasn't the most striking change. Nor was his moral character so strongly awakened that it stood out prominently. Rather, a certain refined state of being emerged, not fully expressed but revealed in subtle and imperfect ways, which enabled him to engage beautifully with all enjoyable things. In a personality where this should be the primary trait, it would give its owner exquisite taste and a remarkable capacity for happiness. Beauty would define his life; all his aspirations would aim toward it, and if his body and senses were aligned, his own growth would also be beautiful. A man like this should have nothing to do with sorrow, struggles, or the suffering that often awaits those with the heart, will, and conscience to take on the world. For those heroic souls, such suffering is the greatest reward life has to offer. For the individual before us, it could only bring intense grief, proportional to the severity of the experience. He had no right to suffer; and seeing him so perfectly suited for happiness yet so unfit for anything else, a generous, strong, and noble spirit would, I believe, willingly sacrifice any small pleasures it had planned, just to ensure that the harsh realities of our world could be softened for such a man.

Not to speak it harshly or scornfully, it seemed Clifford’s nature to be a Sybarite. It was perceptible, even there, in the dark old parlor, in the inevitable polarity with which his eyes were attracted towards the quivering play of sunbeams through the shadowy foliage. It was seen in his appreciating notice of the vase of flowers, the scent of which he inhaled with a zest almost peculiar to a physical organization so refined that spiritual ingredients are moulded in with it. It was betrayed in the unconscious smile with which he regarded Phœbe, whose fresh and maidenly figure was both sunshine and flowers,—their essence, in a prettier and more agreeable mode of manifestation. Not less evident was this love and necessity for the Beautiful, in the instinctive caution with which, even so soon, his eyes turned away from his hostess, and wandered to any quarter rather than come back. It was Hepzibah’s misfortune,—not Clifford’s fault. How could he,—so yellow as she was, so wrinkled, so sad of mien, with that odd uncouthness of a turban on her head, and that most perverse of scowls contorting her brow,—how could he love to gaze at her? But, did he owe her no affection for so much as she had silently given? He owed her nothing. A nature like Clifford’s can contract no debts of that kind. It is—we say it without censure, nor in diminution of the claim which it indefeasibly possesses on beings of another mould—it is always selfish in its essence; and we must give it leave to be so, and heap up our heroic and disinterested love upon it so much the more, without a recompense. Poor Hepzibah knew this truth, or, at least, acted on the instinct of it. So long estranged from what was lovely as Clifford had been, she rejoiced—rejoiced, though with a present sigh, and a secret purpose to shed tears in her own chamber that he had brighter objects now before his eyes than her aged and uncomely features. They never possessed a charm; and if they had, the canker of her grief for him would long since have destroyed it.

Not to put it too harshly or scornfully, it seemed like Clifford was a pleasure-seeker. You could see it even there in the dark old parlor, with the way his eyes were inevitably drawn to the dancing sunlight filtering through the shadowy leaves. It showed in how he appreciated the vase of flowers, inhaling their scent with a delight almost unique to someone with such refined tastes that even spiritual qualities were mixed in. It was clear in the unconscious smile he gave Phœbe, whose fresh and youthful presence was like sunshine and flowers—bringing their essence in a more attractive and lovely way. His love and need for beauty were unmistakable, evident in the instinctive way he quickly turned his gaze away from his hostess, avoiding looking back for as long as he could. It was Hepzibah's misfortune—not Clifford’s fault. How could he love to look at her, with her yellow skin, wrinkled face, sad expression, that strange turban on her head, and the scowl permanently etched on her brow? But did he owe her any affection for everything she had silently given? He owed her nothing. Someone like Clifford can’t incur that kind of debt. It is—we say this without judgment and without diminishing the legitimate claim that it holds on those of a different nature—always selfish at its core; and we must allow it to be so, and pile our heroic and selfless love upon it all the more, without expecting anything in return. Poor Hepzibah understood this truth, or at least acted on that instinct. Having been so long removed from anything lovely like Clifford, she felt joy—joy, though with an accompanying sigh, and an unspoken intent to cry in her own room because he now had brighter things to look at than her aging and unattractive features. They never held any charm; and even if they had, the deep sorrow she felt for him would have long since ruined it.

The guest leaned back in his chair. Mingled in his countenance with a dreamy delight, there was a troubled look of effort and unrest. He was seeking to make himself more fully sensible of the scene around him; or, perhaps, dreading it to be a dream, or a play of imagination, was vexing the fair moment with a struggle for some added brilliancy and more durable illusion.

The guest relaxed in his chair. Alongside a dreamy pleasure on his face, there was an expression of effort and unease. He was trying to become more aware of the scene around him; or maybe, fearing it was a dream or a figment of his imagination, he was ruining the beautiful moment by striving for something more vivid and lasting.

“How pleasant!—How delightful!” he murmured, but not as if addressing any one. “Will it last? How balmy the atmosphere through that open window! An open window! How beautiful that play of sunshine! Those flowers, how very fragrant! That young girl’s face, how cheerful, how blooming!—a flower with the dew on it, and sunbeams in the dew-drops! Ah! this must be all a dream! A dream! A dream! But it has quite hidden the four stone walls!”

“How nice!—How wonderful!” he whispered, but it didn’t seem like he was talking to anyone. “Will this last? The air feels so refreshing coming through that open window! An open window! How lovely the sunlight is! Those flowers smell amazing! That girl’s face is so bright and full of life!—like a flower with dew on it, with sunshine sparkling in the droplets! Ah! This must all be a dream! A dream! A dream! But it has completely covered those four stone walls!”

Then his face darkened, as if the shadow of a cavern or a dungeon had come over it; there was no more light in its expression than might have come through the iron grates of a prison-window—still lessening, too, as if he were sinking farther into the depths. Phœbe (being of that quickness and activity of temperament that she seldom long refrained from taking a part, and generally a good one, in what was going forward) now felt herself moved to address the stranger.

Then his face grew dark, as if a shadow from a cave or dungeon had fallen over it; there was no more brightness in his expression than what might have come through the iron bars of a prison window—getting dimmer too, as if he were sinking deeper into despair. Phœbe (being quick and lively by nature, she usually couldn't help but get involved, and often in a positive way, in whatever was happening) now felt compelled to speak to the stranger.

“Here is a new kind of rose, which I found this morning in the garden,” said she, choosing a small crimson one from among the flowers in the vase. “There will be but five or six on the bush this season. This is the most perfect of them all; not a speck of blight or mildew in it. And how sweet it is!—sweet like no other rose! One can never forget that scent!”

“Here’s a new type of rose that I found this morning in the garden,” she said, picking a small crimson one from among the flowers in the vase. “There will be only five or six on the bush this season. This one is the most perfect of all; there’s not a hint of blight or mildew on it. And it’s so sweet!—sweeter than any other rose! You can never forget that scent!”

“Ah!—let me see!—let me hold it!” cried the guest, eagerly seizing the flower, which, by the spell peculiar to remembered odors, brought innumerable associations along with the fragrance that it exhaled. “Thank you! This has done me good. I remember how I used to prize this flower,—long ago, I suppose, very long ago!—or was it only yesterday? It makes me feel young again! Am I young? Either this remembrance is singularly distinct, or this consciousness strangely dim! But how kind of the fair young girl! Thank you! Thank you!”

“Ah!—let me see!—let me hold it!” the guest exclaimed, eagerly grabbing the flower, which, thanks to its unique ability to conjure memories tied to its scent, brought back countless associations along with its fragrance. “Thank you! This makes me feel better. I remember how much I cherished this flower—ages ago, I suppose, so long ago!—or was it just yesterday? It makes me feel youthful again! Am I young? Either this memory is incredibly clear, or my awareness is oddly blurry! But how thoughtful of the lovely young girl! Thank you! Thank you!”

The favorable excitement derived from this little crimson rose afforded Clifford the brightest moment which he enjoyed at the breakfast-table. It might have lasted longer, but that his eyes happened, soon afterwards, to rest on the face of the old Puritan, who, out of his dingy frame and lustreless canvas, was looking down on the scene like a ghost, and a most ill-tempered and ungenial one. The guest made an impatient gesture of the hand, and addressed Hepzibah with what might easily be recognized as the licensed irritability of a petted member of the family.

The pleasant thrill from this little red rose gave Clifford the happiest moment he had at the breakfast table. It could have lasted longer, but soon after, his gaze landed on the old Puritan, who, out of his dull frame and lifeless canvas, was staring down at the scene like a ghost—an especially grumpy and unfriendly one. The guest waved his hand in annoyance and spoke to Hepzibah with what was clearly the entitled irritability of a pampered family member.

“Hepzibah!—Hepzibah!” cried he with no little force and distinctness, “why do you keep that odious picture on the wall? Yes, yes!—that is precisely your taste! I have told you, a thousand times, that it was the evil genius of the house!—my evil genius particularly! Take it down, at once!”

“Hepzibah!—Hepzibah!” he shouted with great intensity and clarity, “why do you keep that horrible picture on the wall? Yes, yes!—that is totally your style! I've told you a thousand times that it was the bad influence of the house!—my bad influence especially! Take it down, right now!”

“Dear Clifford,” said Hepzibah sadly, “you know it cannot be!”

“Dear Clifford,” Hepzibah said sadly, “you know it can’t be!”

“Then, at all events,” continued he, still speaking with some energy, “pray cover it with a crimson curtain, broad enough to hang in folds, and with a golden border and tassels. I cannot bear it! It must not stare me in the face!”

“Then, in any case,” he continued, still speaking passionately, “please cover it with a red curtain, wide enough to drape in folds, and with a gold border and tassels. I can’t stand it! It can’t be glaring at me!”

“Yes, dear Clifford, the picture shall be covered,” said Hepzibah soothingly. “There is a crimson curtain in a trunk above stairs,—a little faded and moth-eaten, I’m afraid,—but Phœbe and I will do wonders with it.”

“Yes, dear Clifford, we’ll cover the picture,” Hepzibah said gently. “There’s a red curtain in a trunk upstairs—it's a bit faded and has some moth holes, but Phœbe and I will work our magic on it.”

“This very day, remember” said he; and then added, in a low, self-communing voice, “Why should we live in this dismal house at all? Why not go to the South of France?—to Italy?—Paris, Naples, Venice, Rome? Hepzibah will say we have not the means. A droll idea that!”

“Remember this very day,” he said; then added, in a soft, thoughtful voice, “Why should we stay in this gloomy house at all? Why not go to the South of France?—to Italy?—Paris, Naples, Venice, Rome? Hepzibah will say we can’t afford it. What a funny thought!”

He smiled to himself, and threw a glance of fine sarcastic meaning towards Hepzibah.

He smiled to himself and shot a sarcastic glance at Hepzibah.

But the several moods of feeling, faintly as they were marked, through which he had passed, occurring in so brief an interval of time, had evidently wearied the stranger. He was probably accustomed to a sad monotony of life, not so much flowing in a stream, however sluggish, as stagnating in a pool around his feet. A slumberous veil diffused itself over his countenance, and had an effect, morally speaking, on its naturally delicate and elegant outline, like that which a brooding mist, with no sunshine in it, throws over the features of a landscape. He appeared to become grosser,—almost cloddish. If aught of interest or beauty—even ruined beauty—had heretofore been visible in this man, the beholder might now begin to doubt it, and to accuse his own imagination of deluding him with whatever grace had flickered over that visage, and whatever exquisite lustre had gleamed in those filmy eyes.

But the different moods he had gone through, however subtly they showed, in such a short time had clearly tired the stranger. He was likely used to a sad, unchanging life, not so much flowing like a slow river, but stagnating like a pool at his feet. A sleepy veil covered his face, which affected its naturally delicate and elegant lines, much like a gray mist without sunshine envelops the features of a landscape. He seemed to become heavier—almost dull. If there had been any interest or beauty—even faded beauty—visible in this man before, the observer might now start to doubt it and wonder if his own imagination was tricking him with any grace that had briefly appeared on that face, and any exquisite shine that had sparkled in those glazed eyes.

Before he had quite sunken away, however, the sharp and peevish tinkle of the shop-bell made itself audible. Striking most disagreeably on Clifford’s auditory organs and the characteristic sensibility of his nerves, it caused him to start upright out of his chair.

Before he had completely sunk away, though, the irritating and sharp jingle of the shop bell became audible. It struck unpleasantly on Clifford’s ears and triggered his sensitive nerves, making him jump up out of his chair.

“Good heavens, Hepzibah! what horrible disturbance have we now in the house?” cried he, wreaking his resentful impatience—as a matter of course, and a custom of old—on the one person in the world that loved him. “I have never heard such a hateful clamor! Why do you permit it? In the name of all dissonance, what can it be?”

“Good heavens, Hepzibah! What terrible noise is happening in the house now?” he shouted, taking out his frustrated impatience—just like he always did—on the one person in the world who cared for him. “I’ve never heard such an awful racket! Why do you let it happen? For the love of all that’s loud, what could it possibly be?”

It was very remarkable into what prominent relief—even as if a dim picture should leap suddenly from its canvas—Clifford’s character was thrown by this apparently trifling annoyance. The secret was, that an individual of his temper can always be pricked more acutely through his sense of the beautiful and harmonious than through his heart. It is even possible—for similar cases have often happened—that if Clifford, in his foregoing life, had enjoyed the means of cultivating his taste to its utmost perfectibility, that subtile attribute might, before this period, have completely eaten out or filed away his affections. Shall we venture to pronounce, therefore, that his long and black calamity may not have had a redeeming drop of mercy at the bottom?

It was striking how much Clifford’s character was brought into focus—almost as if a faded painting suddenly came to life—by this seemingly minor annoyance. The truth was that someone like him was always affected more deeply by his appreciation for beauty and harmony than by his emotions. It’s even possible—since similar situations have happened before—that if Clifford had been able to fully develop his taste in his earlier life, that delicate quality might have completely consumed or dulled his feelings by now. So, should we dare to say that his long, dark misfortune might not have at least a hint of mercy hidden within it?

“Dear Clifford, I wish I could keep the sound from your ears,” said Hepzibah, patiently, but reddening with a painful suffusion of shame. “It is very disagreeable even to me. But, do you know, Clifford, I have something to tell you? This ugly noise,—pray run, Phœbe, and see who is there!—this naughty little tinkle is nothing but our shop-bell!”

“Dear Clifford, I wish I could block out the noise for you,” Hepzibah said patiently, though her face flushed with a painful wave of embarrassment. “It's really unpleasant for me too. But, do you know, Clifford, I have something to share with you? This annoying noise—please, Phœbe, go see who's there!—this pesky little ding is just our shop-bell!”

“Shop-bell!” repeated Clifford, with a bewildered stare.

"Shop bell!" Clifford repeated, looking confused.

“Yes, our shop-bell,” said Hepzibah, a certain natural dignity, mingled with deep emotion, now asserting itself in her manner. “For you must know, dearest Clifford, that we are very poor. And there was no other resource, but either to accept assistance from a hand that I would push aside (and so would you!) were it to offer bread when we were dying for it,—no help, save from him, or else to earn our subsistence with my own hands! Alone, I might have been content to starve. But you were to be given back to me! Do you think, then, dear Clifford,” added she, with a wretched smile, “that I have brought an irretrievable disgrace on the old house, by opening a little shop in the front gable? Our great-great-grandfather did the same, when there was far less need! Are you ashamed of me?”

“Yes, our shop bell,” said Hepzibah, a certain natural dignity mixed with deep emotion now showing in her manner. “You have to know, dear Clifford, that we are very poor. There was no other option but to either accept help from someone I would push away (and you would too!) if they offered us food while we were starving—or to earn our living with my own hands! Alone, I might have accepted starving. But you were supposed to be given back to me! Do you think, then, dear Clifford,” she added with a sad smile, “that I have brought an irretrievable disgrace on the old house by opening a little shop in the front gable? Our great-great-grandfather did the same when there was even less need! Are you ashamed of me?”

“Shame! Disgrace! Do you speak these words to me, Hepzibah?” said Clifford,—not angrily, however; for when a man’s spirit has been thoroughly crushed, he may be peevish at small offences, but never resentful of great ones. So he spoke with only a grieved emotion. “It was not kind to say so, Hepzibah! What shame can befall me now?”

“Shame! Disgrace! Are you really saying that to me, Hepzibah?” Clifford replied, not with anger, though; when a man’s spirit is completely broken, he might get irritable over little things but never truly resentful about the big ones. So he spoke with only a sense of hurt. “It wasn’t nice to say that, Hepzibah! What shame could come to me now?”

And then the unnerved man—he that had been born for enjoyment, but had met a doom so very wretched—burst into a woman’s passion of tears. It was but of brief continuance, however; soon leaving him in a quiescent, and, to judge by his countenance, not an uncomfortable state. From this mood, too, he partially rallied for an instant, and looked at Hepzibah with a smile, the keen, half-derisory purport of which was a puzzle to her.

And then the shaken man—who was meant for joy, but had faced a truly miserable fate—broke down in tears like a woman. But this only lasted a short time; he soon settled into a calm state, which, from his expression, didn’t seem uncomfortable. From this mood, he briefly recovered and looked at Hepzibah with a smile, the sharp, somewhat mocking意味 of which left her puzzled.

“Are we so very poor, Hepzibah?” said he.

“Are we really that poor, Hepzibah?” he asked.

Finally, his chair being deep and softly cushioned, Clifford fell asleep. Hearing the more regular rise and fall of his breath (which, however, even then, instead of being strong and full, had a feeble kind of tremor, corresponding with the lack of vigor in his character),—hearing these tokens of settled slumber, Hepzibah seized the opportunity to peruse his face more attentively than she had yet dared to do. Her heart melted away in tears; her profoundest spirit sent forth a moaning voice, low, gentle, but inexpressibly sad. In this depth of grief and pity she felt that there was no irreverence in gazing at his altered, aged, faded, ruined face. But no sooner was she a little relieved than her conscience smote her for gazing curiously at him, now that he was so changed; and, turning hastily away, Hepzibah let down the curtain over the sunny window, and left Clifford to slumber there.

Finally, with his chair being deep and softly cushioned, Clifford fell asleep. Hearing the regular rise and fall of his breath (which, even then, instead of being strong and full, had a weak tremor matching the lack of strength in his character),—hearing these signs of settled slumber, Hepzibah took the chance to examine his face more closely than she had dared before. Her heart broke and tears flowed; her deepest feelings let out a soft, gentle moan, but it was incredibly sad. In this deep sorrow and compassion, she felt it was not disrespectful to look at his changed, aged, faded, ruined face. But as soon as she felt a little relieved, her conscience pricked her for looking at him so curiously, now that he was so different; and turning away quickly, Hepzibah pulled down the curtain over the sunny window and left Clifford to sleep there.

VIII.
The Pyncheon of To-day

Phœbe, on entering the shop, beheld there the already familiar face of the little devourer—if we can reckon his mighty deeds aright—of Jim Crow, the elephant, the camel, the dromedaries, and the locomotive. Having expended his private fortune, on the two preceding days, in the purchase of the above unheard-of luxuries, the young gentleman’s present errand was on the part of his mother, in quest of three eggs and half a pound of raisins. These articles Phœbe accordingly supplied, and, as a mark of gratitude for his previous patronage, and a slight super-added morsel after breakfast, put likewise into his hand a whale! The great fish, reversing his experience with the prophet of Nineveh, immediately began his progress down the same red pathway of fate whither so varied a caravan had preceded him. This remarkable urchin, in truth, was the very emblem of old Father Time, both in respect of his all-devouring appetite for men and things, and because he, as well as Time, after ingulfing thus much of creation, looked almost as youthful as if he had been just that moment made.

Phoebe walked into the shop and spotted the familiar face of the little glutton—if we can accurately count his impressive feats—of Jim Crow, the elephant, the camel, the dromedaries, and the train. After spending his personal fortune in the last two days on these astonishing luxuries, the young boy was now sent by his mother to get three eggs and half a pound of raisins. Phoebe provided these items, and as a token of appreciation for his previous business, she also handed him a whale as a little extra treat after breakfast! The giant fish, unlike the prophet from Nineveh, immediately started down the same red path of destiny that so many different groups had traveled before him. This remarkable kid was truly a symbol of Father Time, both because of his insatiable appetite for people and things and because, like Time, he looked almost as youthful as if he had just been created, despite devouring so much of existence.

After partly closing the door, the child turned back, and mumbled something to Phœbe, which, as the whale was but half disposed of, she could not perfectly understand.

After partly closing the door, the child turned back and mumbled something to Phœbe, which, since the whale was only partially dealt with, she couldn't completely understand.

“What did you say, my little fellow?” asked she.

“What did you say, my little friend?” she asked.

“Mother wants to know” repeated Ned Higgins more distinctly, “how Old Maid Pyncheon’s brother does? Folks say he has got home.”

“Mom wants to know,” Ned Higgins said more clearly, “how Old Maid Pyncheon’s brother is doing? People say he’s back home.”

“My cousin Hepzibah’s brother?” exclaimed Phœbe, surprised at this sudden explanation of the relationship between Hepzibah and her guest. “Her brother! And where can he have been?”

“My cousin Hepzibah’s brother?” exclaimed Phœbe, surprised by this sudden clarification about Hepzibah and her guest. “Her brother! Where has he been?”

The little boy only put his thumb to his broad snub-nose, with that look of shrewdness which a child, spending much of his time in the street, so soon learns to throw over his features, however unintelligent in themselves. Then as Phœbe continued to gaze at him, without answering his mother’s message, he took his departure.

The little boy just pressed his thumb to his wide, flat nose, wearing that clever look that a kid, who spends a lot of time on the streets, quickly learns to put on, even if he doesn’t seem clever at all. Then, as Phœbe kept staring at him, not responding to his mother’s message, he walked away.

As the child went down the steps, a gentleman ascended them, and made his entrance into the shop. It was the portly, and, had it possessed the advantage of a little more height, would have been the stately figure of a man considerably in the decline of life, dressed in a black suit of some thin stuff, resembling broadcloth as closely as possible. A gold-headed cane, of rare Oriental wood, added materially to the high respectability of his aspect, as did also a neckcloth of the utmost snowy purity, and the conscientious polish of his boots. His dark, square countenance, with its almost shaggy depth of eyebrows, was naturally impressive, and would, perhaps, have been rather stern, had not the gentleman considerately taken upon himself to mitigate the harsh effect by a look of exceeding good-humor and benevolence. Owing, however, to a somewhat massive accumulation of animal substance about the lower region of his face, the look was, perhaps, unctuous rather than spiritual, and had, so to speak, a kind of fleshly effulgence, not altogether so satisfactory as he doubtless intended it to be. A susceptible observer, at any rate, might have regarded it as affording very little evidence of the general benignity of soul whereof it purported to be the outward reflection. And if the observer chanced to be ill-natured, as well as acute and susceptible, he would probably suspect that the smile on the gentleman’s face was a good deal akin to the shine on his boots, and that each must have cost him and his boot-black, respectively, a good deal of hard labor to bring out and preserve them.

As the child walked down the steps, a man was coming up and entered the shop. He was a hefty man who, if he had been a bit taller, would have appeared quite dignified, but he was clearly aging. He wore a black suit made of a light fabric that looked similar to broadcloth. A gold-headed cane made of rare Oriental wood added to his respectable appearance, as did his impeccably white neckcloth and the shiny polish on his boots. His dark, square face, with its thick eyebrows, had a naturally imposing look, which might have seemed stern if he hadn’t made an effort to soften it with a friendly and kind expression. However, due to the extra flesh around his jaw, the expression came off more as oily than spiritual, giving him a kind of fleshy glow that wasn’t as appealing as he probably meant it to be. Any sensitive observer might have thought that it didn’t really show the kindness of spirit he intended to convey. And if the observer happened to be a bit cynical, as well as sharp and sensitive, they might suspect that the smile on the man’s face was similar to the shine on his boots, implying both required a lot of hard work from him and his boot-black to maintain.

As the stranger entered the little shop, where the projection of the second story and the thick foliage of the elm-tree, as well as the commodities at the window, created a sort of gray medium, his smile grew as intense as if he had set his heart on counteracting the whole gloom of the atmosphere (besides any moral gloom pertaining to Hepzibah and her inmates) by the unassisted light of his countenance. On perceiving a young rose-bud of a girl, instead of the gaunt presence of the old maid, a look of surprise was manifest. He at first knit his brows; then smiled with more unctuous benignity than ever.

As the stranger walked into the small shop, where the second-story projection and the thick elm-tree leaves alongside the window's goods created a kind of gray atmosphere, his smile became so bright that it seemed like he was determined to push back against the overall gloom, including any moral sadness connected to Hepzibah and her residents, with just the light from his face. When he noticed a young girl, like a fresh rosebud, instead of the thin, older woman he expected, his surprise was clear. He initially frowned a bit, then smiled with even more warmth than before.

“Ah, I see how it is!” said he in a deep voice,—a voice which, had it come from the throat of an uncultivated man, would have been gruff, but, by dint of careful training, was now sufficiently agreeable,—“I was not aware that Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon had commenced business under such favorable auspices. You are her assistant, I suppose?”

“Ah, I get it!” he said in a deep voice—a voice that, if it came from an unrefined person, would have sounded rough, but through careful training, was now quite pleasant—“I didn’t realize that Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon had started her business under such good circumstances. I take it you're her assistant, then?”

“I certainly am,” answered Phœbe, and added, with a little air of lady-like assumption (for, civil as the gentleman was, he evidently took her to be a young person serving for wages), “I am a cousin of Miss Hepzibah, on a visit to her.”

“I definitely am,” Phœbe replied, adding with a slight air of refinement (because, as polite as the gentleman was, he clearly saw her as a young woman working for pay), “I’m a cousin of Miss Hepzibah, visiting her.”

“Her cousin?—and from the country? Pray pardon me, then,” said the gentleman, bowing and smiling, as Phœbe never had been bowed to nor smiled on before; “in that case, we must be better acquainted; for, unless I am sadly mistaken, you are my own little kinswoman likewise! Let me see,—Mary?—Dolly?—Phœbe?—yes, Phœbe is the name! Is it possible that you are Phœbe Pyncheon, only child of my dear cousin and classmate, Arthur? Ah, I see your father now, about your mouth! Yes, yes! we must be better acquainted! I am your kinsman, my dear. Surely you must have heard of Judge Pyncheon?”

“Your cousin? From the countryside? I apologize then,” said the gentleman, bowing and smiling, in a way Phœbe had never experienced before; “in that case, we need to get to know each other better; because, unless I’m completely wrong, you’re my little relative too! Let me think,—Mary?—Dolly?—Phœbe?—yes, Phœbe is the name! Can it be that you are Phœbe Pyncheon, the only child of my dear cousin and classmate, Arthur? Ah, I can see your father’s features in you, especially around your mouth! Yes, yes! We definitely need to get to know each other! I’m your relative, my dear. Surely you’ve heard of Judge Pyncheon?”

As Phœbe curtsied in reply, the Judge bent forward, with the pardonable and even praiseworthy purpose—considering the nearness of blood and the difference of age—of bestowing on his young relative a kiss of acknowledged kindred and natural affection. Unfortunately (without design, or only with such instinctive design as gives no account of itself to the intellect) Phœbe, just at the critical moment, drew back; so that her highly respectable kinsman, with his body bent over the counter and his lips protruded, was betrayed into the rather absurd predicament of kissing the empty air. It was a modern parallel to the case of Ixion embracing a cloud, and was so much the more ridiculous as the Judge prided himself on eschewing all airy matter, and never mistaking a shadow for a substance. The truth was,—and it is Phœbe’s only excuse,—that, although Judge Pyncheon’s glowing benignity might not be absolutely unpleasant to the feminine beholder, with the width of a street, or even an ordinary-sized room, interposed between, yet it became quite too intense, when this dark, full-fed physiognomy (so roughly bearded, too, that no razor could ever make it smooth) sought to bring itself into actual contact with the object of its regards. The man, the sex, somehow or other, was entirely too prominent in the Judge’s demonstrations of that sort. Phœbe’s eyes sank, and, without knowing why, she felt herself blushing deeply under his look. Yet she had been kissed before, and without any particular squeamishness, by perhaps half a dozen different cousins, younger as well as older than this dark-browned, grisly-bearded, white-neck-clothed, and unctuously-benevolent Judge! Then, why not by him?

As Phœbe curtsied in response, the Judge leaned forward with the understandable and even admirable intention—given their family ties and age difference—of giving his young relative a kiss of familial affection. Unfortunately (not on purpose, or perhaps just instinctively in a way that didn’t register consciously), Phœbe, at the crucial moment, pulled back; leaving her well-respected relative, bent over the counter with his lips sticking out, in the somewhat comical situation of kissing empty air. It was a modern twist on the story of Ixion embracing a cloud, and it seemed even more ridiculous because the Judge prided himself on avoiding illusions and never mistaking a shadow for reality. The truth was—and this is Phœbe’s only excuse—that although Judge Pyncheon’s warm kindness might not be unpleasant at a distance, like across a street or even in a regular-sized room, it became overwhelming when this heavy-set face (roughly bearded to the point where no razor could ever smooth it) tried to get too close to her. The man, the gender, somehow felt too dominant in the Judge’s demonstrations. Phœbe’s gaze dropped, and for reasons she couldn’t identify, she blushed deeply under his stare. Yet she had been kissed before, and without any significant discomfort, by perhaps half a dozen different cousins, both younger and older than this dark, grizzly-bearded, white-collared, and overly kind Judge! So then, why not by him?

On raising her eyes, Phœbe was startled by the change in Judge Pyncheon’s face. It was quite as striking, allowing for the difference of scale, as that betwixt a landscape under a broad sunshine and just before a thunder-storm; not that it had the passionate intensity of the latter aspect, but was cold, hard, immitigable, like a day-long brooding cloud.

Upon lifting her gaze, Phoebe was taken aback by the transformation in Judge Pyncheon's face. It was as striking, considering the difference in scale, as the contrast between a landscape bathed in bright sunlight and one just before a thunderstorm; not that it had the passionate intensity of the latter, but rather it was cold, hard, and unyielding, like a day-long cloud hanging over the sky.

“Dear me! what is to be done now?” thought the country-girl to herself. “He looks as if there were nothing softer in him than a rock, nor milder than the east wind! I meant no harm! Since he is really my cousin, I would have let him kiss me, if I could!”

“Goodness! What am I supposed to do now?” thought the country girl to herself. “He seems as if there’s nothing softer in him than a rock, and nothing gentler than the east wind! I meant no harm! Since he is really my cousin, I would have let him kiss me, if I could!”

Then, all at once, it struck Phœbe that this very Judge Pyncheon was the original of the miniature which the daguerreotypist had shown her in the garden, and that the hard, stern, relentless look, now on his face, was the same that the sun had so inflexibly persisted in bringing out. Was it, therefore, no momentary mood, but, however skilfully concealed, the settled temper of his life? And not merely so, but was it hereditary in him, and transmitted down, as a precious heirloom, from that bearded ancestor, in whose picture both the expression and, to a singular degree, the features of the modern Judge were shown as by a kind of prophecy? A deeper philosopher than Phœbe might have found something very terrible in this idea. It implied that the weaknesses and defects, the bad passions, the mean tendencies, and the moral diseases which lead to crime are handed down from one generation to another, by a far surer process of transmission than human law has been able to establish in respect to the riches and honors which it seeks to entail upon posterity.

Then, all of a sudden, it hit Phœbe that this very Judge Pyncheon was the original of the miniature the photographer had shown her in the garden, and that the hard, stern, relentless look on his face now was the same one that the sun had fiercely insisted on bringing out. Was it, then, not just a passing mood, but, however skillfully hidden, the established temperament of his life? And not only that, but was it also inherited, passed down like a treasured heirloom from that bearded ancestor, whose picture shared both the expression and, to an unusual degree, the features of the modern Judge as if foretold? A deeper thinker than Phœbe might have found something quite chilling in this thought. It suggested that the weaknesses and defects, the bad impulses, petty tendencies, and moral issues that lead to crime are passed down from one generation to the next, through a much more reliable process of transmission than human law has managed to set up regarding the wealth and honors it aims to leave for future generations.

But, as it happened, scarcely had Phœbe’s eyes rested again on the Judge’s countenance than all its ugly sternness vanished; and she found herself quite overpowered by the sultry, dog-day heat, as it were, of benevolence, which this excellent man diffused out of his great heart into the surrounding atmosphere,—very much like a serpent, which, as a preliminary to fascination, is said to fill the air with his peculiar odor.

But, as it turned out, hardly had Phœbe's eyes focused again on the Judge's face when all its harshness disappeared; and she felt completely overwhelmed by the intense warmth of kindness that this wonderful man radiated from his big heart into the air around him—much like a snake, which, before mesmerizing its prey, is said to fill the air with its distinctive scent.

“I like that, Cousin Phœbe!” cried he, with an emphatic nod of approbation. “I like it much, my little cousin! You are a good child, and know how to take care of yourself. A young girl—especially if she be a very pretty one—can never be too chary of her lips.”

“I like that, Cousin Phoebe!” he exclaimed, nodding with strong approval. “I really like it, my little cousin! You’re a good kid, and you know how to take care of yourself. A young girl—especially if she’s very pretty—can never be too careful about her lips.”

“Indeed, sir,” said Phœbe, trying to laugh the matter off, “I did not mean to be unkind.”

“Of course, sir,” said Phœbe, trying to laugh it off, “I didn't mean to be unkind.”

Nevertheless, whether or no it were entirely owing to the inauspicious commencement of their acquaintance, she still acted under a certain reserve, which was by no means customary to her frank and genial nature. The fantasy would not quit her, that the original Puritan, of whom she had heard so many sombre traditions,—the progenitor of the whole race of New England Pyncheons, the founder of the House of the Seven Gables, and who had died so strangely in it,—had now stept into the shop. In these days of off-hand equipment, the matter was easily enough arranged. On his arrival from the other world, he had merely found it necessary to spend a quarter of an hour at a barber’s, who had trimmed down the Puritan’s full beard into a pair of grizzled whiskers, then, patronizing a ready-made clothing establishment, he had exchanged his velvet doublet and sable cloak, with the richly worked band under his chin, for a white collar and cravat, coat, vest, and pantaloons; and lastly, putting aside his steel-hilted broadsword to take up a gold-headed cane, the Colonel Pyncheon of two centuries ago steps forward as the Judge of the passing moment!

Nevertheless, whether it was entirely because of the unfortunate start to their acquaintance, she still acted with a certain reserve, which was not at all typical of her open and friendly nature. She couldn't shake the idea that the original Puritan, of whom she had heard so many gloomy stories—the ancestor of the entire New England Pyncheon clan, the founder of the House of the Seven Gables, and who had died in such a strange manner within it—had now walked into the shop. In these days of quick fixes, the situation was easily handled. Upon arriving from the afterlife, he simply spent a little time at a barber’s, who trimmed the Puritan's full beard into a pair of grizzled sideburns. Next, he visited a ready-made clothing store, trading his velvet coat and black cloak, along with the elaborately designed collar beneath his chin, for a white collar and cravat, along with a coat, vest, and trousers. Finally, swapping his steel-hilted broadsword for a gold-headed cane, the Colonel Pyncheon of two centuries ago steps forward as the Judge of the present moment!

Of course, Phœbe was far too sensible a girl to entertain this idea in any other way than as matter for a smile. Possibly, also, could the two personages have stood together before her eye, many points of difference would have been perceptible, and perhaps only a general resemblance. The long lapse of intervening years, in a climate so unlike that which had fostered the ancestral Englishman, must inevitably have wrought important changes in the physical system of his descendant. The Judge’s volume of muscle could hardly be the same as the Colonel’s; there was undoubtedly less beef in him. Though looked upon as a weighty man among his contemporaries in respect of animal substance, and as favored with a remarkable degree of fundamental development, well adapting him for the judicial bench, we conceive that the modern Judge Pyncheon, if weighed in the same balance with his ancestor, would have required at least an old-fashioned fifty-six to keep the scale in equilibrio. Then the Judge’s face had lost the ruddy English hue that showed its warmth through all the duskiness of the Colonel’s weather-beaten cheek, and had taken a sallow shade, the established complexion of his countrymen. If we mistake not, moreover, a certain quality of nervousness had become more or less manifest, even in so solid a specimen of Puritan descent as the gentleman now under discussion. As one of its effects, it bestowed on his countenance a quicker mobility than the old Englishman’s had possessed, and keener vivacity, but at the expense of a sturdier something, on which these acute endowments seemed to act like dissolving acids. This process, for aught we know, may belong to the great system of human progress, which, with every ascending footstep, as it diminishes the necessity for animal force, may be destined gradually to spiritualize us, by refining away our grosser attributes of body. If so, Judge Pyncheon could endure a century or two more of such refinement as well as most other men.

Of course, Phœbe was way too sensible to take this idea seriously, only seeing it as something to smile about. If the two figures could have stood in front of her, many differences would have been noticeable, and maybe just a general resemblance. The long stretch of years, in a climate so different from the one that shaped the ancestral Englishman, must have brought significant changes to his descendant’s physical makeup. The Judge’s muscles couldn’t possibly be the same as the Colonel’s; there was definitely less bulk on him. Even though he was seen as a solid man among his peers due to his size and had a remarkable level of foundational development that made him fit for the judicial bench, we believe that modern Judge Pyncheon, if measured against his ancestor, would need at least an old-fashioned fifty-six to keep the scale balanced. The Judge’s face had lost the healthy English tone that shone through the Colonel’s weathered cheek and had taken on a sallow hue, the typical complexion of his fellow countrymen. If we're not mistaken, a certain nervous quality had also become apparent, even in such a solid example of Puritan descent as the gentleman in question. As one of its effects, it gave his face a quicker expressiveness than the old Englishman’s had, along with sharper liveliness, but at the cost of a sturdier quality that these sharp traits seemed to erode like dissolving acids. This process, for all we know, may be part of the broader system of human progress, which, as it advances, reduces the need for physical strength and is destined to gradually refine us by eliminating our coarser bodily attributes. If that's the case, Judge Pyncheon could handle a century or two more of such refinement just as well as most other men.

The similarity, intellectual and moral, between the Judge and his ancestor appears to have been at least as strong as the resemblance of mien and feature would afford reason to anticipate. In old Colonel Pyncheon’s funeral discourse the clergyman absolutely canonized his deceased parishioner, and opening, as it were, a vista through the roof of the church, and thence through the firmament above, showed him seated, harp in hand, among the crowned choristers of the spiritual world. On his tombstone, too, the record is highly eulogistic; nor does history, so far as he holds a place upon its page, assail the consistency and uprightness of his character. So also, as regards the Judge Pyncheon of to-day, neither clergyman, nor legal critic, nor inscriber of tombstones, nor historian of general or local politics, would venture a word against this eminent person’s sincerity as a Christian, or respectability as a man, or integrity as a judge, or courage and faithfulness as the often-tried representative of his political party. But, besides these cold, formal, and empty words of the chisel that inscribes, the voice that speaks, and the pen that writes, for the public eye and for distant time,—and which inevitably lose much of their truth and freedom by the fatal consciousness of so doing,—there were traditions about the ancestor, and private diurnal gossip about the Judge, remarkably accordant in their testimony. It is often instructive to take the woman’s, the private and domestic, view of a public man; nor can anything be more curious than the vast discrepancy between portraits intended for engraving and the pencil-sketches that pass from hand to hand behind the original’s back.

The intellectual and moral similarities between the Judge and his ancestor seem to have been at least as strong as their physical resemblance would suggest. During the old Colonel Pyncheon's funeral, the clergyman basically canonized him, creating a vision that looked through the church roof and into the sky, showing him sitting with a harp among the crowned angels of the afterlife. On his tombstone, the inscription is very flattering; history, as far as it acknowledges him, does not challenge the integrity and virtue of his character. Similarly, regarding today's Judge Pyncheon, neither clergymen, legal analysts, tombstone engravers, nor historians of politics—local or general—would dare to question this prominent man's sincerity as a Christian, his respectability as a person, his integrity as a judge, or his courage and loyalty as a steadfast representative of his political party. However, aside from these cold, formal, and hollow words that are chiseled, spoken, or written for public view and posterity—and which inevitably lose much of their truth and spontaneity because of that awareness—there were stories about the ancestor and private daily gossip about the Judge that aligned remarkably in their accounts. It’s often enlightening to consider the female, private, and domestic perspective on a public figure; nothing is more fascinating than the stark contrast between portraits made for public display and the informal sketches circulated behind the subject's back.

For example: tradition affirmed that the Puritan had been greedy of wealth; the Judge, too, with all the show of liberal expenditure, was said to be as close-fisted as if his gripe were of iron. The ancestor had clothed himself in a grim assumption of kindliness, a rough heartiness of word and manner, which most people took to be the genuine warmth of nature, making its way through the thick and inflexible hide of a manly character. His descendant, in compliance with the requirements of a nicer age, had etherealized this rude benevolence into that broad benignity of smile wherewith he shone like a noonday sun along the streets, or glowed like a household fire in the drawing-rooms of his private acquaintance. The Puritan—if not belied by some singular stories, murmured, even at this day, under the narrator’s breath—had fallen into certain transgressions to which men of his great animal development, whatever their faith or principles, must continue liable, until they put off impurity, along with the gross earthly substance that involves it. We must not stain our page with any contemporary scandal, to a similar purport, that may have been whispered against the Judge. The Puritan, again, an autocrat in his own household, had worn out three wives, and, merely by the remorseless weight and hardness of his character in the conjugal relation, had sent them, one after another, broken-hearted, to their graves. Here the parallel, in some sort, fails. The Judge had wedded but a single wife, and lost her in the third or fourth year of their marriage. There was a fable, however,—for such we choose to consider it, though, not impossibly, typical of Judge Pyncheon’s marital deportment,—that the lady got her death-blow in the honeymoon, and never smiled again, because her husband compelled her to serve him with coffee every morning at his bedside, in token of fealty to her liege-lord and master.

For example, tradition held that the Puritan was greedy for wealth; the Judge, despite appearing to spend generously, was said to be as stingy as if his grip were made of iron. The ancestor presented himself with a stern facade of kindness, a rough warmth in his words and actions, which most people believed to be genuine affection seeping through the tough exterior of a strong character. His descendant, adhering to the expectations of a more refined time, transformed this coarse kindness into the broad, friendly smile with which he lit up the streets like a midday sun, or warmed the drawing rooms of his close friends like a cozy fire. The Puritan—if we can trust some unusual tales softly whispered even now by the narrator—had engaged in certain wrongdoings to which men of his robust nature, regardless of their beliefs or principles, are always vulnerable until they shed their impurity along with the heavy, earthly baggage that comes with it. We won't tarnish our narrative with any modern gossip that may have been murmured about the Judge. The Puritan, after all, a dictator in his own home, had outlived three wives, and through the relentless weight and harshness of his character in marriage, had sent each one, one after the other, heartbroken to her grave. Here, the comparison somewhat falters. The Judge had only married one wife, whom he lost in the third or fourth year of their marriage. However, there was a story—one we consider a fable, though it might reflect Judge Pyncheon's behavior in marriage—that the lady met her end during their honeymoon, never to smile again, because her husband forced her to bring him coffee every morning at his bedside as a sign of loyalty to her lord and master.

But it is too fruitful a subject, this of hereditary resemblances,—the frequent recurrence of which, in a direct line, is truly unaccountable, when we consider how large an accumulation of ancestry lies behind every man at the distance of one or two centuries. We shall only add, therefore, that the Puritan—so, at least, says chimney-corner tradition, which often preserves traits of character with marvellous fidelity—was bold, imperious, relentless, crafty; laying his purposes deep, and following them out with an inveteracy of pursuit that knew neither rest nor conscience; trampling on the weak, and, when essential to his ends, doing his utmost to beat down the strong. Whether the Judge in any degree resembled him, the further progress of our narrative may show.

But the topic of hereditary resemblances is too rich to overlook. The regular occurrence of these traits in a direct line is honestly puzzling, especially when we think about how much ancestry lies behind every person over just a century or two. So, we’ll just add that the Puritan—at least according to chimney-corner tales, which often capture character traits with astonishing accuracy—was bold, commanding, relentless, and cunning; he plotted his goals deeply and pursued them with a tenacity that knew no rest or conscience, trampling on the weak and, when necessary, doing everything he could to overpower the strong. Whether the Judge resembled him at all will be revealed as our story unfolds.

Scarcely any of the items in the above-drawn parallel occurred to Phœbe, whose country birth and residence, in truth, had left her pitifully ignorant of most of the family traditions, which lingered, like cobwebs and incrustations of smoke, about the rooms and chimney-corners of the House of the Seven Gables. Yet there was a circumstance, very trifling in itself, which impressed her with an odd degree of horror. She had heard of the anathema flung by Maule, the executed wizard, against Colonel Pyncheon and his posterity,—that God would give them blood to drink,—and likewise of the popular notion, that this miraculous blood might now and then be heard gurgling in their throats. The latter scandal—as became a person of sense, and, more especially, a member of the Pyncheon family—Phœbe had set down for the absurdity which it unquestionably was. But ancient superstitions, after being steeped in human hearts and embodied in human breath, and passing from lip to ear in manifold repetition, through a series of generations, become imbued with an effect of homely truth. The smoke of the domestic hearth has scented them through and through. By long transmission among household facts, they grow to look like them, and have such a familiar way of making themselves at home that their influence is usually greater than we suspect. Thus it happened, that when Phœbe heard a certain noise in Judge Pyncheon’s throat,—rather habitual with him, not altogether voluntary, yet indicative of nothing, unless it were a slight bronchial complaint, or, as some people hinted, an apoplectic symptom,—when the girl heard this queer and awkward ingurgitation (which the writer never did hear, and therefore cannot describe), she very foolishly started, and clasped her hands.

Hardly any of the things mentioned in the previous comparison came to Phœbe's mind, as her rural upbringing and living situation had left her quite unaware of many of the family traditions that clung to the rooms and corners of the House of the Seven Gables like cobwebs and soot. However, there was one small detail that filled her with an odd kind of dread. She had heard about the curse cast by Maule, the executed wizard, against Colonel Pyncheon and his descendants—that God would make them drink blood—and also about the common belief that this miraculous blood could sometimes be heard gurgling in their throats. Phœbe, being sensible and especially a Pyncheon, dismissed this rumor as the nonsense it clearly was. But old superstitions, after being absorbed in people's hearts and spoken of from one person to another over generations, take on a sense of homey truth. The warmth of the hearth has seasoned them completely. Through long familiarity with household realities, they start to resemble them, and they become so comfortably part of our lives that their impact often exceeds our awareness. Thus, when Phœbe heard a certain noise in Judge Pyncheon’s throat—something he did somewhat regularly, not entirely on purpose, but not meaningful either, unless it was a minor bronchial issue or, as some suggested, an apoplexy symptom—when she heard that strange and awkward sound (which the writer never experienced and therefore can't describe), she stupidly jumped and clasped her hands.

Of course, it was exceedingly ridiculous in Phœbe to be discomposed by such a trifle, and still more unpardonable to show her discomposure to the individual most concerned in it. But the incident chimed in so oddly with her previous fancies about the Colonel and the Judge, that, for the moment, it seemed quite to mingle their identity.

Of course, it was completely absurd for Phœbe to be upset by such a small thing, and even more unacceptable to show her distress to the person most involved. But the situation matched up so strangely with her earlier thoughts about the Colonel and the Judge, that for a moment, it felt like their identities were blending together.

“What is the matter with you, young woman?” said Judge Pyncheon, giving her one of his harsh looks. “Are you afraid of anything?”

“What’s wrong with you, young woman?” said Judge Pyncheon, giving her one of his stern looks. “Are you scared of anything?”

“Oh, nothing, sir—nothing in the world!” answered Phœbe, with a little laugh of vexation at herself. “But perhaps you wish to speak with my cousin Hepzibah. Shall I call her?”

“Oh, nothing, sir—nothing at all!” Phœbe replied, letting out a small laugh out of frustration with herself. “But maybe you want to talk to my cousin Hepzibah. Should I get her?”

“Stay a moment, if you please,” said the Judge, again beaming sunshine out of his face. “You seem to be a little nervous this morning. The town air, Cousin Phœbe, does not agree with your good, wholesome country habits. Or has anything happened to disturb you?—anything remarkable in Cousin Hepzibah’s family?— An arrival, eh? I thought so! No wonder you are out of sorts, my little cousin. To be an inmate with such a guest may well startle an innocent young girl!”

“Hold on a second, if you don’t mind,” said the Judge, once again radiating warmth with his smile. “You look a bit anxious this morning. The city atmosphere, Cousin Phoebe, doesn't suit your healthy country ways. Has something happened to upset you?—something noteworthy in Cousin Hepzibah’s household?—An arrival, right? I figured as much! No wonder you’re feeling off, my little cousin. Having such a guest around can definitely shock an innocent young girl!”

“You quite puzzle me, sir,” replied Phœbe, gazing inquiringly at the Judge. “There is no frightful guest in the house, but only a poor, gentle, childlike man, whom I believe to be Cousin Hepzibah’s brother. I am afraid (but you, sir, will know better than I) that he is not quite in his sound senses; but so mild and quiet he seems to be, that a mother might trust her baby with him; and I think he would play with the baby as if he were only a few years older than itself. He startle me!—Oh, no indeed!”

“You really confuse me, sir,” replied Phœbe, looking curiously at the Judge. “There isn’t a frightening guest in the house, just a poor, gentle, childlike man, who I believe is Cousin Hepzibah’s brother. I'm afraid (though you, sir, would know better than I) that he isn’t completely in his right mind; but he seems so mild and calm that a mother could trust her baby with him; and I think he would play with the baby as if he were just a few years older. Startle me?—Oh, no way!”

“I rejoice to hear so favorable and so ingenuous an account of my cousin Clifford,” said the benevolent Judge. “Many years ago, when we were boys and young men together, I had a great affection for him, and still feel a tender interest in all his concerns. You say, Cousin Phœbe, he appears to be weak minded. Heaven grant him at least enough of intellect to repent of his past sins!”

“I’m glad to hear such a positive and sincere description of my cousin Clifford,” said the kind Judge. “Many years ago, when we were boys and young men together, I cared a lot for him, and I still have a genuine interest in all his matters. You say, Cousin Phœbe, that he seems to be of limited understanding. I hope he has at least enough intellect to regret his past mistakes!”

“Nobody, I fancy,” observed Phœbe, “can have fewer to repent of.”

"Nobody, I think," commented Phoebe, "can have fewer regrets."

“And is it possible, my dear,” rejoined the Judge, with a commiserating look, “that you have never heard of Clifford Pyncheon?—that you know nothing of his history? Well, it is all right; and your mother has shown a very proper regard for the good name of the family with which she connected herself. Believe the best you can of this unfortunate person, and hope the best! It is a rule which Christians should always follow, in their judgments of one another; and especially is it right and wise among near relatives, whose characters have necessarily a degree of mutual dependence. But is Clifford in the parlor? I will just step in and see.”

“And is it possible, my dear,” replied the Judge, with a sympathetic look, “that you’ve never heard of Clifford Pyncheon?—that you don’t know anything about his history? Well, that’s fine; and your mother has shown a very proper consideration for the good name of the family she married into. Believe the best you can about this unfortunate person, and hope for the best! It’s a principle that Christians should always follow in judging one another; and it’s especially important and wise among close relatives, whose reputations are often linked. But is Clifford in the living room? I’ll just head in and check.”

“Perhaps, sir, I had better call my cousin Hepzibah,” said Phœbe; hardly knowing, however, whether she ought to obstruct the entrance of so affectionate a kinsman into the private regions of the house. “Her brother seemed to be just falling asleep after breakfast; and I am sure she would not like him to be disturbed. Pray, sir, let me give her notice!”

“Maybe I should call my cousin Hepzibah,” said Phœbe, not really sure if she should stop such a caring relative from coming into the private areas of the house. “Her brother was just starting to fall asleep after breakfast, and I know she wouldn't want him to be disturbed. Please, let me let her know!”

But the Judge showed a singular determination to enter unannounced; and as Phœbe, with the vivacity of a person whose movements unconsciously answer to her thoughts, had stepped towards the door, he used little or no ceremony in putting her aside.

But the Judge was determined to walk in without warning; and as Phœbe, with the energy of someone whose actions naturally reflect her thoughts, moved toward the door, he hardly hesitated to push her aside.

“No, no, Miss Phœbe!” said Judge Pyncheon in a voice as deep as a thunder-growl, and with a frown as black as the cloud whence it issues. “Stay you here! I know the house, and know my cousin Hepzibah, and know her brother Clifford likewise.—nor need my little country cousin put herself to the trouble of announcing me!”—in these latter words, by the bye, there were symptoms of a change from his sudden harshness into his previous benignity of manner. “I am at home here, Phœbe, you must recollect, and you are the stranger. I will just step in, therefore, and see for myself how Clifford is, and assure him and Hepzibah of my kindly feelings and best wishes. It is right, at this juncture, that they should both hear from my own lips how much I desire to serve them. Ha! here is Hepzibah herself!”

“No, no, Miss Phoebe!” Judge Pyncheon said, his voice deep like a rumble of thunder, and his frown dark as the cloud it came from. “You stay here! I know this house, and I know my cousin Hepzibah, and I know her brother Clifford as well. And my little country cousin doesn’t need to bother announcing me!”—in those last words, there were signs of a shift from his sudden harshness back to his earlier kind demeanor. “I’m at home here, Phoebe, remember that, and you’re the outsider. I’ll just go in and see for myself how Clifford is, and let him and Hepzibah know my kind feelings and best wishes. It’s important at this moment that they hear from me just how much I want to help them. Ah! Here comes Hepzibah herself!”

Such was the case. The vibrations of the Judge’s voice had reached the old gentlewoman in the parlor, where she sat, with face averted, waiting on her brother’s slumber. She now issued forth, as would appear, to defend the entrance, looking, we must needs say, amazingly like the dragon which, in fairy tales, is wont to be the guardian over an enchanted beauty. The habitual scowl of her brow was undeniably too fierce, at this moment, to pass itself off on the innocent score of near-sightedness; and it was bent on Judge Pyncheon in a way that seemed to confound, if not alarm him, so inadequately had he estimated the moral force of a deeply grounded antipathy. She made a repelling gesture with her hand, and stood a perfect picture of prohibition, at full length, in the dark frame of the doorway. But we must betray Hepzibah’s secret, and confess that the native timorousness of her character even now developed itself in a quick tremor, which, to her own perception, set each of her joints at variance with its fellows.

That was the situation. The vibrations of the Judge’s voice had reached the old woman in the parlor, where she was sitting with her face turned away, waiting for her brother to wake up. She now stepped out, looking astonishingly like the dragon that guards an enchanted beauty in fairy tales. The regular scowl on her face was definitely too fierce at that moment to ignore as just near-sightedness, and it was aimed at Judge Pyncheon in a way that seemed to confuse, if not frighten him, since he had miscalculated the deep moral power of her strong dislike. She made a dismissive gesture with her hand and stood as a complete image of prohibition, framed in the dark doorway. But we must reveal Hepzibah’s secret and admit that her natural timidity was showing itself in a quick tremor that, to her own feeling, made each of her joints feel out of sync with the others.

Possibly, the Judge was aware how little true hardihood lay behind Hepzibah’s formidable front. At any rate, being a gentleman of steady nerves, he soon recovered himself, and failed not to approach his cousin with outstretched hand; adopting the sensible precaution, however, to cover his advance with a smile, so broad and sultry, that, had it been only half as warm as it looked, a trellis of grapes might at once have turned purple under its summer-like exposure. It may have been his purpose, indeed, to melt poor Hepzibah on the spot, as if she were a figure of yellow wax.

Possibly, the Judge realized how little real strength there was behind Hepzibah’s intimidating facade. In any case, being a man of steady nerves, he quickly composed himself and approached his cousin with an outstretched hand; he wisely chose to precede his approach with a smile so wide and warm that, if it had been only half as inviting as it appeared, a bunch of grapes might have turned purple in its summer-like glow. It might have been his intention, in fact, to soften poor Hepzibah right there, as if she were a figure made of yellow wax.

“Hepzibah, my beloved cousin, I am rejoiced!” exclaimed the Judge most emphatically. “Now, at length, you have something to live for. Yes, and all of us, let me say, your friends and kindred, have more to live for than we had yesterday. I have lost no time in hastening to offer any assistance in my power towards making Clifford comfortable. He belongs to us all. I know how much he requires,—how much he used to require,—with his delicate taste, and his love of the beautiful. Anything in my house,—pictures, books, wine, luxuries of the table,—he may command them all! It would afford me most heartfelt gratification to see him! Shall I step in, this moment?”

“Hepzibah, my dear cousin, I'm so happy!” exclaimed the Judge emphatically. “Finally, you have something to live for. Yes, and all of us, your friends and family, have more to look forward to than we did yesterday. I didn’t waste any time coming to offer whatever help I can to make Clifford comfortable. He’s part of our family. I know how much he needs—how much he always needed—with his refined tastes and love for beauty. Anything in my home—pictures, books, wine, fancy food—he can have it all! It would bring me immense joy to see him! Should I come in right now?”

“No,” replied Hepzibah, her voice quivering too painfully to allow of many words. “He cannot see visitors!”

“No,” replied Hepzibah, her voice shaking with too much emotion to say more. “He can’t see visitors!”

“A visitor, my dear cousin!—do you call me so?” cried the Judge, whose sensibility, it seems, was hurt by the coldness of the phrase. “Nay, then, let me be Clifford’s host, and your own likewise. Come at once to my house. The country air, and all the conveniences,—I may say luxuries,—that I have gathered about me, will do wonders for him. And you and I, dear Hepzibah, will consult together, and watch together, and labor together, to make our dear Clifford happy. Come! why should we make more words about what is both a duty and a pleasure on my part? Come to me at once!”

“A visitor, my dear cousin!—is that what you call me?” cried the Judge, clearly hurt by the chill in the comment. “Well then, let me be Clifford’s host, and yours too. Come to my house right away. The country air and all the comforts—I might even say luxuries—I have around me will do wonders for him. And you and I, dear Hepzibah, will plan together, watch over him together, and work together to make our dear Clifford happy. Come! Why should we keep talking about what is both my duty and my pleasure? Come to me right away!”

On hearing these so hospitable offers, and such generous recognition of the claims of kindred, Phœbe felt very much in the mood of running up to Judge Pyncheon, and giving him, of her own accord, the kiss from which she had so recently shrunk away. It was quite otherwise with Hepzibah; the Judge’s smile seemed to operate on her acerbity of heart like sunshine upon vinegar, making it ten times sourer than ever.

Upon hearing these warm offers and such generous acknowledgment of family ties, Phœbe felt very inclined to run up to Judge Pyncheon and give him the kiss she had recently shied away from. Hepzibah, however, was different; the Judge's smile seemed to affect her bitterness like sunshine on vinegar, making it even more sour than before.

“Clifford,” said she,—still too agitated to utter more than an abrupt sentence,—“Clifford has a home here!”

“Clifford,” she said, still too upset to say anything more than a quick sentence, “Clifford has a home here!”

“May Heaven forgive you, Hepzibah,” said Judge Pyncheon,—reverently lifting his eyes towards that high court of equity to which he appealed,—“if you suffer any ancient prejudice or animosity to weigh with you in this matter. I stand here with an open heart, willing and anxious to receive yourself and Clifford into it. Do not refuse my good offices,—my earnest propositions for your welfare! They are such, in all respects, as it behooves your nearest kinsman to make. It will be a heavy responsibility, cousin, if you confine your brother to this dismal house and stifled air, when the delightful freedom of my country-seat is at his command.”

“May Heaven forgive you, Hepzibah,” said Judge Pyncheon, reverently lifting his eyes toward that high court of equity to which he appealed, “if you let any old biases or grudges affect your decision in this matter. I’m here with an open heart, ready and eager to welcome both you and Clifford into it. Please don’t turn down my offer to help—my sincere intentions for your well-being! They are exactly what your closest relative should provide. It will be a heavy burden, cousin, if you keep your brother confined in this gloomy house with its stifling air when the lovely freedom of my country estate is available to him.”

“It would never suit Clifford,” said Hepzibah, as briefly as before.

“It wouldn’t be right for Clifford,” Hepzibah said, just as briefly as before.

“Woman!” broke forth the Judge, giving way to his resentment, “what is the meaning of all this? Have you other resources? Nay, I suspected as much! Take care, Hepzibah, take care! Clifford is on the brink of as black a ruin as ever befell him yet! But why do I talk with you, woman as you are? Make way!—I must see Clifford!”

“Woman!” the Judge snapped, unable to contain his anger, “what the hell is going on here? Do you have other options? I thought so! Watch out, Hepzibah, watch out! Clifford is on the edge of a disaster worse than anything he’s faced before! But why am I even talking to you, woman? Step aside! I need to see Clifford!”

Hepzibah spread out her gaunt figure across the door, and seemed really to increase in bulk; looking the more terrible, also, because there was so much terror and agitation in her heart. But Judge Pyncheon’s evident purpose of forcing a passage was interrupted by a voice from the inner room; a weak, tremulous, wailing voice, indicating helpless alarm, with no more energy for self-defence than belongs to a frightened infant.

Hepzibah stretched her thin figure across the doorway, and it seemed like she grew larger; she appeared even more frightening because her heart was filled with so much fear and anxiety. However, Judge Pyncheon’s obvious intention to push through was interrupted by a voice from the inner room—a weak, trembling, wailing voice that expressed helpless panic, offering no more strength for self-defense than a scared child.

“Hepzibah, Hepzibah!” cried the voice; “go down on your knees to him! Kiss his feet! Entreat him not to come in! Oh, let him have mercy on me! Mercy! mercy!”

“Hepzibah, Hepzibah!” cried the voice; “get down on your knees to him! Kiss his feet! Ask him not to come in! Oh, please let him have mercy on me! Mercy! mercy!”

For the instant, it appeared doubtful whether it were not the Judge’s resolute purpose to set Hepzibah aside, and step across the threshold into the parlor, whence issued that broken and miserable murmur of entreaty. It was not pity that restrained him, for, at the first sound of the enfeebled voice, a red fire kindled in his eyes, and he made a quick pace forward, with something inexpressibly fierce and grim darkening forth, as it were, out of the whole man. To know Judge Pyncheon was to see him at that moment. After such a revelation, let him smile with what sultriness he would, he could much sooner turn grapes purple, or pumpkins yellow, than melt the iron-branded impression out of the beholder’s memory. And it rendered his aspect not the less, but more frightful, that it seemed not to express wrath or hatred, but a certain hot fellness of purpose, which annihilated everything but itself.

For a moment, it seemed uncertain whether the Judge was determined to push Hepzibah aside and step into the parlor, from which came that broken and pitiful sound of pleading. It wasn’t compassion that held him back; as soon as he heard that weak voice, a fierce fire ignited in his eyes, and he quickly moved forward, with something inexplicably intense and grim emerging from him. To know Judge Pyncheon was to witness him at that moment. After such a revelation, no matter how sultry his smile might be, he could more easily turn grapes purple or pumpkins yellow than erase that stark impression from anyone’s mind. It made his expression even more terrifying, as it didn't show anger or hatred but rather a certain heated determination that wiped out everything else.

Yet, after all, are we not slandering an excellent and amiable man? Look at the Judge now! He is apparently conscious of having erred, in too energetically pressing his deeds of loving-kindness on persons unable to appreciate them. He will await their better mood, and hold himself as ready to assist them then as at this moment. As he draws back from the door, an all-comprehensive benignity blazes from his visage, indicating that he gathers Hepzibah, little Phœbe, and the invisible Clifford, all three, together with the whole world besides, into his immense heart, and gives them a warm bath in its flood of affection.

Yet, aren't we unfairly criticizing a great and kind man? Look at the Judge now! He seems aware that he has made a mistake by trying too hard to show his acts of kindness to people who can’t appreciate them. He will wait for them to be in a better frame of mind, ready to help them whenever they need it. As he steps back from the door, a warm kindness radiates from his face, showing that he embraces Hepzibah, little Phœbe, and the unseen Clifford, along with the entire world, in his big heart and surrounds them with his outpouring of love.

“You do me great wrong, dear Cousin Hepzibah!” said he, first kindly offering her his hand, and then drawing on his glove preparatory to departure. “Very great wrong! But I forgive it, and will study to make you think better of me. Of course, our poor Clifford being in so unhappy a state of mind, I cannot think of urging an interview at present. But I shall watch over his welfare as if he were my own beloved brother; nor do I at all despair, my dear cousin, of constraining both him and you to acknowledge your injustice. When that shall happen, I desire no other revenge than your acceptance of the best offices in my power to do you.”

“You're doing me a great injustice, dear Cousin Hepzibah!” he said, first kindly offering her his hand, and then putting on his glove as he prepared to leave. “A very great injustice! But I forgive you and will try to make you think better of me. Of course, with our poor Clifford being in such an unhappy state of mind, I can’t suggest a meeting right now. But I will look after his well-being as if he were my own beloved brother; and I have no doubt, my dear cousin, that I will manage to get both him and you to recognize your unfairness. When that happens, I want no other revenge than your acceptance of the best services I can offer you.”

With a bow to Hepzibah, and a degree of paternal benevolence in his parting nod to Phœbe, the Judge left the shop, and went smiling along the street. As is customary with the rich, when they aim at the honors of a republic, he apologized, as it were, to the people, for his wealth, prosperity, and elevated station, by a free and hearty manner towards those who knew him; putting off the more of his dignity in due proportion with the humbleness of the man whom he saluted, and thereby proving a haughty consciousness of his advantages as irrefragably as if he had marched forth preceded by a troop of lackeys to clear the way. On this particular forenoon, so excessive was the warmth of Judge Pyncheon’s kindly aspect, that (such, at least, was the rumor about town) an extra passage of the water-carts was found essential, in order to lay the dust occasioned by so much extra sunshine!

With a nod to Hepzibah and a somewhat paternal farewell to Phœbe, the Judge left the shop and walked down the street with a smile. As is typical for wealthy people who seek the honors of a republic, he seemed to apologize to the public for his wealth, success, and high status by acting friendly and open toward those who recognized him; he lowered his dignity in proportion to the humility of the people he greeted, thereby making it clear he was aware of his advantages, just as if he had been followed by a group of servants to clear the way. On that particular morning, Judge Pyncheon’s warm demeanor was so remarkable that, at least according to local gossip, extra water-carts were needed to settle the dust stirred up by all that extra sunshine!

No sooner had he disappeared than Hepzibah grew deadly white, and, staggering towards Phœbe, let her head fall on the young girl’s shoulder.

No sooner had he vanished than Hepzibah turned pale and, staggering towards Phœbe, let her head rest on the young girl’s shoulder.

“O Phœbe!” murmured she, “that man has been the horror of my life! Shall I never, never have the courage,—will my voice never cease from trembling long enough to let me tell him what he is?”

“O Phoebe!” she whispered, “that man has been the nightmare of my life! Will I never, ever find the courage—will my voice never stop shaking long enough for me to tell him what he really is?”

“Is he so very wicked?” asked Phœbe. “Yet his offers were surely kind!”

“Is he really that bad?” asked Phœbe. “But his offers were definitely nice!”

“Do not speak of them,—he has a heart of iron!” rejoined Hepzibah. “Go, now, and talk to Clifford! Amuse and keep him quiet! It would disturb him wretchedly to see me so agitated as I am. There, go, dear child, and I will try to look after the shop.”

“Don’t talk about them,—he has a heart of stone!” Hepzibah replied. “Now, go and talk to Clifford! Keep him entertained and calm! It would upset him terribly to see me this worked up. There, go on, dear child, and I’ll do my best to manage the shop.”

Phœbe went accordingly, but perplexed herself, meanwhile, with queries as to the purport of the scene which she had just witnessed, and also whether judges, clergymen, and other characters of that eminent stamp and respectability, could really, in any single instance, be otherwise than just and upright men. A doubt of this nature has a most disturbing influence, and, if shown to be a fact, comes with fearful and startling effect on minds of the trim, orderly, and limit-loving class, in which we find our little country-girl. Dispositions more boldly speculative may derive a stern enjoyment from the discovery, since there must be evil in the world, that a high man is as likely to grasp his share of it as a low one. A wider scope of view, and a deeper insight, may see rank, dignity, and station, all proved illusory, so far as regards their claim to human reverence, and yet not feel as if the universe were thereby tumbled headlong into chaos. But Phœbe, in order to keep the universe in its old place, was fain to smother, in some degree, her own intuitions as to Judge Pyncheon’s character. And as for her cousin’s testimony in disparagement of it, she concluded that Hepzibah’s judgment was embittered by one of those family feuds which render hatred the more deadly by the dead and corrupted love that they intermingle with its native poison.

Phoebe went as planned, but she was confused by questions about the meaning of the scene she had just witnessed, and whether judges, clergy, and other respected individuals could truly be just and honorable in every case. Doubts like this can be very unsettling, and if proven true, they have a shocking impact on the minds of neat, orderly people like our little country girl. Bolder thinkers might find a grim pleasure in this revelation, recognizing that since there is evil in the world, a prominent person is just as likely to partake in it as someone of lower status. A broader perspective and deeper understanding might reveal that rank, dignity, and status are all illusions regarding their claims to human respect, yet not feel as if the universe is thrown into chaos because of it. However, to maintain the order of the universe, Phoebe felt she had to suppress her own instincts about Judge Pyncheon’s character. Regarding her cousin’s negative opinions about him, she decided that Hepzibah’s judgment was tainted by one of those family feuds that make hatred more intense by mixing it with the dead and corrupted love that adds to its inherent poison.

IX.
Clifford and Phœbe

Truly was there something high, generous, and noble in the native composition of our poor old Hepzibah! Or else,—and it was quite as probably the case,—she had been enriched by poverty, developed by sorrow, elevated by the strong and solitary affection of her life, and thus endowed with heroism, which never could have characterized her in what are called happier circumstances. Through dreary years Hepzibah had looked forward—for the most part despairingly, never with any confidence of hope, but always with the feeling that it was her brightest possibility—to the very position in which she now found herself. In her own behalf, she had asked nothing of Providence but the opportunity of devoting herself to this brother, whom she had so loved,—so admired for what he was, or might have been,—and to whom she had kept her faith, alone of all the world, wholly, unfalteringly, at every instant, and throughout life. And here, in his late decline, the lost one had come back out of his long and strange misfortune, and was thrown on her sympathy, as it seemed, not merely for the bread of his physical existence, but for everything that should keep him morally alive. She had responded to the call. She had come forward,—our poor, gaunt Hepzibah, in her rusty silks, with her rigid joints, and the sad perversity of her scowl,—ready to do her utmost; and with affection enough, if that were all, to do a hundred times as much! There could be few more tearful sights,—and Heaven forgive us if a smile insist on mingling with our conception of it!—few sights with truer pathos in them, than Hepzibah presented on that first afternoon.

There was something truly high, generous, and noble about our poor old Hepzibah! Or maybe, and this is just as likely, she had gained depth from her poverty, grown through her sorrow, and developed a strong and solitary love throughout her life, giving her a kind of heroism that wouldn’t have shown itself in what people call happier times. For many dreary years, Hepzibah had been looking forward—mainly in despair, never with real hope, but always feeling that it was her brightest possibility—to the very situation she found herself in now. For herself, she had asked nothing from Providence but the chance to care for this brother, whom she had loved so much—who she had admired for who he was, or could have been—and to whom she had remained faithful, alone in the world, steadfastly and completely, at every moment and throughout her life. And now, in his declining years, he had returned from his long and strange misfortune, relying on her compassion not just for his physical survival, but for everything that would keep him spiritually alive. She answered that call. She stepped forward—our poor, thin Hepzibah, in her worn-out silks, with her stiff joints and the sad twist of her frown—ready to do everything she could, and with enough love, if that were all it took, to do a hundred times more! There could be few sights more heartbreaking—Heaven forgive us if a smile tries to mix in with our thinking of it!—few scenes with more genuine pathos than Hepzibah on that first afternoon.

How patiently did she endeavor to wrap Clifford up in her great, warm love, and make it all the world to him, so that he should retain no torturing sense of the coldness and dreariness without! Her little efforts to amuse him! How pitiful, yet magnanimous, they were!

How patiently did she try to wrap Clifford up in her big, warm love and make it everything to him, so he wouldn't feel the coldness and gloom outside! Her little attempts to entertain him! How sad, yet generous, they were!

Remembering his early love of poetry and fiction, she unlocked a bookcase, and took down several books that had been excellent reading in their day. There was a volume of Pope, with the Rape of the Lock in it, and another of the Tatler, and an odd one of Dryden’s Miscellanies, all with tarnished gilding on their covers, and thoughts of tarnished brilliancy inside. They had no success with Clifford. These, and all such writers of society, whose new works glow like the rich texture of a just-woven carpet, must be content to relinquish their charm, for every reader, after an age or two, and could hardly be supposed to retain any portion of it for a mind that had utterly lost its estimate of modes and manners. Hepzibah then took up Rasselas, and began to read of the Happy Valley, with a vague idea that some secret of a contented life had there been elaborated, which might at least serve Clifford and herself for this one day. But the Happy Valley had a cloud over it. Hepzibah troubled her auditor, moreover, by innumerable sins of emphasis, which he seemed to detect, without any reference to the meaning; nor, in fact, did he appear to take much note of the sense of what she read, but evidently felt the tedium of the lecture, without harvesting its profit. His sister’s voice, too, naturally harsh, had, in the course of her sorrowful lifetime, contracted a kind of croak, which, when it once gets into the human throat, is as ineradicable as sin. In both sexes, occasionally, this lifelong croak, accompanying each word of joy or sorrow, is one of the symptoms of a settled melancholy; and wherever it occurs, the whole history of misfortune is conveyed in its slightest accent. The effect is as if the voice had been dyed black; or,—if we must use a more moderate simile,—this miserable croak, running through all the variations of the voice, is like a black silken thread, on which the crystal beads of speech are strung, and whence they take their hue. Such voices have put on mourning for dead hopes; and they ought to die and be buried along with them!

Remembering her early love of poetry and fiction, she unlocked a bookcase and took down several books that had been great reads in their time. There was a volume of Pope, with The Rape of the Lock in it, and another of The Tatler, along with a random one of Dryden’s Miscellanies, all with faded gold on their covers, and thoughts of faded brilliance inside. They had no luck with Clifford. These writers of society, whose new works shine like the rich texture of a freshly woven carpet, must accept that their charm won't last for every reader after a generation or two, and it's hard to believe any part of it could stick with someone who has completely lost appreciation for styles and manners. Hepzibah then picked up Rasselas and started reading about the Happy Valley, with a vague hope that some secret to a contented life was laid out there, which might at least help Clifford and herself for this one day. But the Happy Valley was clouded. Hepzibah troubled her listener with countless misemphasized words, which he seemed to notice, regardless of the meaning; in fact, he didn’t seem to pay much attention to the sense of what she read, but clearly felt the boredom of the lecture without gaining any benefits from it. His sister’s voice, naturally harsh, had developed a sort of croak over the years of her sorrowful life, which, once it settles in the human throat, is as impossible to remove as sin. In both men and women, this persistent croak, accompanying every word of joy or sorrow, often signals a deep sadness; and wherever it appears, the entire story of misfortune is reflected in its slightest tone. The effect is as if the voice were stained black; or—if we need a softer comparison—this unfortunate croak, running through all the nuances of the voice, is like a black silk thread on which the crystal beads of speech are strung, altering their color. Such voices have donned mourning for lost hopes; and they should be allowed to die and be buried along with them!

Discerning that Clifford was not gladdened by her efforts, Hepzibah searched about the house for the means of more exhilarating pastime. At one time, her eyes chanced to rest on Alice Pyncheon’s harpsichord. It was a moment of great peril; for,—despite the traditionary awe that had gathered over this instrument of music, and the dirges which spiritual fingers were said to play on it,—the devoted sister had solemn thoughts of thrumming on its chords for Clifford’s benefit, and accompanying the performance with her voice. Poor Clifford! Poor Hepzibah! Poor harpsichord! All three would have been miserable together. By some good agency,—possibly, by the unrecognized interposition of the long-buried Alice herself,—the threatening calamity was averted.

Realizing that Clifford wasn’t pleased with her efforts, Hepzibah looked around the house for something more exciting to do. At one point, her gaze landed on Alice Pyncheon’s harpsichord. It was a risky moment; because, despite the traditional respect that surrounded this musical instrument and the mournful tunes that were said to be played on it by ghostly hands, the devoted sister seriously considered strumming its strings for Clifford’s sake, and singing along. Poor Clifford! Poor Hepzibah! Poor harpsichord! All three would have been miserable together. Fortunately, through some fortunate twist—perhaps the unacknowledged influence of the long-deceased Alice herself—the impending disaster was avoided.

But the worst of all—the hardest stroke of fate for Hepzibah to endure, and perhaps for Clifford, too was his invincible distaste for her appearance. Her features, never the most agreeable, and now harsh with age and grief, and resentment against the world for his sake; her dress, and especially her turban; the queer and quaint manners, which had unconsciously grown upon her in solitude,—such being the poor gentlewoman’s outward characteristics, it is no great marvel, although the mournfullest of pities, that the instinctive lover of the Beautiful was fain to turn away his eyes. There was no help for it. It would be the latest impulse to die within him. In his last extremity, the expiring breath stealing faintly through Clifford’s lips, he would doubtless press Hepzibah’s hand, in fervent recognition of all her lavished love, and close his eyes,—but not so much to die, as to be constrained to look no longer on her face! Poor Hepzibah! She took counsel with herself what might be done, and thought of putting ribbons on her turban; but, by the instant rush of several guardian angels, was withheld from an experiment that could hardly have proved less than fatal to the beloved object of her anxiety.

But the worst of all—the hardest blow for Hepzibah to bear, and perhaps for Clifford as well—was his unshakable dislike for her appearance. Her features, never very pleasant, were now harsh from age, grief, and resentment towards the world for his sake; her clothes, especially her turban; the odd and quirky mannerisms that had unconsciously developed during her time in solitude—these were the poor woman's outward traits. It's no surprise, though it's painfully tragic, that the instinctive lover of beauty felt the need to look away. There was no remedy for it. It would be the last impulse to fade within him. In his final moments, as his last breaths slipped away, he would likely grasp Hepzibah's hand, deeply acknowledging all her unconditional love, and close his eyes—not so much to die, but because he could no longer bear to look at her face! Poor Hepzibah! She pondered what she could do and considered adding ribbons to her turban; however, she was abruptly stopped by the sudden intervention of several guardian angels, protecting her from an action that could have proved disastrous for the beloved person she worried about.

To be brief, besides Hepzibah’s disadvantages of person, there was an uncouthness pervading all her deeds; a clumsy something, that could but ill adapt itself for use, and not at all for ornament. She was a grief to Clifford, and she knew it. In this extremity, the antiquated virgin turned to Phœbe. No grovelling jealousy was in her heart. Had it pleased Heaven to crown the heroic fidelity of her life by making her personally the medium of Clifford’s happiness, it would have rewarded her for all the past, by a joy with no bright tints, indeed, but deep and true, and worth a thousand gayer ecstasies. This could not be. She therefore turned to Phœbe, and resigned the task into the young girl’s hands. The latter took it up cheerfully, as she did everything, but with no sense of a mission to perform, and succeeding all the better for that same simplicity.

To be brief, aside from Hepzibah’s personal shortcomings, there was an awkwardness in everything she did; a clumsy quality that barely suited practical use and didn’t work at all for decoration. She was a burden to Clifford, and she knew it. In this situation, the old-fashioned woman turned to Phœbe. There was no petty jealousy in her heart. If it had pleased Heaven to reward her lifelong devotion by making her the means of Clifford’s happiness, it would have compensated her for everything she endured, with a joy that, though not flashy, was deep and genuine, worth a thousand brighter thrills. That wasn’t meant to be, so she turned to Phœbe and handed the task over to the young girl. Phœbe accepted it cheerfully, as she did with everything, but without feeling it was a special mission, which allowed her to succeed all the more because of that simplicity.

By the involuntary effect of a genial temperament, Phœbe soon grew to be absolutely essential to the daily comfort, if not the daily life, of her two forlorn companions. The grime and sordidness of the House of the Seven Gables seemed to have vanished since her appearance there; the gnawing tooth of the dry-rot was stayed among the old timbers of its skeleton frame; the dust had ceased to settle down so densely, from the antique ceilings, upon the floors and furniture of the rooms below,—or, at any rate, there was a little housewife, as light-footed as the breeze that sweeps a garden walk, gliding hither and thither to brush it all away. The shadows of gloomy events that haunted the else lonely and desolate apartments; the heavy, breathless scent which death had left in more than one of the bedchambers, ever since his visits of long ago,—these were less powerful than the purifying influence scattered throughout the atmosphere of the household by the presence of one youthful, fresh, and thoroughly wholesome heart. There was no morbidness in Phœbe; if there had been, the old Pyncheon House was the very locality to ripen it into incurable disease. But now her spirit resembled, in its potency, a minute quantity of ottar of rose in one of Hepzibah’s huge, iron-bound trunks, diffusing its fragrance through the various articles of linen and wrought-lace, kerchiefs, caps, stockings, folded dresses, gloves, and whatever else was treasured there. As every article in the great trunk was the sweeter for the rose-scent, so did all the thoughts and emotions of Hepzibah and Clifford, sombre as they might seem, acquire a subtle attribute of happiness from Phœbe’s intermixture with them. Her activity of body, intellect, and heart impelled her continually to perform the ordinary little toils that offered themselves around her, and to think the thought proper for the moment, and to sympathize,—now with the twittering gayety of the robins in the pear-tree, and now to such a depth as she could with Hepzibah’s dark anxiety, or the vague moan of her brother. This facile adaptation was at once the symptom of perfect health and its best preservative.

By the natural effect of her cheerful personality, Phœbe quickly became essential to the daily comfort, if not the daily life, of her two lonely friends. The dirt and gloom of the House of the Seven Gables seemed to disappear since she arrived; the decaying wood was no longer a problem for the old structure; the dust stopped settling so heavily from the antique ceilings onto the floors and furniture below—or at least there was a little housekeeper, as light-footed as the breeze that sweeps along a garden path, moving here and there to clean it all up. The shadows of sad memories that haunted the otherwise empty and desolate rooms; the heavy, suffocating scent that death had left in more than one of the bedrooms since his visits long ago—these were less powerful than the refreshing energy brought into the house by one youthful, vibrant, and completely wholesome heart. Phœbe had no morbid thoughts; if she did, the old Pyncheon House was the perfect place to nurture them into an incurable condition. But now her spirit was like a small amount of rose oil in one of Hepzibah’s large, iron-bound trunks, spreading its fragrance through the various items of linen and lace, handkerchiefs, caps, stockings, folded dresses, gloves, and whatever else was kept there. Just as every item in the trunk smelled sweeter because of the rose oil, so did all the thoughts and feelings of Hepzibah and Clifford, as dark as they might appear, gain a subtle touch of happiness from Phœbe’s presence. Her energy—body, mind, and heart—drived her to constantly take on the ordinary little tasks around her, to think the right thoughts for the moment, and to empathize—with the cheerful chirping of the robins in the pear tree, or as deeply as she could with Hepzibah’s worries or her brother's vague moans. This easy adaptability was both a sign of perfect health and its best protection.

A nature like Phœbe’s has invariably its due influence, but is seldom regarded with due honor. Its spiritual force, however, may be partially estimated by the fact of her having found a place for herself, amid circumstances so stern as those which surrounded the mistress of the house; and also by the effect which she produced on a character of so much more mass than her own. For the gaunt, bony frame and limbs of Hepzibah, as compared with the tiny lightsomeness of Phœbe’s figure, were perhaps in some fit proportion with the moral weight and substance, respectively, of the woman and the girl.

A nature like Phoebe’s always has its own impact, but it’s rarely appreciated properly. However, we can somewhat measure her spiritual strength by the fact that she managed to find her place in such harsh circumstances, especially around the mistress of the house. Her influence is also evident in the effect she had on someone with much more presence than she had. The tall, bony frame of Hepzibah, compared to the small lightness of Phoebe’s figure, reflected the moral weight and substance of the woman versus the girl quite fittingly.

To the guest,—to Hepzibah’s brother,—or Cousin Clifford, as Phœbe now began to call him,—she was especially necessary. Not that he could ever be said to converse with her, or often manifest, in any other very definite mode, his sense of a charm in her society. But if she were a long while absent he became pettish and nervously restless, pacing the room to and fro with the uncertainty that characterized all his movements; or else would sit broodingly in his great chair, resting his head on his hands, and evincing life only by an electric sparkle of ill-humor, whenever Hepzibah endeavored to arouse him. Phœbe’s presence, and the contiguity of her fresh life to his blighted one, was usually all that he required. Indeed, such was the native gush and play of her spirit, that she was seldom perfectly quiet and undemonstrative, any more than a fountain ever ceases to dimple and warble with its flow. She possessed the gift of song, and that, too, so naturally, that you would as little think of inquiring whence she had caught it, or what master had taught her, as of asking the same questions about a bird, in whose small strain of music we recognize the voice of the Creator as distinctly as in the loudest accents of his thunder. So long as Phœbe sang, she might stray at her own will about the house. Clifford was content, whether the sweet, airy homeliness of her tones came down from the upper chambers, or along the passageway from the shop, or was sprinkled through the foliage of the pear-tree, inward from the garden, with the twinkling sunbeams. He would sit quietly, with a gentle pleasure gleaming over his face, brighter now, and now a little dimmer, as the song happened to float near him, or was more remotely heard. It pleased him best, however, when she sat on a low footstool at his knee.

To the guest—Hepzibah’s brother— or Cousin Clifford, as Phoebe had started calling him—she was especially important. Not that he ever really talked to her or often showed any clear appreciation for being around her. But when she was gone for too long, he became irritable and anxious, pacing back and forth with the uncertainty that marked all his movements; or he would sit broodingly in his large chair, resting his head on his hands, only showing signs of life through a flicker of bad temper whenever Hepzibah tried to engage him. Typically, Phœbe’s presence and the closeness of her vibrant life to his worn-down one was all he needed. In fact, she had such a natural energy and liveliness that she was rarely perfectly still or reserved, much like a fountain that never stops rippling and bubbling as it flows. She had a gift for singing, so instinctive that you would hardly think to ask where she had learned it or who had taught her, just as you wouldn't question a bird about its song, in which we hear the voice of the Creator just as clearly as in the loudest thunder. As long as Phœbe sang, she could wander freely around the house. Clifford was content, whether he heard her sweet, light-hearted voice drifting down from the upstairs, along the hallway from the shop, or filtering through the leaves of the pear tree from the garden, with the shimmering sunlight. He would sit quietly, a gentle satisfaction lighting up his face, brighter now and then dimmer as the song came closer or was more distant. He liked it best, however, when she sat on a low footstool by his knee.

It is perhaps remarkable, considering her temperament, that Phœbe oftener chose a strain of pathos than of gayety. But the young and happy are not ill pleased to temper their life with a transparent shadow. The deepest pathos of Phœbe’s voice and song, moreover, came sifted through the golden texture of a cheery spirit, and was somehow so interfused with the quality thence acquired, that one’s heart felt all the lighter for having wept at it. Broad mirth, in the sacred presence of dark misfortune, would have jarred harshly and irreverently with the solemn symphony that rolled its undertone through Hepzibah’s and her brother’s life. Therefore, it was well that Phœbe so often chose sad themes, and not amiss that they ceased to be so sad while she was singing them.

It’s kind of surprising, considering her personality, that Phœbe often picked a tone of sadness instead of cheerfulness. But young, happy people usually like to add a little bit of a clear shadow to their lives. The deepest sadness in Phœbe’s voice and songs, anyway, came through the bright quality of her cheerful spirit, and it was somehow mixed in a way that made you feel lighter for having cried about it. Loud laughter, in the presence of serious misfortune, would have clashed harshly and disrespectfully with the solemn undertones that filled Hepzibah’s and her brother’s lives. So, it was good that Phœbe often chose sad themes, and it wasn’t so bad that those themes became less sad while she was singing them.

Becoming habituated to her companionship, Clifford readily showed how capable of imbibing pleasant tints and gleams of cheerful light from all quarters his nature must originally have been. He grew youthful while she sat by him. A beauty,—not precisely real, even in its utmost manifestation, and which a painter would have watched long to seize and fix upon his canvas, and, after all, in vain,—beauty, nevertheless, that was not a mere dream, would sometimes play upon and illuminate his face. It did more than to illuminate; it transfigured him with an expression that could only be interpreted as the glow of an exquisite and happy spirit. That gray hair, and those furrows,—with their record of infinite sorrow so deeply written across his brow, and so compressed, as with a futile effort to crowd in all the tale, that the whole inscription was made illegible,—these, for the moment, vanished. An eye at once tender and acute might have beheld in the man some shadow of what he was meant to be. Anon, as age came stealing, like a sad twilight, back over his figure, you would have felt tempted to hold an argument with Destiny, and affirm, that either this being should not have been made mortal, or mortal existence should have been tempered to his qualities. There seemed no necessity for his having drawn breath at all; the world never wanted him; but, as he had breathed, it ought always to have been the balmiest of summer air. The same perplexity will invariably haunt us with regard to natures that tend to feed exclusively upon the Beautiful, let their earthly fate be as lenient as it may.

Getting used to her company, Clifford easily showed just how capable he was of soaking up the warm colors and bright lights coming from all around him. He seemed to grow younger while she was by his side. A beauty—not exactly real, even at its peak, and something a painter would have needed to study for a long time to capture, likely in vain—but a beauty that was not just an illusion would sometimes light up his face. It did more than brighten him; it transformed him with an expression that could only be read as the glow of a beautiful and happy spirit. That gray hair and those lines on his face—marking the deep sorrow written across his brow, as if he was trying in vain to fit all his stories into a small space, making the whole message unreadable—these faded away for a moment. A keen and loving eye could have seen a hint of what he was meant to become. Then, as age crept back in like a sad twilight, you might have felt like debating with Fate, insisting that either this person shouldn’t have been made mortal or that mortal life should have been adjusted to suit his nature. There seemed to be no reason for him to have existed at all; the world never needed him. But since he did exist, it should always have been the most comforting of summer days. The same confusion will always follow us concerning those whose spirits thrive only on beauty, no matter how gentle their earthly experiences might be.

Phœbe, it is probable, had but a very imperfect comprehension of the character over which she had thrown so beneficent a spell. Nor was it necessary. The fire upon the hearth can gladden a whole semicircle of faces round about it, but need not know the individuality of one among them all. Indeed, there was something too fine and delicate in Clifford’s traits to be perfectly appreciated by one whose sphere lay so much in the Actual as Phœbe’s did. For Clifford, however, the reality, and simplicity, and thorough homeliness of the girl’s nature were as powerful a charm as any that she possessed. Beauty, it is true, and beauty almost perfect in its own style, was indispensable. Had Phœbe been coarse in feature, shaped clumsily, of a harsh voice, and uncouthly mannered, she might have been rich with all good gifts, beneath this unfortunate exterior, and still, so long as she wore the guise of woman, she would have shocked Clifford, and depressed him by her lack of beauty. But nothing more beautiful—nothing prettier, at least—was ever made than Phœbe. And, therefore, to this man,—whose whole poor and impalpable enjoyment of existence heretofore, and until both his heart and fancy died within him, had been a dream,—whose images of women had more and more lost their warmth and substance, and been frozen, like the pictures of secluded artists, into the chillest ideality,—to him, this little figure of the cheeriest household life was just what he required to bring him back into the breathing world. Persons who have wandered, or been expelled, out of the common track of things, even were it for a better system, desire nothing so much as to be led back. They shiver in their loneliness, be it on a mountain-top or in a dungeon. Now, Phœbe’s presence made a home about her,—that very sphere which the outcast, the prisoner, the potentate,—the wretch beneath mankind, the wretch aside from it, or the wretch above it,—instinctively pines after,—a home! She was real! Holding her hand, you felt something; a tender something; a substance, and a warm one: and so long as you should feel its grasp, soft as it was, you might be certain that your place was good in the whole sympathetic chain of human nature. The world was no longer a delusion.

Phoebe probably had a very limited understanding of the character she had cast such a positive influence over. But that wasn't necessary. The fire on the hearth can brighten the faces of everyone around it, but it doesn’t need to know who each person is. In fact, there was something too refined and delicate in Clifford’s nature for someone like Phoebe, whose focus was mostly on the tangible and practical, to fully appreciate. For Clifford, however, the genuine simplicity and down-to-earth nature of the girl was just as captivating as any charm she possessed. It’s true, beauty—particularly beauty that is almost perfect in its own way—was essential. If Phoebe had been coarse-featured, awkwardly shaped, with a harsh voice and clumsy manners, she might have been full of wonderful qualities beneath that unfortunate exterior, yet, as long as she looked like a woman, she would have repulsed Clifford and brought him down with her lack of beauty. But nothing more beautiful—nothing at least prettier—was ever created than Phoebe. And so, to this man—whose entire meager and intangible enjoyment of life had previously, until both his heart and imagination faded, been a dream—whose ideas of women had gradually lost their warmth and substance, becoming frozen like the works of isolated artists into the coldest ideal, this little figure of cheerful domestic life was exactly what he needed to reconnect with the real world. People who have strayed or been forced away from the usual path, even for something better, long to be led back. They feel cold in their solitude, whether it’s on a mountaintop or in a dungeon. Phoebe’s presence created a sense of home around her—that very space which the outcast, the prisoner, the ruler, the wretch beneath humanity, the wretch apart from it, or the wretch above it, instinctively yearns for—a home! She was real! Holding her hand, you could feel something; a gentle something, a tangible and warm substance: as long as you felt its soft grip, you could be sure that your place was secure in the entire sympathetic chain of human existence. The world was no longer an illusion.

By looking a little further in this direction, we might suggest an explanation of an often-suggested mystery. Why are poets so apt to choose their mates, not for any similarity of poetic endowment, but for qualities which might make the happiness of the rudest handicraftsman as well as that of the ideal craftsman of the spirit? Because, probably, at his highest elevation, the poet needs no human intercourse; but he finds it dreary to descend, and be a stranger.

By looking a bit deeper into this, we might offer an explanation for a frequently mentioned mystery. Why do poets often choose partners not based on any poetic talent, but on traits that could bring happiness to both a basic laborer and a master of art? Probably because, at their greatest heights, poets don't need human connection; yet they find it dull to come down and feel out of place.

There was something very beautiful in the relation that grew up between this pair, so closely and constantly linked together, yet with such a waste of gloomy and mysterious years from his birthday to hers. On Clifford’s part it was the feeling of a man naturally endowed with the liveliest sensibility to feminine influence, but who had never quaffed the cup of passionate love, and knew that it was now too late. He knew it, with the instinctive delicacy that had survived his intellectual decay. Thus, his sentiment for Phœbe, without being paternal, was not less chaste than if she had been his daughter. He was a man, it is true, and recognized her as a woman. She was his only representative of womankind. He took unfailing note of every charm that appertained to her sex, and saw the ripeness of her lips, and the virginal development of her bosom. All her little womanly ways, budding out of her like blossoms on a young fruit-tree, had their effect on him, and sometimes caused his very heart to tingle with the keenest thrills of pleasure. At such moments,—for the effect was seldom more than momentary,—the half-torpid man would be full of harmonious life, just as a long-silent harp is full of sound, when the musician’s fingers sweep across it. But, after all, it seemed rather a perception, or a sympathy, than a sentiment belonging to himself as an individual. He read Phœbe as he would a sweet and simple story; he listened to her as if she were a verse of household poetry, which God, in requital of his bleak and dismal lot, had permitted some angel, that most pitied him, to warble through the house. She was not an actual fact for him, but the interpretation of all that he lacked on earth brought warmly home to his conception; so that this mere symbol, or life-like picture, had almost the comfort of reality.

There was something really beautiful in the bond that developed between this pair, who were so closely and constantly connected, yet had experienced such a waste of gloomy and mysterious years from his birthday to hers. For Clifford, it was the feeling of a man who was naturally sensitive to feminine influence but had never experienced passionate love, knowing that it was now too late. He realized it, with the instinctive delicacy that had survived his intellectual decline. Thus, his feelings for Phœbe, while not paternal, were just as innocent as if she were his daughter. He was a man, indeed, and acknowledged her as a woman. She was his only link to femininity. He took careful note of every aspect of her womanhood, noticing the fullness of her lips and the youthful development of her chest. Her little feminine habits, blossoming like flowers on a young fruit tree, affected him and sometimes made his heart tingle with the sharpest joy. In those moments—though they were rarely long-lasting—the half-dormant man would be alive with harmony, like a long-silent harp filled with sound when the musician's fingers glide across it. But ultimately, it felt more like a perception or a connection rather than a feeling that truly belonged to him as an individual. He understood Phœbe as if she were a sweet and simple story; he listened to her as if she were a verse of comforting poetry, which God, in compensation for his bleak and dismal life, had allowed some angel, who felt sorry for him, to sing through the house. She wasn’t a tangible reality for him but the embodiment of everything he lacked in life brought warmly into his mind; thus, this mere symbol, or lifelike image, almost had the comfort of reality.

But we strive in vain to put the idea into words. No adequate expression of the beauty and profound pathos with which it impresses us is attainable. This being, made only for happiness, and heretofore so miserably failing to be happy,—his tendencies so hideously thwarted, that, some unknown time ago, the delicate springs of his character, never morally or intellectually strong, had given way, and he was now imbecile,—this poor, forlorn voyager from the Islands of the Blest, in a frail bark, on a tempestuous sea, had been flung, by the last mountain-wave of his shipwreck, into a quiet harbor. There, as he lay more than half lifeless on the strand, the fragrance of an earthly rose-bud had come to his nostrils, and, as odors will, had summoned up reminiscences or visions of all the living and breathing beauty amid which he should have had his home. With his native susceptibility of happy influences, he inhales the slight, ethereal rapture into his soul, and expires!

But we struggle in vain to express the idea in words. There’s no way to adequately convey the beauty and deep emotion it stirs in us. This being, created solely for happiness, has so far failed miserably to find it—his inclinations so brutally hindered that, some unknown time ago, the delicate parts of his character, never morally or intellectually strong, broke down, leaving him imbecilic. This poor, helpless traveler from the Islands of the Blessed, in a fragile boat on a stormy sea, had been thrown, by the final crashing wave of his shipwreck, into a calm harbor. There, as he lay more than half-alive on the shore, the scent of an earthly rosebud reached his nostrils and, as scents often do, brought back memories or visions of all the living, breathing beauty that should have been his home. With his natural sensitivity to joyful influences, he breathes in the faint, ethereal ecstasy into his soul, and then he dies!

And how did Phœbe regard Clifford? The girl’s was not one of those natures which are most attracted by what is strange and exceptional in human character. The path which would best have suited her was the well-worn track of ordinary life; the companions in whom she would most have delighted were such as one encounters at every turn. The mystery which enveloped Clifford, so far as it affected her at all, was an annoyance, rather than the piquant charm which many women might have found in it. Still, her native kindliness was brought strongly into play, not by what was darkly picturesque in his situation, nor so much, even, by the finer graces of his character, as by the simple appeal of a heart so forlorn as his to one so full of genuine sympathy as hers. She gave him an affectionate regard, because he needed so much love, and seemed to have received so little. With a ready tact, the result of ever-active and wholesome sensibility, she discerned what was good for him, and did it. Whatever was morbid in his mind and experience she ignored; and thereby kept their intercourse healthy, by the incautious, but, as it were, heaven-directed freedom of her whole conduct. The sick in mind, and, perhaps, in body, are rendered more darkly and hopelessly so by the manifold reflection of their disease, mirrored back from all quarters in the deportment of those about them; they are compelled to inhale the poison of their own breath, in infinite repetition. But Phœbe afforded her poor patient a supply of purer air. She impregnated it, too, not with a wild-flower scent,—for wildness was no trait of hers,—but with the perfume of garden-roses, pinks, and other blossoms of much sweetness, which nature and man have consented together in making grow from summer to summer, and from century to century. Such a flower was Phœbe in her relation with Clifford, and such the delight that he inhaled from her.

And how did Phoebe see Clifford? She wasn't the type who was drawn to what’s strange or exceptional in people. She would have preferred the familiar path of ordinary life, enjoying the company of those she could easily meet in everyday situations. The mystery surrounding Clifford annoyed her rather than intrigued her, unlike how many women might have felt. However, her natural kindness was stirred not by the dramatic aspects of his situation or even by the finer qualities of his character, but by the simple fact that his lonely heart appealed to her genuine sympathy. She cared for him affectionately because he needed love so much and seemed to have received so little of it. With an instinctive understanding born from her lively and healthy sensitivity, she recognized what was good for him and acted on it. She overlooked whatever was dark in his mind and experiences, which kept their interactions positive, thanks to her candid and, it seemed, fate-directed behavior. People who are mentally—and possibly physically—ill become more deeply troubled by the constant reflection of their issues from those around them; they are forced to breathe in the poison of their own distress repeatedly. But Phoebe provided her troubled friend with a breath of fresh air. She didn't fill it with the scent of wildflowers—wildness wasn’t part of her nature—but with the fragrance of garden roses, pinks, and other sweet blooms that both nature and people have nurtured to grow from season to season and century to century. In her relationship with Clifford, Phoebe was that kind of flower, and he found joy in her presence.

Yet, it must be said, her petals sometimes drooped a little, in consequence of the heavy atmosphere about her. She grew more thoughtful than heretofore. Looking aside at Clifford’s face, and seeing the dim, unsatisfactory elegance and the intellect almost quenched, she would try to inquire what had been his life. Was he always thus? Had this veil been over him from his birth?—this veil, under which far more of his spirit was hidden than revealed, and through which he so imperfectly discerned the actual world,—or was its gray texture woven of some dark calamity? Phœbe loved no riddles, and would have been glad to escape the perplexity of this one. Nevertheless, there was so far a good result of her meditations on Clifford’s character, that, when her involuntary conjectures, together with the tendency of every strange circumstance to tell its own story, had gradually taught her the fact, it had no terrible effect upon her. Let the world have done him what vast wrong it might, she knew Cousin Clifford too well—or fancied so—ever to shudder at the touch of his thin, delicate fingers.

Yet, it should be noted, her petals sometimes drooped a bit due to the heavy atmosphere around her. She became more thoughtful than before. Glancing at Clifford’s face and seeing the dim, unsatisfactory elegance and the intellect nearly extinguished, she would try to ask about his life. Had he always been like this? Had this veil been over him since he was born?—this veil under which much more of his spirit was hidden than revealed, and through which he perceived the actual world so imperfectly,—or was its gray texture woven from some dark calamity? Phœbe didn’t love riddles and would have been happy to avoid this confusion. Still, there was a positive outcome of her reflections on Clifford’s character; as her involuntary guesses, along with the tendency of every strange circumstance to tell its own story, gradually revealed the truth to her, it didn’t have a terrible impact on her. No matter what vast wrong the world may have done to him, she knew Cousin Clifford too well—or believed she did—to ever recoil at the touch of his thin, delicate fingers.

Within a few days after the appearance of this remarkable inmate, the routine of life had established itself with a good deal of uniformity in the old house of our narrative. In the morning, very shortly after breakfast, it was Clifford’s custom to fall asleep in his chair; nor, unless accidentally disturbed, would he emerge from a dense cloud of slumber or the thinner mists that flitted to and fro, until well towards noonday. These hours of drowsihead were the season of the old gentlewoman’s attendance on her brother, while Phœbe took charge of the shop; an arrangement which the public speedily understood, and evinced their decided preference of the younger shopwoman by the multiplicity of their calls during her administration of affairs. Dinner over, Hepzibah took her knitting-work,—a long stocking of gray yarn, for her brother’s winter wear,—and with a sigh, and a scowl of affectionate farewell to Clifford, and a gesture enjoining watchfulness on Phœbe, went to take her seat behind the counter. It was now the young girl’s turn to be the nurse,—the guardian, the playmate,—or whatever is the fitter phrase,—of the gray-haired man.

Within a few days of this remarkable inmate's arrival, life in the old house of our story settled into a pretty uniform routine. In the morning, shortly after breakfast, Clifford usually fell asleep in his chair, and unless he was accidentally disturbed, he wouldn’t wake from a deep slumber or the lighter dozes that floated in and out until well into the afternoon. During these drowsy hours, the old woman tended to her brother while Phœbe managed the shop; a setup that the public quickly caught on to, showing a clear preference for the younger shopkeeper by frequenting the store more when she was in charge. After dinner, Hepzibah would grab her knitting—a long gray sock for her brother’s winter wear—and with a sigh and a fond scowl as a farewell to Clifford, along with a gesture urging Phœbe to be watchful, she would take her place behind the counter. It was now the young girl's turn to be the caretaker—the guardian, the playmate—or whatever phrase fits best—for the gray-haired man.

X.
The Pyncheon Garden

Clifford, except for Phœbe’s more active instigation would ordinarily have yielded to the torpor which had crept through all his modes of being, and which sluggishly counselled him to sit in his morning chair till eventide. But the girl seldom failed to propose a removal to the garden, where Uncle Venner and the daguerreotypist had made such repairs on the roof of the ruinous arbor, or summer-house, that it was now a sufficient shelter from sunshine and casual showers. The hop-vine, too, had begun to grow luxuriantly over the sides of the little edifice, and made an interior of verdant seclusion, with innumerable peeps and glimpses into the wider solitude of the garden.

Clifford, if it weren't for Phœbe's more enthusiastic push, would have typically given in to the lethargy that had taken over every part of him, lazily advising him to stay in his morning chair until evening. However, the girl almost always suggested moving to the garden, where Uncle Venner and the daguerreotypist had completed repairs on the roof of the dilapidated arbor, or summer house, providing decent protection from both the sun and random rain showers. The hop vine had also started to grow richly over the sides of the small structure, creating a lush, private interior with countless views and glimpses into the larger solitude of the garden.

Here, sometimes, in this green play-place of flickering light, Phœbe read to Clifford. Her acquaintance, the artist, who appeared to have a literary turn, had supplied her with works of fiction, in pamphlet form,—and a few volumes of poetry, in altogether a different style and taste from those which Hepzibah selected for his amusement. Small thanks were due to the books, however, if the girl’s readings were in any degree more successful than her elderly cousin’s. Phœbe’s voice had always a pretty music in it, and could either enliven Clifford by its sparkle and gayety of tone, or soothe him by a continued flow of pebbly and brook-like cadences. But the fictions—in which the country-girl, unused to works of that nature, often became deeply absorbed—interested her strange auditor very little, or not at all. Pictures of life, scenes of passion or sentiment, wit, humor, and pathos, were all thrown away, or worse than thrown away, on Clifford; either because he lacked an experience by which to test their truth, or because his own griefs were a touch-stone of reality that few feigned emotions could withstand. When Phœbe broke into a peal of merry laughter at what she read, he would now and then laugh for sympathy, but oftener respond with a troubled, questioning look. If a tear—a maiden’s sunshiny tear over imaginary woe—dropped upon some melancholy page, Clifford either took it as a token of actual calamity, or else grew peevish, and angrily motioned her to close the volume. And wisely too! Is not the world sad enough, in genuine earnest, without making a pastime of mock sorrows?

Here, sometimes, in this green playground of flickering light, Phœbe read to Clifford. Her friend, the artist, who seemed to have a knack for literature, had given her works of fiction in pamphlet form—and a few poetry volumes, in a style and taste completely different from what Hepzibah chose for his entertainment. The books didn’t really matter, though, if the girl’s readings were any more successful than her older cousin’s. Phœbe’s voice always had a pleasant melody to it, and could either lift Clifford's spirits with its sparkle and cheerful tone or calm him with its smooth, flowing cadence like a gentle stream. But the stories—in which the country girl, unfamiliar with such works, often became deeply engrossed—barely interested her unusual listener. Images of life, scenes of passion or sentiment, wit, humor, and pathos were all lost on Clifford, either because he didn’t have the experience to judge their truth or because his own heartbreaks were a benchmark of reality that few fake emotions could withstand. When Phœbe burst into joyful laughter at something she read, he would occasionally laugh in sympathy but more often responded with a worried, questioning look. If a tear—a bright, sunny tear over made-up sorrow—fell onto some sad page, Clifford either saw it as a sign of real trouble or became irritable, gesturing for her to close the book. And rightly so! Isn’t the world sad enough in real life without turning fake sorrows into entertainment?

With poetry it was rather better. He delighted in the swell and subsidence of the rhythm, and the happily recurring rhyme. Nor was Clifford incapable of feeling the sentiment of poetry,—not, perhaps, where it was highest or deepest, but where it was most flitting and ethereal. It was impossible to foretell in what exquisite verse the awakening spell might lurk; but, on raising her eyes from the page to Clifford’s face, Phœbe would be made aware, by the light breaking through it, that a more delicate intelligence than her own had caught a lambent flame from what she read. One glow of this kind, however, was often the precursor of gloom for many hours afterward; because, when the glow left him, he seemed conscious of a missing sense and power, and groped about for them, as if a blind man should go seeking his lost eyesight.

With poetry, it was somewhat better. He loved the rise and fall of the rhythm and the happily repeating rhyme. Clifford was not incapable of feeling the emotion in poetry—maybe not at its highest or deepest points, but where it was light and airy. It was impossible to predict in what beautiful verse the awakening spell might be hidden; however, when Phœbe looked up from the page to Clifford’s face, the light shining through it made her realize that a more delicate understanding than her own had caught a flickering flame from what she was reading. Yet, one glow of this kind often led to hours of gloom afterward because, when the glow faded, he seemed aware of a missing sense and power and fumbled around for them, as if a blind man were searching for his lost sight.

It pleased him more, and was better for his inward welfare, that Phœbe should talk, and make passing occurrences vivid to his mind by her accompanying description and remarks. The life of the garden offered topics enough for such discourse as suited Clifford best. He never failed to inquire what flowers had bloomed since yesterday. His feeling for flowers was very exquisite, and seemed not so much a taste as an emotion; he was fond of sitting with one in his hand, intently observing it, and looking from its petals into Phœbe’s face, as if the garden flower were the sister of the household maiden. Not merely was there a delight in the flower’s perfume, or pleasure in its beautiful form, and the delicacy or brightness of its hue; but Clifford’s enjoyment was accompanied with a perception of life, character, and individuality, that made him love these blossoms of the garden, as if they were endowed with sentiment and intelligence. This affection and sympathy for flowers is almost exclusively a woman’s trait. Men, if endowed with it by nature, soon lose, forget, and learn to despise it, in their contact with coarser things than flowers. Clifford, too, had long forgotten it; but found it again now, as he slowly revived from the chill torpor of his life.

He enjoyed it more, and it was better for his well-being, that Phœbe should talk and bring passing events to life for him with her descriptions and comments. The garden's life provided plenty of topics for conversation that suited Clifford perfectly. He always asked what flowers had bloomed since the day before. His appreciation for flowers was very deep, almost more of a feeling than a preference; he loved to sit with one in his hand, closely observing it, and looking from its petals to Phœbe’s face, as if the garden flower were a sister to the household girl. It wasn't just the pleasure of the flower's scent or its beautiful shape and the delicacy or brightness of its color that brought him joy; Clifford’s enjoyment included a sense of life, character, and individuality that made him love these garden blossoms as if they had feelings and awareness. This affection and connection to flowers is almost exclusively a woman's quality. Men, if they have this inclination naturally, soon forget it and learn to disdain it when faced with tougher realities than flowers. Clifford, too, had long forgotten it, but now he was rediscovering it as he slowly emerged from the emotional numbness of his life.

It is wonderful how many pleasant incidents continually came to pass in that secluded garden-spot when once Phœbe had set herself to look for them. She had seen or heard a bee there, on the first day of her acquaintance with the place. And often,—almost continually, indeed,—since then, the bees kept coming thither, Heaven knows why, or by what pertinacious desire, for far-fetched sweets, when, no doubt, there were broad clover-fields, and all kinds of garden growth, much nearer home than this. Thither the bees came, however, and plunged into the squash-blossoms, as if there were no other squash-vines within a long day’s flight, or as if the soil of Hepzibah’s garden gave its productions just the very quality which these laborious little wizards wanted, in order to impart the Hymettus odor to their whole hive of New England honey. When Clifford heard their sunny, buzzing murmur, in the heart of the great yellow blossoms, he looked about him with a joyful sense of warmth, and blue sky, and green grass, and of God’s free air in the whole height from earth to heaven. After all, there need be no question why the bees came to that one green nook in the dusty town. God sent them thither to gladden our poor Clifford. They brought the rich summer with them, in requital of a little honey.

It’s amazing how many nice moments kept happening in that quiet garden once Phœbe decided to look for them. On her first day discovering the place, she saw or heard a bee there. Since then, almost constantly, bees kept showing up, for reasons unknown. Surely, there were plenty of clover fields and various garden plants much closer to home. Yet, the bees came and dived into the squash blossoms, as if there were no other squash vines for miles, or as if Hepzibah’s garden produced something special that these hardworking little creatures needed to give their hive in New England that sweet, distinct flavor. When Clifford heard their lively buzzing in the big yellow flowers, he looked around with a joyful feeling of warmth, blue skies, green grass, and the fresh air of God filling the space from earth to heaven. After all, there’s no doubt why the bees came to that little green spot in the dusty town. God sent them there to bring joy to our dear Clifford. They brought the rich summer with them, in exchange for a bit of honey.

When the bean-vines began to flower on the poles, there was one particular variety which bore a vivid scarlet blossom. The daguerreotypist had found these beans in a garret, over one of the seven gables, treasured up in an old chest of drawers by some horticultural Pyncheon of days gone by, who doubtless meant to sow them the next summer, but was himself first sown in Death’s garden-ground. By way of testing whether there were still a living germ in such ancient seeds, Holgrave had planted some of them; and the result of his experiment was a splendid row of bean-vines, clambering, early, to the full height of the poles, and arraying them, from top to bottom, in a spiral profusion of red blossoms. And, ever since the unfolding of the first bud, a multitude of humming-birds had been attracted thither. At times, it seemed as if for every one of the hundred blossoms there was one of these tiniest fowls of the air,—a thumb’s bigness of burnished plumage, hovering and vibrating about the bean-poles. It was with indescribable interest, and even more than childish delight, that Clifford watched the humming-birds. He used to thrust his head softly out of the arbor to see them the better; all the while, too, motioning Phœbe to be quiet, and snatching glimpses of the smile upon her face, so as to heap his enjoyment up the higher with her sympathy. He had not merely grown young;—he was a child again.

When the bean vines started to blossom on the poles, there was one specific type that had bright red flowers. The daguerreotypist had discovered these beans in an attic, above one of the seven gables, saved in an old dresser by some horticultural Pyncheon from days gone by, who likely intended to plant them the following summer but ended up being buried in Death’s garden instead. To see if there was still a viable seed in such ancient stock, Holgrave decided to plant some, and his experiment resulted in a beautiful row of bean vines climbing rapidly to the top of the poles, draping them from top to bottom with a spiral of red flowers. Ever since the first bud opened, a flock of hummingbirds had been drawn to the area. It often looked like there was one of these tiny birds for every one of the hundred flowers, each about the size of a thumb, with shiny feathers, hovering and flitting around the bean poles. Clifford watched the hummingbirds with indescribable interest and even more than childlike joy. He would gently poke his head out of the arbor to see them better, while also motioning for Phœbe to be quiet, stealing glances at the smile on her face to heighten his enjoyment with her shared happiness. He hadn’t just become youthful; he was a child again.

Hepzibah, whenever she happened to witness one of these fits of miniature enthusiasm, would shake her head, with a strange mingling of the mother and sister, and of pleasure and sadness, in her aspect. She said that it had always been thus with Clifford when the humming-birds came,—always, from his babyhood,—and that his delight in them had been one of the earliest tokens by which he showed his love for beautiful things. And it was a wonderful coincidence, the good lady thought, that the artist should have planted these scarlet-flowering beans—which the humming-birds sought far and wide, and which had not grown in the Pyncheon garden before for forty years—on the very summer of Clifford’s return.

Hepzibah, whenever she caught sight of one of these bursts of excitement, would shake her head, showing a unique mix of motherly and sisterly feelings, along with pleasure and sadness. She mentioned that Clifford had always reacted this way when the hummingbirds showed up—since he was a baby—and that his joy in them was one of the first signs of his love for beautiful things. The good lady thought it was a remarkable coincidence that the artist had planted these scarlet-flowering beans—which the hummingbirds sought from far and wide and which hadn’t grown in the Pyncheon garden for forty years—during the very summer of Clifford’s return.

Then would the tears stand in poor Hepzibah’s eyes, or overflow them with a too abundant gush, so that she was fain to betake herself into some corner, lest Clifford should espy her agitation. Indeed, all the enjoyments of this period were provocative of tears. Coming so late as it did, it was a kind of Indian summer, with a mist in its balmiest sunshine, and decay and death in its gaudiest delight. The more Clifford seemed to taste the happiness of a child, the sadder was the difference to be recognized. With a mysterious and terrible Past, which had annihilated his memory, and a blank Future before him, he had only this visionary and impalpable Now, which, if you once look closely at it, is nothing. He himself, as was perceptible by many symptoms, lay darkly behind his pleasure, and knew it to be a baby-play, which he was to toy and trifle with, instead of thoroughly believing. Clifford saw, it may be, in the mirror of his deeper consciousness, that he was an example and representative of that great class of people whom an inexplicable Providence is continually putting at cross-purposes with the world: breaking what seems its own promise in their nature; withholding their proper food, and setting poison before them for a banquet; and thus—when it might so easily, as one would think, have been adjusted otherwise—making their existence a strangeness, a solitude, and torment. All his life long, he had been learning how to be wretched, as one learns a foreign tongue; and now, with the lesson thoroughly by heart, he could with difficulty comprehend his little airy happiness. Frequently there was a dim shadow of doubt in his eyes. “Take my hand, Phœbe,” he would say, “and pinch it hard with your little fingers! Give me a rose, that I may press its thorns, and prove myself awake by the sharp touch of pain!” Evidently, he desired this prick of a trifling anguish, in order to assure himself, by that quality which he best knew to be real, that the garden, and the seven weather-beaten gables, and Hepzibah’s scowl, and Phœbe’s smile, were real likewise. Without this signet in his flesh, he could have attributed no more substance to them than to the empty confusion of imaginary scenes with which he had fed his spirit, until even that poor sustenance was exhausted.

Then tears would well up in poor Hepzibah’s eyes, or overflow them in a rush, making her retreat to a corner so Clifford wouldn’t notice her distress. In fact, all the joys of this time brought tears. Arriving as it did, it felt like an Indian summer, with a fog hanging in its warm sunlight, and decay and death lurking in its brightest pleasure. The more Clifford seemed to experience the joy of a child, the more sorrowful the contrast became. With a mysterious and terrible past that had wiped his memory clean, and an uncertain future ahead of him, he had only this fleeting and flimsy present, which, if you look closely at it, is nothing. He himself, as shown by many signs, lay hidden behind his happiness, aware it was just a child's plaything, something to toy with rather than genuinely believe in. Clifford realized, perhaps in the depths of his mind, that he represented a large group of people that some inexplicable fate continually sets against the world: breaking what seems to be its own promise in their nature; withholding what they truly need while offering them harmful distractions instead; and thus—when it could have been so easily resolved otherwise—making their lives feel strange, isolated, and tormenting. Throughout his life, he had been learning how to be miserable, much like learning a foreign language; and now, with the lesson fully ingrained, he struggled to understand his small, light happiness. Often, a vague shadow of doubt clouded his eyes. “Take my hand, Phœbe,” he would say, “and pinch it hard with your little fingers! Give me a rose, so I can press its thorns and know I’m awake from the sharp sting of pain!” Clearly, he sought this slight pain to reassure himself, by that sensation which he knew was real, that the garden, and the seven weather-worn gables, and Hepzibah’s frown, and Phœbe’s smile were real too. Without this mark on his skin, he would have assigned no more substance to them than to the empty chaos of imaginary scenes that had sustained his spirit, until even that meager nourishment was gone.

The author needs great faith in his reader’s sympathy; else he must hesitate to give details so minute, and incidents apparently so trifling, as are essential to make up the idea of this garden-life. It was the Eden of a thunder-smitten Adam, who had fled for refuge thither out of the same dreary and perilous wilderness into which the original Adam was expelled.

The author needs to have a lot of faith in his reader’s empathy; otherwise, he should hesitate to provide such detailed and seemingly insignificant incidents that are crucial to convey the concept of this garden life. It was the Eden of a thunder-struck Adam, who had sought refuge there from the same bleak and dangerous wilderness that the original Adam was banished into.

One of the available means of amusement, of which Phœbe made the most in Clifford’s behalf, was that feathered society, the hens, a breed of whom, as we have already said, was an immemorial heirloom in the Pyncheon family. In compliance with a whim of Clifford, as it troubled him to see them in confinement, they had been set at liberty, and now roamed at will about the garden; doing some little mischief, but hindered from escape by buildings on three sides, and the difficult peaks of a wooden fence on the other. They spent much of their abundant leisure on the margin of Maule’s well, which was haunted by a kind of snail, evidently a titbit to their palates; and the brackish water itself, however nauseous to the rest of the world, was so greatly esteemed by these fowls, that they might be seen tasting, turning up their heads, and smacking their bills, with precisely the air of wine-bibbers round a probationary cask. Their generally quiet, yet often brisk, and constantly diversified talk, one to another, or sometimes in soliloquy,—as they scratched worms out of the rich, black soil, or pecked at such plants as suited their taste,—had such a domestic tone, that it was almost a wonder why you could not establish a regular interchange of ideas about household matters, human and gallinaceous. All hens are well worth studying for the piquancy and rich variety of their manners; but by no possibility can there have been other fowls of such odd appearance and deportment as these ancestral ones. They probably embodied the traditionary peculiarities of their whole line of progenitors, derived through an unbroken succession of eggs; or else this individual Chanticleer and his two wives had grown to be humorists, and a little crack-brained withal, on account of their solitary way of life, and out of sympathy for Hepzibah, their lady-patroness.

One of the fun things available for Phœbe to enjoy on Clifford's behalf was the group of hens that had been a long-standing part of the Pyncheon family. Following Clifford's wish, since it upset him to see them cooped up, they were freed and now roamed freely around the garden. They caused some minor trouble but couldn't escape due to the buildings on three sides and the tricky peaks of a wooden fence on the other. They often spent their free time by Maule’s well, which was home to a kind of snail that seemed to be a tasty treat for them. The brackish water, which was unappealing to everyone else, was so valued by the hens that you could see them tasting it, lifting their heads, and smacking their beaks like wine drinkers around a testing barrel. Their generally quiet but sometimes lively and constantly varied conversations, whether with each other or in solitary thoughts—scratching for worms in the rich, dark soil or pecking at plants they liked—had such a cozy feel that it was almost surprising you couldn’t have a regular chat about household matters, whether human or chicken-related. All hens are worth studying for their interesting and diverse behaviors, but none could match the unique looks and antics of these ancestral ones. They likely carried the traditional quirks of their entire lineage, passed down through an unbroken line of eggs; or perhaps this individual rooster and his two hens had developed their quirky personalities and a bit of craziness due to their isolated lifestyle and their connection with Hepzibah, their human patron.

Queer, indeed, they looked! Chanticleer himself, though stalking on two stilt-like legs, with the dignity of interminable descent in all his gestures, was hardly bigger than an ordinary partridge; his two wives were about the size of quails; and as for the one chicken, it looked small enough to be still in the egg, and, at the same time, sufficiently old, withered, wizened, and experienced, to have been founder of the antiquated race. Instead of being the youngest of the family, it rather seemed to have aggregated into itself the ages, not only of these living specimens of the breed, but of all its forefathers and foremothers, whose united excellences and oddities were squeezed into its little body. Its mother evidently regarded it as the one chicken of the world, and as necessary, in fact, to the world’s continuance, or, at any rate, to the equilibrium of the present system of affairs, whether in church or state. No lesser sense of the infant fowl’s importance could have justified, even in a mother’s eyes, the perseverance with which she watched over its safety, ruffling her small person to twice its proper size, and flying in everybody’s face that so much as looked towards her hopeful progeny. No lower estimate could have vindicated the indefatigable zeal with which she scratched, and her unscrupulousness in digging up the choicest flower or vegetable, for the sake of the fat earthworm at its root. Her nervous cluck, when the chicken happened to be hidden in the long grass or under the squash-leaves; her gentle croak of satisfaction, while sure of it beneath her wing; her note of ill-concealed fear and obstreperous defiance, when she saw her arch-enemy, a neighbor’s cat, on the top of the high fence,—one or other of these sounds was to be heard at almost every moment of the day. By degrees, the observer came to feel nearly as much interest in this chicken of illustrious race as the mother-hen did.

They looked quite strange, that's for sure! Chanticleer himself, though walking on two tall legs with a sense of royal dignity in all his movements, was barely bigger than an average partridge. His two wives were about the size of quails; and as for the one chick, it looked so small it could have still been in the egg, yet somehow old enough to have been the founder of an ancient lineage. Instead of being the youngest of the bunch, it seemed to carry the weight of ages not just from these living examples of the breed but from all its ancestors, whose combined traits and quirks were packed into its tiny body. Its mother clearly saw it as the most important chick in the world, essential for the world’s survival, or at least for the balance of the current order, whether in matters of faith or politics. No lessening of the chick’s significance could have explained, even in a mother’s eyes, the determination with which she protected its safety, fluffing herself up to twice her normal size and confronting anyone who dared look at her precious offspring. No lower opinion could have justified her tireless efforts to scratch around and her ruthless digging up of beautiful flowers or vegetables, all for the sake of a fat earthworm at their roots. Her nervous clucking when the chick was hidden in the long grass or under the squash leaves, her soft croak of satisfaction when sure it was tucked under her wing, or her sounds of barely concealed fear and loud defiance upon spotting her nemesis, a neighbor’s cat on the tall fence—these noises could be heard almost every moment of the day. Gradually, the onlooker found themselves just as invested in this noteworthy chick as the mother hen was.

Phœbe, after getting well acquainted with the old hen, was sometimes permitted to take the chicken in her hand, which was quite capable of grasping its cubic inch or two of body. While she curiously examined its hereditary marks,—the peculiar speckle of its plumage, the funny tuft on its head, and a knob on each of its legs,—the little biped, as she insisted, kept giving her a sagacious wink. The daguerreotypist once whispered her that these marks betokened the oddities of the Pyncheon family, and that the chicken itself was a symbol of the life of the old house, embodying its interpretation, likewise, although an unintelligible one, as such clews generally are. It was a feathered riddle; a mystery hatched out of an egg, and just as mysterious as if the egg had been addle!

Phoebe, after getting to know the old hen well, was sometimes allowed to hold the chick, which fit easily in her small hands. As she examined its distinct features—the unique speckles on its feathers, the funny tuft on its head, and a bump on each of its legs—she insisted that the little bird was giving her a knowing wink. The photographer once hinted to her that these features represented the quirks of the Pyncheon family and that the chick itself symbolized the old house's life, embodying its story, albeit an unclear one, as these signs often are. It was a feathered puzzle; a mystery that came from an egg, just as baffling as if the egg had been rotten!

The second of Chanticleer’s two wives, ever since Phœbe’s arrival, had been in a state of heavy despondency, caused, as it afterwards appeared, by her inability to lay an egg. One day, however, by her self-important gait, the sideways turn of her head, and the cock of her eye, as she pried into one and another nook of the garden,—croaking to herself, all the while, with inexpressible complacency,—it was made evident that this identical hen, much as mankind undervalued her, carried something about her person the worth of which was not to be estimated either in gold or precious stones. Shortly after, there was a prodigious cackling and gratulation of Chanticleer and all his family, including the wizened chicken, who appeared to understand the matter quite as well as did his sire, his mother, or his aunt. That afternoon Phœbe found a diminutive egg,—not in the regular nest, it was far too precious to be trusted there,—but cunningly hidden under the currant-bushes, on some dry stalks of last year’s grass. Hepzibah, on learning the fact, took possession of the egg and appropriated it to Clifford’s breakfast, on account of a certain delicacy of flavor, for which, as she affirmed, these eggs had always been famous. Thus unscrupulously did the old gentlewoman sacrifice the continuance, perhaps, of an ancient feathered race, with no better end than to supply her brother with a dainty that hardly filled the bowl of a tea-spoon! It must have been in reference to this outrage that Chanticleer, the next day, accompanied by the bereaved mother of the egg, took his post in front of Phœbe and Clifford, and delivered himself of a harangue that might have proved as long as his own pedigree, but for a fit of merriment on Phœbe’s part. Hereupon, the offended fowl stalked away on his long stilts, and utterly withdrew his notice from Phœbe and the rest of human nature, until she made her peace with an offering of spice-cake, which, next to snails, was the delicacy most in favor with his aristocratic taste.

The second of Chanticleer’s two wives had been feeling really down ever since Phœbe arrived, mainly because she couldn’t lay an egg. One day, though, her proud walk, the way she turned her head, and the look in her eye as she checked out different spots in the garden made it clear that this particular hen, despite being underestimated by everyone, had something special that was worth more than gold or precious gems. Soon after, there was a huge commotion with Chanticleer and his whole family celebrating, including the old chicken, who seemed to understand the situation just as well as his dad, mom, or aunt did. That afternoon, Phœbe discovered a tiny egg—not in the regular nest because it was too precious to be left there—but cleverly hidden under the currant bushes on some dry grass from the previous year. When Hepzibah found out about it, she took the egg and set it aside for Clifford's breakfast, claiming it had a special flavor that these eggs were famous for. In this selfish act, the old lady sacrificed what could have been the continuation of an ancient feathered lineage, all for the sake of a treat that barely filled a teaspoon! It was likely because of this injustice that the next day, Chanticleer, along with the upset mother hen, stood in front of Phœbe and Clifford and gave a speech that could have gone on as long as his family tree, but it was cut short by Phœbe’s laughter. At that, the offended rooster strutted away on his long legs and completely ignored Phœbe and the rest of humanity until she made it up to him with a gift of spice cake, which, next to snails, was his favorite treat.

We linger too long, no doubt, beside this paltry rivulet of life that flowed through the garden of the Pyncheon House. But we deem it pardonable to record these mean incidents and poor delights, because they proved so greatly to Clifford’s benefit. They had the earth-smell in them, and contributed to give him health and substance. Some of his occupations wrought less desirably upon him. He had a singular propensity, for example, to hang over Maule’s well, and look at the constantly shifting phantasmagoria of figures produced by the agitation of the water over the mosaic-work of colored pebbles at the bottom. He said that faces looked upward to him there,—beautiful faces, arrayed in bewitching smiles,—each momentary face so fair and rosy, and every smile so sunny, that he felt wronged at its departure, until the same flitting witchcraft made a new one. But sometimes he would suddenly cry out, “The dark face gazes at me!” and be miserable the whole day afterwards. Phœbe, when she hung over the fountain by Clifford’s side, could see nothing of all this,—neither the beauty nor the ugliness,—but only the colored pebbles, looking as if the gush of the waters shook and disarranged them. And the dark face, that so troubled Clifford, was no more than the shadow thrown from a branch of one of the damson-trees, and breaking the inner light of Maule’s well. The truth was, however, that his fancy—reviving faster than his will and judgment, and always stronger than they—created shapes of loveliness that were symbolic of his native character, and now and then a stern and dreadful shape that typified his fate.

We definitely spend too much time by this meager stream of life that flowed through the garden of the Pyncheon House. But we think it's understandable to note these trivial events and small pleasures because they greatly benefited Clifford. They had the earthy scent of life and helped him regain his health and vitality. Some of his activities had less positive effects on him. For example, he had a strange habit of leaning over Maule’s well, watching the ever-changing display of figures created by the swirling water over the colorful pebbles at the bottom. He said that beautiful faces looked up at him there—gorgeous faces with enchanting smiles—each fleeting face so lovely and rosy, and every smile so bright, that he felt cheated when they disappeared, only to be replaced by another captivating one. But sometimes he would suddenly shout, “The dark face is staring at me!” and then feel miserable for the rest of the day. Phœbe, when she leaned over the fountain next to Clifford, couldn’t see any of that—neither the beauty nor the ugliness—just the colorful pebbles that seemed disturbed and misplaced by the rushing water. And the dark face that bothered Clifford was nothing more than a shadow cast by a branch of one of the damson trees, breaking the light inside Maule’s well. However, the truth was that his imagination—outpacing his will and judgment, and always stronger than them—created lovely shapes that represented his true nature, along with an occasional stern and frightening shape that symbolized his fate.

On Sundays, after Phœbe had been at church,—for the girl had a church-going conscience, and would hardly have been at ease had she missed either prayer, singing, sermon, or benediction,—after church-time, therefore, there was, ordinarily, a sober little festival in the garden. In addition to Clifford, Hepzibah, and Phœbe, two guests made up the company. One was the artist Holgrave, who, in spite of his consociation with reformers, and his other queer and questionable traits, continued to hold an elevated place in Hepzibah’s regard. The other, we are almost ashamed to say, was the venerable Uncle Venner, in a clean shirt, and a broadcloth coat, more respectable than his ordinary wear, inasmuch as it was neatly patched on each elbow, and might be called an entire garment, except for a slight inequality in the length of its skirts. Clifford, on several occasions, had seemed to enjoy the old man’s intercourse, for the sake of his mellow, cheerful vein, which was like the sweet flavor of a frost-bitten apple, such as one picks up under the tree in December. A man at the very lowest point of the social scale was easier and more agreeable for the fallen gentleman to encounter than a person at any of the intermediate degrees; and, moreover, as Clifford’s young manhood had been lost, he was fond of feeling himself comparatively youthful, now, in apposition with the patriarchal age of Uncle Venner. In fact, it was sometimes observable that Clifford half wilfully hid from himself the consciousness of being stricken in years, and cherished visions of an earthly future still before him; visions, however, too indistinctly drawn to be followed by disappointment—though, doubtless, by depression—when any casual incident or recollection made him sensible of the withered leaf.

On Sundays, after Phœbe had been at church—because the girl had a strong sense of duty about attending, and would have felt uneasy if she missed any prayers, singing, sermons, or blessings—after church, there was usually a quiet little celebration in the garden. Besides Clifford, Hepzibah, and Phœbe, there were two guests. One was the artist Holgrave, who, despite his associations with reformers and his other odd traits, still held a high place in Hepzibah’s esteem. The other, which we’re a bit embarrassed to mention, was the elderly Uncle Venner, dressed in a clean shirt and a nicer coat than usual, though it was neatly patched at the elbows and could only be considered complete except for a slight difference in the length of the sleeves. Clifford had enjoyed spending time with the old man on several occasions, appreciating his warm, cheerful nature, which was like the sweet taste of a frost-bitten apple picked up under the tree in December. For a man at the very bottom of the social ladder was easier and more pleasant for the fallen gentleman to engage with than someone from any of the middle classes; plus, since Clifford had lost his youthful years, he liked to feel a bit younger alongside the aged Uncle Venner. In fact, it was sometimes noticeable that Clifford would almost willfully ignore his awareness of aging and held onto dreams of a future still ahead of him; dreams that, however, were too vague to bring disappointment—but certainly brought him down—whenever some chance event or memory made him aware of the fading leaf.

So this oddly composed little social party used to assemble under the ruinous arbor. Hepzibah—stately as ever at heart, and yielding not an inch of her old gentility, but resting upon it so much the more, as justifying a princess-like condescension—exhibited a not ungraceful hospitality. She talked kindly to the vagrant artist, and took sage counsel—lady as she was—with the wood-sawyer, the messenger of everybody’s petty errands, the patched philosopher. And Uncle Venner, who had studied the world at street-corners, and other posts equally well adapted for just observation, was as ready to give out his wisdom as a town-pump to give water.

So this oddly put-together little social gathering used to meet under the crumbling arbor. Hepzibah—as dignified as ever at heart, refusing to budge an inch from her old sense of nobility, but leaning on it even more, as though it justified a royal kindness—showed a hospitality that was not without grace. She spoke kindly to the wandering artist and sought wise advice—being a lady—with the woodcutter, the go-to person for everyone’s minor tasks, the patched-up philosopher. And Uncle Venner, who had learned about the world from street corners and other places equally good for observation, was just as eager to share his wisdom as a town pump is to provide water.

“Miss Hepzibah, ma’am,” said he once, after they had all been cheerful together, “I really enjoy these quiet little meetings of a Sabbath afternoon. They are very much like what I expect to have after I retire to my farm!”

“Miss Hepzibah, ma’am,” he said one time, after they had all been having a good time together, “I really enjoy these quiet little get-togethers on a Sunday afternoon. They remind me a lot of what I hope to experience after I retire to my farm!”

“Uncle Venner” observed Clifford in a drowsy, inward tone, “is always talking about his farm. But I have a better scheme for him, by and by. We shall see!”

“Uncle Venner,” Clifford said in a sleepy, introspective voice, “is always going on about his farm. But I have a better plan for him, later on. We’ll see!”

“Ah, Mr. Clifford Pyncheon!” said the man of patches, “you may scheme for me as much as you please; but I’m not going to give up this one scheme of my own, even if I never bring it really to pass. It does seem to me that men make a wonderful mistake in trying to heap up property upon property. If I had done so, I should feel as if Providence was not bound to take care of me; and, at all events, the city wouldn’t be! I’m one of those people who think that infinity is big enough for us all—and eternity long enough.”

“Ah, Mr. Clifford Pyncheon!” said the patched man, “you can plot against me all you want; but I’m not going to abandon this one idea of mine, even if I never make it happen. It seems to me that people make a huge mistake by trying to accumulate more and more wealth. If I had done that, I’d feel like Providence was under no obligation to look after me; and, anyway, the city wouldn’t be responsible either! I’m one of those people who believe that infinity is big enough for all of us—and eternity is long enough.”

“Why, so they are, Uncle Venner,” remarked Phœbe after a pause; for she had been trying to fathom the profundity and appositeness of this concluding apothegm. “But for this short life of ours, one would like a house and a moderate garden-spot of one’s own.”

“Sure, they really are, Uncle Venner,” Phœbe said after a moment; she had been trying to understand the depth and relevance of this final saying. “But for this brief life we have, it would be nice to have a house and a small garden of our own.”

“It appears to me,” said the daguerreotypist, smiling, “that Uncle Venner has the principles of Fourier at the bottom of his wisdom; only they have not quite so much distinctness in his mind as in that of the systematizing Frenchman.”

“It seems to me,” said the photographer, smiling, “that Uncle Venner has the principles of Fourier at the core of his knowledge; it’s just that they aren’t as clear in his mind as they are in the mind of the organized Frenchman.”

“Come, Phœbe,” said Hepzibah, “it is time to bring the currants.”

“Come on, Phoebe,” said Hepzibah, “it’s time to bring the currants.”

And then, while the yellow richness of the declining sunshine still fell into the open space of the garden, Phœbe brought out a loaf of bread and a china bowl of currants, freshly gathered from the bushes, and crushed with sugar. These, with water,—but not from the fountain of ill omen, close at hand,—constituted all the entertainment. Meanwhile, Holgrave took some pains to establish an intercourse with Clifford, actuated, it might seem, entirely by an impulse of kindliness, in order that the present hour might be cheerfuller than most which the poor recluse had spent, or was destined yet to spend. Nevertheless, in the artist’s deep, thoughtful, all-observant eyes, there was, now and then, an expression, not sinister, but questionable; as if he had some other interest in the scene than a stranger, a youthful and unconnected adventurer, might be supposed to have. With great mobility of outward mood, however, he applied himself to the task of enlivening the party; and with so much success, that even dark-hued Hepzibah threw off one tint of melancholy, and made what shift she could with the remaining portion. Phœbe said to herself,—“How pleasant he can be!” As for Uncle Venner, as a mark of friendship and approbation, he readily consented to afford the young man his countenance in the way of his profession,—not metaphorically, be it understood, but literally, by allowing a daguerreotype of his face, so familiar to the town, to be exhibited at the entrance of Holgrave’s studio.

And then, while the warm glow of the setting sun lit up the garden, Phœbe brought out a loaf of bread and a china bowl filled with currants, freshly picked from the bushes and mixed with sugar. These, along with water—but not from the nearby unlucky fountain—made up the entire meal. Meanwhile, Holgrave made an effort to connect with Clifford, seemingly driven solely by kindness, so that this moment might be more cheerful than most of the lonely hours the poor recluse had endured or would yet have to face. Nevertheless, in the artist’s deep, thoughtful, all-seeing eyes, there was occasionally a look that was not sinister, but ambiguous; as if he had some other interest in the situation than what a stranger, a young and unconnected adventurer, might be expected to have. With a remarkable ability to shift his mood outwardly, he worked to lift the spirits of the group, achieving such success that even the often-melancholy Hepzibah managed to lighten her mood a bit. Phœbe thought to herself, “He can be so pleasant!” As for Uncle Venner, as a sign of friendship and approval, he readily agreed to support the young man in his profession—not in a metaphorical sense, but literally, by allowing a daguerreotype of his face, well-known around town, to be displayed at the entrance of Holgrave’s studio.

Clifford, as the company partook of their little banquet, grew to be the gayest of them all. Either it was one of those up-quivering flashes of the spirit, to which minds in an abnormal state are liable, or else the artist had subtly touched some chord that made musical vibration. Indeed, what with the pleasant summer evening, and the sympathy of this little circle of not unkindly souls, it was perhaps natural that a character so susceptible as Clifford’s should become animated, and show itself readily responsive to what was said around him. But he gave out his own thoughts, likewise, with an airy and fanciful glow; so that they glistened, as it were, through the arbor, and made their escape among the interstices of the foliage. He had been as cheerful, no doubt, while alone with Phœbe, but never with such tokens of acute, although partial intelligence.

Clifford, while the group enjoyed their little feast, became the happiest of them all. It could be one of those bursts of spirit that people in an unusual state often experience, or perhaps the artist had struck a chord that created a musical vibe. Honestly, with the lovely summer evening and the warmth of this small circle of kind-hearted people, it was probably natural for someone as sensitive as Clifford to come alive and respond eagerly to the conversation around him. He also shared his thoughts with a light and imaginative flair, causing them to shimmer through the trellis and slip out among the gaps in the leaves. He had certainly been cheerful when alone with Phœbe, but never with such signs of keen, albeit selective intelligence.

But, as the sunlight left the peaks of the Seven Gables, so did the excitement fade out of Clifford’s eyes. He gazed vaguely and mournfully about him, as if he missed something precious, and missed it the more drearily for not knowing precisely what it was.

But, as the sunlight disappeared from the tops of the Seven Gables, the excitement in Clifford's eyes faded too. He looked around aimlessly and sadly, as if he were missing something valuable, and he felt the loss even more bleakly because he couldn't quite pinpoint what it was.

“I want my happiness!” at last he murmured hoarsely and indistinctly, hardly shaping out the words. “Many, many years have I waited for it! It is late! It is late! I want my happiness!”

“I want my happiness!” he finally murmured weakly and unclearly, barely forming the words. “I’ve waited so many years for it! It’s late! It’s late! I want my happiness!”

Alas, poor Clifford! You are old, and worn with troubles that ought never to have befallen you. You are partly crazy and partly imbecile; a ruin, a failure, as almost everybody is,—though some in less degree, or less perceptibly, than their fellows. Fate has no happiness in store for you; unless your quiet home in the old family residence with the faithful Hepzibah, and your long summer afternoons with Phœbe, and these Sabbath festivals with Uncle Venner and the daguerreotypist, deserve to be called happiness! Why not? If not the thing itself, it is marvellously like it, and the more so for that ethereal and intangible quality which causes it all to vanish at too close an introspection. Take it, therefore, while you may. Murmur not,—question not,—but make the most of it!

Alas, poor Clifford! You are old and worn down by troubles that should never have happened to you. You're partly insane and partly simple-minded; a mess, a failure, just like almost everyone else—though some are just less obvious about it. Destiny has no joy waiting for you; unless your quiet home in the old family house with the loyal Hepzibah, your long summer afternoons with Phœbe, and these Sunday gatherings with Uncle Venner and the daguerreotypist can be called happiness! Why not? If it's not the real thing, it's remarkably close, especially because of that fleeting and intangible quality that makes it all disappear under too much scrutiny. So take it while you can. Don't complain—don't question—but make the most of it!

XI.
The Arched Window

From the inertness, or what we may term the vegetative character, of his ordinary mood, Clifford would perhaps have been content to spend one day after another, interminably,—or, at least, throughout the summer-time,—in just the kind of life described in the preceding pages. Fancying, however, that it might be for his benefit occasionally to diversify the scene, Phœbe sometimes suggested that he should look out upon the life of the street. For this purpose, they used to mount the staircase together, to the second story of the house, where, at the termination of a wide entry, there was an arched window, of uncommonly large dimensions, shaded by a pair of curtains. It opened above the porch, where there had formerly been a balcony, the balustrade of which had long since gone to decay, and been removed. At this arched window, throwing it open, but keeping himself in comparative obscurity by means of the curtain, Clifford had an opportunity of witnessing such a portion of the great world’s movement as might be supposed to roll through one of the retired streets of a not very populous city. But he and Phœbe made a sight as well worth seeing as any that the city could exhibit. The pale, gray, childish, aged, melancholy, yet often simply cheerful, and sometimes delicately intelligent aspect of Clifford, peering from behind the faded crimson of the curtain,—watching the monotony of every-day occurrences with a kind of inconsequential interest and earnestness, and, at every petty throb of his sensibility, turning for sympathy to the eyes of the bright young girl!

From the dullness, or what we might call the lifeless nature, of his usual mood, Clifford would probably have been fine just spending day after day endlessly—at least throughout the summer—living the same kind of life described in the previous pages. However, thinking it might be good for him to mix things up occasionally, Phœbe would sometimes suggest that he should look out at the life on the street. For this, they would climb the staircase together to the second floor of the house, where, at the end of a wide hallway, there was a large arched window, covered by a pair of curtains. It opened above the porch, where there used to be a balcony, but the railing had long since fallen apart and been taken away. At this arched window, Clifford would open it, but keep himself somewhat hidden by the curtain, allowing him a view of the little bit of the bustling world that might pass through one of the quieter streets of a not very populated city. But he and Phœbe were just as interesting to see as anything else in the city. The pale, gray, childlike, aged, melancholic, yet often simply cheerful, and sometimes subtly intelligent look of Clifford, peering through the faded crimson of the curtain—watching the monotony of everyday events with a kind of disconnected interest and seriousness, and, at every small stir of his feelings, looking to the bright young girl for sympathy!

If once he were fairly seated at the window, even Pyncheon Street would hardly be so dull and lonely but that, somewhere or other along its extent, Clifford might discover matter to occupy his eye, and titillate, if not engross, his observation. Things familiar to the youngest child that had begun its outlook at existence seemed strange to him. A cab; an omnibus, with its populous interior, dropping here and there a passenger, and picking up another, and thus typifying that vast rolling vehicle, the world, the end of whose journey is everywhere and nowhere; these objects he followed eagerly with his eyes, but forgot them before the dust raised by the horses and wheels had settled along their track. As regarded novelties (among which cabs and omnibuses were to be reckoned), his mind appeared to have lost its proper gripe and retentiveness. Twice or thrice, for example, during the sunny hours of the day, a water-cart went along by the Pyncheon House, leaving a broad wake of moistened earth, instead of the white dust that had risen at a lady’s lightest footfall; it was like a summer shower, which the city authorities had caught and tamed, and compelled it into the commonest routine of their convenience. With the water-cart Clifford could never grow familiar; it always affected him with just the same surprise as at first. His mind took an apparently sharp impression from it, but lost the recollection of this perambulatory shower, before its next reappearance, as completely as did the street itself, along which the heat so quickly strewed white dust again. It was the same with the railroad. Clifford could hear the obstreperous howl of the steam-devil, and, by leaning a little way from the arched window, could catch a glimpse of the trains of cars, flashing a brief transit across the extremity of the street. The idea of terrible energy thus forced upon him was new at every recurrence, and seemed to affect him as disagreeably, and with almost as much surprise, the hundredth time as the first.

Once he was comfortably settled at the window, even Pyncheon Street wouldn’t seem so dull and lonely; somewhere along its length, Clifford might find something to catch his eye and, if not fully engage him, at least amuse him. Things that were familiar to the youngest child discovering the world felt strange to him. A cab; an omnibus filled with people, dropping off and picking up passengers, symbolizing that vast moving vehicle, the world, whose journey ends everywhere and nowhere; he eagerly followed these things with his eyes but forgot them before the dust raised by the horses and wheels had settled. As for new experiences (which included cabs and omnibuses), his mind seemed to have lost its grip and ability to remember. For instance, a few times during the sunny hours, a water-cart would pass by the Pyncheon House, leaving a wide trail of damp earth instead of the white dust that the lightest footstep would create; it was like a summer shower that the city had captured and forced into their everyday routine. Clifford could never really get used to the water-cart; it always surprised him just like at first. His mind registered it sharply but forgot this roaming shower before it came around again, just as the street quickly became covered in white dust. The same went for the railroad. Clifford could hear the loud howl of the steam engine, and by leaning slightly from the arched window, he could catch a brief sight of the trains speeding across the end of the street. The idea of such tremendous energy struck him as new every time, surprising and unsettling him almost as much the hundredth time as it did the first.

Nothing gives a sadder sense of decay than this loss or suspension of the power to deal with unaccustomed things, and to keep up with the swiftness of the passing moment. It can merely be a suspended animation; for, were the power actually to perish, there would be little use of immortality. We are less than ghosts, for the time being, whenever this calamity befalls us.

Nothing feels sadder than losing or pausing our ability to handle new experiences and keep up with the fast pace of life. It might just be a temporary state; if we actually lost that ability, immortality would hardly matter. During these moments of hardship, we feel less than ghosts.

Clifford was indeed the most inveterate of conservatives. All the antique fashions of the street were dear to him; even such as were characterized by a rudeness that would naturally have annoyed his fastidious senses. He loved the old rumbling and jolting carts, the former track of which he still found in his long-buried remembrance, as the observer of to-day finds the wheel-tracks of ancient vehicles in Herculaneum. The butcher’s cart, with its snowy canopy, was an acceptable object; so was the fish-cart, heralded by its horn; so, likewise, was the countryman’s cart of vegetables, plodding from door to door, with long pauses of the patient horse, while his owner drove a trade in turnips, carrots, summer-squashes, string-beans, green peas, and new potatoes, with half the housewives of the neighborhood. The baker’s cart, with the harsh music of its bells, had a pleasant effect on Clifford, because, as few things else did, it jingled the very dissonance of yore. One afternoon a scissor-grinder chanced to set his wheel a-going under the Pyncheon Elm, and just in front of the arched window. Children came running with their mothers’ scissors, or the carving-knife, or the paternal razor, or anything else that lacked an edge (except, indeed, poor Clifford’s wits), that the grinder might apply the article to his magic wheel, and give it back as good as new. Round went the busily revolving machinery, kept in motion by the scissor-grinder’s foot, and wore away the hard steel against the hard stone, whence issued an intense and spiteful prolongation of a hiss as fierce as those emitted by Satan and his compeers in Pandemonium, though squeezed into smaller compass. It was an ugly, little, venomous serpent of a noise, as ever did petty violence to human ears. But Clifford listened with rapturous delight. The sound, however disagreeable, had very brisk life in it, and, together with the circle of curious children watching the revolutions of the wheel, appeared to give him a more vivid sense of active, bustling, and sunshiny existence than he had attained in almost any other way. Nevertheless, its charm lay chiefly in the past; for the scissor-grinder’s wheel had hissed in his childish ears.

Clifford was definitely the most committed conservative. He cherished all the old styles of the street, even those that had a roughness that would usually irritate his sensitive nature. He loved the old, rattling carts, the memory of which he still held onto, just as someone today notices the wheel tracks of ancient carts in Herculaneum. The butcher's cart, with its white canopy, was a welcome sight; so was the fish cart, announced by its horn; and so was the countryman's vegetable cart, trudging from door to door, with the patient horse taking its long breaks while the owner sold turnips, carrots, summer squashes, string beans, green peas, and new potatoes to half the housewives in the area. The baker's cart, with the jarring sound of its bells, pleased Clifford because it clanged with the very dissonance of the past. One afternoon, a scissor-grinder happened to set up his wheel under the Pyncheon Elm, right in front of the arched window. Kids came running with their mothers' scissors, or the carving knife, or their dad's razor, or anything else that needed sharpening (except, of course, poor Clifford's wits), so the grinder could put them to his magic wheel and return them as good as new. The wheel spun busily, powered by the grinder's foot, grinding the hard steel against the hard stone, producing an intense and spiteful hiss, as fierce as those emitted by Satan and his peers in Pandemonium, though more compact. It was an ugly, venomous little noise, like a snake, that always hurt human ears. But Clifford listened with sheer joy. The sound, no matter how unpleasant, was full of life, and along with the circle of curious children watching the wheel spin, it made him feel more alive and vibrant than almost anything else had. Still, its appeal lay mostly in the past since the scissor-grinder's wheel had hissed in his ears as a child.

He sometimes made doleful complaint that there were no stage-coaches nowadays. And he asked in an injured tone what had become of all those old square-topped chaises, with wings sticking out on either side, that used to be drawn by a plough-horse, and driven by a farmer’s wife and daughter, peddling whortle-berries and blackberries about the town. Their disappearance made him doubt, he said, whether the berries had not left off growing in the broad pastures and along the shady country lanes.

He sometimes sadly complained that there were no stagecoaches these days. And he would ask in a hurt tone what happened to all those old square-topped carriages, with wings sticking out on either side, that used to be pulled by a plow horse and driven by a farmer’s wife and daughter, selling whortleberries and blackberries around town. Their disappearance made him question, he said, whether the berries had stopped growing in the wide pastures and along the shady country roads.

But anything that appealed to the sense of beauty, in however humble a way, did not require to be recommended by these old associations. This was observable when one of those Italian boys (who are rather a modern feature of our streets) came along with his barrel-organ, and stopped under the wide and cool shadows of the elm. With his quick professional eye he took note of the two faces watching him from the arched window, and, opening his instrument, began to scatter its melodies abroad. He had a monkey on his shoulder, dressed in a Highland plaid; and, to complete the sum of splendid attractions wherewith he presented himself to the public, there was a company of little figures, whose sphere and habitation was in the mahogany case of his organ, and whose principle of life was the music which the Italian made it his business to grind out. In all their variety of occupation,—the cobbler, the blacksmith, the soldier, the lady with her fan, the toper with his bottle, the milk-maid sitting by her cow—this fortunate little society might truly be said to enjoy a harmonious existence, and to make life literally a dance. The Italian turned a crank; and, behold! every one of these small individuals started into the most curious vivacity. The cobbler wrought upon a shoe; the blacksmith hammered his iron, the soldier waved his glittering blade; the lady raised a tiny breeze with her fan; the jolly toper swigged lustily at his bottle; a scholar opened his book with eager thirst for knowledge, and turned his head to and fro along the page; the milkmaid energetically drained her cow; and a miser counted gold into his strong-box,—all at the same turning of a crank. Yes; and, moved by the self-same impulse, a lover saluted his mistress on her lips! Possibly some cynic, at once merry and bitter, had desired to signify, in this pantomimic scene, that we mortals, whatever our business or amusement,—however serious, however trifling,—all dance to one identical tune, and, in spite of our ridiculous activity, bring nothing finally to pass. For the most remarkable aspect of the affair was, that, at the cessation of the music, everybody was petrified at once, from the most extravagant life into a dead torpor. Neither was the cobbler’s shoe finished, nor the blacksmith’s iron shaped out; nor was there a drop less of brandy in the toper’s bottle, nor a drop more of milk in the milkmaid’s pail, nor one additional coin in the miser’s strong-box, nor was the scholar a page deeper in his book. All were precisely in the same condition as before they made themselves so ridiculous by their haste to toil, to enjoy, to accumulate gold, and to become wise. Saddest of all, moreover, the lover was none the happier for the maiden’s granted kiss! But, rather than swallow this last too acrid ingredient, we reject the whole moral of the show.

But anything that appealed to beauty, no matter how simple, didn’t need to be endorsed by old associations. This was clear when one of those Italian boys (who are a pretty common sight on our streets these days) came by with his barrel organ and stopped beneath the wide, cool shade of the elm. With a quick, professional glance, he noticed the two faces watching him from the arched window, and as he opened his instrument, he began to spread its melodies around. He had a monkey on his shoulder, dressed in a Highland plaid, and to top it all off, there was a group of little figures whose world was the mahogany case of his organ, and whose reason for being was the music the Italian worked hard to produce. In all their diverse activities—the cobbler, the blacksmith, the soldier, the lady with her fan, the tipsy guy with his bottle, the milkmaid by her cow—this lucky little group could truly be said to enjoy a harmonious life, making existence feel like a continuous dance. The Italian turned a crank; and, just like that, every one of these small figures sprang into the most entertaining liveliness. The cobbler worked on a shoe; the blacksmith hammered his iron; the soldier waved his shiny sword; the lady created a tiny breeze with her fan; the merry drinker eagerly took swigs from his bottle; a scholar opened his book with a deep craving for knowledge and turned his head back and forth along the pages; the milkmaid energetically milked her cow; and a miser counted coins into his strongbox—all at the same turn of the crank. Yes; and, driven by the same impulse, a lover kissed his mistress on the lips! Perhaps some cynical observer, both cheerful and bitter, wanted to show with this pantomime that we humans, no matter our tasks or distractions—whether serious or silly—are all dancing to the same tune, and despite our absurd efforts, achieve nothing in the end. For the most striking part was that when the music stopped, everyone froze at once, slipping from their energetic movements into a lifeless stillness. The cobbler’s shoe wasn’t finished, nor was the blacksmith’s work done; the drinker hadn’t drunk any less of his brandy, nor had the milkmaid added a drop more to her pail, nor had the miser gained another coin for his strongbox, nor was the scholar any further along in his book. They were all exactly in the same state as before they made themselves so ridiculous in their rush to work, enjoy, accumulate wealth, and seek knowledge. Saddest of all, the lover didn’t feel any happier for the kiss! But rather than accept this bitter realization, we’d rather reject the whole moral of the story.

The monkey, meanwhile, with a thick tail curling out into preposterous prolixity from beneath his tartans, took his station at the Italian’s feet. He turned a wrinkled and abominable little visage to every passer-by, and to the circle of children that soon gathered round, and to Hepzibah’s shop-door, and upward to the arched window, whence Phœbe and Clifford were looking down. Every moment, also, he took off his Highland bonnet, and performed a bow and scrape. Sometimes, moreover, he made personal application to individuals, holding out his small black palm, and otherwise plainly signifying his excessive desire for whatever filthy lucre might happen to be in anybody’s pocket. The mean and low, yet strangely man-like expression of his wilted countenance; the prying and crafty glance, that showed him ready to gripe at every miserable advantage; his enormous tail (too enormous to be decently concealed under his gabardine), and the deviltry of nature which it betokened,—take this monkey just as he was, in short, and you could desire no better image of the Mammon of copper coin, symbolizing the grossest form of the love of money. Neither was there any possibility of satisfying the covetous little devil. Phœbe threw down a whole handful of cents, which he picked up with joyless eagerness, handed them over to the Italian for safekeeping, and immediately recommenced a series of pantomimic petitions for more.

The monkey, meanwhile, with a thick tail curling ridiculously from beneath his tartans, positioned himself at the Italian’s feet. He turned a wrinkled and unpleasant little face to every passerby, the group of children that quickly gathered around, Hepzibah’s shop door, and up to the arched window, where Phœbe and Clifford were watching. Every moment, he also took off his Highland bonnet and performed a bow and scrape. Sometimes, he even approached individuals, holding out his small black hand and clearly showing his desperate desire for whatever spare change might be in their pockets. The mean and low, yet oddly human-like look on his droopy face; the sneaky and clever gaze that showed he was ready to grab any miserable opportunity; his huge tail (too large to be properly hidden under his cloak), and the mischief of nature that it represented—all summed up this monkey perfectly as an image of the love of money in its most disgusting form. There was no satisfying the greedy little creature. Phœbe tossed down a handful of coins, which he picked up with joyless eagerness, handed them over to the Italian for safekeeping, and immediately began a series of exaggerated gestures asking for more.

Doubtless, more than one New-Englander—or, let him be of what country he might, it is as likely to be the case—passed by, and threw a look at the monkey, and went on, without imagining how nearly his own moral condition was here exemplified. Clifford, however, was a being of another order. He had taken childish delight in the music, and smiled, too, at the figures which it set in motion. But, after looking awhile at the long-tailed imp, he was so shocked by his horrible ugliness, spiritual as well as physical, that he actually began to shed tears; a weakness which men of merely delicate endowments, and destitute of the fiercer, deeper, and more tragic power of laughter, can hardly avoid, when the worst and meanest aspect of life happens to be presented to them.

No doubt, more than one New Englander—or really, anyone from any country—strolled by, glanced at the monkey, and moved on, without realizing how closely their own moral state was reflected here. Clifford, however, was different. He found childish joy in the music and smiled at the figures it made come alive. But after watching the long-tailed creature for a while, he was so disturbed by its awful ugliness, both inside and out, that he actually started to cry; a vulnerability that people with only delicate sensibilities, lacking the deeper and more tragic ability to laugh, can hardly avoid when confronted with the worst and most pathetic sides of life.

Pyncheon Street was sometimes enlivened by spectacles of more imposing pretensions than the above, and which brought the multitude along with them. With a shivering repugnance at the idea of personal contact with the world, a powerful impulse still seized on Clifford, whenever the rush and roar of the human tide grew strongly audible to him. This was made evident, one day, when a political procession, with hundreds of flaunting banners, and drums, fifes, clarions, and cymbals, reverberating between the rows of buildings, marched all through town, and trailed its length of trampling footsteps, and most infrequent uproar, past the ordinarily quiet House of the Seven Gables. As a mere object of sight, nothing is more deficient in picturesque features than a procession seen in its passage through narrow streets. The spectator feels it to be fool’s play, when he can distinguish the tedious commonplace of each man’s visage, with the perspiration and weary self-importance on it, and the very cut of his pantaloons, and the stiffness or laxity of his shirt-collar, and the dust on the back of his black coat. In order to become majestic, it should be viewed from some vantage point, as it rolls its slow and long array through the centre of a wide plain, or the stateliest public square of a city; for then, by its remoteness, it melts all the petty personalities, of which it is made up, into one broad mass of existence,—one great life,—one collected body of mankind, with a vast, homogeneous spirit animating it. But, on the other hand, if an impressible person, standing alone over the brink of one of these processions, should behold it, not in its atoms, but in its aggregate,—as a mighty river of life, massive in its tide, and black with mystery, and, out of its depths, calling to the kindred depth within him,—then the contiguity would add to the effect. It might so fascinate him that he would hardly be restrained from plunging into the surging stream of human sympathies.

Pyncheon Street was sometimes brightened by events that were more grand than the usual, drawing a crowd along with them. With a shuddering reluctance at the thought of interacting with people, Clifford felt a strong urge whenever the noise and commotion of the crowd became clearly audible to him. This became clear one day when a political parade, with hundreds of waving banners, along with drums, flutes, trumpets, and cymbals echoing between the buildings, marched through town, leaving a trail of trampling feet and an unusual uproar past the normally quiet House of the Seven Gables. As a visual experience, nothing is less visually appealing than a parade moving through narrow streets. The viewer feels it's foolish when they can see the monotonous details of each person’s face, marked with sweat and tired self-importance, the cut of their trousers, the stiffness or looseness of their shirt collars, and the dust on the back of their black coats. To seem majestic, it should be viewed from an elevated position, as it slowly rolls through a wide open area or a grand public square; because from a distance, it merges all the trivial personalities into one broad mass of existence—a united life, a collective body of people, infused with a vast, shared spirit. However, if an impressionable person were to stand alone at the edge of such a parade and see it not in its individual parts, but as a powerful river of life, dense with its flow and steeped in mystery, calling to the deeper parts within him, then the closeness would enhance the experience. It could captivate him so much that he might struggle to resist jumping into the swirling stream of human connection.

So it proved with Clifford. He shuddered; he grew pale; he threw an appealing look at Hepzibah and Phœbe, who were with him at the window. They comprehended nothing of his emotions, and supposed him merely disturbed by the unaccustomed tumult. At last, with tremulous limbs, he started up, set his foot on the window-sill, and in an instant more would have been in the unguarded balcony. As it was, the whole procession might have seen him, a wild, haggard figure, his gray locks floating in the wind that waved their banners; a lonely being, estranged from his race, but now feeling himself man again, by virtue of the irrepressible instinct that possessed him. Had Clifford attained the balcony, he would probably have leaped into the street; but whether impelled by the species of terror that sometimes urges its victim over the very precipice which he shrinks from, or by a natural magnetism, tending towards the great centre of humanity, it were not easy to decide. Both impulses might have wrought on him at once.

So it was with Clifford. He shivered; he turned pale; he shot a desperate glance at Hepzibah and Phœbe, who were with him at the window. They didn’t understand his feelings and thought he was just rattled by the unusual noise. Finally, shaking with fear, he jumped up, placed his foot on the window sill, and in another moment would have been out on the open balcony. As it was, everyone below might have seen him, a wild, gaunt figure, his gray hair blowing in the wind that stirred their banners; a solitary person, disconnected from his people, yet now feeling like a man again, driven by the powerful instinct that took hold of him. If Clifford had made it to the balcony, he probably would have jumped into the street; but whether it was the kind of fear that sometimes pushes its victim over the very edge they dread, or a natural attraction pulling him toward the core of humanity, it was hard to say. Both feelings could have influenced him at once.

But his companions, affrighted by his gesture,—which was that of a man hurried away in spite of himself,—seized Clifford’s garment and held him back. Hepzibah shrieked. Phœbe, to whom all extravagance was a horror, burst into sobs and tears.

But his friends, scared by his gesture—which looked like a man being pulled away against his will—grabbed Clifford's clothes and held him back. Hepzibah screamed. Phoebe, who found all extremes terrifying, started to cry and sob.

“Clifford, Clifford! are you crazy?” cried his sister.

“Clifford, Clifford! Are you out of your mind?” his sister shouted.

“I hardly know, Hepzibah,” said Clifford, drawing a long breath. “Fear nothing,—it is over now,—but had I taken that plunge, and survived it, methinks it would have made me another man!”

“I hardly know, Hepzibah,” said Clifford, taking a deep breath. “Don’t worry—it’s all in the past now—but if I had taken that leap and come out on the other side, I think it would have turned me into a different person!”

Possibly, in some sense, Clifford may have been right. He needed a shock; or perhaps he required to take a deep, deep plunge into the ocean of human life, and to sink down and be covered by its profoundness, and then to emerge, sobered, invigorated, restored to the world and to himself. Perhaps again, he required nothing less than the great final remedy—death!

Possibly, in some way, Clifford might have been right. He needed a wake-up call; or maybe he needed to dive deep into the sea of human life, to go under and be engulfed by its depth, and then to come back up, clear-headed, energized, and reconnected with the world and himself. Maybe, in the end, he needed nothing less than the ultimate solution—death!

A similar yearning to renew the broken links of brotherhood with his kind sometimes showed itself in a milder form; and once it was made beautiful by the religion that lay even deeper than itself. In the incident now to be sketched, there was a touching recognition, on Clifford’s part, of God’s care and love towards him,—towards this poor, forsaken man, who, if any mortal could, might have been pardoned for regarding himself as thrown aside, forgotten, and left to be the sport of some fiend, whose playfulness was an ecstasy of mischief.

A similar desire to reconnect the broken bonds of brotherhood with his kind occasionally appeared in a softer way; and once it was beautifully highlighted by a faith that ran even deeper. In the incident to be described now, Clifford had a touching realization of God’s care and love for him—towards this poor, abandoned man who, if anyone ever could, might have been justified in thinking of himself as overlooked, forgotten, and left to be toyed with by some demon whose amusement was pure mischief.

It was the Sabbath morning; one of those bright, calm Sabbaths, with its own hallowed atmosphere, when Heaven seems to diffuse itself over the earth’s face in a solemn smile, no less sweet than solemn. On such a Sabbath morn, were we pure enough to be its medium, we should be conscious of the earth’s natural worship ascending through our frames, on whatever spot of ground we stood. The church-bells, with various tones, but all in harmony, were calling out and responding to one another,—“It is the Sabbath!—The Sabbath!—Yea; the Sabbath!”—and over the whole city the bells scattered the blessed sounds, now slowly, now with livelier joy, now one bell alone, now all the bells together, crying earnestly,—“It is the Sabbath!”—and flinging their accents afar off, to melt into the air and pervade it with the holy word. The air with God’s sweetest and tenderest sunshine in it, was meet for mankind to breathe into their hearts, and send it forth again as the utterance of prayer.

It was Sabbath morning; one of those bright, peaceful Sabbaths, with a sacred vibe, when Heaven feels like it's spreading warmth over the earth in a solemn yet sweet smile. On such a Sabbath morning, if we were pure enough to feel it, we would sense the earth's natural worship rising within us, no matter where we stood. The church bells, each with different tones but all in harmony, were calling out and responding to each other—“It’s the Sabbath!—The Sabbath!—Yeah, the Sabbath!”—and throughout the whole city, the bells spread their blessed sounds, sometimes slowly, sometimes with cheer, sometimes one bell ringing alone, other times all the bells together, calling out passionately—“It’s the Sabbath!”—and sending their voices far away, to merge into the air and fill it with the holy message. The air, filled with God’s sweetest and gentlest sunshine, was perfect for people to breathe into their hearts and send back as a prayer.

Clifford sat at the window with Hepzibah, watching the neighbors as they stepped into the street. All of them, however unspiritual on other days, were transfigured by the Sabbath influence; so that their very garments—whether it were an old man’s decent coat well brushed for the thousandth time, or a little boy’s first sack and trousers finished yesterday by his mother’s needle—had somewhat of the quality of ascension-robes. Forth, likewise, from the portal of the old house stepped Phœbe, putting up her small green sunshade, and throwing upward a glance and smile of parting kindness to the faces at the arched window. In her aspect there was a familiar gladness, and a holiness that you could play with, and yet reverence it as much as ever. She was like a prayer, offered up in the homeliest beauty of one’s mother-tongue. Fresh was Phœbe, moreover, and airy and sweet in her apparel; as if nothing that she wore—neither her gown, nor her small straw bonnet, nor her little kerchief, any more than her snowy stockings—had ever been put on before; or, if worn, were all the fresher for it, and with a fragrance as if they had lain among the rosebuds.

Clifford sat at the window with Hepzibah, watching the neighbors as they stepped into the street. All of them, no matter how unspiritual on other days, seemed transformed by the Sabbath spirit; their very clothes—whether it was an old man’s well-brushed coat for the thousandth time or a little boy’s first sack and trousers, which his mother had just finished yesterday—had a touch of something like ascension-robes. Likewise, from the doorway of the old house emerged Phœbe, raising her small green sunshade and throwing a glance and smile of parting kindness to the faces at the arched window. There was a familiar joy in her demeanor, and a sacredness that you could play with while still respecting it deeply. She was like a prayer, expressed in the simplest beauty of one’s native language. Phœbe looked fresh, light, and sweet in her clothes, as if nothing she wore—neither her gown, nor her small straw bonnet, nor her little kerchief, and certainly not her snowy stockings—had ever been worn before; or if they had been, they were all the fresher for it, carrying a scent as if they had been laid among rosebuds.

The girl waved her hand to Hepzibah and Clifford, and went up the street; a religion in herself, warm, simple, true, with a substance that could walk on earth, and a spirit that was capable of heaven.

The girl waved goodbye to Hepzibah and Clifford and walked up the street; she was a living embodiment of faith, warm, straightforward, genuine, with a presence that grounded her on Earth and a spirit that soared to the heavens.

“Hepzibah,” asked Clifford, after watching Phœbe to the corner, “do you never go to church?”

“Hepzibah,” Clifford asked after watching Phœbe to the corner, “don't you ever go to church?”

“No, Clifford!” she replied,—“not these many, many years!”

“No, Clifford!” she replied, “not in all these years!”

“Were I to be there,” he rejoined, “it seems to me that I could pray once more, when so many human souls were praying all around me!”

“If I were there,” he replied, “I feel like I could pray once again, with so many people praying all around me!”

She looked into Clifford’s face, and beheld there a soft natural effusion; for his heart gushed out, as it were, and ran over at his eyes, in delightful reverence for God, and kindly affection for his human brethren. The emotion communicated itself to Hepzibah. She yearned to take him by the hand, and go and kneel down, they two together,—both so long separate from the world, and, as she now recognized, scarcely friends with Him above,—to kneel down among the people, and be reconciled to God and man at once.

She looked into Clifford’s face and saw a genuine softness there; his heart overflowed through his eyes, filled with joyful reverence for God and warm affection for his fellow humans. Hepzibah felt this emotion too. She longed to take his hand, to kneel down together—both having been so isolated from the world, and, as she now realized, hardly connected with Him above—to kneel down among the people and reconcile with both God and humanity at the same time.

“Dear brother,” said she earnestly, “let us go! We belong nowhere. We have not a foot of space in any church to kneel upon; but let us go to some place of worship, even if we stand in the broad aisle. Poor and forsaken as we are, some pew-door will be opened to us!”

“Dear brother,” she said earnestly, “let’s go! We don’t belong anywhere. We don’t have a single spot in any church to kneel; but let’s find a place of worship, even if we have to stand in the middle of the aisle. Poor and abandoned as we are, some pew door will open for us!”

So Hepzibah and her brother made themselves, ready—as ready as they could in the best of their old-fashioned garments, which had hung on pegs, or been laid away in trunks, so long that the dampness and mouldy smell of the past was on them,—made themselves ready, in their faded bettermost, to go to church. They descended the staircase together,—gaunt, sallow Hepzibah, and pale, emaciated, age-stricken Clifford! They pulled open the front door, and stepped across the threshold, and felt, both of them, as if they were standing in the presence of the whole world, and with mankind’s great and terrible eye on them alone. The eye of their Father seemed to be withdrawn, and gave them no encouragement. The warm sunny air of the street made them shiver. Their hearts quaked within them at the idea of taking one step farther.

So Hepzibah and her brother got themselves ready—as ready as they could be in their old-fashioned clothes, which had been hanging on hooks or packed away in trunks for so long that they were damp and smelled musty from the past. They made themselves ready in their faded best to go to church. They went down the stairs together—gaunt, sallow Hepzibah, and pale, thin, aging Clifford! They pulled open the front door, stepped over the threshold, and both felt as if they were standing in front of the whole world, with humanity's great and terrible gaze on them alone. It seemed like their Father’s eye was turned away, offering them no encouragement. The warm, sunny air of the street made them shiver. Their hearts quaked at the thought of taking even one more step.

“It cannot be, Hepzibah!—it is too late,” said Clifford with deep sadness. “We are ghosts! We have no right among human beings,—no right anywhere but in this old house, which has a curse on it, and which, therefore, we are doomed to haunt! And, besides,” he continued, with a fastidious sensibility, inalienably characteristic of the man, “it would not be fit nor beautiful to go! It is an ugly thought that I should be frightful to my fellow-beings, and that children would cling to their mothers’ gowns at sight of me!”

“It can't be, Hepzibah!—it's too late,” said Clifford with deep sadness. “We’re like ghosts! We don’t belong among people—our place is only in this old house, which is cursed, and so we’re doomed to haunt it! And besides,” he continued, with an exacting sensitivity that's uniquely him, “it wouldn’t be appropriate or beautiful to leave! It's a horrible thought that I would scare other people, and that children would cling to their mothers’ skirts when they saw me!”

They shrank back into the dusky passage-way, and closed the door. But, going up the staircase again, they found the whole interior of the house tenfold more dismal, and the air closer and heavier, for the glimpse and breath of freedom which they had just snatched. They could not flee; their jailer had but left the door ajar in mockery, and stood behind it to watch them stealing out. At the threshold, they felt his pitiless gripe upon them. For, what other dungeon is so dark as one’s own heart! What jailer so inexorable as one’s self!

They backed away into the dark hallway and shut the door. But when they went back up the stairs, they found the entire interior of the house even more depressing, with the air feeling stifling and heavy from the brief moment of freedom they had just experienced. They couldn't escape; their captor had only left the door slightly open in mockery and was standing behind it, watching them try to sneak out. At the doorway, they felt his unyielding grip on them. After all, what dungeon is darker than one’s own heart? What jailer is more relentless than oneself?

But it would be no fair picture of Clifford’s state of mind were we to represent him as continually or prevailingly wretched. On the contrary, there was no other man in the city, we are bold to affirm, of so much as half his years, who enjoyed so many lightsome and griefless moments as himself. He had no burden of care upon him; there were none of those questions and contingencies with the future to be settled which wear away all other lives, and render them not worth having by the very process of providing for their support. In this respect he was a child,—a child for the whole term of his existence, be it long or short. Indeed, his life seemed to be standing still at a period little in advance of childhood, and to cluster all his reminiscences about that epoch; just as, after the torpor of a heavy blow, the sufferer’s reviving consciousness goes back to a moment considerably behind the accident that stupefied him. He sometimes told Phœbe and Hepzibah his dreams, in which he invariably played the part of a child, or a very young man. So vivid were they, in his relation of them, that he once held a dispute with his sister as to the particular figure or print of a chintz morning-dress which he had seen their mother wear, in the dream of the preceding night. Hepzibah, piquing herself on a woman’s accuracy in such matters, held it to be slightly different from what Clifford described; but, producing the very gown from an old trunk, it proved to be identical with his remembrance of it. Had Clifford, every time that he emerged out of dreams so lifelike, undergone the torture of transformation from a boy into an old and broken man, the daily recurrence of the shock would have been too much to bear. It would have caused an acute agony to thrill from the morning twilight, all the day through, until bedtime; and even then would have mingled a dull, inscrutable pain and pallid hue of misfortune with the visionary bloom and adolescence of his slumber. But the nightly moonshine interwove itself with the morning mist, and enveloped him as in a robe, which he hugged about his person, and seldom let realities pierce through; he was not often quite awake, but slept open-eyed, and perhaps fancied himself most dreaming then.

But it wouldn’t be a fair representation of Clifford’s state of mind if we portrayed him as consistently or mostly miserable. On the contrary, we dare say there was no other man in the city, even half his age, who enjoyed as many lighthearted and carefree moments as he did. He had no heavy burdens to bear; there were none of those worries and uncertainties about the future to deal with that wear down other lives and make them feel unworthy just by the act of trying to make a living. In this sense, he was like a child—like a child for as long as he lived, whether that was a long time or a short time. In fact, his life seemed to be stuck in a state not far beyond childhood, with all his memories clustered around that time; similar to how, after the fatigue of a hard blow, a person’s recovering awareness goes back to a moment long before the event that dazed them. He sometimes shared his dreams with Phoebe and Hepzibah, where he always played the role of a child or a very young man. They were so vivid in his retelling that he once argued with his sister about the specific design of a chintz morning dress he saw their mother wearing in the dream from the night before. Hepzibah, proud of a woman’s precision in such details, thought it was slightly different from what Clifford described; but when she pulled the very gown out from an old trunk, it turned out to be exactly as he remembered it. If Clifford had to endure the pain of transforming from a boy into an old and broken man every time he surfaced from such lifelike dreams, the regular shock would have been unbearable. It would have sent sharp pain shooting through him from dawn until bedtime, and even then, it would have mixed a dull, cryptic sorrow and pale shade of misfortune with the vibrant youth of his dreams. But the nightly moonlight wove itself into the morning fog, wrapping around him like a cloak, which he clung to, seldom allowing reality to break through; he was not often completely awake but slept with his eyes open, and maybe thought he was most dreaming then.

Thus, lingering always so near his childhood, he had sympathies with children, and kept his heart the fresher thereby, like a reservoir into which rivulets were pouring not far from the fountain-head. Though prevented, by a subtile sense of propriety, from desiring to associate with them, he loved few things better than to look out of the arched window and see a little girl driving her hoop along the sidewalk, or schoolboys at a game of ball. Their voices, also, were very pleasant to him, heard at a distance, all swarming and intermingling together as flies do in a sunny room.

So, always lingering close to his childhood, he felt a connection with children, which kept his heart fresh, like a reservoir where small streams flowed near the source. Although he was subtly held back by a sense of propriety that made him hesitant to join them, he loved few things more than looking out of the arched window and watching a little girl roll her hoop along the sidewalk or schoolboys playing ball. Their voices, too, were lovely to him, drifting in from a distance, mingling together like flies in a sunny room.

Clifford would, doubtless, have been glad to share their sports. One afternoon he was seized with an irresistible desire to blow soap-bubbles; an amusement, as Hepzibah told Phœbe apart, that had been a favorite one with her brother when they were both children. Behold him, therefore, at the arched window, with an earthen pipe in his mouth! Behold him, with his gray hair, and a wan, unreal smile over his countenance, where still hovered a beautiful grace, which his worst enemy must have acknowledged to be spiritual and immortal, since it had survived so long! Behold him, scattering airy spheres abroad from the window into the street! Little impalpable worlds were those soap-bubbles, with the big world depicted, in hues bright as imagination, on the nothing of their surface. It was curious to see how the passers-by regarded these brilliant fantasies, as they came floating down, and made the dull atmosphere imaginative about them. Some stopped to gaze, and perhaps, carried a pleasant recollection of the bubbles onward as far as the street-corner; some looked angrily upward, as if poor Clifford wronged them by setting an image of beauty afloat so near their dusty pathway. A great many put out their fingers or their walking-sticks to touch, withal; and were perversely gratified, no doubt, when the bubble, with all its pictured earth and sky scene, vanished as if it had never been.

Clifford would definitely have loved to join in their fun. One afternoon, he was struck by an irresistible urge to blow soap bubbles; a pastime, as Hepzibah told Phœbe privately, that had been a favorite of her brother's when they were kids. So there he was, at the arched window, with a clay pipe in his mouth! Look at him, with his gray hair and a faint, unreal smile on his face, where still lingered a beautiful grace that even his worst enemy would have to admit was spiritual and timeless, since it had lasted so long! Look at him, sending airy spheres out of the window and into the street! Those soap bubbles were like tiny, intangible worlds, with the vast world depicted in colors as bright as imagination on their delicate surfaces. It was interesting to see how the passers-by reacted to these shimmering fantasies as they floated down, bringing a bit of imagination to the dull atmosphere around them. Some stopped to watch, perhaps carrying a pleasant memory of the bubbles with them as far as the street corner; others looked up in anger, as if poor Clifford insulted them by releasing an image of beauty so close to their dusty path. Many reached out with their fingers or walking sticks to touch them, and no doubt felt strangely satisfied when the bubble, along with its painted earth and sky scene, disappeared as if it had never existed.

At length, just as an elderly gentleman of very dignified presence happened to be passing, a large bubble sailed majestically down, and burst right against his nose! He looked up,—at first with a stern, keen glance, which penetrated at once into the obscurity behind the arched window,—then with a smile which might be conceived as diffusing a dog-day sultriness for the space of several yards about him.

At last, just as an elderly gentleman with a very dignified presence was walking by, a large bubble floated down and popped right against his nose! He looked up—first with a stern, sharp glance that quickly scanned the darkness behind the arched window—then with a smile that seemed to spread a sweltering warmth for several feet around him.

“Aha, Cousin Clifford!” cried Judge Pyncheon. “What! Still blowing soap-bubbles!”

“Aha, Cousin Clifford!” exclaimed Judge Pyncheon. “What! Still blowing soap bubbles?”

The tone seemed as if meant to be kind and soothing, but yet had a bitterness of sarcasm in it. As for Clifford, an absolute palsy of fear came over him. Apart from any definite cause of dread which his past experience might have given him, he felt that native and original horror of the excellent Judge which is proper to a weak, delicate, and apprehensive character in the presence of massive strength. Strength is incomprehensible by weakness, and, therefore, the more terrible. There is no greater bugbear than a strong-willed relative in the circle of his own connections.

The tone sounded like it was meant to be kind and soothing, but there was also a sharp sarcasm in it. As for Clifford, a total wave of fear washed over him. Beyond any specific reason for fear that his past experiences might have given him, he felt that deep-rooted and instinctive dread of the impressive Judge, which is typical for a weak, fragile, and anxious person when facing someone strong. Weakness can't understand strength, and that's what makes it even scarier. There’s nothing more frightening than a strong-willed family member in their own circle.

XII.
The Daguerreotypist

It must not be supposed that the life of a personage naturally so active as Phœbe could be wholly confined within the precincts of the old Pyncheon House. Clifford’s demands upon her time were usually satisfied, in those long days, considerably earlier than sunset. Quiet as his daily existence seemed, it nevertheless drained all the resources by which he lived. It was not physical exercise that overwearied him,—for except that he sometimes wrought a little with a hoe, or paced the garden-walk, or, in rainy weather, traversed a large unoccupied room,—it was his tendency to remain only too quiescent, as regarded any toil of the limbs and muscles. But, either there was a smouldering fire within him that consumed his vital energy, or the monotony that would have dragged itself with benumbing effect over a mind differently situated was no monotony to Clifford. Possibly, he was in a state of second growth and recovery, and was constantly assimilating nutriment for his spirit and intellect from sights, sounds, and events which passed as a perfect void to persons more practised with the world. As all is activity and vicissitude to the new mind of a child, so might it be, likewise, to a mind that had undergone a kind of new creation, after its long-suspended life.

It shouldn't be assumed that someone as naturally energetic as Phoebe could be completely confined to the old Pyncheon House. Clifford usually required her attention earlier in the day, well before sunset. Even though his daily life seemed calm, it still drained his strength. It wasn't too much physical activity that exhausted him—aside from occasionally working with a hoe, walking in the garden, or moving through a large empty room on rainy days—he tended to stay too inactive regarding any physical labor. However, there was either a smoldering fire inside him consuming his energy, or the monotony that would have numbed someone else's mind didn’t affect Clifford the same way. Perhaps he was in a state of renewal, constantly absorbing nourishment for his spirit and intellect from sights, sounds, and events that went unnoticed by those more accustomed to the world. Just as everything is new and dynamic to a child's fresh mind, it might also feel that way to a mind that has undergone a kind of rebirth after a long period of dormancy.

Be the cause what it might, Clifford commonly retired to rest, thoroughly exhausted, while the sunbeams were still melting through his window-curtains, or were thrown with late lustre on the chamber wall. And while he thus slept early, as other children do, and dreamed of childhood, Phœbe was free to follow her own tastes for the remainder of the day and evening.

No matter the reason, Clifford usually went to bed completely worn out, even while the sunbeams were still streaming through his curtains or casting their late glow on the bedroom wall. And as he slept early, like other children do, dreaming of being a kid, Phœbe was free to pursue her own interests for the rest of the day and evening.

This was a freedom essential to the health even of a character so little susceptible of morbid influences as that of Phœbe. The old house, as we have already said, had both the dry-rot and the damp-rot in its walls; it was not good to breathe no other atmosphere than that. Hepzibah, though she had her valuable and redeeming traits, had grown to be a kind of lunatic by imprisoning herself so long in one place, with no other company than a single series of ideas, and but one affection, and one bitter sense of wrong. Clifford, the reader may perhaps imagine, was too inert to operate morally on his fellow-creatures, however intimate and exclusive their relations with him. But the sympathy or magnetism among human beings is more subtile and universal than we think; it exists, indeed, among different classes of organized life, and vibrates from one to another. A flower, for instance, as Phœbe herself observed, always began to droop sooner in Clifford’s hand, or Hepzibah’s, than in her own; and by the same law, converting her whole daily life into a flower fragrance for these two sickly spirits, the blooming girl must inevitably droop and fade much sooner than if worn on a younger and happier breast. Unless she had now and then indulged her brisk impulses, and breathed rural air in a suburban walk, or ocean breezes along the shore,—had occasionally obeyed the impulse of Nature, in New England girls, by attending a metaphysical or philosophical lecture, or viewing a seven-mile panorama, or listening to a concert,—had gone shopping about the city, ransacking entire depots of splendid merchandise, and bringing home a ribbon,—had employed, likewise, a little time to read the Bible in her chamber, and had stolen a little more to think of her mother and her native place—unless for such moral medicines as the above, we should soon have beheld our poor Phœbe grow thin and put on a bleached, unwholesome aspect, and assume strange, shy ways, prophetic of old-maidenhood and a cheerless future.

This was a freedom essential for the well-being of someone like Phœbe, who wasn't easily affected by negative influences. As we've mentioned before, the old house had both dry and damp rot in its walls; it wasn’t healthy to only breathe that air. Hepzibah, despite having her good qualities, had become almost like a recluse from isolating herself in one place for so long, surrounded by a limited range of thoughts and a single strong emotion, along with a deep sense of injustice. Clifford, as readers might imagine, was too passive to have a positive impact on those around him, no matter how close their relationships were. But the connection between people is more delicate and widespread than we realize; it actually exists across different forms of life and resonates between them. For instance, as Phœbe noticed, a flower always seemed to wilt faster in Clifford’s or Hepzibah’s hands than it did in her own; by the same token, as Phœbe turned her daily life into a source of beauty for these two troubled souls, she would inevitably start to wilt and fade much quicker than if she were nurtured by someone younger and happier. If she hadn't occasionally let herself feel alive—taking walks in the fresh air of the suburbs or along the ocean, attending a philosophical lecture, viewing a panoramic display, listening to a concert, shopping around the city for beautiful things, bringing home a ribbon, spending a little time reading the Bible in her room, and allowing herself to think about her mother and her hometown—without such little escapes, we would soon see poor Phœbe grow thin and take on a pale, unhealthy look, developing strange, reserved behaviors that hinted at a lonely future.

Even as it was, a change grew visible; a change partly to be regretted, although whatever charm it infringed upon was repaired by another, perhaps more precious. She was not so constantly gay, but had her moods of thought, which Clifford, on the whole, liked better than her former phase of unmingled cheerfulness; because now she understood him better and more delicately, and sometimes even interpreted him to himself. Her eyes looked larger, and darker, and deeper; so deep, at some silent moments, that they seemed like Artesian wells, down, down, into the infinite. She was less girlish than when we first beheld her alighting from the omnibus; less girlish, but more a woman.

Even as it was, a change became noticeable; a change that was somewhat regrettable, although whatever charm it diminished was offset by another, perhaps more valuable. She wasn’t always cheerful, but had her thoughtful moods, which Clifford, overall, preferred to her previous phase of pure happiness; because now she understood him better and more sensitively, and sometimes even interpreted him for himself. Her eyes appeared larger, darker, and deeper; so deep, during quiet moments, that they seemed like Artesian wells, going down, down, into the infinite. She was less girl-like than when we first saw her getting off the bus; less girl-like, but more of a woman.

The only youthful mind with which Phœbe had an opportunity of frequent intercourse was that of the daguerreotypist. Inevitably, by the pressure of the seclusion about them, they had been brought into habits of some familiarity. Had they met under different circumstances, neither of these young persons would have been likely to bestow much thought upon the other, unless, indeed, their extreme dissimilarity should have proved a principle of mutual attraction. Both, it is true, were characters proper to New England life, and possessing a common ground, therefore, in their more external developments; but as unlike, in their respective interiors, as if their native climes had been at world-wide distance. During the early part of their acquaintance, Phœbe had held back rather more than was customary with her frank and simple manners from Holgrave’s not very marked advances. Nor was she yet satisfied that she knew him well, although they almost daily met and talked together, in a kind, friendly, and what seemed to be a familiar way.

The only young mind that Phœbe interacted with regularly was that of the daguerreotypist. Due to the isolation around them, they had developed a somewhat familiar relationship. If they had met in different circumstances, neither of them would have likely given much thought to the other, unless their stark differences had sparked some kind of mutual interest. It is true that both were typical of New England life, and they shared some external similarities; however, they were as different internally as if they came from opposite sides of the globe. In the early days of their friendship, Phœbe had held back more than usual for someone with her open and straightforward nature from Holgrave’s subtle advances. She still wasn’t sure if she knew him well, even though they met and chatted almost daily in a friendly and seemingly familiar manner.

The artist, in a desultory manner, had imparted to Phœbe something of his history. Young as he was, and had his career terminated at the point already attained, there had been enough of incident to fill, very creditably, an autobiographic volume. A romance on the plan of Gil Blas, adapted to American society and manners, would cease to be a romance. The experience of many individuals among us, who think it hardly worth the telling, would equal the vicissitudes of the Spaniard’s earlier life; while their ultimate success, or the point whither they tend, may be incomparably higher than any that a novelist would imagine for his hero. Holgrave, as he told Phœbe somewhat proudly, could not boast of his origin, unless as being exceedingly humble, nor of his education, except that it had been the scantiest possible, and obtained by a few winter-months’ attendance at a district school. Left early to his own guidance, he had begun to be self-dependent while yet a boy; and it was a condition aptly suited to his natural force of will. Though now but twenty-two years old (lacking some months, which are years in such a life), he had already been, first, a country schoolmaster; next, a salesman in a country store; and, either at the same time or afterwards, the political editor of a country newspaper. He had subsequently travelled New England and the Middle States, as a peddler, in the employment of a Connecticut manufactory of cologne-water and other essences. In an episodical way he had studied and practised dentistry, and with very flattering success, especially in many of the factory-towns along our inland streams. As a supernumerary official, of some kind or other, aboard a packet-ship, he had visited Europe, and found means, before his return, to see Italy, and part of France and Germany. At a later period he had spent some months in a community of Fourierists. Still more recently he had been a public lecturer on Mesmerism, for which science (as he assured Phœbe, and, indeed, satisfactorily proved, by putting Chanticleer, who happened to be scratching near by, to sleep) he had very remarkable endowments.

The artist had casually shared some of his story with Phœbe. Despite being young and already having his career cut short, he had experienced enough to fill a pretty impressive autobiography. A story like Gil Blas, set in American society and culture, wouldn't feel much like a romance anymore. The experiences of many people like us, who think their stories aren’t worth sharing, could match the ups and downs of the Spaniard's early life; their eventual success or the direction they're heading could far exceed what a novelist would dream up for his main character. Holgrave, as he told Phœbe with a bit of pride, couldn't brag about his background unless he highlighted how humble it was, nor about his education, which was barely anything and mostly came from a few winters spent in a small school. He had to rely on himself from a young age, which suited his strong will. Although he was only twenty-two years old (a few months short, but in his life, that felt like years), he had already been a country schoolteacher, a salesman in a local store, and either simultaneously or later on, the political editor of a local newspaper. He then traveled through New England and the Middle States as a peddler for a cologne-water factory in Connecticut. He had casually studied and practiced dentistry, finding quite a bit of success, particularly in factory towns near our rivers. As a temporary official on a packet ship, he traveled to Europe and managed to see Italy, as well as parts of France and Germany, before coming back. More recently, he spent some months with a community of Fourierists and had just been a public lecturer on Mesmerism, a field he claimed (and successfully demonstrated to Phœbe by putting Chanticleer, who happened to be nearby, to sleep) he had remarkable talent in.

His present phase, as a daguerreotypist, was of no more importance in his own view, nor likely to be more permanent, than any of the preceding ones. It had been taken up with the careless alacrity of an adventurer, who had his bread to earn. It would be thrown aside as carelessly, whenever he should choose to earn his bread by some other equally digressive means. But what was most remarkable, and, perhaps, showed a more than common poise in the young man, was the fact that, amid all these personal vicissitudes, he had never lost his identity. Homeless as he had been,—continually changing his whereabout, and, therefore, responsible neither to public opinion nor to individuals,—putting off one exterior, and snatching up another, to be soon shifted for a third,—he had never violated the innermost man, but had carried his conscience along with him. It was impossible to know Holgrave without recognizing this to be the fact. Hepzibah had seen it. Phœbe soon saw it likewise, and gave him the sort of confidence which such a certainty inspires. She was startled, however, and sometimes repelled,—not by any doubt of his integrity to whatever law he acknowledged, but by a sense that his law differed from her own. He made her uneasy, and seemed to unsettle everything around her, by his lack of reverence for what was fixed, unless, at a moment’s warning, it could establish its right to hold its ground.

His current role as a daguerreotypist wasn't any more significant to him than the previous ones and probably wouldn't last any longer either. He approached it with the casual eagerness of someone trying to make a living. He would abandon it just as easily when he chose to find a different way to earn a living. However, what stood out the most, and perhaps showed that he was more balanced than others his age, was that despite all these personal ups and downs, he never lost his sense of self. Even though he was without a home—constantly on the move and not accountable to anyone or anything—changing his appearance constantly, he never compromised his inner self and always carried his conscience with him. You couldn't get to know Holgrave without realizing this. Hepzibah recognized it. Phœbe soon realized it too, giving him the kind of trust that this awareness brings. Still, she was sometimes taken aback and felt a bit uneasy—not because she doubted his adherence to any laws he followed, but because she sensed that his principles weren’t the same as hers. His indifference to what was established made her uneasy and seemed to disrupt everything around her, unless it could suddenly prove its right to exist.

Then, moreover, she scarcely thought him affectionate in his nature. He was too calm and cool an observer. Phœbe felt his eye, often; his heart, seldom or never. He took a certain kind of interest in Hepzibah and her brother, and Phœbe herself. He studied them attentively, and allowed no slightest circumstance of their individualities to escape him. He was ready to do them whatever good he might; but, after all, he never exactly made common cause with them, nor gave any reliable evidence that he loved them better in proportion as he knew them more. In his relations with them, he seemed to be in quest of mental food, not heart-sustenance. Phœbe could not conceive what interested him so much in her friends and herself, intellectually, since he cared nothing for them, or, comparatively, so little, as objects of human affection.

Then again, she hardly thought he was warm-hearted. He was too calm and detached. Phœbe often felt his gaze, but rarely if ever felt his warmth. He showed a certain interest in Hepzibah, her brother, and Phœbe herself. He observed them closely, missing no small detail of who they were. He was willing to do anything helpful for them, but ultimately, he never truly partnered with them nor showed any real evidence that he cared more for them as he got to know them better. In his interactions, he seemed more in search of intellectual stimulation than emotional connection. Phœbe couldn’t understand what fascinated him about her friends and herself on an intellectual level, especially since he didn’t seem to care much for them as people.

Always, in his interviews with Phœbe, the artist made especial inquiry as to the welfare of Clifford, whom, except at the Sunday festival, he seldom saw.

Always, in his interviews with Phœbe, the artist asked specifically about the well-being of Clifford, who he rarely saw except at the Sunday festival.

“Does he still seem happy?” he asked one day.

“Does he still look happy?” he asked one day.

“As happy as a child,” answered Phœbe; “but—like a child, too—very easily disturbed.”

“As happy as a child,” replied Phœbe; “but—just like a child—very easily upset.”

“How disturbed?” inquired Holgrave. “By things without, or by thoughts within?”

“How disturbed?” Holgrave asked. “By external things, or by thoughts on the inside?”

“I cannot see his thoughts! How should I?” replied Phœbe with simple piquancy. “Very often his humor changes without any reason that can be guessed at, just as a cloud comes over the sun. Latterly, since I have begun to know him better, I feel it to be not quite right to look closely into his moods. He has had such a great sorrow, that his heart is made all solemn and sacred by it. When he is cheerful,—when the sun shines into his mind,—then I venture to peep in, just as far as the light reaches, but no further. It is holy ground where the shadow falls!”

“I can’t see his thoughts! How could I?” Phoebe replied with simple sharpness. “His mood often shifts without any clear reason, just like a cloud passing over the sun. Recently, as I’ve gotten to know him better, I feel it’s not quite right to scrutinize his moods too closely. He’s experienced such great sorrow that it makes his heart feel all serious and sacred. When he’s happy—when the sun shines in his mind—I dare to peek in, just as far as the light goes, but no deeper. It’s holy ground where the shadow falls!”

“How prettily you express this sentiment!” said the artist. “I can understand the feeling, without possessing it. Had I your opportunities, no scruples would prevent me from fathoming Clifford to the full depth of my plummet-line!”

“How beautifully you put this feeling into words!” said the artist. “I can understand the emotion, even if I don’t feel it myself. If I had your chances, nothing would hold me back from exploring Clifford to the deepest point of my reach!”

“How strange that you should wish it!” remarked Phœbe involuntarily. “What is Cousin Clifford to you?”

“How strange that you would want that!” Phœbe said without thinking. “What does Cousin Clifford mean to you?”

“Oh, nothing,—of course, nothing!” answered Holgrave with a smile. “Only this is such an odd and incomprehensible world! The more I look at it, the more it puzzles me, and I begin to suspect that a man’s bewilderment is the measure of his wisdom. Men and women, and children, too, are such strange creatures, that one never can be certain that he really knows them; nor ever guess what they have been from what he sees them to be now. Judge Pyncheon! Clifford! What a complex riddle—a complexity of complexities—do they present! It requires intuitive sympathy, like a young girl’s, to solve it. A mere observer, like myself (who never have any intuitions, and am, at best, only subtile and acute), is pretty certain to go astray.”

“Oh, nothing—of course, nothing!” Holgrave replied with a smile. “It's just that this world is so strange and confusing! The more I examine it, the more it baffles me, and I’m starting to think that a person’s confusion is a sign of their wisdom. Men, women, and even children are such peculiar beings that you can never really be sure you understand them; you can’t even guess what they’ve been through just by looking at who they are now. Judge Pyncheon! Clifford! What a complicated puzzle—so many layers—do they present! It takes a kind of intuitive understanding, like that of a young girl, to figure it out. A mere observer like me (who never has any insights and is, at best, just perceptive and sharp) is bound to get it wrong.”

The artist now turned the conversation to themes less dark than that which they had touched upon. Phœbe and he were young together; nor had Holgrave, in his premature experience of life, wasted entirely that beautiful spirit of youth, which, gushing forth from one small heart and fancy, may diffuse itself over the universe, making it all as bright as on the first day of creation. Man’s own youth is the world’s youth; at least, he feels as if it were, and imagines that the earth’s granite substance is something not yet hardened, and which he can mould into whatever shape he likes. So it was with Holgrave. He could talk sagely about the world’s old age, but never actually believed what he said; he was a young man still, and therefore looked upon the world—that gray-bearded and wrinkled profligate, decrepit, without being venerable—as a tender stripling, capable of being improved into all that it ought to be, but scarcely yet had shown the remotest promise of becoming. He had that sense, or inward prophecy,—which a young man had better never have been born than not to have, and a mature man had better die at once than utterly to relinquish,—that we are not doomed to creep on forever in the old bad way, but that, this very now, there are the harbingers abroad of a golden era, to be accomplished in his own lifetime. It seemed to Holgrave,—as doubtless it has seemed to the hopeful of every century since the epoch of Adam’s grandchildren,—that in this age, more than ever before, the moss-grown and rotten Past is to be torn down, and lifeless institutions to be thrust out of the way, and their dead corpses buried, and everything to begin anew.

The artist shifted the conversation to lighter themes than the ones they had discussed. Phœbe and he were young together; Holgrave, despite his early experiences in life, hadn’t entirely lost that beautiful spirit of youth, which, bursting from a small heart and imagination, can spread over the universe, making everything as bright as on the first day of creation. A person's youth feels like the world’s youth; at least, it seems that way, and one imagines that the earth's solid foundation is something not yet set in stone, which can be shaped into whatever form one desires. That was how Holgrave felt. He could speak wisely about the world's old age, but he never truly believed it; he was still a young man and viewed the world—that gray-bearded and wrinkled outcast, decrepit yet not dignified—as a young person, capable of becoming everything it should be but showing little promise of getting there. He had that feeling, or inner vision—which a young man is better off having than never being born, and a mature man is better off dead than losing it completely—that we are not fated to keep going in the same old way, but that right now, there are signs of a golden era to come within his lifetime. To Holgrave, as it likely has to the hopeful of every century since Adam’s grandchildren, it seemed that in this age, more than ever before, the worn-out and decayed Past should be dismantled, lifeless institutions removed, their dead remnants buried, and everything restarted.

As to the main point,—may we never live to doubt it!—as to the better centuries that are coming, the artist was surely right. His error lay in supposing that this age, more than any past or future one, is destined to see the tattered garments of Antiquity exchanged for a new suit, instead of gradually renewing themselves by patchwork; in applying his own little life-span as the measure of an interminable achievement; and, more than all, in fancying that it mattered anything to the great end in view whether he himself should contend for it or against it. Yet it was well for him to think so. This enthusiasm, infusing itself through the calmness of his character, and thus taking an aspect of settled thought and wisdom, would serve to keep his youth pure, and make his aspirations high. And when, with the years settling down more weightily upon him, his early faith should be modified by inevitable experience, it would be with no harsh and sudden revolution of his sentiments. He would still have faith in man’s brightening destiny, and perhaps love him all the better, as he should recognize his helplessness in his own behalf; and the haughty faith, with which he began life, would be well bartered for a far humbler one at its close, in discerning that man’s best directed effort accomplishes a kind of dream, while God is the sole worker of realities.

As for the main point—let's hope we never doubt it!—about the better centuries that are ahead, the artist was definitely right. He was mistaken in thinking that this age, more than any past or future one, is meant to see the worn-out things of the past replaced by something new, instead of gradually being renewed by patchwork; in using his own short life as a measure for endless achievements; and, most importantly, in believing that it really matters to the ultimate goal whether he fights for it or against it. Still, it was good for him to think that way. This enthusiasm, blending with his calm character and appearing as settled thought and wisdom, would help keep his youth pure and his aspirations high. And when, as the years grew heavier, his early faith was shaped by unavoidable experiences, it wouldn’t be a harsh and sudden change in his feelings. He would still believe in mankind's bright future, and maybe even love people more as he saw their helplessness for themselves; and the prideful faith with which he began life would be well exchanged for a much humbler one by its end, realizing that mankind's best efforts achieve a kind of dream while God is the only true creator of reality.

Holgrave had read very little, and that little in passing through the thoroughfare of life, where the mystic language of his books was necessarily mixed up with the babble of the multitude, so that both one and the other were apt to lose any sense that might have been properly their own. He considered himself a thinker, and was certainly of a thoughtful turn, but, with his own path to discover, had perhaps hardly yet reached the point where an educated man begins to think. The true value of his character lay in that deep consciousness of inward strength, which made all his past vicissitudes seem merely like a change of garments; in that enthusiasm, so quiet that he scarcely knew of its existence, but which gave a warmth to everything that he laid his hand on; in that personal ambition, hidden—from his own as well as other eyes—among his more generous impulses, but in which lurked a certain efficacy, that might solidify him from a theorist into the champion of some practicable cause. Altogether in his culture and want of culture,—in his crude, wild, and misty philosophy, and the practical experience that counteracted some of its tendencies; in his magnanimous zeal for man’s welfare, and his recklessness of whatever the ages had established in man’s behalf; in his faith, and in his infidelity; in what he had, and in what he lacked,—the artist might fitly enough stand forth as the representative of many compeers in his native land.

Holgrave had read very little, and that little only in passing through life, where the mysterious language of his books was mixed with the chatter of the crowd, causing both to lose any sense that might have been uniquely theirs. He saw himself as a thinker and was definitely thoughtful, but, with his own path to find, he had probably not yet reached the point where an educated person begins to think. The true value of his character lay in that deep awareness of his inner strength, which made all his past struggles seem merely like changing clothes; in that enthusiasm, so subtle he barely recognized it, but which brought warmth to everything he touched; in that personal ambition, hidden—from both his and others’ view—among his more noble impulses, but which contained a certain effectiveness that might transform him from a theorist into the advocate of some practical cause. Overall, in his education and lack of education—in his raw, wild, and vague philosophy, and the practical experience that countered some of its tendencies; in his generous commitment to humanity's welfare, and his disregard for whatever the ages had established for mankind; in his beliefs and in his doubts; in what he had and what he lacked—this artist could easily be seen as a representative of many of his peers in his homeland.

His career it would be difficult to prefigure. There appeared to be qualities in Holgrave, such as, in a country where everything is free to the hand that can grasp it, could hardly fail to put some of the world’s prizes within his reach. But these matters are delightfully uncertain. At almost every step in life, we meet with young men of just about Holgrave’s age, for whom we anticipate wonderful things, but of whom, even after much and careful inquiry, we never happen to hear another word. The effervescence of youth and passion, and the fresh gloss of the intellect and imagination, endow them with a false brilliancy, which makes fools of themselves and other people. Like certain chintzes, calicoes, and ginghams, they show finely in their first newness, but cannot stand the sun and rain, and assume a very sober aspect after washing-day.

It’s hard to predict his career. Holgrave had qualities that, in a world where opportunities are abundant for those who seize them, could easily lead him to success. But these things are wonderfully unpredictable. Almost every step of the way, we come across young men around Holgrave’s age, from whom we expect great things, yet even after thorough investigation, we never hear from them again. The excitement of youth and passion, along with the fresh shine of intellect and imagination, gives them a misleading brilliance that blinds themselves and others. Like certain fabrics, such as chintzes, calicoes, and ginghams, they look great at first but can’t withstand the sun and rain, taking on a much duller appearance after being washed.

But our business is with Holgrave as we find him on this particular afternoon, and in the arbor of the Pyncheon garden. In that point of view, it was a pleasant sight to behold this young man, with so much faith in himself, and so fair an appearance of admirable powers,—so little harmed, too, by the many tests that had tried his metal,—it was pleasant to see him in his kindly intercourse with Phœbe. Her thought had scarcely done him justice when it pronounced him cold; or, if so, he had grown warmer now. Without such purpose on her part, and unconsciously on his, she made the House of the Seven Gables like a home to him, and the garden a familiar precinct. With the insight on which he prided himself, he fancied that he could look through Phœbe, and all around her, and could read her off like a page of a child’s story-book. But these transparent natures are often deceptive in their depth; those pebbles at the bottom of the fountain are farther from us than we think. Thus the artist, whatever he might judge of Phœbe’s capacity, was beguiled, by some silent charm of hers, to talk freely of what he dreamed of doing in the world. He poured himself out as to another self. Very possibly, he forgot Phœbe while he talked to her, and was moved only by the inevitable tendency of thought, when rendered sympathetic by enthusiasm and emotion, to flow into the first safe reservoir which it finds. But, had you peeped at them through the chinks of the garden-fence, the young man’s earnestness and heightened color might have led you to suppose that he was making love to the young girl!

But our focus is on Holgrave as we find him on this particular afternoon in the arbor of the Pyncheon garden. From that perspective, it was a nice sight to see this young man, so confident in himself and with such a striking appearance of admirable abilities—so little affected, too, by the many challenges that had tested his character—it was nice to observe him in his friendly interaction with Phœbe. Her assessment had hardly done him justice when she labeled him cold; or, if he was, he had become warmer now. Without any intention on her part and unconsciously on his, she made the House of the Seven Gables feel like home to him, and the garden became a comfortable space. With the insight he prided himself on, he believed he could see through Phœbe and around her, reading her like a page from a child's storybook. But these seemingly simple natures can often be misleading in their depth; those pebbles at the bottom of the fountain are farther away than we think. Thus, the artist, no matter what he thought of Phœbe’s abilities, was enchanted, by some silent charm of hers, to openly discuss his dreams for the future. He poured himself out as if she were another part of himself. It’s very possible he forgot about Phœbe while he talked to her, driven only by the natural tendency of thought—when inspired by enthusiasm and emotion—to flow into the first safe outlet it finds. Yet, if you had peeked at them through the gaps in the garden fence, the young man’s intensity and flushed cheeks might have made you think that he was wooing the young girl!

At length, something was said by Holgrave that made it apposite for Phœbe to inquire what had first brought him acquainted with her cousin Hepzibah, and why he now chose to lodge in the desolate old Pyncheon House. Without directly answering her, he turned from the Future, which had heretofore been the theme of his discourse, and began to speak of the influences of the Past. One subject, indeed, is but the reverberation of the other.

At last, Holgrave said something that prompted Phœbe to ask what had first connected him with her cousin Hepzibah, and why he had decided to stay in the lonely old Pyncheon House. Instead of directly answering her, he shifted his focus from the Future, which had been the topic of his conversation, and started talking about the influences of the Past. One subject, in fact, is just a reflection of the other.

“Shall we never, never get rid of this Past?” cried he, keeping up the earnest tone of his preceding conversation. “It lies upon the Present like a giant’s dead body! In fact, the case is just as if a young giant were compelled to waste all his strength in carrying about the corpse of the old giant, his grandfather, who died a long while ago, and only needs to be decently buried. Just think a moment, and it will startle you to see what slaves we are to bygone times,—to Death, if we give the matter the right word!”

“Are we never going to be free from this Past?” he exclaimed, maintaining the serious tone from his earlier conversation. “It weighs on the Present like the lifeless body of a giant! It’s actually like a young giant being forced to waste all his strength carrying around the corpse of his grandfather, the old giant, who died long ago and just needs a proper burial. Just think about it for a moment, and it will shock you to realize how much we are ruled by the past—by Death, if we call it what it really is!”

“But I do not see it,” observed Phœbe.

“But I don’t see it,” Phœbe said.

“For example, then,” continued Holgrave: “a dead man, if he happens to have made a will, disposes of wealth no longer his own; or, if he die intestate, it is distributed in accordance with the notions of men much longer dead than he. A dead man sits on all our judgment-seats; and living judges do but search out and repeat his decisions. We read in dead men’s books! We laugh at dead men’s jokes, and cry at dead men’s pathos! We are sick of dead men’s diseases, physical and moral, and die of the same remedies with which dead doctors killed their patients! We worship the living Deity according to dead men’s forms and creeds. Whatever we seek to do, of our own free motion, a dead man’s icy hand obstructs us! Turn our eyes to what point we may, a dead man’s white, immitigable face encounters them, and freezes our very heart! And we must be dead ourselves before we can begin to have our proper influence on our own world, which will then be no longer our world, but the world of another generation, with which we shall have no shadow of a right to interfere. I ought to have said, too, that we live in dead men’s houses; as, for instance, in this of the Seven Gables!”

“For example,” Holgrave continued, “a dead person, if they made a will, distributes wealth that no longer belongs to them; or, if they die without a will, it gets divided according to the beliefs of people who have been dead much longer than they have. A dead person sits on all our judgment seats; and living judges merely look for and repeat their decisions. We read books written by dead people! We laugh at dead people’s jokes and cry at their emotional stories! We suffer from the same physical and moral ailments as dead people, and we die from the same treatments that killed their patients! We worship the living God according to the rituals and beliefs of dead people. Whatever we try to do on our own, a dead person’s cold hand blocks us! No matter where we look, a dead person’s pale, unyielding face meets our gaze and chills our hearts! And we have to be dead ourselves before we can truly influence our world, which will then no longer be our world, but that of another generation, with which we will have no right to interfere. I should also mention that we live in dead people’s houses; for example, this one here at the Seven Gables!”

“And why not,” said Phœbe, “so long as we can be comfortable in them?”

“And why not,” said Phoebe, “as long as we can be comfortable in them?”

“But we shall live to see the day, I trust,” went on the artist, “when no man shall build his house for posterity. Why should he? He might just as reasonably order a durable suit of clothes,—leather, or guttapercha, or whatever else lasts longest,—so that his great-grandchildren should have the benefit of them, and cut precisely the same figure in the world that he himself does. If each generation were allowed and expected to build its own houses, that single change, comparatively unimportant in itself, would imply almost every reform which society is now suffering for. I doubt whether even our public edifices—our capitols, state-houses, court-houses, city-hall, and churches,—ought to be built of such permanent materials as stone or brick. It were better that they should crumble to ruin once in twenty years, or thereabouts, as a hint to the people to examine into and reform the institutions which they symbolize.”

“But I believe we’ll live to see the day,” the artist continued, “when no one will build their house for future generations. Why should they? It’s just as sensible as ordering a long-lasting suit of clothes—leather, or some other durable material—so that their great-grandchildren could benefit from them and look exactly as they do. If each generation was free and expected to build its own homes, that simple change, which seems minor in itself, would lead to nearly every reform society desperately needs. I even question whether our public buildings—like capitols, state houses, courthouses, city halls, and churches—should be made of lasting materials like stone or brick. It would be better if they fell apart every twenty years or so, as a reminder to the people to reevaluate and reform the institutions they represent.”

“How you hate everything old!” said Phœbe in dismay. “It makes me dizzy to think of such a shifting world!”

“How you hate everything outdated!” said Phœbe in dismay. “It makes me dizzy to think of such a changing world!”

“I certainly love nothing mouldy,” answered Holgrave. “Now, this old Pyncheon House! Is it a wholesome place to live in, with its black shingles, and the green moss that shows how damp they are?—its dark, low-studded rooms—its grime and sordidness, which are the crystallization on its walls of the human breath, that has been drawn and exhaled here in discontent and anguish? The house ought to be purified with fire,—purified till only its ashes remain!”

“I definitely don’t love anything rotten,” Holgrave replied. “Now, this old Pyncheon House! Is it a healthy place to live, with its black shingles and the green moss that shows how damp they are?—its dark, low rooms—its grime and filth, which are the buildup on its walls of the human breath that has been inhaled and exhaled here in frustration and pain? The house should be cleansed with fire—cleansed until only its ashes are left!”

“Then why do you live in it?” asked Phœbe, a little piqued.

“Then why do you live in it?” asked Phoebe, a bit annoyed.

“Oh, I am pursuing my studies here; not in books, however,” replied Holgrave. “The house, in my view, is expressive of that odious and abominable Past, with all its bad influences, against which I have just been declaiming. I dwell in it for a while, that I may know the better how to hate it. By the bye, did you ever hear the story of Maule, the wizard, and what happened between him and your immeasurably great-grandfather?”

“Oh, I’m studying here; not from books, though,” Holgrave replied. “The house, to me, represents that repugnant and horrible past, with all its negative influences, which I’ve just been going on about. I stay here for a while to better learn how to hate it. By the way, have you ever heard the story of Maule, the wizard, and what happened between him and your incredibly great-grandfather?”

“Yes, indeed!” said Phœbe; “I heard it long ago, from my father, and two or three times from my cousin Hepzibah, in the month that I have been here. She seems to think that all the calamities of the Pyncheons began from that quarrel with the wizard, as you call him. And you, Mr. Holgrave look as if you thought so too! How singular that you should believe what is so very absurd, when you reject many things that are a great deal worthier of credit!”

“Yes, definitely!” said Phoebe. “I heard it a while ago from my dad, and a couple of times from my cousin Hepzibah since I’ve been here this month. She seems to believe that all the troubles of the Pyncheons started from that fight with the wizard, as you call him. And you, Mr. Holgrave, look like you think so too! How strange that you would believe something so ridiculous when you dismiss so many things that are much more credible!”

“I do believe it,” said the artist seriously; “not as a superstition, however, but as proved by unquestionable facts, and as exemplifying a theory. Now, see: under those seven gables, at which we now look up,—and which old Colonel Pyncheon meant to be the house of his descendants, in prosperity and happiness, down to an epoch far beyond the present,—under that roof, through a portion of three centuries, there has been perpetual remorse of conscience, a constantly defeated hope, strife amongst kindred, various misery, a strange form of death, dark suspicion, unspeakable disgrace,—all, or most of which calamity I have the means of tracing to the old Puritan’s inordinate desire to plant and endow a family. To plant a family! This idea is at the bottom of most of the wrong and mischief which men do. The truth is, that, once in every half-century, at longest, a family should be merged into the great, obscure mass of humanity, and forget all about its ancestors. Human blood, in order to keep its freshness, should run in hidden streams, as the water of an aqueduct is conveyed in subterranean pipes. In the family existence of these Pyncheons, for instance,—forgive me Phœbe, but I cannot think of you as one of them,—in their brief New England pedigree, there has been time enough to infect them all with one kind of lunacy or another.”

“I really believe it,” said the artist earnestly; “not as a superstition, though, but as something proven by undeniable facts and illustrating a theory. Now, look: under those seven gables, which we’re gazing at now—and which old Colonel Pyncheon intended to be the home of his descendants, thriving and happy, well into the future—under that roof, for part of three centuries, there has been endless guilt, constant disappointment, conflict among family, various sufferings, a strange kind of death, deep suspicion, and unspeakable shame—all, or most, of which I can trace back to the old Puritan’s overwhelming wish to establish and support a family. To establish a family! This idea lies at the heart of most wrongs and troubles that people cause. The truth is, that once every fifty years, at most, a family should dissolve into the vast, unknown mass of humanity and forget all about its ancestors. Human blood, to maintain its vitality, should flow in hidden streams, just like how water is carried through underground pipes in an aqueduct. In the family history of these Pyncheons, for instance—pardon me, Phœbe, but I can’t see you as one of them—in their brief New England lineage, there's been plenty of time to infect them all with one kind of madness or another.”

“You speak very unceremoniously of my kindred,” said Phœbe, debating with herself whether she ought to take offence.

“You're speaking very casually about my family,” said Phœbe, wondering if she should be offended.

“I speak true thoughts to a true mind!” answered Holgrave, with a vehemence which Phœbe had not before witnessed in him. “The truth is as I say! Furthermore, the original perpetrator and father of this mischief appears to have perpetuated himself, and still walks the street,—at least, his very image, in mind and body,—with the fairest prospect of transmitting to posterity as rich and as wretched an inheritance as he has received! Do you remember the daguerreotype, and its resemblance to the old portrait?”

“I’m speaking honestly to an honest mind!” Holgrave replied, with a passion that Phoebe had never seen in him before. “The truth is exactly what I’m saying! Moreover, the original instigator and creator of this trouble seems to have continued on, and still walks the streets—at least, his exact image, in both thought and appearance—likely passing down to future generations as rich and as miserable an inheritance as he has received! Do you remember the daguerreotype and how it looks just like the old portrait?”

“How strangely in earnest you are!” exclaimed Phœbe, looking at him with surprise and perplexity; half alarmed and partly inclined to laugh. “You talk of the lunacy of the Pyncheons; is it contagious?”

“How strangely serious you are!” exclaimed Phœbe, looking at him with surprise and confusion; half worried and partly ready to laugh. “You’re talking about the craziness of the Pyncheons; is it contagious?”

“I understand you!” said the artist, coloring and laughing. “I believe I am a little mad. This subject has taken hold of my mind with the strangest tenacity of clutch since I have lodged in yonder old gable. As one method of throwing it off, I have put an incident of the Pyncheon family history, with which I happen to be acquainted, into the form of a legend, and mean to publish it in a magazine.”

“I get you!” said the artist, blushing and laughing. “I think I’m a bit crazy. This topic has gripped my mind with the weirdest persistence since I’ve been staying in that old attic. As a way to shake it off, I’ve turned a story from the Pyncheon family history that I know into a legend, and I plan to publish it in a magazine.”

“Do you write for the magazines?” inquired Phœbe.

“Do you write for the magazines?” Phœbe asked.

“Is it possible you did not know it?” cried Holgrave. “Well, such is literary fame! Yes. Miss Phœbe Pyncheon, among the multitude of my marvellous gifts I have that of writing stories; and my name has figured, I can assure you, on the covers of Graham and Godey, making as respectable an appearance, for aught I could see, as any of the canonized bead-roll with which it was associated. In the humorous line, I am thought to have a very pretty way with me; and as for pathos, I am as provocative of tears as an onion. But shall I read you my story?”

"Did you really not know that?" Holgrave exclaimed. "Well, that's the nature of literary fame! Yes, Miss Phoebe Pyncheon, among my many incredible talents, I can write stories; and my name has appeared, I assure you, on the covers of Graham and Godey, looking just as respectable to me as any of the esteemed authors it's been associated with. When it comes to humor, people say I have a delightful style; and as for evoking emotion, I'm as good at provoking tears as an onion. So, would you like me to read you my story?"

“Yes, if it is not very long,” said Phœbe,—and added laughingly,—“nor very dull.”

“Yes, if it’s not too long,” said Phœbe, and added with a laugh, “or boring.”

As this latter point was one which the daguerreotypist could not decide for himself, he forthwith produced his roll of manuscript, and, while the late sunbeams gilded the seven gables, began to read.

As this latter point was something the daguerreotypist couldn't decide for himself, he quickly took out his roll of manuscript and, while the setting sun lit up the seven gables, started to read.

XIII.
Alice Pyncheon

There was a message brought, one day, from the worshipful Gervayse Pyncheon to young Matthew Maule, the carpenter, desiring his immediate presence at the House of the Seven Gables.

There was a message delivered one day from the respected Gervayse Pyncheon to young Matthew Maule, the carpenter, asking for his immediate presence at the House of the Seven Gables.

“And what does your master want with me?” said the carpenter to Mr. Pyncheon’s black servant. “Does the house need any repair? Well it may, by this time; and no blame to my father who built it, neither! I was reading the old Colonel’s tombstone, no longer ago than last Sabbath; and, reckoning from that date, the house has stood seven-and-thirty years. No wonder if there should be a job to do on the roof.”

“And what does your master want with me?” the carpenter asked Mr. Pyncheon’s black servant. “Does the house need any repairs? Well, it might; and it’s not my father’s fault who built it! I was reading the old Colonel’s tombstone just last Sunday; and, counting from that date, the house has been standing for thirty-seven years. No surprise if there’s something that needs fixing on the roof.”

“Don’t know what massa wants,” answered Scipio. “The house is a berry good house, and old Colonel Pyncheon think so too, I reckon;—else why the old man haunt it so, and frighten a poor nigga, As he does?”

"Don't know what the master wants," replied Scipio. "The house is a really good house, and I bet old Colonel Pyncheon thinks so too; otherwise, why would the old man keep coming around and scaring a poor guy like me?"

“Well, well, friend Scipio; let your master know that I’m coming,” said the carpenter with a laugh. “For a fair, workmanlike job, he’ll find me his man. And so the house is haunted, is it? It will take a tighter workman than I am to keep the spirits out of the Seven Gables. Even if the Colonel would be quiet,” he added, muttering to himself, “my old grandfather, the wizard, will be pretty sure to stick to the Pyncheons as long as their walls hold together.”

“Well, well, my friend Scipio; tell your boss that I’m on my way,” said the carpenter with a laugh. “For a good, solid job, he’ll see I’m the right guy for it. So the house is haunted, huh? It’ll take a better worker than me to keep the spirits out of the Seven Gables. Even if the Colonel would behave,” he added, mumbling to himself, “my old grandfather, the wizard, will definitely be around the Pyncheons as long as their walls stay standing.”

“What’s that you mutter to yourself, Matthew Maule?” asked Scipio. “And what for do you look so black at me?”

“What are you mumbling to yourself, Matthew Maule?” Scipio asked. “And why do you look so angry with me?”

“No matter, darky,” said the carpenter. “Do you think nobody is to look black but yourself? Go tell your master I’m coming; and if you happen to see Mistress Alice, his daughter, give Matthew Maule’s humble respects to her. She has brought a fair face from Italy,—fair, and gentle, and proud,—has that same Alice Pyncheon!”

“No worries, darky,” said the carpenter. “Do you think you’re the only one allowed to look down on others? Go tell your boss I’m on my way; and if you see Mistress Alice, his daughter, send my regards to her from Matthew Maule. She has a beautiful face from Italy—beautiful, gentle, and proud—just like that Alice Pyncheon!”

“He talk of Mistress Alice!” cried Scipio, as he returned from his errand. “The low carpenter-man! He no business so much as to look at her a great way off!”

“He's talking about Mistress Alice!” shouted Scipio as he returned from his errand. “That low carpenter guy! He shouldn’t even think about looking at her from far away!”

This young Matthew Maule, the carpenter, it must be observed, was a person little understood, and not very generally liked, in the town where he resided; not that anything could be alleged against his integrity, or his skill and diligence in the handicraft which he exercised. The aversion (as it might justly be called) with which many persons regarded him was partly the result of his own character and deportment, and partly an inheritance.

This young Matthew Maule, the carpenter, should be noted as someone who was not well understood and not very liked in the town where he lived. It wasn’t that anyone could question his honesty or his skill and hard work in his trade. The dislike that many people had for him was partly due to his own personality and behavior, and partly something he inherited.

He was the grandson of a former Matthew Maule, one of the early settlers of the town, and who had been a famous and terrible wizard in his day. This old reprobate was one of the sufferers when Cotton Mather, and his brother ministers, and the learned judges, and other wise men, and Sir William Phipps, the sagacious governor, made such laudable efforts to weaken the great enemy of souls, by sending a multitude of his adherents up the rocky pathway of Gallows Hill. Since those days, no doubt, it had grown to be suspected that, in consequence of an unfortunate overdoing of a work praiseworthy in itself, the proceedings against the witches had proved far less acceptable to the Beneficent Father than to that very Arch Enemy whom they were intended to distress and utterly overwhelm. It is not the less certain, however, that awe and terror brooded over the memories of those who died for this horrible crime of witchcraft. Their graves, in the crevices of the rocks, were supposed to be incapable of retaining the occupants who had been so hastily thrust into them. Old Matthew Maule, especially, was known to have as little hesitation or difficulty in rising out of his grave as an ordinary man in getting out of bed, and was as often seen at midnight as living people at noonday. This pestilent wizard (in whom his just punishment seemed to have wrought no manner of amendment) had an inveterate habit of haunting a certain mansion, styled the House of the Seven Gables, against the owner of which he pretended to hold an unsettled claim for ground-rent. The ghost, it appears,—with the pertinacity which was one of his distinguishing characteristics while alive,—insisted that he was the rightful proprietor of the site upon which the house stood. His terms were, that either the aforesaid ground-rent, from the day when the cellar began to be dug, should be paid down, or the mansion itself given up; else he, the ghostly creditor, would have his finger in all the affairs of the Pyncheons, and make everything go wrong with them, though it should be a thousand years after his death. It was a wild story, perhaps, but seemed not altogether so incredible to those who could remember what an inflexibly obstinate old fellow this wizard Maule had been.

He was the grandson of Matthew Maule, an early settler of the town and a well-known, fearsome wizard in his time. This old troublemaker was one of the victims when Cotton Mather, along with his fellow ministers, learned judges, and other wise men, including Sir William Phipps, the clever governor, made admirable efforts to weaken the great enemy of souls by sending many of his followers up the rocky path of Gallows Hill. Since then, it had become clear that, due to an unfortunate overzealousness in a praiseworthy endeavor, the efforts against the witches had turned out to be much less favorable to the Beneficent Father than to the very Arch Enemy they aimed to damage and completely defeat. However, it is still true that feelings of awe and terror lingered over the memories of those who died for this dreadful crime of witchcraft. Their graves, tucked into the rock crevices, were believed to be unable to hold the bodies that had been hastily buried. Old Matthew Maule, in particular, was known to rise from his grave as easily as a regular person gets out of bed, and he was seen at midnight just as often as living people were seen at noon. This troublesome wizard—whom his deserved punishment seemed not to have changed at all—had a stubborn habit of haunting a certain mansion known as the House of the Seven Gables, claiming he held an unsettled ground-rent demand against its owner. The ghost, it seems—with the persistence that marked his life—claimed he was the rightful owner of the land on which the house stood. His terms were that either the aforementioned ground-rent should be paid since the day the cellar was dug or the mansion itself should be surrendered; if not, he, the ghostly creditor, would meddle in all Pyncheon affairs, causing trouble for them for a thousand years after his death. It was a wild story, perhaps, but it didn’t seem totally unbelievable to those who remembered how stubborn this wizard Maule had been.

Now, the wizard’s grandson, the young Matthew Maule of our story, was popularly supposed to have inherited some of his ancestor’s questionable traits. It is wonderful how many absurdities were promulgated in reference to the young man. He was fabled, for example, to have a strange power of getting into people’s dreams, and regulating matters there according to his own fancy, pretty much like the stage-manager of a theatre. There was a great deal of talk among the neighbors, particularly the petticoated ones, about what they called the witchcraft of Maule’s eye. Some said that he could look into people’s minds; others, that, by the marvellous power of this eye, he could draw people into his own mind, or send them, if he pleased, to do errands to his grandfather, in the spiritual world; others, again, that it was what is termed an Evil Eye, and possessed the valuable faculty of blighting corn, and drying children into mummies with the heartburn. But, after all, what worked most to the young carpenter’s disadvantage was, first, the reserve and sternness of his natural disposition, and next, the fact of his not being a church-communicant, and the suspicion of his holding heretical tenets in matters of religion and polity.

Now, the wizard’s grandson, the young Matthew Maule in our story, was widely believed to have inherited some of his ancestor’s questionable traits. It’s amazing how many ridiculous stories were spread about him. He was rumored, for instance, to have a strange power to enter people’s dreams and control things there according to his own whims, much like the stage manager of a theater. There was a lot of gossip among the neighbors, especially the women, about what they called the witchcraft of Maule’s eye. Some said he could look into people’s minds; others claimed that with the amazing power of his eye, he could pull people into his own mind or send them off to do his grandfather's bidding in the spiritual realm. Others still said it was what’s known as an Evil Eye, capable of blighting crops and turning children into mummies from heartburn. But ultimately, what worked most against the young carpenter was, first, the reserve and severity of his natural demeanor, and second, the fact that he didn’t attend church and had a reputation for holding unorthodox beliefs in religion and politics.

After receiving Mr. Pyncheon’s message, the carpenter merely tarried to finish a small job, which he happened to have in hand, and then took his way towards the House of the Seven Gables. This noted edifice, though its style might be getting a little out of fashion, was still as respectable a family residence as that of any gentleman in town. The present owner, Gervayse Pyncheon, was said to have contracted a dislike to the house, in consequence of a shock to his sensibility, in early childhood, from the sudden death of his grandfather. In the very act of running to climb Colonel Pyncheon’s knee, the boy had discovered the old Puritan to be a corpse. On arriving at manhood, Mr. Pyncheon had visited England, where he married a lady of fortune, and had subsequently spent many years, partly in the mother country, and partly in various cities on the continent of Europe. During this period, the family mansion had been consigned to the charge of a kinsman, who was allowed to make it his home for the time being, in consideration of keeping the premises in thorough repair. So faithfully had this contract been fulfilled, that now, as the carpenter approached the house, his practised eye could detect nothing to criticise in its condition. The peaks of the seven gables rose up sharply; the shingled roof looked thoroughly water-tight; and the glittering plaster-work entirely covered the exterior walls, and sparkled in the October sun, as if it had been new only a week ago.

After getting Mr. Pyncheon’s message, the carpenter just took a moment to finish a small job he was working on, and then headed toward the House of the Seven Gables. This well-known building, although its style might be a bit outdated, was still a respectable family home, just like any gentleman's house in town. The current owner, Gervayse Pyncheon, was rumored to have developed a dislike for the house because of a shock he experienced in childhood when his grandfather suddenly died. While running to climb onto Colonel Pyncheon’s lap, the boy found the old Puritan had passed away. When he reached adulthood, Mr. Pyncheon traveled to England, where he married a wealthy woman and spent several years partly in England and partly in various cities across Europe. During this time, the family home was entrusted to a relative, who was allowed to live there temporarily as long as he kept the place in good repair. The relative had taken this responsibility so seriously that now, as the carpenter approached the house, his trained eye found nothing to criticize in its condition. The peaks of the seven gables stood tall; the shingled roof looked completely waterproof; and the shiny plaster on the exterior walls shone in the October sun, as if it had just been put up a week ago.

The house had that pleasant aspect of life which is like the cheery expression of comfortable activity in the human countenance. You could see, at once, that there was the stir of a large family within it. A huge load of oak-wood was passing through the gateway, towards the outbuildings in the rear; the fat cook—or probably it might be the housekeeper—stood at the side door, bargaining for some turkeys and poultry which a countryman had brought for sale. Now and then a maid-servant, neatly dressed, and now the shining sable face of a slave, might be seen bustling across the windows, in the lower part of the house. At an open window of a room in the second story, hanging over some pots of beautiful and delicate flowers,—exotics, but which had never known a more genial sunshine than that of the New England autumn,—was the figure of a young lady, an exotic, like the flowers, and beautiful and delicate as they. Her presence imparted an indescribable grace and faint witchery to the whole edifice. In other respects, it was a substantial, jolly-looking mansion, and seemed fit to be the residence of a patriarch, who might establish his own headquarters in the front gable and assign one of the remainder to each of his six children, while the great chimney in the centre should symbolize the old fellow’s hospitable heart, which kept them all warm, and made a great whole of the seven smaller ones.

The house had a welcoming vibe that resembled the cheerful expression of a person engaged in cozy activities. You could immediately tell that a large family lived there. A massive load of oak wood was being carried through the gate towards the outbuildings in the back; the plump cook—or maybe it was the housekeeper—stood by the back door, negotiating for some turkeys and chickens that a farmer had brought to sell. Now and then, a neatly dressed maid could be seen hurrying past the windows on the lower level, and occasionally, the shiny face of a slave might also appear. At an open window on the second floor, leaning over pots of beautiful, delicate flowers—exotics that had never experienced anything warmer than New England autumn sunshine—stood a young lady, just like the flowers, beautiful and delicate. Her presence gave an indescribable charm and subtle magic to the entire house. Overall, it was a sturdy, cheerful mansion, suitable for a patriarch who could claim the front gable as his headquarters and assign the other rooms to each of his six children, while the large central chimney symbolized his warm, welcoming heart that embraced them all and united the seven smaller spaces.

There was a vertical sundial on the front gable; and as the carpenter passed beneath it, he looked up and noted the hour.

There was a vertical sundial on the front gable, and as the carpenter walked underneath it, he looked up and checked the time.

“Three o’clock!” said he to himself. “My father told me that dial was put up only an hour before the old Colonel’s death. How truly it has kept time these seven-and-thirty years past! The shadow creeps and creeps, and is always looking over the shoulder of the sunshine!”

“Three o’clock!” he said to himself. “My dad told me that clock was installed just an hour before the old Colonel died. It really has kept perfect time for the last thirty-seven years! The shadow moves and moves, always looking back at the sunshine!”

It might have befitted a craftsman, like Matthew Maule, on being sent for to a gentleman’s house, to go to the back door, where servants and work-people were usually admitted; or at least to the side entrance, where the better class of tradesmen made application. But the carpenter had a great deal of pride and stiffness in his nature; and, at this moment, moreover, his heart was bitter with the sense of hereditary wrong, because he considered the great Pyncheon House to be standing on soil which should have been his own. On this very site, beside a spring of delicious water, his grandfather had felled the pine-trees and built a cottage, in which children had been born to him; and it was only from a dead man’s stiffened fingers that Colonel Pyncheon had wrested away the title-deeds. So young Maule went straight to the principal entrance, beneath a portal of carved oak, and gave such a peal of the iron knocker that you would have imagined the stern old wizard himself to be standing at the threshold.

It would have been better for a craftsman like Matthew Maule, when called to a gentleman’s house, to go in through the back door where servants and laborers were usually admitted, or at least to the side entrance where higher-class tradesmen applied. But the carpenter had a lot of pride and stubbornness; and, at that moment, his heart was heavy with the feeling of inherited injustice because he believed the grand Pyncheon House was built on land that rightfully belonged to him. On this very spot, next to a spring of fresh water, his grandfather had cut down the pine trees and built a cottage, where his children had been born; and it was only by taking the title deeds from a dead man’s lifeless hands that Colonel Pyncheon had claimed it for himself. So, young Maule went straight to the main entrance, beneath an intricately carved oak door, and gave a loud knock on the iron knocker that made it seem like the stern old wizard himself was standing at the door.

Black Scipio answered the summons in a prodigious hurry; but showed the whites of his eyes, in amazement on beholding only the carpenter.

Black Scipio responded to the call in a huge rush, but he showed the whites of his eyes in disbelief when he saw only the carpenter.

“Lord-a-mercy, what a great man he be, this carpenter fellow!” mumbled Scipio, down in his throat. “Anybody think he beat on the door with his biggest hammer!”

“Wow, what a great guy he is, this carpenter dude!” mumbled Scipio under his breath. “You’d think he knocked on the door with his biggest hammer!”

“Here I am!” said Maule sternly. “Show me the way to your master’s parlor.”

“Here I am!” said Maule firmly. “Lead me to your master’s parlor.”

As he stept into the house, a note of sweet and melancholy music thrilled and vibrated along the passage-way, proceeding from one of the rooms above stairs. It was the harpsichord which Alice Pyncheon had brought with her from beyond the sea. The fair Alice bestowed most of her maiden leisure between flowers and music, although the former were apt to droop, and the melodies were often sad. She was of foreign education, and could not take kindly to the New England modes of life, in which nothing beautiful had ever been developed.

As he stepped into the house, a note of sweet and melancholic music resonated through the hallway, coming from one of the rooms upstairs. It was the harpsichord that Alice Pyncheon had brought with her from overseas. The lovely Alice spent much of her free time among flowers and music, though the flowers tended to wilt, and the melodies were often sorrowful. She had a foreign education and struggled to adjust to the New England way of life, where nothing beautiful had ever been created.

As Mr. Pyncheon had been impatiently awaiting Maule’s arrival, black Scipio, of course, lost no time in ushering the carpenter into his master’s presence. The room in which this gentleman sat was a parlor of moderate size, looking out upon the garden of the house, and having its windows partly shadowed by the foliage of fruit-trees. It was Mr. Pyncheon’s peculiar apartment, and was provided with furniture, in an elegant and costly style, principally from Paris; the floor (which was unusual at that day) being covered with a carpet, so skilfully and richly wrought that it seemed to glow as with living flowers. In one corner stood a marble woman, to whom her own beauty was the sole and sufficient garment. Some pictures—that looked old, and had a mellow tinge diffused through all their artful splendor—hung on the walls. Near the fireplace was a large and very beautiful cabinet of ebony, inlaid with ivory; a piece of antique furniture, which Mr. Pyncheon had bought in Venice, and which he used as the treasure-place for medals, ancient coins, and whatever small and valuable curiosities he had picked up on his travels. Through all this variety of decoration, however, the room showed its original characteristics; its low stud, its cross-beam, its chimney-piece, with the old-fashioned Dutch tiles; so that it was the emblem of a mind industriously stored with foreign ideas, and elaborated into artificial refinement, but neither larger, nor, in its proper self, more elegant than before.

As Mr. Pyncheon eagerly waited for Maule to arrive, black Scipio quickly brought the carpenter into his master’s presence. The room where this gentleman sat was a mid-sized parlor overlooking the garden, with windows partially shaded by the leaves of fruit trees. This was Mr. Pyncheon’s special space, furnished in an elegant and expensive style, mainly from Paris. The floor, which was uncommon for that time, was covered with a carpet so skillfully crafted that it appeared to shine like vibrant flowers. In one corner stood a marble woman, her own beauty being her only garment. Some pictures, which looked aged and had a warm tones blending through their artistic glamour, hung on the walls. Near the fireplace was a large, stunning cabinet made of ebony and inlaid with ivory; a piece of antique furniture that Mr. Pyncheon had purchased in Venice, and which he used to store medals, ancient coins, and whatever small, valuable curiosities he had collected during his travels. Despite the variety of decorations, the room retained its original features—its low ceiling, cross-beams, and fireplace adorned with old-fashioned Dutch tiles—making it a symbol of a mind filled with foreign ideas, shaped into a refined style, but neither larger nor, in its essence, more elegant than it had been before.

There were two objects that appeared rather out of place in this very handsomely furnished room. One was a large map, or surveyor’s plan, of a tract of land, which looked as if it had been drawn a good many years ago, and was now dingy with smoke, and soiled, here and there, with the touch of fingers. The other was a portrait of a stern old man, in a Puritan garb, painted roughly, but with a bold effect, and a remarkably strong expression of character.

There were two items that seemed pretty out of place in this nicely decorated room. One was a large map, or surveyor’s plan, of a piece of land that looked like it had been created many years ago, now covered in smoke stains and smudged here and there from being touched. The other was a portrait of a serious old man in Puritan clothing, painted roughly but with a striking effect and a remarkably strong expression of character.

At a small table, before a fire of English sea-coal, sat Mr. Pyncheon, sipping coffee, which had grown to be a very favorite beverage with him in France. He was a middle-aged and really handsome man, with a wig flowing down upon his shoulders; his coat was of blue velvet, with lace on the borders and at the button-holes; and the firelight glistened on the spacious breadth of his waistcoat, which was flowered all over with gold. On the entrance of Scipio, ushering in the carpenter, Mr. Pyncheon turned partly round, but resumed his former position, and proceeded deliberately to finish his cup of coffee, without immediate notice of the guest whom he had summoned to his presence. It was not that he intended any rudeness or improper neglect,—which, indeed, he would have blushed to be guilty of,—but it never occurred to him that a person in Maule’s station had a claim on his courtesy, or would trouble himself about it one way or the other.

At a small table, in front of a fire made with English sea coal, sat Mr. Pyncheon, sipping coffee, which had become one of his favorite drinks in France. He was a middle-aged, really handsome man, with a wig that flowed down to his shoulders; his coat was made of blue velvet, with lace on the edges and at the buttonholes; and the firelight shimmered on the wide expanse of his waistcoat, which was covered in gold flowers. When Scipio entered, bringing in the carpenter, Mr. Pyncheon turned a bit but then went back to his seat and calmly finished his cup of coffee without immediately acknowledging the guest he had called for. It wasn't that he meant to be rude or neglectful—he would have felt embarrassed to do that—but it never crossed his mind that someone in Maule’s position deserved his courtesy or would care about it either way.

The carpenter, however, stepped at once to the hearth, and turned himself about, so as to look Mr. Pyncheon in the face.

The carpenter immediately walked over to the fireplace and turned to face Mr. Pyncheon directly.

“You sent for me,” said he. “Be pleased to explain your business, that I may go back to my own affairs.”

"You called for me," he said. "Please explain what you need so I can get back to my own stuff."

“Ah! excuse me,” said Mr. Pyncheon quietly. “I did not mean to tax your time without a recompense. Your name, I think, is Maule,—Thomas or Matthew Maule,—a son or grandson of the builder of this house?”

“Ah! excuse me,” said Mr. Pyncheon quietly. “I didn’t mean to take up your time without any compensation. Your name is, if I’m correct, Maule—Thomas or Matthew Maule—a son or grandson of the person who built this house?”

“Matthew Maule,” replied the carpenter,—“son of him who built the house,—grandson of the rightful proprietor of the soil.”

“Matthew Maule,” replied the carpenter, “son of the one who built the house, grandson of the rightful owner of the land.”

“I know the dispute to which you allude,” observed Mr. Pyncheon with undisturbed equanimity. “I am well aware that my grandfather was compelled to resort to a suit at law, in order to establish his claim to the foundation-site of this edifice. We will not, if you please, renew the discussion. The matter was settled at the time, and by the competent authorities,—equitably, it is to be presumed,—and, at all events, irrevocably. Yet, singularly enough, there is an incidental reference to this very subject in what I am now about to say to you. And this same inveterate grudge,—excuse me, I mean no offence,—this irritability, which you have just shown, is not entirely aside from the matter.”

“I know the argument you’re referring to,” Mr. Pyncheon said calmly. “I’m well aware that my grandfather had to go to court to establish his claim to the land where this building stands. Let’s not reopen that discussion, if you don’t mind. It was settled back then by the proper authorities—fairly, I assume—and, in any case, it’s final. However, interestingly enough, there is a mention of this very topic in what I’m about to share with you. And this same deep-seated resentment—pardon me, I mean no offense—this irritation you’ve just displayed is not completely unrelated to the issue.”

“If you can find anything for your purpose, Mr. Pyncheon,” said the carpenter, “in a man’s natural resentment for the wrongs done to his blood, you are welcome to it.”

“If you can find anything useful for your purpose, Mr. Pyncheon,” said the carpenter, “in a man’s natural anger over the injustices done to his family, you’re welcome to it.”

“I take you at your word, Goodman Maule,” said the owner of the Seven Gables, with a smile, “and will proceed to suggest a mode in which your hereditary resentments—justifiable or otherwise—may have had a bearing on my affairs. You have heard, I suppose, that the Pyncheon family, ever since my grandfather’s days, have been prosecuting a still unsettled claim to a very large extent of territory at the Eastward?”

“I believe you, Goodman Maule,” said the owner of the Seven Gables with a smile, “and I will go ahead and suggest a way in which your long-standing grievances—whether justified or not—might have affected my business. I assume you've heard that the Pyncheon family, since my grandfather's time, has been pursuing an unresolved claim to a significant amount of land to the east?”

“Often,” replied Maule,—and it is said that a smile came over his face,—“very often,—from my father!”

“Often,” replied Maule, —and it’s said that a smile appeared on his face,—“very often,—from my father!”

“This claim,” continued Mr. Pyncheon, after pausing a moment, as if to consider what the carpenter’s smile might mean, “appeared to be on the very verge of a settlement and full allowance, at the period of my grandfather’s decease. It was well known, to those in his confidence, that he anticipated neither difficulty nor delay. Now, Colonel Pyncheon, I need hardly say, was a practical man, well acquainted with public and private business, and not at all the person to cherish ill-founded hopes, or to attempt the following out of an impracticable scheme. It is obvious to conclude, therefore, that he had grounds, not apparent to his heirs, for his confident anticipation of success in the matter of this Eastern claim. In a word, I believe,—and my legal advisers coincide in the belief, which, moreover, is authorized, to a certain extent, by the family traditions,—that my grandfather was in possession of some deed, or other document, essential to this claim, but which has since disappeared.”

“This claim,” continued Mr. Pyncheon, pausing for a moment to consider what the carpenter’s smile might mean, “seemed to be on the brink of a settlement and full approval at the time of my grandfather’s death. Those who were close to him knew he expected no trouble or delays. Now, Colonel Pyncheon, I shouldn’t need to mention, was a practical man, well-versed in both public and private affairs, and definitely not the type to entertain unrealistic hopes or to pursue an unworkable plan. It’s clear, then, that he had reasons, not visible to his heirs, for his confident hope for success regarding this Eastern claim. In short, I believe—and my legal advisors agree with me, a belief that’s also somewhat supported by family traditions—that my grandfather had some deed or other document essential to this claim, which has since gone missing.”

“Very likely,” said Matthew Maule,—and again, it is said, there was a dark smile on his face,—“but what can a poor carpenter have to do with the grand affairs of the Pyncheon family?”

“Very likely,” said Matthew Maule—and again, it’s said there was a dark smile on his face—“but what could a poor carpenter have to do with the grand affairs of the Pyncheon family?”

“Perhaps nothing,” returned Mr. Pyncheon, “possibly much!”

“Maybe nothing,” replied Mr. Pyncheon, “or maybe a lot!”

Here ensued a great many words between Matthew Maule and the proprietor of the Seven Gables, on the subject which the latter had thus broached. It seems (although Mr. Pyncheon had some hesitation in referring to stories so exceedingly absurd in their aspect) that the popular belief pointed to some mysterious connection and dependence, existing between the family of the Maules and these vast unrealized possessions of the Pyncheons. It was an ordinary saying that the old wizard, hanged though he was, had obtained the best end of the bargain in his contest with Colonel Pyncheon; inasmuch as he had got possession of the great Eastern claim, in exchange for an acre or two of garden-ground. A very aged woman, recently dead, had often used the metaphorical expression, in her fireside talk, that miles and miles of the Pyncheon lands had been shovelled into Maule’s grave; which, by the bye, was but a very shallow nook, between two rocks, near the summit of Gallows Hill. Again, when the lawyers were making inquiry for the missing document, it was a by-word that it would never be found, unless in the wizard’s skeleton hand. So much weight had the shrewd lawyers assigned to these fables, that (but Mr. Pyncheon did not see fit to inform the carpenter of the fact) they had secretly caused the wizard’s grave to be searched. Nothing was discovered, however, except that, unaccountably, the right hand of the skeleton was gone.

A lot of words were exchanged between Matthew Maule and the owner of the Seven Gables about the topic that the latter had brought up. It seems (even though Mr. Pyncheon hesitated to talk about such ridiculous stories) that popular belief pointed to some mysterious link between the Maule family and the vast unrealized wealth of the Pyncheons. People commonly said that the old wizard, despite being hanged, had come out on top in his battle with Colonel Pyncheon since he had managed to secure the valuable Eastern claim in exchange for just an acre or two of garden land. A very elderly woman who had recently passed away often used to say around the fireplace that miles and miles of Pyncheon land had been shoveled into Maule’s grave, which, by the way, was just a shallow spot between two rocks near the top of Gallows Hill. Also, when the lawyers were searching for the missing document, it was a common saying that it would never be found unless it was in the wizard’s skeleton hand. The clever lawyers took these tales so seriously that (though Mr. Pyncheon didn’t tell the carpenter) they secretly had the wizard’s grave searched. However, nothing was found except, strangely, that the right hand of the skeleton was missing.

Now, what was unquestionably important, a portion of these popular rumors could be traced, though rather doubtfully and indistinctly, to chance words and obscure hints of the executed wizard’s son, and the father of this present Matthew Maule. And here Mr. Pyncheon could bring an item of his own personal evidence into play. Though but a child at the time, he either remembered or fancied that Matthew’s father had had some job to perform on the day before, or possibly the very morning of the Colonel’s decease, in the private room where he and the carpenter were at this moment talking. Certain papers belonging to Colonel Pyncheon, as his grandson distinctly recollected, had been spread out on the table.

Now, what was definitely important, some of these popular rumors could be traced, though somewhat doubtfully and vaguely, to random remarks and subtle hints from the executed wizard’s son, the father of the current Matthew Maule. And here Mr. Pyncheon could contribute his own personal evidence. Although he was just a child at the time, he either recalled or imagined that Matthew’s father had some task to complete the day before, or possibly the very morning of the Colonel’s death, in the private room where he and the carpenter were currently talking. Certain papers belonging to Colonel Pyncheon, as his grandson clearly remembered, had been spread out on the table.

Matthew Maule understood the insinuated suspicion.

Matthew Maule picked up on the implied suspicion.

“My father,” he said,—but still there was that dark smile, making a riddle of his countenance,—“my father was an honester man than the bloody old Colonel! Not to get his rights back again would he have carried off one of those papers!”

“My dad,” he said,—but there was still that dark smile, making his face a mystery,—“my dad was a more honest man than that bloody old Colonel! He wouldn’t have taken one of those papers just to get his rights back!”

“I shall not bandy words with you,” observed the foreign-bred Mr. Pyncheon, with haughty composure. “Nor will it become me to resent any rudeness towards either my grandfather or myself. A gentleman, before seeking intercourse with a person of your station and habits, will first consider whether the urgency of the end may compensate for the disagreeableness of the means. It does so in the present instance.”

“I won’t argue with you,” said the foreign-bred Mr. Pyncheon, maintaining his haughty composure. “And it wouldn’t be appropriate for me to take offense at any disrespect towards my grandfather or myself. A gentleman, before engaging with someone of your background and behavior, will first think about whether the importance of the outcome justifies the unpleasantness of the approach. It does in this case.”

He then renewed the conversation, and made great pecuniary offers to the carpenter, in case the latter should give information leading to the discovery of the lost document, and the consequent success of the Eastern claim. For a long time Matthew Maule is said to have turned a cold ear to these propositions. At last, however, with a strange kind of laugh, he inquired whether Mr. Pyncheon would make over to him the old wizard’s homestead-ground, together with the House of the Seven Gables, now standing on it, in requital of the documentary evidence so urgently required.

He then continued the conversation and made a lot of money offers to the carpenter if he provided information that could help find the lost document and ensure the success of the Eastern claim. For a long time, Matthew Maule reportedly ignored these offers. Eventually, though, after a strange laugh, he asked if Mr. Pyncheon would transfer ownership of the old wizard's homestead and the House of the Seven Gables that was on it, in exchange for the much-needed documentary evidence.

The wild, chimney-corner legend (which, without copying all its extravagances, my narrative essentially follows) here gives an account of some very strange behavior on the part of Colonel Pyncheon’s portrait. This picture, it must be understood, was supposed to be so intimately connected with the fate of the house, and so magically built into its walls, that, if once it should be removed, that very instant the whole edifice would come thundering down in a heap of dusty ruin. All through the foregoing conversation between Mr. Pyncheon and the carpenter, the portrait had been frowning, clenching its fist, and giving many such proofs of excessive discomposure, but without attracting the notice of either of the two colloquists. And finally, at Matthew Maule’s audacious suggestion of a transfer of the seven-gabled structure, the ghostly portrait is averred to have lost all patience, and to have shown itself on the point of descending bodily from its frame. But such incredible incidents are merely to be mentioned aside.

The wild legend from the fireplace (which my story essentially follows without replicating all its wild details) tells of some very unusual behavior from Colonel Pyncheon’s portrait. This painting was believed to be so closely tied to the fate of the house and so magically embedded in its walls that, if it were ever taken down, the entire building would come crashing down in a pile of dusty ruins. During the previous conversation between Mr. Pyncheon and the carpenter, the portrait had been frowning, clenching its fist, and displaying many signs of intense agitation, but neither of the two speakers noticed it. Finally, when Matthew Maule daringly suggested transferring the seven-gabled structure, the spectral portrait was said to have lost all patience and appeared on the verge of stepping out of its frame. But such unbelievable events are only to be mentioned in passing.

“Give up this house!” exclaimed Mr. Pyncheon, in amazement at the proposal. “Were I to do so, my grandfather would not rest quiet in his grave!”

“Give up this house!” exclaimed Mr. Pyncheon, amazed by the suggestion. “If I did that, my grandfather wouldn’t rest easy in his grave!”

“He never has, if all stories are true,” remarked the carpenter composedly. “But that matter concerns his grandson more than it does Matthew Maule. I have no other terms to propose.”

“He never has, if all the stories are true,” the carpenter said calmly. “But that issue concerns his grandson more than it does Matthew Maule. I have no other terms to suggest.”

Impossible as he at first thought it to comply with Maule’s conditions, still, on a second glance, Mr. Pyncheon was of opinion that they might at least be made matter of discussion. He himself had no personal attachment for the house, nor any pleasant associations connected with his childish residence in it. On the contrary, after seven-and-thirty years, the presence of his dead grandfather seemed still to pervade it, as on that morning when the affrighted boy had beheld him, with so ghastly an aspect, stiffening in his chair. His long abode in foreign parts, moreover, and familiarity with many of the castles and ancestral halls of England, and the marble palaces of Italy, had caused him to look contemptuously at the House of the Seven Gables, whether in point of splendor or convenience. It was a mansion exceedingly inadequate to the style of living which it would be incumbent on Mr. Pyncheon to support, after realizing his territorial rights. His steward might deign to occupy it, but never, certainly, the great landed proprietor himself. In the event of success, indeed, it was his purpose to return to England; nor, to say the truth, would he recently have quitted that more congenial home, had not his own fortune, as well as his deceased wife’s, begun to give symptoms of exhaustion. The Eastern claim once fairly settled, and put upon the firm basis of actual possession, Mr. Pyncheon’s property—to be measured by miles, not acres—would be worth an earldom, and would reasonably entitle him to solicit, or enable him to purchase, that elevated dignity from the British monarch. Lord Pyncheon!—or the Earl of Waldo!—how could such a magnate be expected to contract his grandeur within the pitiful compass of seven shingled gables?

As impossible as it initially seemed to meet Maule’s conditions, Mr. Pyncheon thought a second look might at least make the topic worth discussing. He had no personal attachment to the house and no fond memories from his childhood living there. Instead, after thirty-seven years, the presence of his deceased grandfather still seemed to haunt the place, just as it had on that morning when the terrified boy saw him, looking so ghostly, stiff in his chair. His long time spent abroad and his experiences in many of the castles and grand halls of England, as well as the marble palaces of Italy, had led him to look down on the House of the Seven Gables in terms of both luxury and practicality. It was a mansion that clearly didn’t match the lifestyle he would need to uphold once he asserted his territorial rights. His steward might find it acceptable to live there, but certainly not the grand landowner himself. If he succeeded, he planned to return to England; and to be honest, he wouldn’t have left that more suitable home recently if both his own fortune and that of his late wife hadn’t shown signs of running low. Once the Eastern claim was settled and firmly in his hands, Mr. Pyncheon’s property—measured in miles, not acres—would be worth an earldom and would justifiably allow him to seek or buy that high title from the British monarch. Lord Pyncheon!—or the Earl of Waldo!—how could someone of such stature possibly limit himself to the meager confines of seven shingled gables?

In short, on an enlarged view of the business, the carpenter’s terms appeared so ridiculously easy that Mr. Pyncheon could scarcely forbear laughing in his face. He was quite ashamed, after the foregoing reflections, to propose any diminution of so moderate a recompense for the immense service to be rendered.

In short, looking at the situation more broadly, the carpenter's terms seemed so laughably easy that Mr. Pyncheon could hardly hold back a laugh. After thinking it over, he felt quite embarrassed to suggest lowering such a reasonable payment for the huge service that was to be provided.

“I consent to your proposition, Maule!” cried he. “Put me in possession of the document essential to establish my rights, and the House of the Seven Gables is your own!”

“I agree to your proposal, Maule!” he exclaimed. “Give me the document I need to secure my rights, and the House of the Seven Gables is yours!”

According to some versions of the story, a regular contract to the above effect was drawn up by a lawyer, and signed and sealed in the presence of witnesses. Others say that Matthew Maule was contented with a private written agreement, in which Mr. Pyncheon pledged his honor and integrity to the fulfillment of the terms concluded upon. The gentleman then ordered wine, which he and the carpenter drank together, in confirmation of their bargain. During the whole preceding discussion and subsequent formalities, the old Puritan’s portrait seems to have persisted in its shadowy gestures of disapproval; but without effect, except that, as Mr. Pyncheon set down the emptied glass, he thought he beheld his grandfather frown.

According to some versions of the story, a regular contract with that purpose was created by a lawyer and signed and sealed in front of witnesses. Others say that Matthew Maule was satisfied with a private written agreement, where Mr. Pyncheon promised his honor and integrity to uphold the agreed terms. The gentleman then ordered wine, which he and the carpenter drank together to confirm their deal. Throughout the entire discussion and the official proceedings that followed, the old Puritan's portrait seemed to keep showing its disapproving gestures; however, it had no real impact, except that when Mr. Pyncheon set down his empty glass, he thought he saw his grandfather frown.

“This sherry is too potent a wine for me; it has affected my brain already,” he observed, after a somewhat startled look at the picture. “On returning to Europe, I shall confine myself to the more delicate vintages of Italy and France, the best of which will not bear transportation.”

“This sherry is too strong for me; it’s already clouding my mind,” he remarked, after looking a bit taken aback at the picture. “When I go back to Europe, I’ll stick to the lighter wines from Italy and France, the best of which won’t survive the journey.”

“My Lord Pyncheon may drink what wine he will, and wherever he pleases,” replied the carpenter, as if he had been privy to Mr. Pyncheon’s ambitious projects. “But first, sir, if you desire tidings of this lost document, I must crave the favor of a little talk with your fair daughter Alice.”

“My Lord Pyncheon can drink whatever wine he wants, and wherever he likes,” the carpenter replied, as if he was aware of Mr. Pyncheon’s ambitious plans. “But first, sir, if you want news about this lost document, I need to have a little chat with your lovely daughter Alice.”

“You are mad, Maule!” exclaimed Mr. Pyncheon haughtily; and now, at last, there was anger mixed up with his pride. “What can my daughter have to do with a business like this?”

“You're crazy, Maule!” Mr. Pyncheon said arrogantly; and now, finally, there was anger mixed with his pride. “What does my daughter have to do with something like this?”

Indeed, at this new demand on the carpenter’s part, the proprietor of the Seven Gables was even more thunder-struck than at the cool proposition to surrender his house. There was, at least, an assignable motive for the first stipulation; there appeared to be none whatever for the last. Nevertheless, Matthew Maule sturdily insisted on the young lady being summoned, and even gave her father to understand, in a mysterious kind of explanation,—which made the matter considerably darker than it looked before,—that the only chance of acquiring the requisite knowledge was through the clear, crystal medium of a pure and virgin intelligence, like that of the fair Alice. Not to encumber our story with Mr. Pyncheon’s scruples, whether of conscience, pride, or fatherly affection, he at length ordered his daughter to be called. He well knew that she was in her chamber, and engaged in no occupation that could not readily be laid aside; for, as it happened, ever since Alice’s name had been spoken, both her father and the carpenter had heard the sad and sweet music of her harpsichord, and the airier melancholy of her accompanying voice.

Indeed, the carpenter's new demand left the owner of the Seven Gables even more shocked than the straightforward request to give up his house. At least there was a clear reason behind the first demand; the second one seemed completely unfounded. Still, Matthew Maule strongly insisted that the young lady be summoned, and even subtly hinted to her father, in a way that made the situation seem even more mysterious than before, that the only way to gain the necessary understanding was through the clear, pure mind of a virgin like the lovely Alice. To avoid complicating our story with Mr. Pyncheon's debates over his conscience, pride, or fatherly love, he ultimately ordered his daughter to be called. He knew she was in her room, engaged in an activity that could be easily interrupted; for, ever since Alice's name had been mentioned, both her father and the carpenter had heard the bittersweet sound of her harpsichord along with the airy melancholy of her singing voice.

So Alice Pyncheon was summoned, and appeared. A portrait of this young lady, painted by a Venetian artist, and left by her father in England, is said to have fallen into the hands of the present Duke of Devonshire, and to be now preserved at Chatsworth; not on account of any associations with the original, but for its value as a picture, and the high character of beauty in the countenance. If ever there was a lady born, and set apart from the world’s vulgar mass by a certain gentle and cold stateliness, it was this very Alice Pyncheon. Yet there was the womanly mixture in her; the tenderness, or, at least, the tender capabilities. For the sake of that redeeming quality, a man of generous nature would have forgiven all her pride, and have been content, almost, to lie down in her path, and let Alice set her slender foot upon his heart. All that he would have required was simply the acknowledgment that he was indeed a man, and a fellow-being, moulded of the same elements as she.

So, Alice Pyncheon was called in and she showed up. A portrait of this young woman, painted by a Venetian artist and left by her father in England, is said to have fallen into the hands of the current Duke of Devonshire, and is now kept at Chatsworth; not because of any memories connected to the original, but for its value as art and the exceptional beauty of her face. If there was ever a woman born and set apart from the world's ordinary crowd by a kind of gentle and reserved elegance, it was definitely this Alice Pyncheon. Yet she carried a sense of femininity in her; the tenderness, or at least the potential for tenderness. Because of that redeeming trait, a generous man would have overlooked all her pride and would have almost been willing to lie down in her path, letting Alice place her delicate foot on his heart. All he would have needed in return was simply the recognition that he was indeed a man, a fellow human being, made of the same stuff as she.

As Alice came into the room, her eyes fell upon the carpenter, who was standing near its centre, clad in green woollen jacket, a pair of loose breeches, open at the knees, and with a long pocket for his rule, the end of which protruded; it was as proper a mark of the artisan’s calling as Mr. Pyncheon’s full-dress sword of that gentleman’s aristocratic pretensions. A glow of artistic approval brightened over Alice Pyncheon’s face; she was struck with admiration—which she made no attempt to conceal—of the remarkable comeliness, strength, and energy of Maule’s figure. But that admiring glance (which most other men, perhaps, would have cherished as a sweet recollection all through life) the carpenter never forgave. It must have been the devil himself that made Maule so subtile in his preception.

As Alice entered the room, she noticed the carpenter standing in the middle, wearing a green wool jacket, loose breeches that were open at the knees, and a long pocket for his ruler, the end of which stuck out. It was as recognizable a sign of his trade as Mr. Pyncheon's full-dress sword was of his upper-class status. A look of artistic admiration lit up Alice Pyncheon's face; she was genuinely impressed—something she didn’t try to hide—by the striking attractiveness, strength, and energy of Maule's figure. But that admiring glance, which most other men would have cherished as a fond memory for life, was something the carpenter never forgot. It must have been the devil himself who made Maule so perceptive.

“Does the girl look at me as if I were a brute beast?” thought he, setting his teeth. “She shall know whether I have a human spirit; and the worse for her, if it prove stronger than her own!”

“Does the girl look at me like I’m some kind of monster?” he thought, gritting his teeth. “She will see if I have a human spirit; and she’ll regret it if mine turns out to be stronger than hers!”

“My father, you sent for me,” said Alice, in her sweet and harp-like voice. “But, if you have business with this young man, pray let me go again. You know I do not love this room, in spite of that Claude, with which you try to bring back sunny recollections.”

“My father, you called for me,” said Alice, in her sweet and musical voice. “But if you have matters to discuss with this young man, please let me leave again. You know I don’t like this room, despite that Claude, which you use to evoke sunny memories.”

“Stay a moment, young lady, if you please!” said Matthew Maule. “My business with your father is over. With yourself, it is now to begin!”

“Hold on for a second, young lady, if you don’t mind!” said Matthew Maule. “My business with your father is done. Now, it's your turn!”

Alice looked towards her father, in surprise and inquiry.

Alice looked at her dad, surprised and asking questions.

“Yes, Alice,” said Mr. Pyncheon, with some disturbance and confusion. “This young man—his name is Matthew Maule—professes, so far as I can understand him, to be able to discover, through your means, a certain paper or parchment, which was missing long before your birth. The importance of the document in question renders it advisable to neglect no possible, even if improbable, method of regaining it. You will therefore oblige me, my dear Alice, by answering this person’s inquiries, and complying with his lawful and reasonable requests, so far as they may appear to have the aforesaid object in view. As I shall remain in the room, you need apprehend no rude nor unbecoming deportment, on the young man’s part; and, at your slightest wish, of course, the investigation, or whatever we may call it, shall immediately be broken off.”

“Yes, Alice,” said Mr. Pyncheon, looking a bit flustered. “This young man—his name is Matthew Maule—claims, as far as I can understand, that he can find a certain paper or document that has been missing long before you were born. The significance of this document makes it wise to explore every possible, even if unlikely, way to get it back. So, I would appreciate it if you could respond to his questions and consider his legitimate and reasonable requests, as long as they align with this goal. Since I’ll stay in the room, you won’t have to worry about any rude or inappropriate behavior from him; and at your slightest request, we can stop this investigation, or whatever you want to call it, right away.”

“Mistress Alice Pyncheon,” remarked Matthew Maule, with the utmost deference, but yet a half-hidden sarcasm in his look and tone, “will no doubt feel herself quite safe in her father’s presence, and under his all-sufficient protection.”

“Ms. Alice Pyncheon,” said Matthew Maule, with great respect but a touch of hidden sarcasm in his expression and voice, “will surely feel completely safe with her father around, under his all-encompassing protection.”

“I certainly shall entertain no manner of apprehension, with my father at hand,” said Alice with maidenly dignity. “Neither do I conceive that a lady, while true to herself, can have aught to fear from whomsoever, or in any circumstances!”

“I definitely won’t have any kind of worry with my father around,” said Alice with graceful dignity. “I also don’t believe that a woman, if she stays true to herself, has anything to fear from anyone or in any situation!”

Poor Alice! By what unhappy impulse did she thus put herself at once on terms of defiance against a strength which she could not estimate?

Poor Alice! What unfortunate impulse made her challenge a power she couldn’t fully comprehend?

“Then, Mistress Alice,” said Matthew Maule, handing a chair,—gracefully enough, for a craftsman, “will it please you only to sit down, and do me the favor (though altogether beyond a poor carpenter’s deserts) to fix your eyes on mine!”

“Then, Mistress Alice,” said Matthew Maule, offering a chair—pretty gracefully for a carpenter, “would you be so kind as to sit down and do me the favor (though it’s totally more than what a poor carpenter deserves) of locking your gaze with mine!”

Alice complied, She was very proud. Setting aside all advantages of rank, this fair girl deemed herself conscious of a power—combined of beauty, high, unsullied purity, and the preservative force of womanhood—that could make her sphere impenetrable, unless betrayed by treachery within. She instinctively knew, it may be, that some sinister or evil potency was now striving to pass her barriers; nor would she decline the contest. So Alice put woman’s might against man’s might; a match not often equal on the part of woman.

Alice agreed, feeling very proud. Putting aside any advantages of status, this beautiful girl believed she had a power—formed from her beauty, untouched purity, and the protective strength of womanhood—that could make her world impenetrable, unless attacked from within. She sensed, perhaps, that some dark or malicious force was trying to breach her defenses, and she wouldn't back down from the challenge. So Alice faced off with a woman's strength against a man's strength; a matchup that wasn’t often even for women.

Her father meanwhile had turned away, and seemed absorbed in the contemplation of a landscape by Claude, where a shadowy and sun-streaked vista penetrated so remotely into an ancient wood, that it would have been no wonder if his fancy had lost itself in the picture’s bewildering depths. But, in truth, the picture was no more to him at that moment than the blank wall against which it hung. His mind was haunted with the many and strange tales which he had heard, attributing mysterious if not supernatural endowments to these Maules, as well the grandson here present as his two immediate ancestors. Mr. Pyncheon’s long residence abroad, and intercourse with men of wit and fashion,—courtiers, worldlings, and free-thinkers,—had done much towards obliterating the grim Puritan superstitions, which no man of New England birth at that early period could entirely escape. But, on the other hand, had not a whole community believed Maule’s grandfather to be a wizard? Had not the crime been proved? Had not the wizard died for it? Had he not bequeathed a legacy of hatred against the Pyncheons to this only grandson, who, as it appeared, was now about to exercise a subtle influence over the daughter of his enemy’s house? Might not this influence be the same that was called witchcraft?

Her father had turned away and seemed lost in thought while looking at a landscape by Claude, where a shadowy yet sunlit view reached deep into an ancient forest, making it easy to imagine he was getting lost in the painting’s confusing depths. But, really, the painting meant nothing to him at that moment, as blank as the wall it hung on. His mind was filled with the many strange stories he had heard that attributed mysterious, if not supernatural, powers to the Maules—both the grandson present and his two immediate ancestors. Mr. Pyncheon’s long time abroad and his interactions with witty and fashionable people—courtiers, socialites, and free-thinkers—had done a lot to erase the grim Puritan superstitions that no one born in New England at that time could fully escape. On the flip side, hadn’t the whole community believed Maule’s grandfather was a wizard? Hadn’t the crime been proven? Hadn’t the wizard paid for it with his life? Had he not passed down a legacy of hatred toward the Pyncheons to his only grandson, who, it seemed, was about to exert a subtle influence over the daughter of his family’s enemy? Could this influence not be what was called witchcraft?

Turning half around, he caught a glimpse of Maule’s figure in the looking-glass. At some paces from Alice, with his arms uplifted in the air, the carpenter made a gesture as if directing downward a slow, ponderous, and invisible weight upon the maiden.

Turning halfway around, he caught a glimpse of Maule’s figure in the mirror. A short distance from Alice, with his arms raised in the air, the carpenter made a gesture as if he were guiding a heavy, slow, and invisible weight down onto the girl.

“Stay, Maule!” exclaimed Mr. Pyncheon, stepping forward. “I forbid your proceeding further!”

“Wait, Maule!” exclaimed Mr. Pyncheon, stepping forward. “I forbid you to go any further!”

“Pray, my dear father, do not interrupt the young man,” said Alice, without changing her position. “His efforts, I assure you, will prove very harmless.”

“Please, my dear father, don’t interrupt the young man,” said Alice, without moving from her spot. “I assure you, his efforts will be completely harmless.”

Again Mr. Pyncheon turned his eyes towards the Claude. It was then his daughter’s will, in opposition to his own, that the experiment should be fully tried. Henceforth, therefore, he did but consent, not urge it. And was it not for her sake far more than for his own that he desired its success? That lost parchment once restored, the beautiful Alice Pyncheon, with the rich dowry which he could then bestow, might wed an English duke or a German reigning-prince, instead of some New England clergyman or lawyer! At the thought, the ambitious father almost consented, in his heart, that, if the devil’s power were needed to the accomplishment of this great object, Maule might evoke him. Alice’s own purity would be her safeguard.

Once again, Mr. Pyncheon looked at the Claude. It was his daughter’s decision, against his wishes, that they should fully pursue the experiment. So from that point on, he only agreed, rather than pushed for it. And wasn’t it for her benefit, much more than his own, that he wanted it to succeed? If that lost document could be found again, the beautiful Alice Pyncheon, with the generous dowry he could offer, might marry an English duke or a German prince, instead of some New England minister or lawyer! At that thought, the ambitious father nearly agreed, in his heart, that if they needed the devil’s help to achieve this grand goal, then Maule could call upon him. Alice’s own purity would keep her safe.

With his mind full of imaginary magnificence, Mr. Pyncheon heard a half-uttered exclamation from his daughter. It was very faint and low; so indistinct that there seemed but half a will to shape out the words, and too undefined a purport to be intelligible. Yet it was a call for help!—his conscience never doubted it;—and, little more than a whisper to his ear, it was a dismal shriek, and long reechoed so, in the region round his heart! But this time the father did not turn.

With his mind filled with grand illusions, Mr. Pyncheon heard a half-spoken exclamation from his daughter. It was very faint and low; so unclear that it felt like there was only half a desire to form the words, and too vague a meaning to be understood. Yet it was a call for help!—his conscience had no doubt about it;—and, though it reached his ear as barely more than a whisper, it was a mournful scream that echoed in his heart for a long time! But this time, the father did not turn.

After a further interval, Maule spoke.

After a little more time passed, Maule spoke.

“Behold your daughter,” said he.

“Look at your daughter,” he said.

Mr. Pyncheon came hastily forward. The carpenter was standing erect in front of Alice’s chair, and pointing his finger towards the maiden with an expression of triumphant power, the limits of which could not be defined, as, indeed, its scope stretched vaguely towards the unseen and the infinite. Alice sat in an attitude of profound repose, with the long brown lashes drooping over her eyes.

Mr. Pyncheon quickly stepped forward. The carpenter stood straight in front of Alice’s chair, pointing his finger at her with an expression of overwhelming power that seemed boundless, reaching toward the unknown and the infinite. Alice sat in a state of deep calm, with her long brown lashes resting over her eyes.

“There she is!” said the carpenter. “Speak to her!”

“There she is!” said the carpenter. “Talk to her!”

“Alice! My daughter!” exclaimed Mr. Pyncheon. “My own Alice!”

“Alice! My daughter!” shouted Mr. Pyncheon. “My own Alice!”

She did not stir.

She didn't move.

“Louder!” said Maule, smiling.

“Louder!” Maule said, smiling.

“Alice! Awake!” cried her father. “It troubles me to see you thus! Awake!”

“Alice! Wake up!” her father yelled. “It worries me to see you like this! Wake up!”

He spoke loudly, with terror in his voice, and close to that delicate ear which had always been so sensitive to every discord. But the sound evidently reached her not. It is indescribable what a sense of remote, dim, unattainable distance betwixt himself and Alice was impressed on the father by this impossibility of reaching her with his voice.

He spoke loudly, with fear in his voice, right next to that sensitive ear that had always picked up on every discord. But she clearly didn't hear him. It's hard to describe the overwhelming feeling of a distant, vague, unreachable gap between him and Alice that the father felt due to his inability to communicate with her.

“Best touch her!” said Matthew Maule “Shake the girl, and roughly, too! My hands are hardened with too much use of axe, saw, and plane,—else I might help you!”

“Better give her a good shake!” said Matthew Maule. “Rough her up a bit! My hands are too tough from using the axe, saw, and plane—otherwise, I’d lend a hand!”

Mr. Pyncheon took her hand, and pressed it with the earnestness of startled emotion. He kissed her, with so great a heart-throb in the kiss, that he thought she must needs feel it. Then, in a gust of anger at her insensibility, he shook her maiden form with a violence which, the next moment, it affrighted him to remember. He withdrew his encircling arms, and Alice—whose figure, though flexible, had been wholly impassive—relapsed into the same attitude as before these attempts to arouse her. Maule having shifted his position, her face was turned towards him slightly, but with what seemed to be a reference of her very slumber to his guidance.

Mr. Pyncheon took her hand and held it tightly, overwhelmed by strong emotions. He kissed her with such intensity that he thought she must feel it. Then, in a burst of frustration at her lack of response, he shook her with a force that terrified him in that moment. He pulled his arms away, and Alice—whose body, though flexible, had remained completely unresponsive—returned to her previous stance as if nothing had happened. With Maule changing his position, her face shifted slightly towards him, as if her very stillness was somehow linked to his presence.

Then it was a strange sight to behold how the man of conventionalities shook the powder out of his periwig; how the reserved and stately gentleman forgot his dignity; how the gold-embroidered waistcoat flickered and glistened in the firelight with the convulsion of rage, terror, and sorrow in the human heart that was beating under it.

Then it was a bizarre sight to see how the man of routine shook the powder out of his wig; how the composed and dignified gentleman lost his poise; how the gold-embroidered vest sparkled and shimmered in the firelight with the turmoil of rage, fear, and sadness in the human heart that was pounding beneath it.

“Villain!” cried Mr. Pyncheon, shaking his clenched fist at Maule. “You and the fiend together have robbed me of my daughter. Give her back, spawn of the old wizard, or you shall climb Gallows Hill in your grandfather’s footsteps!”

“Villain!” shouted Mr. Pyncheon, shaking his clenched fist at Maule. “You and the devil have taken my daughter from me. Give her back, offspring of the old wizard, or you’ll end up on Gallows Hill like your grandfather did!”

“Softly, Mr. Pyncheon!” said the carpenter with scornful composure. “Softly, an’ it please your worship, else you will spoil those rich lace-ruffles at your wrists! Is it my crime if you have sold your daughter for the mere hope of getting a sheet of yellow parchment into your clutch? There sits Mistress Alice quietly asleep. Now let Matthew Maule try whether she be as proud as the carpenter found her awhile since.”

“Take it easy, Mr. Pyncheon!” said the carpenter with a mocking calm. “Please, be gentle, or you might ruin those fancy lace ruffles on your wrists! Is it my fault that you sold your daughter just for a chance to grab a piece of yellow parchment? There’s Mistress Alice, peacefully asleep. Let’s see if Matthew Maule finds her just as haughty as the carpenter did a little while ago.”

He spoke, and Alice responded, with a soft, subdued, inward acquiescence, and a bending of her form towards him, like the flame of a torch when it indicates a gentle draught of air. He beckoned with his hand, and, rising from her chair,—blindly, but undoubtingly, as tending to her sure and inevitable centre,—the proud Alice approached him. He waved her back, and, retreating, Alice sank again into her seat.

He spoke, and Alice replied with a quiet acceptance, leaning toward him like a flame swaying gently in a breeze. He waved her over, and, getting up from her chair—without hesitation but with certainty, as if moving toward her destined place—the proud Alice walked toward him. He gestured for her to stay back, and as she stepped back, Alice sat down again.

“She is mine!” said Matthew Maule. “Mine, by the right of the strongest spirit!”

“She’s mine!” said Matthew Maule. “Mine, by the right of the strongest spirit!”

In the further progress of the legend, there is a long, grotesque, and occasionally awe-striking account of the carpenter’s incantations (if so they are to be called), with a view of discovering the lost document. It appears to have been his object to convert the mind of Alice into a kind of telescopic medium, through which Mr. Pyncheon and himself might obtain a glimpse into the spiritual world. He succeeded, accordingly, in holding an imperfect sort of intercourse, at one remove, with the departed personages in whose custody the so much valued secret had been carried beyond the precincts of earth. During her trance, Alice described three figures as being present to her spiritualized perception. One was an aged, dignified, stern-looking gentleman, clad as for a solemn festival in grave and costly attire, but with a great blood-stain on his richly wrought band; the second, an aged man, meanly dressed, with a dark and malign countenance, and a broken halter about his neck; the third, a person not so advanced in life as the former two, but beyond the middle age, wearing a coarse woollen tunic and leather breeches, and with a carpenter’s rule sticking out of his side pocket. These three visionary characters possessed a mutual knowledge of the missing document. One of them, in truth,—it was he with the blood-stain on his band,—seemed, unless his gestures were misunderstood, to hold the parchment in his immediate keeping, but was prevented by his two partners in the mystery from disburdening himself of the trust. Finally, when he showed a purpose of shouting forth the secret loudly enough to be heard from his own sphere into that of mortals, his companions struggled with him, and pressed their hands over his mouth; and forthwith—whether that he were choked by it, or that the secret itself was of a crimson hue—there was a fresh flow of blood upon his band. Upon this, the two meanly dressed figures mocked and jeered at the much-abashed old dignitary, and pointed their fingers at the stain.

In the ongoing legend, there’s a long, strange, and sometimes chilling account of the carpenter’s spells (if that’s what you want to call them) aimed at finding the lost document. It seems he aimed to turn Alice’s mind into some kind of telescope, allowing Mr. Pyncheon and himself to catch a glimpse of the spiritual world. He managed, in a way, to establish a kind of flawed communication, at a distance, with the departed souls who had taken the cherished secret beyond the realm of the living. During her trance, Alice described seeing three figures in her spiritual vision. One was an elderly, distinguished-looking man dressed for a solemn occasion in serious, extravagant clothes, but with a large bloodstain on his elegantly crafted hand; the second was an old man dressed poorly, with a dark and sinister face, and a broken noose around his neck; the third was someone younger than the first two but past middle age, wearing a rough wool tunic and leather pants, with a carpenter’s measuring tool sticking out of his side pocket. These three ghostly figures had a shared knowledge of the missing document. One of them, in fact—it was the one with the bloodstain on his hand—seemed, if his gestures were interpreted correctly, to be holding the document closely, but was held back by his two companions in the mystery from revealing it. Finally, when he appeared ready to shout the secret loudly enough to bridge the gap between his realm and that of the living, his companions struggled with him, covering his mouth with their hands; and immediately—whether he choked on it or the secret itself was blood-red—there was a new trickle of blood on his hand. At this, the two poorly dressed figures mocked and ridiculed the embarrassed old gentleman, pointing at the stain.

At this juncture, Maule turned to Mr. Pyncheon.

At this point, Maule turned to Mr. Pyncheon.

“It will never be allowed,” said he. “The custody of this secret, that would so enrich his heirs, makes part of your grandfather’s retribution. He must choke with it until it is no longer of any value. And keep you the House of the Seven Gables! It is too dear bought an inheritance, and too heavy with the curse upon it, to be shifted yet awhile from the Colonel’s posterity.”

“It will never be allowed,” he said. “The keeping of this secret, which would greatly benefit his heirs, is part of your grandfather’s punishment. He has to suffer with it until it’s worthless. And you can keep the House of the Seven Gables! It’s an inheritance bought at too high a price, and it carries too much of a curse to be passed on just yet from the Colonel’s descendants.”

Mr. Pyncheon tried to speak, but—what with fear and passion—could make only a gurgling murmur in his throat. The carpenter smiled.

Mr. Pyncheon tried to speak, but—between fear and emotion—could only manage a gurgling sound in his throat. The carpenter smiled.

“Aha, worshipful sir!—so you have old Maule’s blood to drink!” said he jeeringly.

"Aha, respectful sir!—so you’re drinking old Maule’s blood!" he said mockingly.

“Fiend in man’s shape! why dost thou keep dominion over my child?” cried Mr. Pyncheon, when his choked utterance could make way. “Give me back my daughter. Then go thy ways; and may we never meet again!”

“Devil in human form! Why do you have control over my child?” shouted Mr. Pyncheon, when he could finally speak through his emotions. “Return my daughter to me. Then leave; and may we never encounter each other again!”

“Your daughter!” said Matthew Maule. “Why, she is fairly mine! Nevertheless, not to be too hard with fair Mistress Alice, I will leave her in your keeping; but I do not warrant you that she shall never have occasion to remember Maule, the carpenter.”

“Your daughter!” said Matthew Maule. “Well, she’s practically mine! Still, not wanting to be too harsh on the lovely Mistress Alice, I’ll leave her in your care; but I can’t guarantee that she won’t have reasons to remember Maule, the carpenter.”

He waved his hands with an upward motion; and, after a few repetitions of similar gestures, the beautiful Alice Pyncheon awoke from her strange trance. She awoke without the slightest recollection of her visionary experience; but as one losing herself in a momentary reverie, and returning to the consciousness of actual life, in almost as brief an interval as the down-sinking flame of the hearth should quiver again up the chimney. On recognizing Matthew Maule, she assumed an air of somewhat cold but gentle dignity, the rather, as there was a certain peculiar smile on the carpenter’s visage that stirred the native pride of the fair Alice. So ended, for that time, the quest for the lost title-deed of the Pyncheon territory at the Eastward; nor, though often subsequently renewed, has it ever yet befallen a Pyncheon to set his eye upon that parchment.

He waved his hands upward, and after a few similar gestures, the beautiful Alice Pyncheon came out of her strange trance. She woke up with no memory of her vision, like someone briefly lost in thought and then returning to the reality of life, almost as quickly as the flickering flame in the fireplace dances back up the chimney. When she recognized Matthew Maule, she put on an expression of cool but gentle dignity, especially because there was something in the carpenter's smile that roused Alice's natural pride. This marked the end, for that moment, of the search for the lost title deed of the Pyncheon land in the East; and even though it was often attempted again, no Pyncheon has ever set eyes on that parchment.

But, alas for the beautiful, the gentle, yet too haughty Alice! A power that she little dreamed of had laid its grasp upon her maiden soul. A will, most unlike her own, constrained her to do its grotesque and fantastic bidding. Her father as it proved, had martyred his poor child to an inordinate desire for measuring his land by miles instead of acres. And, therefore, while Alice Pyncheon lived, she was Maule’s slave, in a bondage more humiliating, a thousand-fold, than that which binds its chain around the body. Seated by his humble fireside, Maule had but to wave his hand; and, wherever the proud lady chanced to be,—whether in her chamber, or entertaining her father’s stately guests, or worshipping at church,—whatever her place or occupation, her spirit passed from beneath her own control, and bowed itself to Maule. “Alice, laugh!”—the carpenter, beside his hearth, would say; or perhaps intensely will it, without a spoken word. And, even were it prayer-time, or at a funeral, Alice must break into wild laughter. “Alice, be sad!”—and, at the instant, down would come her tears, quenching all the mirth of those around her like sudden rain upon a bonfire. “Alice, dance.”—and dance she would, not in such court-like measures as she had learned abroad, but some high-paced jig, or hop-skip rigadoon, befitting the brisk lasses at a rustic merry-making. It seemed to be Maule’s impulse, not to ruin Alice, nor to visit her with any black or gigantic mischief, which would have crowned her sorrows with the grace of tragedy, but to wreak a low, ungenerous scorn upon her. Thus all the dignity of life was lost. She felt herself too much abased, and longed to change natures with some worm!

But, sadly for the beautiful, gentle, yet too proud Alice! A force she never expected had taken hold of her innocent spirit. A will, completely different from hers, forced her to do its bizarre and ridiculous bidding. It turned out her father had sacrificed his poor daughter to an excessive desire for measuring his land in miles instead of acres. Therefore, as long as Alice Pyncheon lived, she was Maule’s slave, in a bondage far more humiliating, a thousand times worse than being physically chained. Sitting by his modest fireplace, Maule just had to wave his hand; and, no matter where the proud lady happened to be—whether in her room, entertaining her father’s dignified guests, or worshipping at church—whatever her location or activity, her spirit slipped away from her control and submitted to Maule. “Alice, laugh!”—the carpenter would say by his hearth, or perhaps intensely command it without uttering a word. And even if it was prayer time or at a funeral, Alice had to burst into wild laughter. “Alice, be sad!”—and instantly tears would stream down her face, extinguishing all the joy of those around her like unexpected rain on a bonfire. “Alice, dance.”—and she would dance, not in the refined steps she had learned abroad, but in some lively jig or skip, fitting for the spirited girls at a country celebration. It seemed Maule’s intention was not to ruin Alice or to bring her any dark or enormous mischief that would add a tragic grace to her sorrows, but to unleash a low, spiteful scorn upon her. Thus, all the dignity of life was lost. She felt too degraded and longed to swap places with some worm!

One evening, at a bridal party (but not her own; for, so lost from self-control, she would have deemed it sin to marry), poor Alice was beckoned forth by her unseen despot, and constrained, in her gossamer white dress and satin slippers, to hasten along the street to the mean dwelling of a laboring-man. There was laughter and good cheer within; for Matthew Maule, that night, was to wed the laborer’s daughter, and had summoned proud Alice Pyncheon to wait upon his bride. And so she did; and when the twain were one, Alice awoke out of her enchanted sleep. Yet, no longer proud,—humbly, and with a smile all steeped in sadness,—she kissed Maule’s wife, and went her way. It was an inclement night; the southeast wind drove the mingled snow and rain into her thinly sheltered bosom; her satin slippers were wet through and through, as she trod the muddy sidewalks. The next day a cold; soon, a settled cough; anon, a hectic cheek, a wasted form, that sat beside the harpsichord, and filled the house with music! Music in which a strain of the heavenly choristers was echoed! Oh; joy! For Alice had borne her last humiliation! Oh, greater joy! For Alice was penitent of her one earthly sin, and proud no more!

One evening, at a bridal party (but not her own; because she was so lost in her emotions that she felt it would be wrong to marry), poor Alice was called out by her unseen master and forced, in her delicate white dress and satin slippers, to rush down the street to the humble home of a working man. There was laughter and joy inside; for Matthew Maule was getting married that night to the laborer's daughter, and he had asked the proud Alice Pyncheon to attend to his bride. So she did; and once they became one, Alice woke up from her enchanted sleep. However, she was no longer proud; humbly, with a smile full of sadness, she kissed Maule's wife and went on her way. It was a harsh night; the southeast wind drove the mixed snow and rain into her lightly covered body; her satin slippers were soaked as she walked on the muddy sidewalks. The next day, she caught a cold; soon after, a persistent cough; then came flushed cheeks and a frail figure that sat beside the harpsichord, filling the house with music! Music that echoed the strains of heavenly singers! Oh, joy! For Alice had endured her last humiliation! Oh, greater joy! For Alice regretted her only earthly sin and was no longer proud!

The Pyncheons made a great funeral for Alice. The kith and kin were there, and the whole respectability of the town besides. But, last in the procession, came Matthew Maule, gnashing his teeth, as if he would have bitten his own heart in twain,—the darkest and wofullest man that ever walked behind a corpse! He meant to humble Alice, not to kill her; but he had taken a woman’s delicate soul into his rude gripe, to play with—and she was dead!

The Pyncheons held a grand funeral for Alice. Family and friends were there, along with everyone who was anyone in town. But bringing up the rear of the procession was Matthew Maule, gritting his teeth as if he wanted to tear his own heart apart—the most sorrowful and angry man to ever walk behind a coffin! He intended to humiliate Alice, not to harm her; but he had grasped her fragile spirit in his rough hands, and now she was gone!

XIV.
Phœbe’s Good-Bye

Holgrave, plunging into his tale with the energy and absorption natural to a young author, had given a good deal of action to the parts capable of being developed and exemplified in that manner. He now observed that a certain remarkable drowsiness (wholly unlike that with which the reader possibly feels himself affected) had been flung over the senses of his auditress. It was the effect, unquestionably, of the mystic gesticulations by which he had sought to bring bodily before Phœbe’s perception the figure of the mesmerizing carpenter. With the lids drooping over her eyes,—now lifted for an instant, and drawn down again as with leaden weights,—she leaned slightly towards him, and seemed almost to regulate her breath by his. Holgrave gazed at her, as he rolled up his manuscript, and recognized an incipient stage of that curious psychological condition which, as he had himself told Phœbe, he possessed more than an ordinary faculty of producing. A veil was beginning to be muffled about her, in which she could behold only him, and live only in his thoughts and emotions. His glance, as he fastened it on the young girl, grew involuntarily more concentrated; in his attitude there was the consciousness of power, investing his hardly mature figure with a dignity that did not belong to its physical manifestation. It was evident, that, with but one wave of his hand and a corresponding effort of his will, he could complete his mastery over Phœbe’s yet free and virgin spirit: he could establish an influence over this good, pure, and simple child, as dangerous, and perhaps as disastrous, as that which the carpenter of his legend had acquired and exercised over the ill-fated Alice.

Holgrave, diving into his story with the enthusiasm and focus typical of a young writer, had added a lot of action to the parts that could be developed and illustrated this way. He now noticed a certain remarkable drowsiness (totally different from what the reader might be feeling) had settled over the senses of his listener. This was undoubtedly the result of the mystical gestures he used to vividly present the figure of the hypnotic carpenter to Phœbe. With her eyelids drooping—lifting for a moment only to be drawn down again as if weighed down—she leaned slightly towards him and seemed to almost sync her breathing with his. Holgrave watched her as he rolled up his manuscript, recognizing an early stage of that strange psychological state which, as he had told Phœbe, he had a greater ability to create than most. A veil was starting to envelop her, allowing her to see only him and exist solely within his thoughts and feelings. His gaze, as he fixed it on the young girl, became involuntarily more intense; there was a sense of power in his posture, giving his still-maturing figure a dignity that didn't match its physical appearance. It was clear that with just a wave of his hand and a corresponding effort of his will, he could fully dominate Phœbe’s still free and innocent spirit: he could establish an influence over this good, pure, and simple child that was just as dangerous, and possibly as disastrous, as the one the carpenter from his story had gained and wielded over the doomed Alice.

To a disposition like Holgrave’s, at once speculative and active, there is no temptation so great as the opportunity of acquiring empire over the human spirit; nor any idea more seductive to a young man than to become the arbiter of a young girl’s destiny. Let us, therefore,—whatever his defects of nature and education, and in spite of his scorn for creeds and institutions,—concede to the daguerreotypist the rare and high quality of reverence for another’s individuality. Let us allow him integrity, also, forever after to be confided in; since he forbade himself to twine that one link more which might have rendered his spell over Phœbe indissoluble.

For someone like Holgrave, who is both thoughtful and proactive, there's no stronger temptation than the chance to influence the human spirit; nor is there any idea more appealing to a young man than the possibility of controlling a young girl’s fate. So, let's agree—despite his flaws in character and upbringing, and his disdain for beliefs and institutions—that the daguerreotypist possesses a rare and significant respect for another person's individuality. Let's also recognize his integrity, which allows him to be trusted from then on; since he chose not to forge that one additional connection that could have made his hold over Phœbe unbreakable.

He made a slight gesture upward with his hand.

He made a small upward motion with his hand.

“You really mortify me, my dear Miss Phœbe!” he exclaimed, smiling half-sarcastically at her. “My poor story, it is but too evident, will never do for Godey or Graham! Only think of your falling asleep at what I hoped the newspaper critics would pronounce a most brilliant, powerful, imaginative, pathetic, and original winding up! Well, the manuscript must serve to light lamps with;—if, indeed, being so imbued with my gentle dulness, it is any longer capable of flame!”

“You really embarrass me, my dear Miss Phœbe!” he said, smiling half-sarcastically at her. “My poor story is clearly not suitable for Godey or Graham! Just think about you falling asleep during what I hoped the newspaper critics would call a truly brilliant, powerful, imaginative, moving, and original conclusion! Well, the manuscript will have to be used to light lamps;—if, indeed, being so filled with my gentle dullness, it is still capable of catching fire!”

“Me asleep! How can you say so?” answered Phœbe, as unconscious of the crisis through which she had passed as an infant of the precipice to the verge of which it has rolled. “No, no! I consider myself as having been very attentive; and, though I don’t remember the incidents quite distinctly, yet I have an impression of a vast deal of trouble and calamity,—so, no doubt, the story will prove exceedingly attractive.”

“Me asleep! How can you say that?” Phœbe replied, completely unaware of the crisis she had just been through, like a baby near the edge of a cliff. “No, no! I believe I was very attentive, and even though I don’t remember the details clearly, I have a strong feeling of having experienced a lot of trouble and disaster—so, I'm sure the story will be really interesting.”

By this time the sun had gone down, and was tinting the clouds towards the zenith with those bright hues which are not seen there until some time after sunset, and when the horizon has quite lost its richer brilliancy. The moon, too, which had long been climbing overhead, and unobtrusively melting its disk into the azure,—like an ambitious demagogue, who hides his aspiring purpose by assuming the prevalent hue of popular sentiment,—now began to shine out, broad and oval, in its middle pathway. These silvery beams were already powerful enough to change the character of the lingering daylight. They softened and embellished the aspect of the old house; although the shadows fell deeper into the angles of its many gables, and lay brooding under the projecting story, and within the half-open door. With the lapse of every moment, the garden grew more picturesque; the fruit-trees, shrubbery, and flower-bushes had a dark obscurity among them. The commonplace characteristics—which, at noontide, it seemed to have taken a century of sordid life to accumulate—were now transfigured by a charm of romance. A hundred mysterious years were whispering among the leaves, whenever the slight sea-breeze found its way thither and stirred them. Through the foliage that roofed the little summer-house the moonlight flickered to and fro, and fell silvery white on the dark floor, the table, and the circular bench, with a continual shift and play, according as the chinks and wayward crevices among the twigs admitted or shut out the glimmer.

By this time, the sun had set, casting vibrant colors on the clouds near the top of the sky, hues that only appear after sunset when the horizon has completely lost its brighter glow. The moon, which had been rising for a while, was subtly blending into the blue sky—much like a politician hiding their ambitions by going along with popular opinions—and now began to shine brightly and roundly in its path. Its silvery light was strong enough to alter the fading daylight. It softened and enhanced the look of the old house, even as shadows grew darker in the corners of its many gables, lying heavy beneath the overhanging story and the half-open door. With every passing moment, the garden became more picturesque; the fruit trees, shrubs, and flowering bushes took on a dark allure. The ordinary features—qualities that seemed to have taken a century of dull existence to gather—were transformed by a touch of romance. A hundred mysterious years seemed to whisper among the leaves whenever a gentle sea breeze blew through and rustled them. Moonlight flickered through the leaves sheltering the little summer house, casting silvery patterns on the dark floor, the table, and the circular bench, shifting and dancing as the gaps among the twigs let in or blocked the glow.

So sweetly cool was the atmosphere, after all the feverish day, that the summer eve might be fancied as sprinkling dews and liquid moonlight, with a dash of icy temper in them, out of a silver vase. Here and there, a few drops of this freshness were scattered on a human heart, and gave it youth again, and sympathy with the eternal youth of nature. The artist chanced to be one on whom the reviving influence fell. It made him feel—what he sometimes almost forgot, thrust so early as he had been into the rude struggle of man with man—how youthful he still was.

The atmosphere was so refreshingly cool after the intense day that the summer evening felt like it was sprinkling dewdrops and liquid moonlight, with a hint of chill, from a silver vase. Here and there, a few drops of this freshness touched a human heart, rejuvenating it and connecting it to nature’s eternal youth. The artist happened to be one who felt this revitalizing influence. It reminded him—what he sometimes nearly forgot, having been thrown so young into the harsh competition of life—just how youthful he still was.

“It seems to me,” he observed, “that I never watched the coming of so beautiful an eve, and never felt anything so very much like happiness as at this moment. After all, what a good world we live in! How good, and beautiful! How young it is, too, with nothing really rotten or age-worn in it! This old house, for example, which sometimes has positively oppressed my breath with its smell of decaying timber! And this garden, where the black mould always clings to my spade, as if I were a sexton delving in a graveyard! Could I keep the feeling that now possesses me, the garden would every day be virgin soil, with the earth’s first freshness in the flavor of its beans and squashes; and the house!—it would be like a bower in Eden, blossoming with the earliest roses that God ever made. Moonlight, and the sentiment in man’s heart responsive to it, are the greatest of renovators and reformers. And all other reform and renovation, I suppose, will prove to be no better than moonshine!”

“It seems to me,” he noted, “that I’ve never witnessed a more beautiful evening, nor felt anything resembling true happiness quite like this moment. After all, what a wonderful world we live in! It’s good and beautiful! And so young, with nothing truly rotten or worn down in it! Take this old house, for instance, which has sometimes overwhelmed me with its smell of rotting wood! And this garden, where the black mold always sticks to my spade, as if I’m a gravedigger working in a cemetery! If I could hold onto this feeling I have now, the garden would be fresh soil every day, with the earth’s first freshness reflected in the taste of its beans and squashes; and the house!—it would be like a paradise in Eden, blooming with the very first roses that God ever created. Moonlight, and the feelings in a person’s heart that respond to it, are the greatest sources of renewal and change. And I suppose any other reform or renewal will turn out to be no better than moonlight!”

“I have been happier than I am now; at least, much gayer,” said Phœbe thoughtfully. “Yet I am sensible of a great charm in this brightening moonlight; and I love to watch how the day, tired as it is, lags away reluctantly, and hates to be called yesterday so soon. I never cared much about moonlight before. What is there, I wonder, so beautiful in it, to-night?”

“I’ve been happier than I am now; at least, much more cheerful,” said Phœbe thoughtfully. “Yet I can feel a wonderful charm in this bright moonlight; and I love to see how the day, tired as it is, lingers reluctantly, and hates to be called yesterday so soon. I never cared much about moonlight before. What is it, I wonder, that makes it so beautiful tonight?”

“And you have never felt it before?” inquired the artist, looking earnestly at the girl through the twilight.

“And you've never felt it before?” the artist asked, gazing intently at the girl in the dim light.

“Never,” answered Phœbe; “and life does not look the same, now that I have felt it so. It seems as if I had looked at everything, hitherto, in broad daylight, or else in the ruddy light of a cheerful fire, glimmering and dancing through a room. Ah, poor me!” she added, with a half-melancholy laugh. “I shall never be so merry as before I knew Cousin Hepzibah and poor Cousin Clifford. I have grown a great deal older, in this little time. Older, and, I hope, wiser, and,—not exactly sadder,—but, certainly, with not half so much lightness in my spirits! I have given them my sunshine, and have been glad to give it; but, of course, I cannot both give and keep it. They are welcome, notwithstanding!”

“Never,” replied Phoebe; “and life doesn’t seem the same now that I’ve experienced this. It feels like I’ve seen everything before in bright daylight or the warm glow of a cheerful fire flickering in a room. Oh, poor me!” she added with a half-sad laugh. “I’ll never be as cheerful as I was before I met Cousin Hepzibah and poor Cousin Clifford. I feel much older now, in such a short time. Older, and I hope, wiser, and—not exactly sadder—but definitely with way less lightness in my mood! I’ve given them my sunshine, and I’ve been happy to do it; but, of course, I can’t give it away and keep it too. They’re welcome to it, though!”

“You have lost nothing, Phœbe, worth keeping, nor which it was possible to keep,” said Holgrave after a pause. “Our first youth is of no value; for we are never conscious of it until after it is gone. But sometimes—always, I suspect, unless one is exceedingly unfortunate—there comes a sense of second youth, gushing out of the heart’s joy at being in love; or, possibly, it may come to crown some other grand festival in life, if any other such there be. This bemoaning of one’s self (as you do now) over the first, careless, shallow gayety of youth departed, and this profound happiness at youth regained,—so much deeper and richer than that we lost,—are essential to the soul’s development. In some cases, the two states come almost simultaneously, and mingle the sadness and the rapture in one mysterious emotion.”

“You haven't lost anything, Phœbe, that’s worth keeping, or that could actually be kept,” Holgrave said after a pause. “Our early youth isn’t valuable; we’re only aware of it once it’s gone. But sometimes—probably always, unless someone is exceptionally unfortunate—there’s a sense of a second youth, bubbling up from the heart's joy of being in love; or it might come to celebrate some other major milestone in life, if there are any others. This lamenting of one’s self (like you’re doing now) over the first, carefree, superficial happiness of lost youth, and this deep joy at regaining youth—much deeper and richer than what we lost—are both crucial for the soul's growth. In some cases, these two states occur almost at the same time, blending the sadness and the joy into one mysterious feeling.”

“I hardly think I understand you,” said Phœbe.

"I really don't think I understand you," said Phoebe.

“No wonder,” replied Holgrave, smiling; “for I have told you a secret which I hardly began to know before I found myself giving it utterance. Remember it, however; and when the truth becomes clear to you, then think of this moonlight scene!”

“No surprise,” Holgrave said with a smile, “because I shared a secret I barely understood before I found myself saying it out loud. Keep it in mind, though; and when the truth becomes clear to you, think back on this moonlit scene!”

“It is entirely moonlight now, except only a little flush of faint crimson, upward from the west, between those buildings,” remarked Phœbe. “I must go in. Cousin Hepzibah is not quick at figures, and will give herself a headache over the day’s accounts, unless I help her.”

“It’s all moonlight now, except for a slight hint of faint crimson in the west between those buildings,” Phœbe said. “I have to go in. Cousin Hepzibah isn't great with numbers and will stress herself out over today’s accounts unless I help her.”

But Holgrave detained her a little longer.

But Holgrave held her back for a bit longer.

“Miss Hepzibah tells me,” observed he, “that you return to the country in a few days.”

"Miss Hepzibah told me," he said, "that you're heading back to the countryside in a few days."

“Yes, but only for a little while,” answered Phœbe; “for I look upon this as my present home. I go to make a few arrangements, and to take a more deliberate leave of my mother and friends. It is pleasant to live where one is much desired and very useful; and I think I may have the satisfaction of feeling myself so here.”

“Yes, but only for a little while,” answered Phoebe; “because I see this as my home for now. I’m going to make a few plans and say a proper goodbye to my mom and friends. It’s nice to be in a place where you’re wanted and can really contribute; and I feel like I can have that satisfaction here.”

“You surely may, and more than you imagine,” said the artist. “Whatever health, comfort, and natural life exists in the house is embodied in your person. These blessings came along with you, and will vanish when you leave the threshold. Miss Hepzibah, by secluding herself from society, has lost all true relation with it, and is, in fact, dead; although she galvanizes herself into a semblance of life, and stands behind her counter, afflicting the world with a greatly-to-be-deprecated scowl. Your poor cousin Clifford is another dead and long-buried person, on whom the governor and council have wrought a necromantic miracle. I should not wonder if he were to crumble away, some morning, after you are gone, and nothing be seen of him more, except a heap of dust. Miss Hepzibah, at any rate, will lose what little flexibility she has. They both exist by you.”

“You definitely can, and even more than you think,” said the artist. “Any health, comfort, and vitality in this house is tied to you. These blessings came with you and will disappear when you leave. Miss Hepzibah has cut herself off from society and has lost all real connection with it; she’s basically dead, even though she puts on a show of being alive, standing behind her counter with a terrible scowl. Your poor cousin Clifford is another person who feels dead and buried, brought back by some strange magic from the governor and council. I wouldn’t be surprised if he just fell apart one morning after you leave, leaving nothing but a pile of dust. Miss Hepzibah is bound to lose whatever little liveliness she has left. They both depend on you.”

“I should be very sorry to think so,” answered Phœbe gravely. “But it is true that my small abilities were precisely what they needed; and I have a real interest in their welfare,—an odd kind of motherly sentiment,—which I wish you would not laugh at! And let me tell you frankly, Mr. Holgrave, I am sometimes puzzled to know whether you wish them well or ill.”

“I would really hate to think that,” Phœbe replied seriously. “But it's true that my limited skills were exactly what they required; and I genuinely care about their well-being—it's a strange sort of motherly feeling—which I hope you won’t mock! And to be honest, Mr. Holgrave, I sometimes find it hard to tell whether you want them to succeed or fail.”

“Undoubtedly,” said the daguerreotypist, “I do feel an interest in this antiquated, poverty-stricken old maiden lady, and this degraded and shattered gentleman,—this abortive lover of the beautiful. A kindly interest, too, helpless old children that they are! But you have no conception what a different kind of heart mine is from your own. It is not my impulse, as regards these two individuals, either to help or hinder; but to look on, to analyze, to explain matters to myself, and to comprehend the drama which, for almost two hundred years, has been dragging its slow length over the ground where you and I now tread. If permitted to witness the close, I doubt not to derive a moral satisfaction from it, go matters how they may. There is a conviction within me that the end draws nigh. But, though Providence sent you hither to help, and sends me only as a privileged and meet spectator, I pledge myself to lend these unfortunate beings whatever aid I can!”

“Sure,” said the photographer, “I do feel a connection to this outdated, struggling old lady and this broken-down gentleman — this failed lover of beauty. A genuine concern, too, since they’re like helpless children! But you have no idea how different my heart is from yours. I don't feel the urge to either help or hinder these two; instead, I want to observe, analyze, explain things to myself, and understand the drama that has been playing out for almost two hundred years right where we stand. If I'm allowed to see the conclusion, I’m sure I’ll find some moral satisfaction in it, no matter how it turns out. I have a strong feeling that the end is near. But even though fate brought you here to help and only brought me as an allowed and appropriate observer, I promise to offer these unfortunate souls whatever support I can!”

“I wish you would speak more plainly,” cried Phœbe, perplexed and displeased; “and, above all, that you would feel more like a Christian and a human being! How is it possible to see people in distress without desiring, more than anything else, to help and comfort them? You talk as if this old house were a theatre; and you seem to look at Hepzibah’s and Clifford’s misfortunes, and those of generations before them, as a tragedy, such as I have seen acted in the hall of a country hotel, only the present one appears to be played exclusively for your amusement. I do not like this. The play costs the performers too much, and the audience is too cold-hearted.”

"I wish you would speak more clearly," Phœbe exclaimed, confused and frustrated; "and, more than anything, I wish you would act more like a Christian and a decent person! How can you watch people suffer without wanting to help and comfort them? You talk as if this old house were a stage; it feels like you're viewing Hepzibah's and Clifford's struggles, along with those of everyone before them, as a tragedy—like the ones I’ve seen performed at a country hotel—but this one seems to be put on just for your entertainment. I don't like this. The play costs the actors too much, and the audience is too heartless."

“You are severe,” said Holgrave, compelled to recognize a degree of truth in the piquant sketch of his own mood.

“You’re harsh,” said Holgrave, forced to admit there was some truth in the sharp portrayal of his own feelings.

“And then,” continued Phœbe, “what can you mean by your conviction, which you tell me of, that the end is drawing near? Do you know of any new trouble hanging over my poor relatives? If so, tell me at once, and I will not leave them!”

“And then,” continued Phœbe, “what do you mean by your belief that the end is coming? Do you know of any new trouble looming over my poor relatives? If you do, tell me right away, and I won’t leave them!”

“Forgive me, Phœbe!” said the daguerreotypist, holding out his hand, to which the girl was constrained to yield her own. “I am somewhat of a mystic, it must be confessed. The tendency is in my blood, together with the faculty of mesmerism, which might have brought me to Gallows Hill, in the good old times of witchcraft. Believe me, if I were really aware of any secret, the disclosure of which would benefit your friends,—who are my own friends, likewise,—you should learn it before we part. But I have no such knowledge.”

"Forgive me, Phoebe!” said the photographer, extending his hand, which the girl felt she had to take. “I have to admit, I’m a bit of a dreamer. It’s just in my nature, along with the ability to mesmerize, which could have placed me at Gallows Hill back in the old days of witchcraft. Trust me, if I actually knew any secret that could help your friends—who are also my friends—you would hear it before we say goodbye. But I don’t have any such knowledge.”

“You hold something back!” said Phœbe.

“You're holding something back!” said Phœbe.

“Nothing,—no secrets but my own,” answered Holgrave. “I can perceive, indeed, that Judge Pyncheon still keeps his eye on Clifford, in whose ruin he had so large a share. His motives and intentions, however are a mystery to me. He is a determined and relentless man, with the genuine character of an inquisitor; and had he any object to gain by putting Clifford to the rack, I verily believe that he would wrench his joints from their sockets, in order to accomplish it. But, so wealthy and eminent as he is,—so powerful in his own strength, and in the support of society on all sides,—what can Judge Pyncheon have to hope or fear from the imbecile, branded, half-torpid Clifford?”

“Nothing—no secrets but my own,” Holgrave replied. “I can see that Judge Pyncheon is still watching Clifford, who he played a big part in ruining. However, his motives and intentions remain a mystery to me. He is a determined and relentless man, with the true nature of an inquisitor; and if he had any goal to achieve by torturing Clifford, I honestly believe he would dislocate his joints to get it done. But given how wealthy and distinguished he is—so powerful on his own and backed by society all around him—what could Judge Pyncheon possibly hope for or fear from the feeble, branded, half-sedated Clifford?”

“Yet,” urged Phœbe, “you did speak as if misfortune were impending!”

“Yet,” urged Phoebe, “you did speak as if disaster were coming!”

“Oh, that was because I am morbid!” replied the artist. “My mind has a twist aside, like almost everybody’s mind, except your own. Moreover, it is so strange to find myself an inmate of this old Pyncheon House, and sitting in this old garden—(hark, how Maule’s well is murmuring!)—that, were it only for this one circumstance, I cannot help fancying that Destiny is arranging its fifth act for a catastrophe.”

“Oh, that’s because I’m morbid!” replied the artist. “My mind has a twist to it, like almost everybody else’s, except yours. Moreover, it’s so strange to find myself living in this old Pyncheon House and sitting in this old garden—(listen, how Maule’s well is murmuring!)—that, just because of this one thing, I can’t help thinking that Destiny is setting up for a catastrophe in its fifth act.”

“There!” cried Phœbe with renewed vexation; for she was by nature as hostile to mystery as the sunshine to a dark corner. “You puzzle me more than ever!”

"There!" cried Phoebe, more frustrated than before; she was naturally as opposed to mystery as sunshine is to a dark corner. "You confuse me more than ever!"

“Then let us part friends!” said Holgrave, pressing her hand. “Or, if not friends, let us part before you entirely hate me. You, who love everybody else in the world!”

“Then let’s say goodbye as friends!” said Holgrave, holding her hand. “Or, if we can’t be friends, let’s end things before you completely hate me. You, who loves everyone else in the world!”

“Good-by, then,” said Phœbe frankly. “I do not mean to be angry a great while, and should be sorry to have you think so. There has Cousin Hepzibah been standing in the shadow of the doorway, this quarter of an hour past! She thinks I stay too long in the damp garden. So, good-night, and good-by.”

“Goodbye, then,” Phœbe said honestly. “I don’t plan to be angry for long, and I’d hate for you to think that. Cousin Hepzibah has been standing in the doorway’s shadow for the last fifteen minutes! She thinks I’m spending too much time in the damp garden. So, goodnight, and goodbye.”

On the second morning thereafter, Phœbe might have been seen, in her straw bonnet, with a shawl on one arm and a little carpet-bag on the other, bidding adieu to Hepzibah and Cousin Clifford. She was to take a seat in the next train of cars, which would transport her to within half a dozen miles of her country village.

On the second morning after that, Phoebe was seen in her straw hat, with a shawl over one arm and a small carpet bag in the other, saying goodbye to Hepzibah and Cousin Clifford. She was about to catch the next train, which would take her within a few miles of her hometown.

The tears were in Phœbe’s eyes; a smile, dewy with affectionate regret, was glimmering around her pleasant mouth. She wondered how it came to pass, that her life of a few weeks, here in this heavy-hearted old mansion, had taken such hold of her, and so melted into her associations, as now to seem a more important centre-point of remembrance than all which had gone before. How had Hepzibah—grim, silent, and irresponsive to her overflow of cordial sentiment—contrived to win so much love? And Clifford,—in his abortive decay, with the mystery of fearful crime upon him, and the close prison-atmosphere yet lurking in his breath,—how had he transformed himself into the simplest child, whom Phœbe felt bound to watch over, and be, as it were, the providence of his unconsidered hours! Everything, at that instant of farewell, stood out prominently to her view. Look where she would, lay her hand on what she might, the object responded to her consciousness, as if a moist human heart were in it.

Tears were in Phœbe’s eyes; a smile, shimmering with bittersweet affection, danced around her kind mouth. She wondered how it was that her few weeks in this heavy-hearted old mansion had impacted her so deeply, blending into her memories to become a more significant point of reflection than everything that had happened before. How had Hepzibah—grim, silent, and unresponsive to her overflowing warmth—managed to earn so much love? And Clifford—in his fading condition, with the weight of a terrifying crime hanging over him, and the lingering prison atmosphere still in his breath—how had he turned into such a simple child, someone Phœbe felt she needed to care for, almost as if she were the guardian of his unthoughtful moments? In that moment of farewell, everything stood out vividly to her. No matter where she looked or what she touched, the object seemed to respond to her awareness, as if it had a beating heart inside.

She peeped from the window into the garden, and felt herself more regretful at leaving this spot of black earth, vitiated with such an age-long growth of weeds, than joyful at the idea of again scenting her pine forests and fresh clover-fields. She called Chanticleer, his two wives, and the venerable chicken, and threw them some crumbs of bread from the breakfast-table. These being hastily gobbled up, the chicken spread its wings, and alighted close by Phœbe on the window-sill, where it looked gravely into her face and vented its emotions in a croak. Phœbe bade it be a good old chicken during her absence, and promised to bring it a little bag of buckwheat.

She peeked out the window into the garden and felt more regretful about leaving this patch of black earth, overrun with years of weeds, than excited about the thought of smelling her pine forests and fresh clover fields again. She called for Chanticleer, his two hens, and the old chicken, and tossed them some crumbs of bread from the breakfast table. After they quickly gobbled it up, the chicken spread its wings and landed near Phœbe on the window sill, where it looked seriously into her face and let out a croak. Phœbe told it to be a good old chicken while she was gone and promised to bring it a little bag of buckwheat.

“Ah, Phœbe!” remarked Hepzibah, “you do not smile so naturally as when you came to us! Then, the smile chose to shine out; now, you choose it should. It is well that you are going back, for a little while, into your native air. There has been too much weight on your spirits. The house is too gloomy and lonesome; the shop is full of vexations; and as for me, I have no faculty of making things look brighter than they are. Dear Clifford has been your only comfort!”

“Ah, Phoebe!” said Hepzibah, “you don’t smile as naturally as you did when you first came to us! Back then, your smile just lit up the room; now, you seem to force it. It’s good that you're going back for a little while to your familiar surroundings. There’s been too much weighing on your spirits. The house feels too dark and lonely; the shop is full of frustrations; and as for me, I can't make things seem any better than they really are. Dear Clifford has been your only comfort!”

“Come hither, Phœbe,” suddenly cried her cousin Clifford, who had said very little all the morning. “Close!—closer!—and look me in the face!”

“Come here, Phoebe,” suddenly shouted her cousin Clifford, who had hardly said anything all morning. “Closer!—even closer!—and look me in the face!”

Phœbe put one of her small hands on each elbow of his chair, and leaned her face towards him, so that he might peruse it as carefully as he would. It is probable that the latent emotions of this parting hour had revived, in some degree, his bedimmed and enfeebled faculties. At any rate, Phœbe soon felt that, if not the profound insight of a seer, yet a more than feminine delicacy of appreciation, was making her heart the subject of its regard. A moment before, she had known nothing which she would have sought to hide. Now, as if some secret were hinted to her own consciousness through the medium of another’s perception, she was fain to let her eyelids droop beneath Clifford’s gaze. A blush, too,—the redder, because she strove hard to keep it down,—ascended bigger and higher, in a tide of fitful progress, until even her brow was all suffused with it.

Phoebe put one of her small hands on each elbow of his chair and leaned her face toward him so he could examine it as closely as he wanted. It's likely that the deep emotions of this parting moment had revived, to some extent, his dulled and weakened senses. Either way, Phoebe soon felt that, if not the deep insight of a visionary, then at least a more than feminine sensitivity was making her heart the focus of its attention. Just a moment before, she had nothing she felt the need to hide. Now, as if some secret was being suggested to her own awareness through someone else's perspective, she found herself wanting to lower her eyelids under Clifford’s gaze. A blush, too—redder because she was trying so hard to suppress it—rose higher and higher, until even her forehead was completely flushed.

“It is enough, Phœbe,” said Clifford, with a melancholy smile. “When I first saw you, you were the prettiest little maiden in the world; and now you have deepened into beauty. Girlhood has passed into womanhood; the bud is a bloom! Go, now—I feel lonelier than I did.”

“It’s enough, Phoebe,” Clifford said with a sad smile. “When I first saw you, you were the cutest little girl in the world; and now you’ve grown into beauty. Childhood has turned into adulthood; the bud is now a flower! Go on now—I feel even lonelier than before.”

Phœbe took leave of the desolate couple, and passed through the shop, twinkling her eyelids to shake off a dew-drop; for—considering how brief her absence was to be, and therefore the folly of being cast down about it—she would not so far acknowledge her tears as to dry them with her handkerchief. On the doorstep, she met the little urchin whose marvellous feats of gastronomy have been recorded in the earlier pages of our narrative. She took from the window some specimen or other of natural history,—her eyes being too dim with moisture to inform her accurately whether it was a rabbit or a hippopotamus,—put it into the child’s hand as a parting gift, and went her way. Old Uncle Venner was just coming out of his door, with a wood-horse and saw on his shoulder; and, trudging along the street, he scrupled not to keep company with Phœbe, so far as their paths lay together; nor, in spite of his patched coat and rusty beaver, and the curious fashion of his tow-cloth trousers, could she find it in her heart to outwalk him.

Phœbe said goodbye to the lonely couple and walked through the shop, blinking her eyes to shake off a tear; since her absence would be short and it seemed pointless to be sad about it, she wouldn’t dry her tears with her handkerchief. On the doorstep, she ran into the little kid whose amazing eating skills were mentioned earlier in the story. She grabbed some specimen from the window—her eyes were too teary to tell if it was a rabbit or a hippopotamus—and handed it to the child as a farewell gift before continuing on her way. Old Uncle Venner was just stepping out of his door, carrying a wooden horse and a saw on his shoulder; as he walked down the street, he didn’t hesitate to accompany Phœbe for as long as their paths crossed, and despite his patched coat, worn hat, and the odd style of his rough trousers, she couldn’t bring herself to walk faster than him.

“We shall miss you, next Sabbath afternoon,” observed the street philosopher. “It is unaccountable how little while it takes some folks to grow just as natural to a man as his own breath; and, begging your pardon, Miss Phœbe (though there can be no offence in an old man’s saying it), that’s just what you’ve grown to me! My years have been a great many, and your life is but just beginning; and yet, you are somehow as familiar to me as if I had found you at my mother’s door, and you had blossomed, like a running vine, all along my pathway since. Come back soon, or I shall be gone to my farm; for I begin to find these wood-sawing jobs a little too tough for my back-ache.”

“We're going to miss you next Sabbath afternoon,” said the street philosopher. “It's strange how quickly some people can feel as natural to a person as their own breath; and, if I may say so, Miss Phœbe (and I mean no offense as an old man saying this), that’s exactly how you’ve become to me! I’ve lived many years, while your life is just starting; yet, you feel as familiar to me as if you had appeared at my mother’s door, blossoming like a vine all along my path since then. Please come back soon, or I might head to my farm; I’m starting to find these wood-sawing jobs a bit too hard on my back.”

“Very soon, Uncle Venner,” replied Phœbe.

“Very soon, Uncle Venner,” replied Phoebe.

“And let it be all the sooner, Phœbe, for the sake of those poor souls yonder,” continued her companion. “They can never do without you, now,—never, Phœbe; never—no more than if one of God’s angels had been living with them, and making their dismal house pleasant and comfortable! Don’t it seem to you they’d be in a sad case, if, some pleasant summer morning like this, the angel should spread his wings, and fly to the place he came from? Well, just so they feel, now that you’re going home by the railroad! They can’t bear it, Miss Phœbe; so be sure to come back!”

“And let it be sooner, Phoebe, for the sake of those poor souls over there,” her companion continued. “They can’t live without you now—never, Phoebe; never—just like they couldn’t if one of God’s angels were living with them, making their dreary home pleasant and comfortable! Don’t you think they’d be in a terrible situation if, on a nice summer morning like this, the angel spread his wings and flew back home? Well, that’s exactly how they feel now that you’re heading back by train! They can’t handle it, Miss Phoebe; so make sure to come back!”

“I am no angel, Uncle Venner,” said Phœbe, smiling, as she offered him her hand at the street-corner. “But, I suppose, people never feel so much like angels as when they are doing what little good they may. So I shall certainly come back!”

“I’m no angel, Uncle Venner,” said Phœbe, smiling as she extended her hand to him at the corner of the street. “But I guess people never feel more like angels than when they’re doing whatever good they can. So I’ll definitely come back!”

Thus parted the old man and the rosy girl; and Phœbe took the wings of the morning, and was soon flitting almost as rapidly away as if endowed with the aerial locomotion of the angels to whom Uncle Venner had so graciously compared her.

Thus parted the old man and the rosy girl; and Phœbe took off at dawn, quickly drifting away as if she had the flying ability of the angels that Uncle Venner had so kindly compared her to.

XV.
The Scowl and Smile

Several days passed over the Seven Gables, heavily and drearily enough. In fact (not to attribute the whole gloom of sky and earth to the one inauspicious circumstance of Phœbe’s departure), an easterly storm had set in, and indefatigably apply itself to the task of making the black roof and walls of the old house look more cheerless than ever before. Yet was the outside not half so cheerless as the interior. Poor Clifford was cut off, at once, from all his scanty resources of enjoyment. Phœbe was not there; nor did the sunshine fall upon the floor. The garden, with its muddy walks, and the chill, dripping foliage of its summer-house, was an image to be shuddered at. Nothing flourished in the cold, moist, pitiless atmosphere, drifting with the brackish scud of sea-breezes, except the moss along the joints of the shingle-roof, and the great bunch of weeds, that had lately been suffering from drought, in the angle between the two front gables.

Several days passed over the Seven Gables, feeling heavy and dreary. In fact (not to blame all the gloom of the sky and earth on the unfortunate circumstance of Phœbe’s departure), an easterly storm had rolled in, relentlessly working to make the black roof and walls of the old house appear even more cheerless than before. Yet the outside was not nearly as cheerless as the inside. Poor Clifford was cut off from all his limited sources of enjoyment. Phœbe wasn’t there, and the sunshine didn’t reach the floor. The garden, with its muddy paths and the cold, dripping leaves of its summer house, was a sight to dread. Nothing thrived in the cold, damp, relentless atmosphere, drifting with the salty gusts of sea breezes, except the moss along the seams of the shingle roof and the large cluster of weeds that had recently been suffering from drought, in the corner between the two front gables.

As for Hepzibah, she seemed not merely possessed with the east wind, but to be, in her very person, only another phase of this gray and sullen spell of weather; the East-Wind itself, grim and disconsolate, in a rusty black silk gown, and with a turban of cloud-wreaths on its head. The custom of the shop fell off, because a story got abroad that she soured her small beer and other damageable commodities, by scowling on them. It is, perhaps, true that the public had something reasonably to complain of in her deportment; but towards Clifford she was neither ill-tempered nor unkind, nor felt less warmth of heart than always, had it been possible to make it reach him. The inutility of her best efforts, however, palsied the poor old gentlewoman. She could do little else than sit silently in a corner of the room, when the wet pear-tree branches, sweeping across the small windows, created a noonday dusk, which Hepzibah unconsciously darkened with her woe-begone aspect. It was no fault of Hepzibah’s. Everything—even the old chairs and tables, that had known what weather was for three or four such lifetimes as her own—looked as damp and chill as if the present were their worst experience. The picture of the Puritan Colonel shivered on the wall. The house itself shivered, from every attic of its seven gables down to the great kitchen fireplace, which served all the better as an emblem of the mansion’s heart, because, though built for warmth, it was now so comfortless and empty.

As for Hepzibah, she seemed not just affected by the east wind, but to be, in her very being, another manifestation of this gray and gloomy weather; the East Wind itself, grim and sorrowful, dressed in a worn black silk gown and wearing a turban made of cloud fragments. The shop's business declined because rumors spread that she spoiled her small beer and other delicate items by scowling at them. It might be true that the public had some valid reasons to complain about her demeanor; however, towards Clifford, she was neither ill-tempered nor unkind, nor did she feel any less warmth in her heart than usual, had it been possible to share it with him. The futility of her best efforts, though, left the poor old woman feeling defeated. She could do little more than sit silently in a corner of the room when the wet branches of the pear tree brushed against the small windows, creating a gloomy midday light that Hepzibah unintentionally deepened with her sorrowful expression. It wasn't Hepzibah's fault. Everything—even the old chairs and tables, which had endured all sorts of weather for three or four lifetimes like hers—looked as damp and chilly as if this were the worst experience they had ever faced. The portrait of the Puritan Colonel trembled on the wall. The house itself shivered, from every attic of its seven gables down to the large kitchen fireplace, which served as an emblem of the mansion’s heart, because although it was built for warmth, it now felt so cold and empty.

Hepzibah attempted to enliven matters by a fire in the parlor. But the storm demon kept watch above, and, whenever a flame was kindled, drove the smoke back again, choking the chimney’s sooty throat with its own breath. Nevertheless, during four days of this miserable storm, Clifford wrapt himself in an old cloak, and occupied his customary chair. On the morning of the fifth, when summoned to breakfast, he responded only by a broken-hearted murmur, expressive of a determination not to leave his bed. His sister made no attempt to change his purpose. In fact, entirely as she loved him, Hepzibah could hardly have borne any longer the wretched duty—so impracticable by her few and rigid faculties—of seeking pastime for a still sensitive, but ruined mind, critical and fastidious, without force or volition. It was at least something short of positive despair, that to-day she might sit shivering alone, and not suffer continually a new grief, and unreasonable pang of remorse, at every fitful sigh of her fellow sufferer.

Hepzibah tried to brighten things up with a fire in the parlor. But the storm demon loomed above, and whenever a flame was lit, it forced the smoke back down, choking the chimney with its own breath. Still, during the four days of this miserable storm, Clifford wrapped himself in an old cloak and settled into his usual chair. On the morning of the fifth day, when called to breakfast, he only replied with a heartbroken murmur that showed he was determined not to leave his bed. His sister made no effort to change his mind. In truth, as much as she loved him, Hepzibah could hardly endure the wretched task—so impossible for her limited abilities—of finding ways to entertain a still sensitive but broken mind, one that was critical and hard to please, without any energy or will. It was at least a bit better than complete despair that today she could sit there shivering alone, instead of constantly feeling a fresh wave of grief and an unreasonable jab of remorse with every sigh from her fellow sufferer.

But Clifford, it seemed, though he did not make his appearance below stairs, had, after all, bestirred himself in quest of amusement. In the course of the forenoon, Hepzibah heard a note of music, which (there being no other tuneful contrivance in the House of the Seven Gables) she knew must proceed from Alice Pyncheon’s harpsichord. She was aware that Clifford, in his youth, had possessed a cultivated taste for music, and a considerable degree of skill in its practice. It was difficult, however, to conceive of his retaining an accomplishment to which daily exercise is so essential, in the measure indicated by the sweet, airy, and delicate, though most melancholy strain, that now stole upon her ear. Nor was it less marvellous that the long-silent instrument should be capable of so much melody. Hepzibah involuntarily thought of the ghostly harmonies, prelusive of death in the family, which were attributed to the legendary Alice. But it was, perhaps, proof of the agency of other than spiritual fingers, that, after a few touches, the chords seemed to snap asunder with their own vibrations, and the music ceased.

But it seemed that Clifford, even though he didn’t come downstairs, had still stirred himself in search of entertainment. During the morning, Hepzibah heard music, which she recognized must be coming from Alice Pyncheon’s harpsichord, since there was no other musical instrument in the House of the Seven Gables. She knew that Clifford had a refined taste for music in his youth and was quite skilled at it. However, it was hard to imagine that he could still maintain such a skill, which requires regular practice, at the level indicated by the sweet, light, and delicate, yet deeply sad melody that now reached her ears. It was just as surprising that the long-silent instrument could produce such beautiful music. Hepzibah couldn’t help but think of the ghostly melodies rumored to predict death in the family, attributed to the legendary Alice. But perhaps it was a sign that someone other than a spirit was playing, as, after a few notes, the strings seemed to break under their own tension, and the music stopped.

But a harsher sound succeeded to the mysterious notes; nor was the easterly day fated to pass without an event sufficient in itself to poison, for Hepzibah and Clifford, the balmiest air that ever brought the humming-birds along with it. The final echoes of Alice Pyncheon’s performance (or Clifford’s, if his we must consider it) were driven away by no less vulgar a dissonance than the ringing of the shop-bell. A foot was heard scraping itself on the threshold, and thence somewhat ponderously stepping on the floor. Hepzibah delayed a moment, while muffling herself in a faded shawl, which had been her defensive armor in a forty years’ warfare against the east wind. A characteristic sound, however,—neither a cough nor a hem, but a kind of rumbling and reverberating spasm in somebody’s capacious depth of chest;—impelled her to hurry forward, with that aspect of fierce faint-heartedness so common to women in cases of perilous emergency. Few of her sex, on such occasions, have ever looked so terrible as our poor scowling Hepzibah. But the visitor quietly closed the shop-door behind him, stood up his umbrella against the counter, and turned a visage of composed benignity, to meet the alarm and anger which his appearance had excited.

But a harsher sound replaced the mysterious notes; nor was the eastern day destined to pass without an event significant enough to taint, for Hepzibah and Clifford, the most pleasant air that ever brought the hummingbirds with it. The last echoes of Alice Pyncheon's performance (or Clifford’s, if we must count it) were overshadowed by the rather mundane noise of the shop bell ringing. A foot was heard scraping on the threshold, then somewhat heavily stepping onto the floor. Hepzibah paused for a moment, wrapping herself in a faded shawl, which had been her protective gear in a forty-year battle against the east wind. However, a characteristic sound—a kind of rumbling, reverberating spasm from someone's deep chest—prompted her to hurry forward, wearing that fierce yet timid expression common to women in moments of high tension. Few women have ever looked as formidable as our poor scowling Hepzibah did at that moment. But the visitor calmly closed the shop door behind him, propped his umbrella against the counter, and turned a composed, kind face to meet the alarm and anger his presence had caused.

Hepzibah’s presentiment had not deceived her. It was no other than Judge Pyncheon, who, after in vain trying the front door, had now effected his entrance into the shop.

Hepzibah's intuition had not let her down. It was none other than Judge Pyncheon, who, after unsuccessfully trying the front door, had now managed to get into the shop.

“How do you do, Cousin Hepzibah?—and how does this most inclement weather affect our poor Clifford?” began the Judge; and wonderful it seemed, indeed, that the easterly storm was not put to shame, or, at any rate, a little mollified, by the genial benevolence of his smile. “I could not rest without calling to ask, once more, whether I can in any manner promote his comfort, or your own.”

“How are you, Cousin Hepzibah?—and how is our poor Clifford coping with this awful weather?” the Judge started, and it was truly remarkable that the harsh easterly storm didn’t seem to feel embarrassed, or at least somewhat softened, by the warmth of his smile. “I couldn't sit still without checking in again to see if there's anything I can do to help make him more comfortable, or you as well.”

“You can do nothing,” said Hepzibah, controlling her agitation as well as she could. “I devote myself to Clifford. He has every comfort which his situation admits of.”

“You can’t do anything,” Hepzibah said, trying to keep her emotions in check as best as she could. “I’m dedicated to Clifford. He has every comfort that his situation allows.”

“But allow me to suggest, dear cousin,” rejoined the Judge, “you err,—in all affection and kindness, no doubt, and with the very best intentions,—but you do err, nevertheless, in keeping your brother so secluded. Why insulate him thus from all sympathy and kindness? Clifford, alas! has had too much of solitude. Now let him try society,—the society, that is to say, of kindred and old friends. Let me, for instance, but see Clifford, and I will answer for the good effect of the interview.”

“But let me suggest, dear cousin,” the Judge replied, “you’re mistaken—in all love and kindness, of course, and with the very best intentions—but you’re still wrong to keep your brother so isolated. Why shut him off from all sympathy and kindness? Clifford, unfortunately, has experienced too much loneliness. Now let him experience society—specifically, the company of family and old friends. Just let me see Clifford for a moment, and I’ll guarantee that the meeting will have a positive effect.”

“You cannot see him,” answered Hepzibah. “Clifford has kept his bed since yesterday.”

“You can’t see him,” Hepzibah replied. “Clifford has been in bed since yesterday.”

“What! How! Is he ill?” exclaimed Judge Pyncheon, starting with what seemed to be angry alarm; for the very frown of the old Puritan darkened through the room as he spoke. “Nay, then, I must and will see him! What if he should die?”

“What! How! Is he sick?” exclaimed Judge Pyncheon, appearing to be alarmed and angry; the very frown of the old Puritan cast a shadow over the room as he spoke. “Well then, I have to see him! What if he dies?”

“He is in no danger of death,” said Hepzibah,—and added, with bitterness that she could repress no longer, “none; unless he shall be persecuted to death, now, by the same man who long ago attempted it!”

“He's not in any danger of dying,” said Hepzibah, and added, with bitterness she could no longer hold back, “none; unless he gets hunted down to death now by the same man who tried it long ago!”

“Cousin Hepzibah,” said the Judge, with an impressive earnestness of manner, which grew even to tearful pathos as he proceeded, “is it possible that you do not perceive how unjust, how unkind, how unchristian, is this constant, this long-continued bitterness against me, for a part which I was constrained by duty and conscience, by the force of law, and at my own peril, to act? What did I do, in detriment to Clifford, which it was possible to leave undone? How could you, his sister,—if, for your never-ending sorrow, as it has been for mine, you had known what I did,—have, shown greater tenderness? And do you think, cousin, that it has cost me no pang?—that it has left no anguish in my bosom, from that day to this, amidst all the prosperity with which Heaven has blessed me?—or that I do not now rejoice, when it is deemed consistent with the dues of public justice and the welfare of society that this dear kinsman, this early friend, this nature so delicately and beautifully constituted,—so unfortunate, let us pronounce him, and forbear to say, so guilty,—that our own Clifford, in fine, should be given back to life, and its possibilities of enjoyment? Ah, you little know me, Cousin Hepzibah! You little know this heart! It now throbs at the thought of meeting him! There lives not the human being (except yourself,—and you not more than I) who has shed so many tears for Clifford’s calamity. You behold some of them now. There is none who would so delight to promote his happiness! Try me, Hepzibah!—try me, Cousin!—try the man whom you have treated as your enemy and Clifford’s!—try Jaffrey Pyncheon, and you shall find him true, to the heart’s core!”

“Cousin Hepzibah,” said the Judge, with a serious tone that grew even more emotional as he continued, “can you really not see how unfair, how unkind, how unchristian this ongoing bitterness towards me is, for a role I was forced to take on out of duty and conscience, by the law, and at my own risk? What did I do that harmed Clifford that I could have avoided? How could you, his sister—if you had understood what I went through, just as you have suffered endlessly—have shown more compassion? And do you think, cousin, that I haven’t felt anguish? That it hasn’t caused me pain, from that day until now, despite all the success Heaven has granted me?—or that I don’t feel joy now, seeing it as fitting with public justice and the good of society that our dear Clifford, this early friend, this wonderfully sensitive person—let’s just call him unfortunate, not guilty—should be given a chance at life and happiness again? Ah, you really don’t know me, Cousin Hepzibah! You don’t know my heart! It races at the thought of seeing him! No one else (except you—who is not more than I) has shed as many tears for Clifford's misfortune. You can see some of them now. There is no one who would be happier to see him find joy! Test me, Hepzibah!—test me, Cousin!—test the man you’ve treated as your enemy and Clifford’s!—test Jaffrey Pyncheon, and you’ll find him true to the core!”

“In the name of Heaven,” cried Hepzibah, provoked only to intenser indignation by this outgush of the inestimable tenderness of a stern nature,—“in God’s name, whom you insult, and whose power I could almost question, since he hears you utter so many false words without palsying your tongue,—give over, I beseech you, this loathsome pretence of affection for your victim! You hate him! Say so, like a man! You cherish, at this moment, some black purpose against him in your heart! Speak it out, at once!—or, if you hope so to promote it better, hide it till you can triumph in its success! But never speak again of your love for my poor brother. I cannot bear it! It will drive me beyond a woman’s decency! It will drive me mad! Forbear! Not another word! It will make me spurn you!”

“In the name of Heaven,” Hepzibah cried, feeling even more furious at this outpouring of misguided tenderness from a stern nature, “for God’s sake, whom you insult, and whose power I can almost question since He allows you to say so many lies without stopping you—please stop this disgusting act of pretending to care for your victim! You hate him! Just admit it, like a man! Right now, you have some dark plan against him in your heart! Say it out loud, right now!—or if you think hiding it will help you succeed better, keep it to yourself until you can celebrate your victory! But don’t ever mention your love for my poor brother again. I can’t take it! It will push me past what a woman can bear! It will drive me insane! Stop! Not another word! It will make me reject you!”

For once, Hepzibah’s wrath had given her courage. She had spoken. But, after all, was this unconquerable distrust of Judge Pyncheon’s integrity, and this utter denial, apparently, of his claim to stand in the ring of human sympathies,—were they founded in any just perception of his character, or merely the offspring of a woman’s unreasonable prejudice, deduced from nothing?

For once, Hepzibah's anger had given her courage. She had spoken up. But, after all, was her complete distrust of Judge Pyncheon's integrity, and her total rejection of his claim to connect with human feelings—was it based on a fair assessment of his character, or just the result of a woman's unfair bias, drawn from nothing?

The Judge, beyond all question, was a man of eminent respectability. The church acknowledged it; the state acknowledged it. It was denied by nobody. In all the very extensive sphere of those who knew him, whether in his public or private capacities, there was not an individual—except Hepzibah, and some lawless mystic, like the daguerreotypist, and, possibly, a few political opponents—who would have dreamed of seriously disputing his claim to a high and honorable place in the world’s regard. Nor (we must do him the further justice to say) did Judge Pyncheon himself, probably, entertain many or very frequent doubts, that his enviable reputation accorded with his deserts. His conscience, therefore, usually considered the surest witness to a man’s integrity,—his conscience, unless it might be for the little space of five minutes in the twenty-four hours, or, now and then, some black day in the whole year’s circle,—his conscience bore an accordant testimony with the world’s laudatory voice. And yet, strong as this evidence may seem to be, we should hesitate to peril our own conscience on the assertion, that the Judge and the consenting world were right, and that poor Hepzibah with her solitary prejudice was wrong. Hidden from mankind,—forgotten by himself, or buried so deeply under a sculptured and ornamented pile of ostentatious deeds that his daily life could take no note of it,—there may have lurked some evil and unsightly thing. Nay, we could almost venture to say, further, that a daily guilt might have been acted by him, continually renewed, and reddening forth afresh, like the miraculous blood-stain of a murder, without his necessarily and at every moment being aware of it.

The Judge was undeniably a man of great respectability. The church acknowledged this; the state acknowledged it too. No one denied it. In the wide circle of people who knew him, whether publicly or privately, there wasn’t a single person—except Hepzibah, a few lawless mystics like the daguerreotypist, and perhaps some political opponents—who would even think of challenging his standing in the eyes of the world. Furthermore, Judge Pyncheon probably didn’t have many doubts about whether his admirable reputation matched his merits. His conscience, usually considered the most reliable indicator of a person's integrity—except for maybe a brief five minutes in a day, or during the occasional dark day throughout the year—usually aligned with the praises of the world. Yet, as strong as this evidence may seem, we would hesitate to risk our own conscience on the belief that the Judge and the agreeing world were correct, while poor Hepzibah with her solitary prejudice was mistaken. Hidden from humanity—forgotten by himself, or buried so deeply under a façade of grand deeds that he never noticed it—there might be some evil and unsightly thing lurking. In fact, we might even suggest that he could have been committing a daily wrong, continuously renewed, and becoming more pronounced like the miraculous bloodstain of a murder, without him being aware of it at every moment.

Men of strong minds, great force of character, and a hard texture of the sensibilities, are very capable of falling into mistakes of this kind. They are ordinarily men to whom forms are of paramount importance. Their field of action lies among the external phenomena of life. They possess vast ability in grasping, and arranging, and appropriating to themselves, the big, heavy, solid unrealities, such as gold, landed estate, offices of trust and emolument, and public honors. With these materials, and with deeds of goodly aspect, done in the public eye, an individual of this class builds up, as it were, a tall and stately edifice, which, in the view of other people, and ultimately in his own view, is no other than the man’s character, or the man himself. Behold, therefore, a palace! Its splendid halls and suites of spacious apartments are floored with a mosaic-work of costly marbles; its windows, the whole height of each room, admit the sunshine through the most transparent of plate-glass; its high cornices are gilded, and its ceilings gorgeously painted; and a lofty dome—through which, from the central pavement, you may gaze up to the sky, as with no obstructing medium between—surmounts the whole. With what fairer and nobler emblem could any man desire to shadow forth his character? Ah! but in some low and obscure nook,—some narrow closet on the ground-floor, shut, locked and bolted, and the key flung away,—or beneath the marble pavement, in a stagnant water-puddle, with the richest pattern of mosaic-work above,—may lie a corpse, half decayed, and still decaying, and diffusing its death-scent all through the palace! The inhabitant will not be conscious of it, for it has long been his daily breath! Neither will the visitors, for they smell only the rich odors which the master sedulously scatters through the palace, and the incense which they bring, and delight to burn before him! Now and then, perchance, comes in a seer, before whose sadly gifted eye the whole structure melts into thin air, leaving only the hidden nook, the bolted closet, with the cobwebs festooned over its forgotten door, or the deadly hole under the pavement, and the decaying corpse within. Here, then, we are to seek the true emblem of the man’s character, and of the deed that gives whatever reality it possesses to his life. And, beneath the show of a marble palace, that pool of stagnant water, foul with many impurities, and, perhaps, tinged with blood,—that secret abomination, above which, possibly, he may say his prayers, without remembering it,—is this man’s miserable soul!

Men with strong minds, a strong character, and tough emotions are quite likely to make mistakes like this. Usually, these are the type of people for whom appearances are everything. Their work revolves around the outward aspects of life. They have a great ability to grasp, organize, and claim for themselves valuable but intangible things, like money, property, trusted positions, and public accolades. Using these things, alongside impressive deeds performed in public, someone like this creates what is essentially a grand and striking structure that the world—and eventually he himself—sees as his character or identity. Just picture a palace! Its magnificent halls and spacious rooms have floors made of expensive marble patterns; its windows reach the full height of each room, letting sunshine in through crystal-clear glass; its high ceilings are lavishly decorated, and a tall dome tops it all—allowing you to look straight up at the sky with nothing in the way. What better and more noble symbol could anyone wish to use to represent their character? But in some dark and hidden corner—some small, locked closet on the ground floor, shut tight and with the key lost—or beneath the marble floor in a stagnant puddle, with beautiful mosaic designs above, there might lie a corpse, half-rotten and still decaying, spreading its foul odor throughout the palace! The owner won’t notice it, since it’s been a part of his daily life for so long! Nor will the visitors, because they only catch the rich scents that he carefully spreads throughout the palace, and the incense they bring to burn in his honor! Occasionally, a seer might walk in, whose sadly insightful eyes see the whole facade vanish, leaving behind nothing but the hidden corner, the locked closet, covered in cobwebs at the neglected door, or the grim hole under the floor, hiding the decaying corpse inside. Here, then, is where we find the true symbol of this man’s character, and the deed that lends any reality to his life. Underneath the facade of a marble palace, that disgusting pool of stagnant water, polluted with filth and possibly stained with blood—that secret horror, above which he may even say his prayers without remembering it—is this man’s wretched soul!

To apply this train of remark somewhat more closely to Judge Pyncheon. We might say (without in the least imputing crime to a personage of his eminent respectability) that there was enough of splendid rubbish in his life to cover up and paralyze a more active and subtile conscience than the Judge was ever troubled with. The purity of his judicial character, while on the bench; the faithfulness of his public service in subsequent capacities; his devotedness to his party, and the rigid consistency with which he had adhered to its principles, or, at all events, kept pace with its organized movements; his remarkable zeal as president of a Bible society; his unimpeachable integrity as treasurer of a widow’s and orphan’s fund; his benefits to horticulture, by producing two much esteemed varieties of the pear and to agriculture, through the agency of the famous Pyncheon bull; the cleanliness of his moral deportment, for a great many years past; the severity with which he had frowned upon, and finally cast off, an expensive and dissipated son, delaying forgiveness until within the final quarter of an hour of the young man’s life; his prayers at morning and eventide, and graces at meal-time; his efforts in furtherance of the temperance cause; his confining himself, since the last attack of the gout, to five diurnal glasses of old sherry wine; the snowy whiteness of his linen, the polish of his boots, the handsomeness of his gold-headed cane, the square and roomy fashion of his coat, and the fineness of its material, and, in general, the studied propriety of his dress and equipment; the scrupulousness with which he paid public notice, in the street, by a bow, a lifting of the hat, a nod, or a motion of the hand, to all and sundry of his acquaintances, rich or poor; the smile of broad benevolence wherewith he made it a point to gladden the whole world,—what room could possibly be found for darker traits in a portrait made up of lineaments like these? This proper face was what he beheld in the looking-glass. This admirably arranged life was what he was conscious of in the progress of every day. Then might not he claim to be its result and sum, and say to himself and the community, “Behold Judge Pyncheon there”?

To connect this idea more closely to Judge Pyncheon, we could say (without suggesting any wrongdoing on the part of someone of his high respectability) that there was enough impressive nonsense in his life to overshadow and suppress a more active and subtle conscience than what the Judge ever dealt with. The integrity of his judicial character while on the bench; his dedication to public service in later roles; his loyalty to his party and the consistent way he upheld its principles, or at least kept up with its official activities; his enthusiastic leadership as president of a Bible society; his unquestionable honesty as treasurer of a widow’s and orphan’s fund; his contributions to horticulture by creating two highly regarded pear varieties and to agriculture through the well-known Pyncheon bull; the cleanliness of his moral behavior for many years; the strictness with which he disapproved of, and ultimately rejected, a costly and reckless son, withholding forgiveness until the very end of the young man's life; his prayers morning and night, and grace at mealtime; his initiatives promoting temperance; his limiting himself, since his last gout flare-up, to five glasses of old sherry per day; the pristine whiteness of his linens, the shine of his shoes, the elegance of his gold-headed cane, the tailored fit and quality fabric of his coat, and, in general, the careful appropriateness of his attire; the meticulous way he acknowledged his acquaintances, wealthy or poor, on the street with a bow, a hat tip, a nod, or a hand gesture; the benevolent smile he made it a point to share with everyone—what possible room could there be for darker qualities in a portrait composed of such features? This proper image was what he saw in the mirror. This well-ordered life was what he was aware of each day. So, could he not consider himself its outcome and confidently say to himself and society, “There stands Judge Pyncheon”?

And allowing that, many, many years ago, in his early and reckless youth, he had committed some one wrong act,—or that, even now, the inevitable force of circumstances should occasionally make him do one questionable deed among a thousand praiseworthy, or, at least, blameless ones,—would you characterize the Judge by that one necessary deed, and that half-forgotten act, and let it overshadow the fair aspect of a lifetime? What is there so ponderous in evil, that a thumb’s bigness of it should outweigh the mass of things not evil which were heaped into the other scale! This scale and balance system is a favorite one with people of Judge Pyncheon’s brotherhood. A hard, cold man, thus unfortunately situated, seldom or never looking inward, and resolutely taking his idea of himself from what purports to be his image as reflected in the mirror of public opinion, can scarcely arrive at true self-knowledge, except through loss of property and reputation. Sickness will not always help him do it; not always the death-hour!

And considering that many years ago, in his wild and reckless youth, he had made a wrong choice—or that even now, the unavoidable pull of circumstances might sometimes lead him to do a questionable act among a thousand commendable, or at least innocent ones—would you define the Judge by that one necessary mistake and that half-forgotten deed, allowing it to overshadow the positive aspects of a lifetime? What is it about evil that a tiny bit of it should outweigh all the good piled up on the other side? This scale and balance approach is popular among people like Judge Pyncheon. A hard, cold man, stuck in this unfortunate position, rarely looking inward, and firmly basing his self-image on what he thinks public opinion reflects about him, can hardly reach true self-awareness unless he suffers a loss of property and reputation. Illness won’t always help him achieve that; not even the moment of death!

But our affair now is with Judge Pyncheon as he stood confronting the fierce outbreak of Hepzibah’s wrath. Without premeditation, to her own surprise, and indeed terror, she had given vent, for once, to the inveteracy of her resentment, cherished against this kinsman for thirty years.

But our focus now is on Judge Pyncheon as he faced the intense anger of Hepzibah. Without planning it, and much to her own surprise, and even fear, she had finally expressed the deep resentment she had held against this relative for thirty years.

Thus far the Judge’s countenance had expressed mild forbearance,—grave and almost gentle deprecation of his cousin’s unbecoming violence,—free and Christian-like forgiveness of the wrong inflicted by her words. But when those words were irrevocably spoken, his look assumed sternness, the sense of power, and immitigable resolve; and this with so natural and imperceptible a change, that it seemed as if the iron man had stood there from the first, and the meek man not at all. The effect was as when the light, vapory clouds, with their soft coloring, suddenly vanish from the stony brow of a precipitous mountain, and leave there the frown which you at once feel to be eternal. Hepzibah almost adopted the insane belief that it was her old Puritan ancestor, and not the modern Judge, on whom she had just been wreaking the bitterness of her heart. Never did a man show stronger proof of the lineage attributed to him than Judge Pyncheon, at this crisis, by his unmistakable resemblance to the picture in the inner room.

So far, the Judge's expression had shown mild patience—a serious and almost gentle disapproval of his cousin's inappropriate outburst—along with a generous, Christian-like forgiveness of the hurt caused by her words. But once those words had been irrevocably spoken, his demeanor shifted to one of seriousness, power, and unyielding determination; and this change was so natural and subtle that it felt as though the iron man had been there all along, and the meek man had never existed. The effect was like when light, fluffy clouds with their soft colors suddenly disappear from the steep face of a mountain, leaving behind a frown that you can’t help but feel is permanent. Hepzibah almost convinced herself that it was her old Puritan ancestor, not the modern Judge, on whom she had just unleashed her heart's bitterness. Judge Pyncheon displayed a stronger connection to his lineage at this moment than ever before, with his unmistakable resemblance to the portrait in the inner room.

“Cousin Hepzibah,” said he very calmly, “it is time to have done with this.”

“Cousin Hepzibah,” he said very calmly, “it’s time to put an end to this.”

“With all my heart!” answered she. “Then, why do you persecute us any longer? Leave poor Clifford and me in peace. Neither of us desires anything better!”

“With all my heart!” she replied. “Then why do you keep harassing us? Just let poor Clifford and me be. We don’t want anything more!”

“It is my purpose to see Clifford before I leave this house,” continued the Judge. “Do not act like a madwoman, Hepzibah! I am his only friend, and an all-powerful one. Has it never occurred to you,—are you so blind as not to have seen,—that, without not merely my consent, but my efforts, my representations, the exertion of my whole influence, political, official, personal, Clifford would never have been what you call free? Did you think his release a triumph over me? Not so, my good cousin; not so, by any means! The furthest possible from that! No; but it was the accomplishment of a purpose long entertained on my part. I set him free!”

“It’s my goal to see Clifford before I leave this house,” the Judge said. “Don’t act like a crazy person, Hepzibah! I’m his only friend, and I have plenty of power. Has it never crossed your mind—are you really so blind that you can’t see—that, without not just my approval but also my efforts, my advocacy, and the complete use of my influence—political, official, personal—Clifford would never have been what you call free? Did you think his release was a victory over me? Not at all, my dear cousin; not at all! Far from it! No, it was the realization of a goal I’ve held for a long time. I set him free!”

“You!” answered Hepzibah. “I never will believe it! He owed his dungeon to you; his freedom to God’s providence!”

"You!" Hepzibah replied. "I will never believe it! He owed his imprisonment to you; his freedom to God's mercy!"

“I set him free!” reaffirmed Judge Pyncheon, with the calmest composure. “And I came hither now to decide whether he shall retain his freedom. It will depend upon himself. For this purpose, I must see him.”

“I set him free!” confirmed Judge Pyncheon, maintaining his calm demeanor. “And I’m here now to determine whether he will keep his freedom. It will depend on him. For this, I need to see him.”

“Never!—it would drive him mad!” exclaimed Hepzibah, but with an irresoluteness sufficiently perceptible to the keen eye of the Judge; for, without the slightest faith in his good intentions, she knew not whether there was most to dread in yielding or resistance. “And why should you wish to see this wretched, broken man, who retains hardly a fraction of his intellect, and will hide even that from an eye which has no love in it?”

“Never!—it would drive him crazy!” shouted Hepzibah, but her uncertainty was clear to the Judge; she had no faith in his good intentions and didn’t know whether it was more dangerous to give in or to resist. “And why would you want to see this miserable, broken man, who barely has any of his intellect left, and will hide even that from someone who shows no love?”

“He shall see love enough in mine, if that be all!” said the Judge, with well-grounded confidence in the benignity of his aspect. “But, Cousin Hepzibah, you confess a great deal, and very much to the purpose. Now, listen, and I will frankly explain my reasons for insisting on this interview. At the death, thirty years since, of our uncle Jaffrey, it was found,—I know not whether the circumstance ever attracted much of your attention, among the sadder interests that clustered round that event,—but it was found that his visible estate, of every kind, fell far short of any estimate ever made of it. He was supposed to be immensely rich. Nobody doubted that he stood among the weightiest men of his day. It was one of his eccentricities, however,—and not altogether a folly, neither,—to conceal the amount of his property by making distant and foreign investments, perhaps under other names than his own, and by various means, familiar enough to capitalists, but unnecessary here to be specified. By Uncle Jaffrey’s last will and testament, as you are aware, his entire property was bequeathed to me, with the single exception of a life interest to yourself in this old family mansion, and the strip of patrimonial estate remaining attached to it.”

“He'll see enough love in mine, if that's all!” said the Judge, with a solid confidence in the kindness of his appearance. “But, Cousin Hepzibah, you're admitting quite a lot, and it’s very relevant. Now, listen, and I’ll honestly explain why I insist on this meeting. When our uncle Jaffrey passed away thirty years ago, it was discovered—I’m not sure if you ever paid much attention to this detail amidst the sad events surrounding that time—but it was found that his visible estate, of every kind, fell far short of any estimate ever made of it. He was thought to be extremely wealthy. Nobody doubted that he was among the most influential men of his day. However, one of his quirks—and not entirely a foolish one—was to hide the true extent of his wealth by making distant and foreign investments, possibly under names other than his own, and through various means that are well-known to investors but unnecessary to detail here. As you know, in Uncle Jaffrey’s last will and testament, he left all his property to me, with the lone exception of a life interest for you in this old family home, along with the small piece of family land that goes with it.”

“And do you seek to deprive us of that?” asked Hepzibah, unable to restrain her bitter contempt. “Is this your price for ceasing to persecute poor Clifford?”

“And are you really trying to take that away from us?” asked Hepzibah, unable to hide her bitter disdain. “Is this what it costs for you to stop tormenting poor Clifford?”

“Certainly not, my dear cousin!” answered the Judge, smiling benevolently. “On the contrary, as you must do me the justice to own, I have constantly expressed my readiness to double or treble your resources, whenever you should make up your mind to accept any kindness of that nature at the hands of your kinsman. No, no! But here lies the gist of the matter. Of my uncle’s unquestionably great estate, as I have said, not the half—no, not one third, as I am fully convinced—was apparent after his death. Now, I have the best possible reasons for believing that your brother Clifford can give me a clew to the recovery of the remainder.”

“Certainly not, my dear cousin!” the Judge replied with a kind smile. “On the contrary, as you must admit, I have always been willing to double or triple your resources whenever you decide to accept any help from your relative. No, no! But here’s the main point. Of my uncle’s undoubtedly large estate, as I mentioned, not half—no, not even a third, as I truly believe—was visible after his death. Now, I have excellent reasons to think that your brother Clifford can give me a clue to recovering the rest.”

“Clifford!—Clifford know of any hidden wealth? Clifford have it in his power to make you rich?” cried the old gentlewoman, affected with a sense of something like ridicule at the idea. “Impossible! You deceive yourself! It is really a thing to laugh at!”

“Clifford!—Does Clifford know of any hidden treasure? Can Clifford make you rich?” cried the old lady, feeling a mix of something like mockery at the thought. “That’s impossible! You’re fooling yourself! It’s honestly something to laugh at!”

“It is as certain as that I stand here!” said Judge Pyncheon, striking his gold-headed cane on the floor, and at the same time stamping his foot, as if to express his conviction the more forcibly by the whole emphasis of his substantial person. “Clifford told me so himself!”

“It’s as certain as I’m standing here!” said Judge Pyncheon, striking his gold-headed cane on the floor and stamping his foot, as if to make his point even clearer with the full force of his presence. “Clifford told me that himself!”

“No, no!” exclaimed Hepzibah incredulously. “You are dreaming, Cousin Jaffrey.”

“No, no!” Hepzibah exclaimed in disbelief. “You’re dreaming, Cousin Jaffrey.”

“I do not belong to the dreaming class of men,” said the Judge quietly. “Some months before my uncle’s death, Clifford boasted to me of the possession of the secret of incalculable wealth. His purpose was to taunt me, and excite my curiosity. I know it well. But, from a pretty distinct recollection of the particulars of our conversation, I am thoroughly convinced that there was truth in what he said. Clifford, at this moment, if he chooses,—and choose he must!—can inform me where to find the schedule, the documents, the evidences, in whatever shape they exist, of the vast amount of Uncle Jaffrey’s missing property. He has the secret. His boast was no idle word. It had a directness, an emphasis, a particularity, that showed a backbone of solid meaning within the mystery of his expression.”

“I don’t belong to the group of dreamers,” the Judge said quietly. “A few months before my uncle died, Clifford bragged to me about holding the key to unimaginable wealth. He meant to tease me and spark my curiosity. I know that for sure. But from a clear memory of our conversation, I’m convinced there was truth in what he said. Right now, if he wanted to— and he must want to!— he can tell me where to find the schedule, the documents, the evidence, in whatever form they exist, of Uncle Jaffrey’s missing fortune. He knows the secret. His brag wasn’t just talk. It had a directness, an emphasis, a detail that showed there was something solid behind the mystery in his words.”

“But what could have been Clifford’s object,” asked Hepzibah, “in concealing it so long?”

“But what could Clifford have been trying to achieve,” Hepzibah asked, “by hiding it for so long?”

“It was one of the bad impulses of our fallen nature,” replied the Judge, turning up his eyes. “He looked upon me as his enemy. He considered me as the cause of his overwhelming disgrace, his imminent peril of death, his irretrievable ruin. There was no great probability, therefore, of his volunteering information, out of his dungeon, that should elevate me still higher on the ladder of prosperity. But the moment has now come when he must give up his secret.”

“It was one of the negative impulses of our flawed nature,” replied the Judge, looking up. “He saw me as his enemy. He believed I was responsible for his overwhelming disgrace, his imminent danger of death, and his irreversible ruin. So, there was little chance that he would willingly share any information from his prison that would boost my success. But now the time has come when he has to reveal his secret.”

“And what if he should refuse?” inquired Hepzibah. “Or,—as I steadfastly believe,—what if he has no knowledge of this wealth?”

“And what if he refuses?” Hepzibah asked. “Or—since I really believe this—what if he doesn’t even know about this wealth?”

“My dear cousin,” said Judge Pyncheon, with a quietude which he had the power of making more formidable than any violence, “since your brother’s return, I have taken the precaution (a highly proper one in the near kinsman and natural guardian of an individual so situated) to have his deportment and habits constantly and carefully overlooked. Your neighbors have been eye-witnesses to whatever has passed in the garden. The butcher, the baker, the fish-monger, some of the customers of your shop, and many a prying old woman, have told me several of the secrets of your interior. A still larger circle—I myself, among the rest—can testify to his extravagances at the arched window. Thousands beheld him, a week or two ago, on the point of flinging himself thence into the street. From all this testimony, I am led to apprehend—reluctantly, and with deep grief—that Clifford’s misfortunes have so affected his intellect, never very strong, that he cannot safely remain at large. The alternative, you must be aware,—and its adoption will depend entirely on the decision which I am now about to make,—the alternative is his confinement, probably for the remainder of his life, in a public asylum for persons in his unfortunate state of mind.”

“My dear cousin,” said Judge Pyncheon, with a calmness that was more intimidating than any violence, “ever since your brother came back, I’ve taken the precaution—highly appropriate for a close relative and natural guardian of someone in his situation—to keep a close eye on his behavior and habits. Your neighbors have witnessed everything that’s happened in the garden. The butcher, the baker, the fishmonger, some of your shop's customers, and quite a few nosy old ladies have told me several of the secrets of your household. An even wider group—I, among them—can attest to his strange behavior at the arched window. Thousands saw him, a week or two ago, about to throw himself out into the street. From all this evidence, I reluctantly and sadly conclude that Clifford’s misfortunes have so affected his already fragile mind that he can’t safely remain free. The alternative, as you must realize—and its adoption depends entirely on the decision I'm about to make—is his confinement, likely for the rest of his life, in a public asylum for individuals in his unfortunate mental state.”

“You cannot mean it!” shrieked Hepzibah.

“You can't be serious!” shrieked Hepzibah.

“Should my cousin Clifford,” continued Judge Pyncheon, wholly undisturbed, “from mere malice, and hatred of one whose interests ought naturally to be dear to him,—a mode of passion that, as often as any other, indicates mental disease,—should he refuse me the information so important to myself, and which he assuredly possesses, I shall consider it the one needed jot of evidence to satisfy my mind of his insanity. And, once sure of the course pointed out by conscience, you know me too well, Cousin Hepzibah, to entertain a doubt that I shall pursue it.”

“Should my cousin Clifford,” continued Judge Pyncheon, completely unfazed, “out of sheer malice and hatred for someone whose interests should naturally matter to him—an emotion that, as much as any other, shows signs of mental illness—if he refuses to give me the information that is so crucial for me and that he definitely has, I will take that as the one crucial piece of evidence I need to convince myself of his insanity. And once I’m sure of the direction that my conscience points me in, you know me too well, Cousin Hepzibah, to doubt that I will follow it.”

“O Jaffrey,—Cousin Jaffrey,” cried Hepzibah mournfully, not passionately, “it is you that are diseased in mind, not Clifford! You have forgotten that a woman was your mother!—that you have had sisters, brothers, children of your own!—or that there ever was affection between man and man, or pity from one man to another, in this miserable world! Else, how could you have dreamed of this? You are not young, Cousin Jaffrey!—no, nor middle-aged,—but already an old man! The hair is white upon your head! How many years have you to live? Are you not rich enough for that little time? Shall you be hungry,—shall you lack clothes, or a roof to shelter you,—between this point and the grave? No! but, with the half of what you now possess, you could revel in costly food and wines, and build a house twice as splendid as you now inhabit, and make a far greater show to the world,—and yet leave riches to your only son, to make him bless the hour of your death! Then, why should you do this cruel, cruel thing?—so mad a thing, that I know not whether to call it wicked! Alas, Cousin Jaffrey, this hard and grasping spirit has run in our blood these two hundred years. You are but doing over again, in another shape, what your ancestor before you did, and sending down to your posterity the curse inherited from him!”

“Jaffrey—Cousin Jaffrey,” Hepzibah cried sadly, not passionately, “it’s you who are messed up, not Clifford! You’ve forgotten that a woman was your mother—that you’ve had sisters, brothers, and your own children!—or that there was ever any love between people, or compassion from one man to another in this miserable world! Otherwise, how could you have thought of this? You’re not young, Cousin Jaffrey!—not even middle-aged, but already an old man! Your hair is white! How many years do you have left? Aren’t you rich enough for that short time? Will you be hungry—will you lack clothes or a roof over your head—between now and the grave? No! With just half of what you have now, you could indulge in fancy food and drinks, build a house twice as nice as the one you live in, and show off to the world—and still leave wealth for your only son, making him grateful for the day you die! So why would you do this cruel, cruel thing?—so insane that I don’t even know if I should call it wicked! Alas, Cousin Jaffrey, this greedy spirit has run in our blood for two hundred years. You’re just repeating what your ancestor did, sending down a curse inherited from him to your descendants!”

“Talk sense, Hepzibah, for Heaven’s sake!” exclaimed the Judge, with the impatience natural to a reasonable man, on hearing anything so utterly absurd as the above, in a discussion about matters of business. “I have told you my determination. I am not apt to change. Clifford must give up his secret, or take the consequences. And let him decide quickly; for I have several affairs to attend to this morning, and an important dinner engagement with some political friends.”

“Please make sense, Hepzibah, for Heaven’s sake!” the Judge exclaimed, with the impatience typical of a reasonable person, upon hearing something so completely ridiculous in a discussion about business matters. “I have made my decision. I'm not likely to change it. Clifford needs to either reveal his secret or face the consequences. And he needs to decide quickly; I have several things to take care of this morning and an important dinner with some political friends.”

“Clifford has no secret!” answered Hepzibah. “And God will not let you do the thing you meditate!”

“Clifford has no secret!” Hepzibah replied. “And God won’t let you go through with what you’re planning!”

“We shall see,” said the unmoved Judge. “Meanwhile, choose whether you will summon Clifford, and allow this business to be amicably settled by an interview between two kinsmen, or drive me to harsher measures, which I should be most happy to feel myself justified in avoiding. The responsibility is altogether on your part.”

“We'll see,” said the unbothered Judge. “In the meantime, decide whether you want to call Clifford and let this matter be settled peacefully through a conversation between two family members, or push me to take stricter actions, which I would really prefer to avoid. The responsibility is entirely yours.”

“You are stronger than I,” said Hepzibah, after a brief consideration; “and you have no pity in your strength! Clifford is not now insane; but the interview which you insist upon may go far to make him so. Nevertheless, knowing you as I do, I believe it to be my best course to allow you to judge for yourself as to the improbability of his possessing any valuable secret. I will call Clifford. Be merciful in your dealings with him!—be far more merciful than your heart bids you be!—for God is looking at you, Jaffrey Pyncheon!”

“You're stronger than I am,” Hepzibah said after a moment of thought. “And you have no compassion in your strength! Clifford isn’t insane right now, but the meeting you’re pushing for could very well drive him to that point. Still, knowing you as I do, I think it’s best to let you figure out for yourself how unlikely it is that he has any valuable secret. I’ll call Clifford. Please be kind in how you treat him!—be much kinder than your heart tells you to be!—because God is watching you, Jaffrey Pyncheon!”

The Judge followed his cousin from the shop, where the foregoing conversation had passed, into the parlor, and flung himself heavily into the great ancestral chair. Many a former Pyncheon had found repose in its capacious arms: rosy children, after their sports; young men, dreamy with love; grown men, weary with cares; old men, burdened with winters,—they had mused, and slumbered, and departed to a yet profounder sleep. It had been a long tradition, though a doubtful one, that this was the very chair, seated in which the earliest of the Judge’s New England forefathers—he whose picture still hung upon the wall—had given a dead man’s silent and stern reception to the throng of distinguished guests. From that hour of evil omen until the present, it may be,—though we know not the secret of his heart,—but it may be that no wearier and sadder man had ever sunk into the chair than this same Judge Pyncheon, whom we have just beheld so immitigably hard and resolute. Surely, it must have been at no slight cost that he had thus fortified his soul with iron. Such calmness is a mightier effort than the violence of weaker men. And there was yet a heavy task for him to do. Was it a little matter—a trifle to be prepared for in a single moment, and to be rested from in another moment,—that he must now, after thirty years, encounter a kinsman risen from a living tomb, and wrench a secret from him, or else consign him to a living tomb again?

The Judge followed his cousin from the shop, where their earlier conversation had taken place, into the parlor, and crashed heavily into the large family chair. Many former Pyncheons had found comfort in its roomy arms: rosy children after playtime, young men lost in dreams of love, adult men weighed down by worries, and old men burdened by long winters—they had pondered, dozed off, and passed into a deeper sleep. There had been a long-standing but questionable tradition that this was the very chair in which the Judge’s earliest New England ancestors—he whose portrait still hung on the wall—had given a silent and stern welcome to a crowd of distinguished guests. From that moment of dark omen until now, it might be—though we can’t know what he truly felt—it might be that no man has ever slumped into that chair feeling wearier and sadder than this very Judge Pyncheon, whom we just saw so resolutely hard and determined. Surely, it must have taken a significant toll for him to have fortified his soul with such strength. That kind of calm takes more effort than the outbursts of weaker men. And he still had a daunting task ahead. Was it a minor issue—a small thing to prepare for in one moment and put aside in another—that he must now, after thirty years, face a relative who had risen from a living grave, and extract a secret from him, or else send him back to that living grave again?

“Did you speak?” asked Hepzibah, looking in from the threshold of the parlor; for she imagined that the Judge had uttered some sound which she was anxious to interpret as a relenting impulse. “I thought you called me back.”

“Did you say something?” asked Hepzibah, peering in from the doorway of the parlor; she thought the Judge had made a sound that she hoped to interpret as a sign of change. “I thought you were calling me back.”

“No, no” gruffly answered Judge Pyncheon with a harsh frown, while his brow grew almost a black purple, in the shadow of the room. “Why should I call you back? Time flies! Bid Clifford come to me!”

“No, no,” Judge Pyncheon replied gruffly, his face twisted in a harsh frown as his brow darkened almost to a bruised purple in the dim room. “Why should I call you back? Time is slipping away! Tell Clifford to come to me!”

The Judge had taken his watch from his vest pocket and now held it in his hand, measuring the interval which was to ensue before the appearance of Clifford.

The Judge had taken his watch out of his vest pocket and was now holding it in his hand, timing the period before Clifford showed up.

XVI.
Clifford’s Chamber

Never had the old house appeared so dismal to poor Hepzibah as when she departed on that wretched errand. There was a strange aspect in it. As she trode along the foot-worn passages, and opened one crazy door after another, and ascended the creaking staircase, she gazed wistfully and fearfully around. It would have been no marvel, to her excited mind, if, behind or beside her, there had been the rustle of dead people’s garments, or pale visages awaiting her on the landing-place above. Her nerves were set all ajar by the scene of passion and terror through which she had just struggled. Her colloquy with Judge Pyncheon, who so perfectly represented the person and attributes of the founder of the family, had called back the dreary past. It weighed upon her heart. Whatever she had heard, from legendary aunts and grandmothers, concerning the good or evil fortunes of the Pyncheons,—stories which had heretofore been kept warm in her remembrance by the chimney-corner glow that was associated with them,—now recurred to her, sombre, ghastly, cold, like most passages of family history, when brooded over in melancholy mood. The whole seemed little else but a series of calamity, reproducing itself in successive generations, with one general hue, and varying in little, save the outline. But Hepzibah now felt as if the Judge, and Clifford, and herself,—they three together,—were on the point of adding another incident to the annals of the house, with a bolder relief of wrong and sorrow, which would cause it to stand out from all the rest. Thus it is that the grief of the passing moment takes upon itself an individuality, and a character of climax, which it is destined to lose after a while, and to fade into the dark gray tissue common to the grave or glad events of many years ago. It is but for a moment, comparatively, that anything looks strange or startling,—a truth that has the bitter and the sweet in it.

Never had the old house seemed so gloomy to poor Hepzibah as when she left on that miserable errand. Everything about it felt strange. As she walked through the worn passages, opened one rickety door after another, and climbed the creaky stairs, she looked around with a mix of longing and fear. It wouldn’t have surprised her, given her agitated state, if she had heard the rustle of dead people’s clothes or seen pale faces waiting for her on the landing above. Her nerves were frayed from the emotional turmoil she had just gone through. Her conversation with Judge Pyncheon, who embodied the traits of their family's founder, had brought back the dreary past. It weighed heavily on her heart. Everything she had heard from legendary aunts and grandmothers about the Pyncheons’ fortunes—good or bad—stories that had previously been warmed in her memory by the glow of the fireplace, now came back to her, dark, terrifying, and cold, like most family histories do when reflected upon in a sorrowful mood. It all felt like a series of disasters, repeating in each generation, sharing a common theme, differing little except for the details. But Hepzibah felt as if she, the Judge, and Clifford were on the verge of adding another chapter to the house’s story, one marked by even more wrongs and sorrows that would distinguish it from the others. This is how the pain of the moment takes on a unique character and intensity, which it inevitably loses over time, fading into the dull background of past events, whether tragic or joyful. For just a short time, things seem strange or shocking—a reality that carries both bitterness and sweetness.

But Hepzibah could not rid herself of the sense of something unprecedented at that instant passing and soon to be accomplished. Her nerves were in a shake. Instinctively she paused before the arched window, and looked out upon the street, in order to seize its permanent objects with her mental grasp, and thus to steady herself from the reel and vibration which affected her more immediate sphere. It brought her up, as we may say, with a kind of shock, when she beheld everything under the same appearance as the day before, and numberless preceding days, except for the difference between sunshine and sullen storm. Her eyes travelled along the street, from doorstep to doorstep, noting the wet sidewalks, with here and there a puddle in hollows that had been imperceptible until filled with water. She screwed her dim optics to their acutest point, in the hope of making out, with greater distinctness, a certain window, where she half saw, half guessed, that a tailor’s seamstress was sitting at her work. Hepzibah flung herself upon that unknown woman’s companionship, even thus far off. Then she was attracted by a chaise rapidly passing, and watched its moist and glistening top, and its splashing wheels, until it had turned the corner, and refused to carry any further her idly trifling, because appalled and overburdened, mind. When the vehicle had disappeared, she allowed herself still another loitering moment; for the patched figure of good Uncle Venner was now visible, coming slowly from the head of the street downward, with a rheumatic limp, because the east wind had got into his joints. Hepzibah wished that he would pass yet more slowly, and befriend her shivering solitude a little longer. Anything that would take her out of the grievous present, and interpose human beings betwixt herself and what was nearest to her,—whatever would defer for an instant the inevitable errand on which she was bound,—all such impediments were welcome. Next to the lightest heart, the heaviest is apt to be most playful.

But Hepzibah couldn’t shake the feeling that something unprecedented was happening in that moment, soon to unfold. Her nerves were on edge. Instinctively, she paused in front of the arched window and looked out at the street, trying to fix the familiar sights in her mind to steady herself from the spinning and vibration that affected her more immediate surroundings. It jolted her when she noticed that everything looked just like it had the day before and countless days before that, save for the contrast between sunshine and gloomy storm. Her gaze traveled along the street, from doorstep to doorstep, taking in the wet sidewalks, with puddles forming in spots that had been invisible until now. She strained her eyes, hoping to see more clearly a particular window where she thought a tailor’s seamstress was at work. Hepzibah clung to that unknown woman's presence, even from a distance. Then she noticed a carriage speeding by and watched its wet, shiny top and splashing wheels until it turned the corner, unable to distract her troubled and overwhelmed mind any further. Once the vehicle was out of sight, she allowed herself another moment of lingering; the patched figure of good Uncle Venner was now visible, slowly coming down the street with a rheumatic limp, caused by the east wind getting into his joints. Hepzibah wished he would move more slowly and keep her company a little longer. Anything that could pull her away from the painful present and put people between her and what she faced, anything that could delay the inevitable errand she was headed for, was gladly welcomed. Often, the heaviest heart can be the most playful next to the lightest.

Hepzibah had little hardihood for her own proper pain, and far less for what she must inflict on Clifford. Of so slight a nature, and so shattered by his previous calamities, it could not well be short of utter ruin to bring him face to face with the hard, relentless man who had been his evil destiny through life. Even had there been no bitter recollections, nor any hostile interest now at stake between them, the mere natural repugnance of the more sensitive system to the massive, weighty, and unimpressible one, must, in itself, have been disastrous to the former. It would be like flinging a porcelain vase, with already a crack in it, against a granite column. Never before had Hepzibah so adequately estimated the powerful character of her cousin Jaffrey,—powerful by intellect, energy of will, the long habit of acting among men, and, as she believed, by his unscrupulous pursuit of selfish ends through evil means. It did but increase the difficulty that Judge Pyncheon was under a delusion as to the secret which he supposed Clifford to possess. Men of his strength of purpose and customary sagacity, if they chance to adopt a mistaken opinion in practical matters, so wedge it and fasten it among things known to be true, that to wrench it out of their minds is hardly less difficult than pulling up an oak. Thus, as the Judge required an impossibility of Clifford, the latter, as he could not perform it, must needs perish. For what, in the grasp of a man like this, was to become of Clifford’s soft poetic nature, that never should have had a task more stubborn than to set a life of beautiful enjoyment to the flow and rhythm of musical cadences! Indeed, what had become of it already? Broken! Blighted! All but annihilated! Soon to be wholly so!

Hepzibah had little strength to handle her own pain, and even less for what she had to put Clifford through. It was such a fragile state, already so damaged by his past misfortunes, that bringing him face to face with the hard, relentless man who had been his curse in life would likely lead to complete ruin. Even if there were no painful memories or any current conflicts between them, the natural aversion of the more sensitive person to the heavy, solid, and unyielding one would, in itself, be disastrous for the former. It would be like throwing a cracked porcelain vase against a granite column. Never before had Hepzibah clearly seen how powerful her cousin Jaffrey was—powerful in mind, willpower, and his long history of interacting with others, and, as she believed, through his ruthless pursuit of selfish goals by any means necessary. The challenge was made worse by Judge Pyncheon's misconception about the secret he thought Clifford had. Men with such strong determination and usual insight, when they adopt a mistaken belief about practical matters, entrench it among things they know to be true, making it almost as difficult to remove from their minds as pulling out an oak tree. Therefore, as the Judge demanded the impossible from Clifford, the latter, unable to meet that demand, was doomed to fail. What could become of Clifford's gentle, poetic nature in the hands of such a man, who should never have been faced with a challenge more difficult than crafting a life of beautiful enjoyment to the flow and rhythm of music? Indeed, what had happened to it already? Broken! Blighted! Almost destroyed! Soon to be completely gone!

For a moment, the thought crossed Hepzibah’s mind, whether Clifford might not really have such knowledge of their deceased uncle’s vanished estate as the Judge imputed to him. She remembered some vague intimations, on her brother’s part, which—if the supposition were not essentially preposterous—might have been so interpreted. There had been schemes of travel and residence abroad, day-dreams of brilliant life at home, and splendid castles in the air, which it would have required boundless wealth to build and realize. Had this wealth been in her power, how gladly would Hepzibah have bestowed it all upon her iron-hearted kinsman, to buy for Clifford the freedom and seclusion of the desolate old house! But she believed that her brother’s schemes were as destitute of actual substance and purpose as a child’s pictures of its future life, while sitting in a little chair by its mother’s knee. Clifford had none but shadowy gold at his command; and it was not the stuff to satisfy Judge Pyncheon!

For a moment, Hepzibah wondered if Clifford might actually know something about their late uncle's missing estate that the Judge thought he did. She recalled some vague hints from her brother, which—if the idea weren’t completely absurd—could be seen that way. There had been plans for travel and living abroad, daydreams of an exciting life at home, and grand fantasies that would require immense wealth to create and achieve. If she had that wealth, Hepzibah would have happily given it all to her cold-hearted relative to secure Clifford the freedom and solitude of the abandoned old house! But she believed her brother's dreams were as lacking in real substance and purpose as a child's drawings of their future while sitting in a little chair by their mother. Clifford had nothing but imaginary wealth to his name; and that wasn’t enough to satisfy Judge Pyncheon!

Was there no help in their extremity? It seemed strange that there should be none, with a city round about her. It would be so easy to throw up the window, and send forth a shriek, at the strange agony of which everybody would come hastening to the rescue, well understanding it to be the cry of a human soul, at some dreadful crisis! But how wild, how almost laughable, the fatality,—and yet how continually it comes to pass, thought Hepzibah, in this dull delirium of a world,—that whosoever, and with however kindly a purpose, should come to help, they would be sure to help the strongest side! Might and wrong combined, like iron magnetized, are endowed with irresistible attraction. There would be Judge Pyncheon,—a person eminent in the public view, of high station and great wealth, a philanthropist, a member of Congress and of the church, and intimately associated with whatever else bestows good name,—so imposing, in these advantageous lights, that Hepzibah herself could hardly help shrinking from her own conclusions as to his hollow integrity. The Judge, on one side! And who, on the other? The guilty Clifford! Once a byword! Now, an indistinctly remembered ignominy!

Was there no help for them in their time of need? It seemed strange that there was none, with a city all around her. It would be so easy to open the window and let out a scream, and everyone would rush to help, knowing it to be the cry of a human soul in some terrible crisis! But how wild, how almost laughable, the fate of it all—and yet how often it happens, Hepzibah thought, in this dull, chaotic world—that anyone who came to offer help would inevitably assist the stronger side! Power and wrong, like a magnetized iron, have an irresistible pull. There would be Judge Pyncheon—a prominent figure in the public eye, of high status and great wealth, a philanthropist, a member of Congress and the church, closely associated with everything that gives a good reputation—so imposing in these favorable lights that Hepzibah herself could hardly help doubting her own conclusions about his empty integrity. The Judge on one side! And who on the other? The guilty Clifford! Once infamous! Now, a vaguely remembered disgrace!

Nevertheless, in spite of this perception that the Judge would draw all human aid to his own behalf, Hepzibah was so unaccustomed to act for herself, that the least word of counsel would have swayed her to any mode of action. Little Phœbe Pyncheon would at once have lighted up the whole scene, if not by any available suggestion, yet simply by the warm vivacity of her character. The idea of the artist occurred to Hepzibah. Young and unknown, mere vagrant adventurer as he was, she had been conscious of a force in Holgrave which might well adapt him to be the champion of a crisis. With this thought in her mind, she unbolted a door, cobwebbed and long disused, but which had served as a former medium of communication between her own part of the house and the gable where the wandering daguerreotypist had now established his temporary home. He was not there. A book, face downward, on the table, a roll of manuscript, a half-written sheet, a newspaper, some tools of his present occupation, and several rejected daguerreotypes, conveyed an impression as if he were close at hand. But, at this period of the day, as Hepzibah might have anticipated, the artist was at his public rooms. With an impulse of idle curiosity, that flickered among her heavy thoughts, she looked at one of the daguerreotypes, and beheld Judge Pyncheon frowning at her. Fate stared her in the face. She turned back from her fruitless quest, with a heartsinking sense of disappointment. In all her years of seclusion, she had never felt, as now, what it was to be alone. It seemed as if the house stood in a desert, or, by some spell, was made invisible to those who dwelt around, or passed beside it; so that any mode of misfortune, miserable accident, or crime might happen in it without the possibility of aid. In her grief and wounded pride, Hepzibah had spent her life in divesting herself of friends; she had wilfully cast off the support which God has ordained his creatures to need from one another; and it was now her punishment, that Clifford and herself would fall the easier victims to their kindred enemy.

Nevertheless, despite the perception that the Judge would try to get all human help for himself, Hepzibah was so unused to acting on her own that even the slightest word of advice could have persuaded her to take any course of action. Little Phoebe Pyncheon would have instantly brightened the whole scene, not necessarily by suggesting anything useful, but simply by her lively personality. The thought of the artist crossed Hepzibah's mind. Young and unknown, just a wandering adventurer, she felt that Holgrave had a strength that could make him the advocate in a crisis. With this in mind, she unbolted a door that was long unused and covered in cobwebs, which had once provided a way to communicate between her part of the house and the gable where the wandering daguerreotypist had set up his temporary home. He wasn't there. A book facedown on the table, a roll of manuscript, a half-written sheet, a newspaper, some tools from his current work, and several rejected daguerreotypes all suggested he was nearby. But, at this time of day, as Hepzibah could have guessed, the artist was at his public studio. With a flicker of idle curiosity among her heavy thoughts, she glanced at one of the daguerreotypes and saw Judge Pyncheon frowning at her. Fate confronted her directly. She turned away from her unproductive search, feeling a deep sense of disappointment. In all her years of isolation, she had never felt as profoundly alone as she did now. It seemed as though the house was situated in a desert or, by some spell, had become invisible to those living nearby or passing by; so that any kind of misfortune, miserable accident, or crime could occur there without any chance of help. In her sorrow and hurt pride, Hepzibah had spent her life pushing away friends; she had deliberately removed the support that God intended for creatures to provide for one another; and now it was her punishment that she and Clifford would be easier prey for their familial enemy.

Returning to the arched window, she lifted her eyes,—scowling, poor, dim-sighted Hepzibah, in the face of Heaven!—and strove hard to send up a prayer through the dense gray pavement of clouds. Those mists had gathered, as if to symbolize a great, brooding mass of human trouble, doubt, confusion, and chill indifference, between earth and the better regions. Her faith was too weak; the prayer too heavy to be thus uplifted. It fell back, a lump of lead, upon her heart. It smote her with the wretched conviction that Providence intermeddled not in these petty wrongs of one individual to his fellow, nor had any balm for these little agonies of a solitary soul; but shed its justice, and its mercy, in a broad, sunlike sweep, over half the universe at once. Its vastness made it nothing. But Hepzibah did not see that, just as there comes a warm sunbeam into every cottage window, so comes a lovebeam of God’s care and pity for every separate need.

Returning to the arched window, she lifted her eyes—frowning, poor, dim-sighted Hepzibah, looking up at the sky!—and struggled to send a prayer through the thick gray blanket of clouds. Those mists had gathered, almost like a symbol for a huge, heavy load of human troubles, doubts, confusion, and cold indifference, standing between earth and better places. Her faith was too weak; the prayer was too weighty to be lifted that way. It fell back, a lump of lead, onto her heart. It struck her with the painful realization that Providence didn’t interfere in these small wrongs between individuals, nor did it offer any comfort for the tiny sufferings of a lonely soul. Rather, it spread its justice and mercy over half the universe in a wide, sun-like sweep. Its vastness made it feel meaningless. But Hepzibah didn’t see that, just as a warm sunbeam enters every cottage window, so too does a beam of God’s love and care shine down for every individual need.

At last, finding no other pretext for deferring the torture that she was to inflict on Clifford,—her reluctance to which was the true cause of her loitering at the window, her search for the artist, and even her abortive prayer,—dreading, also, to hear the stern voice of Judge Pyncheon from below stairs, chiding her delay,—she crept slowly, a pale, grief-stricken figure, a dismal shape of woman, with almost torpid limbs, slowly to her brother’s door, and knocked!

At last, unable to find any other excuse to postpone the torture she was about to inflict on Clifford—her hesitation being the real reason for her lingering at the window, searching for the artist, and even her failed prayer—fearing as well the harsh voice of Judge Pyncheon from downstairs scolding her for taking so long, she slowly crept, a pale and sorrowful figure, a gloomy sight of a woman with almost lifeless limbs, to her brother’s door and knocked!

There was no reply.

No response.

And how should there have been? Her hand, tremulous with the shrinking purpose which directed it, had smitten so feebly against the door that the sound could hardly have gone inward. She knocked again. Still no response! Nor was it to be wondered at. She had struck with the entire force of her heart’s vibration, communicating, by some subtile magnetism, her own terror to the summons. Clifford would turn his face to the pillow, and cover his head beneath the bedclothes, like a startled child at midnight. She knocked a third time, three regular strokes, gentle, but perfectly distinct, and with meaning in them; for, modulate it with what cautious art we will, the hand cannot help playing some tune of what we feel upon the senseless wood.

And how could there have been? Her hand, shaking with the fading purpose behind it, had hit the door so softly that the sound barely reached inside. She knocked again. Still no answer! It wasn’t surprising. She had knocked with all the intensity of her anxious heart, sending her own fear through the summons. Clifford would turn his face to the pillow and hide under the blankets like a scared child at midnight. She knocked a third time, three steady taps—soft but clear and meaningful; because no matter how carefully we try to control it, our hand inevitably communicates a bit of what we feel through the unresponsive wood.

Clifford returned no answer.

Clifford didn't respond.

“Clifford! Dear brother!” said Hepzibah. “Shall I come in?”

“Clifford! My dear brother!” Hepzibah said. “Can I come in?”

A silence.

Silence.

Two or three times, and more, Hepzibah repeated his name, without result; till, thinking her brother’s sleep unwontedly profound, she undid the door, and entering, found the chamber vacant. How could he have come forth, and when, without her knowledge? Was it possible that, in spite of the stormy day, and worn out with the irksomeness within doors he had betaken himself to his customary haunt in the garden, and was now shivering under the cheerless shelter of the summer-house? She hastily threw up a window, thrust forth her turbaned head and the half of her gaunt figure, and searched the whole garden through, as completely as her dim vision would allow. She could see the interior of the summer-house, and its circular seat, kept moist by the droppings of the roof. It had no occupant. Clifford was not thereabouts; unless, indeed, he had crept for concealment (as, for a moment, Hepzibah fancied might be the case) into a great, wet mass of tangled and broad-leaved shadow, where the squash-vines were clambering tumultuously upon an old wooden framework, set casually aslant against the fence. This could not be, however; he was not there; for, while Hepzibah was looking, a strange grimalkin stole forth from the very spot, and picked his way across the garden. Twice he paused to snuff the air, and then anew directed his course towards the parlor window. Whether it was only on account of the stealthy, prying manner common to the race, or that this cat seemed to have more than ordinary mischief in his thoughts, the old gentlewoman, in spite of her much perplexity, felt an impulse to drive the animal away, and accordingly flung down a window stick. The cat stared up at her, like a detected thief or murderer, and, the next instant, took to flight. No other living creature was visible in the garden. Chanticleer and his family had either not left their roost, disheartened by the interminable rain, or had done the next wisest thing, by seasonably returning to it. Hepzibah closed the window.

Two or three times, and more, Hepzibah called his name, but got no response. Thinking her brother was sleeping unusually deeply, she unlocked the door and walked in, only to find the room empty. How could he have left without her knowing? Was it possible that despite the stormy weather, he had gone to his usual spot in the garden and was now shivering in the cold summer-house? She quickly opened a window, stuck her turbaned head and half of her thin body out, and scanned the whole garden as best as she could with her poor eyesight. She could see inside the summer-house, where the circular seat was damp from the dripping roof. It was empty. Clifford was nowhere around; unless he had perhaps hidden himself (as Hepzibah briefly imagined might be the case) in a large, wet tangle of broad-leaved shadows where the squash vines were wildly climbing an old wooden frame leaning against the fence. But that couldn't be right; he wasn't there. While Hepzibah was looking, a strange cat slipped out from that very spot and made its way across the garden. Twice it stopped to sniff the air, then continued toward the parlor window. Whether it was just the sneaky, curious nature of cats or this particular cat had something more troublesome in mind, the old lady, despite her confusion, felt compelled to drive the animal away and promptly threw down a window stick. The cat looked up at her, like a caught thief or murderer, and the next moment, it bolted. No other living creature was in sight in the garden. The rooster and his family had either stayed in their coop, discouraged by the endless rain, or had sensibly gone back to it. Hepzibah closed the window.

But where was Clifford? Could it be that, aware of the presence of his Evil Destiny, he had crept silently down the staircase, while the Judge and Hepzibah stood talking in the shop, and had softly undone the fastenings of the outer door, and made his escape into the street? With that thought, she seemed to behold his gray, wrinkled, yet childlike aspect, in the old-fashioned garments which he wore about the house; a figure such as one sometimes imagines himself to be, with the world’s eye upon him, in a troubled dream. This figure of her wretched brother would go wandering through the city, attracting all eyes, and everybody’s wonder and repugnance, like a ghost, the more to be shuddered at because visible at noontide. To incur the ridicule of the younger crowd, that knew him not,—the harsher scorn and indignation of a few old men, who might recall his once familiar features! To be the sport of boys, who, when old enough to run about the streets, have no more reverence for what is beautiful and holy, nor pity for what is sad,—no more sense of sacred misery, sanctifying the human shape in which it embodies itself,—than if Satan were the father of them all! Goaded by their taunts, their loud, shrill cries, and cruel laughter,—insulted by the filth of the public ways, which they would fling upon him,—or, as it might well be, distracted by the mere strangeness of his situation, though nobody should afflict him with so much as a thoughtless word,—what wonder if Clifford were to break into some wild extravagance which was certain to be interpreted as lunacy? Thus Judge Pyncheon’s fiendish scheme would be ready accomplished to his hands!

But where was Clifford? Could it be that, knowing his Evil Destiny was near, he had quietly slipped down the stairs while the Judge and Hepzibah were chatting in the shop, softly opened the outer door, and escaped into the street? With that thought, she imagined his gray, wrinkled yet childlike face in the old-fashioned clothes he wore at home; a figure one might envision himself as, with the world watching, in a troubled dream. This image of her miserable brother would wander through the city, drawing all eyes and everyone’s curiosity and disgust, like a ghost, more frightening because it was visible in the daylight. To face the mockery of the younger crowd who did not know him—and the harsh scorn and anger of a few older men who might remember his once-familiar face! To be the target of boys who, as soon as they could run around the streets, had no reverence for what is beautiful and sacred, nor sympathy for what is sorrowful—no more understanding of the sacred misery that sanctifies the human form than if Satan were their father! Provoked by their taunts, their loud, shrill shouts, and cruel laughter—insulted by the filth of the streets they would throw at him—or, as it might happen, distracted by the sheer oddness of his situation even if no one hurled a thoughtless word at him—what could be expected if Clifford were to burst into some wild behavior that would surely be seen as madness? In that way, Judge Pyncheon’s wicked plan would be effectively fulfilled!

Then Hepzibah reflected that the town was almost completely water-girdled. The wharves stretched out towards the centre of the harbor, and, in this inclement weather, were deserted by the ordinary throng of merchants, laborers, and sea-faring men; each wharf a solitude, with the vessels moored stem and stern, along its misty length. Should her brother’s aimless footsteps stray thitherward, and he but bend, one moment, over the deep, black tide, would he not bethink himself that here was the sure refuge within his reach, and that, with a single step, or the slightest overbalance of his body, he might be forever beyond his kinsman’s gripe? Oh, the temptation! To make of his ponderous sorrow a security! To sink, with its leaden weight upon him, and never rise again!

Then Hepzibah thought about how the town was almost completely surrounded by water. The wharves extended out toward the center of the harbor, and in this harsh weather, they were empty of the usual crowd of merchants, workers, and sailors; each wharf felt like a lonely spot, with the boats moored at both ends along its foggy stretch. If her brother wandered in that direction and leaned even for a moment over the dark, deep tide, wouldn’t he realize that here was a way out easily within his reach? With just one step or a slight loss of balance, he could be forever free from his family’s grasp. Oh, the temptation! To turn his heavy sorrow into a form of security! To sink under its burden and never come back up!

The horror of this last conception was too much for Hepzibah. Even Jaffrey Pyncheon must help her now! She hastened down the staircase, shrieking as she went.

The terror of this last idea was too overwhelming for Hepzibah. Even Jaffrey Pyncheon had to help her now! She rushed down the staircase, screaming as she went.

“Clifford is gone!” she cried. “I cannot find my brother. Help, Jaffrey Pyncheon! Some harm will happen to him!”

“Clifford is gone!” she shouted. “I can’t find my brother. Help, Jaffrey Pyncheon! Something bad is going to happen to him!”

She threw open the parlor-door. But, what with the shade of branches across the windows, and the smoke-blackened ceiling, and the dark oak-panelling of the walls, there was hardly so much daylight in the room that Hepzibah’s imperfect sight could accurately distinguish the Judge’s figure. She was certain, however, that she saw him sitting in the ancestral arm-chair, near the centre of the floor, with his face somewhat averted, and looking towards a window. So firm and quiet is the nervous system of such men as Judge Pyncheon, that he had perhaps stirred not more than once since her departure, but, in the hard composure of his temperament, retained the position into which accident had thrown him.

She threw open the parlor door. However, with the shade of branches across the windows, the smoke-stained ceiling, and the dark oak paneling on the walls, there was hardly enough daylight in the room for Hepzibah's poor eyesight to clearly make out the Judge's figure. Still, she was sure she saw him sitting in the family armchair, near the center of the floor, with his face slightly turned away, looking out a window. The nervous system of men like Judge Pyncheon is so steady and composed that he probably hadn’t moved more than once since she left, but in the rigid calmness of his character, he held the position that circumstance had placed him in.

“I tell you, Jaffrey,” cried Hepzibah impatiently, as she turned from the parlor-door to search other rooms, “my brother is not in his chamber! You must help me seek him!”

“I’m telling you, Jaffrey,” Hepzibah said impatiently, turning away from the parlor door to search other rooms, “my brother isn’t in his room! You have to help me find him!”

But Judge Pyncheon was not the man to let himself be startled from an easy-chair with haste ill-befitting either the dignity of his character or his broad personal basis, by the alarm of an hysteric woman. Yet, considering his own interest in the matter, he might have bestirred himself with a little more alacrity.

But Judge Pyncheon was not the type to be abruptly pulled from his comfortable chair by the panic of a highly emotional woman. Still, given his personal stake in the situation, he could have taken action with a bit more urgency.

“Do you hear me, Jaffrey Pyncheon?” screamed Hepzibah, as she again approached the parlor-door, after an ineffectual search elsewhere. “Clifford is gone.”

“Do you hear me, Jaffrey Pyncheon?” shouted Hepzibah as she once again approached the parlor door after searching everywhere else to no avail. “Clifford is gone.”

At this instant, on the threshold of the parlor, emerging from within, appeared Clifford himself! His face was preternaturally pale; so deadly white, indeed, that, through all the glimmering indistinctness of the passageway, Hepzibah could discern his features, as if a light fell on them alone. Their vivid and wild expression seemed likewise sufficient to illuminate them; it was an expression of scorn and mockery, coinciding with the emotions indicated by his gesture. As Clifford stood on the threshold, partly turning back, he pointed his finger within the parlor, and shook it slowly as though he would have summoned, not Hepzibah alone, but the whole world, to gaze at some object inconceivably ridiculous. This action, so ill-timed and extravagant,—accompanied, too, with a look that showed more like joy than any other kind of excitement,—compelled Hepzibah to dread that her stern kinsman’s ominous visit had driven her poor brother to absolute insanity. Nor could she otherwise account for the Judge’s quiescent mood than by supposing him craftily on the watch, while Clifford developed these symptoms of a distracted mind.

At that moment, at the entrance of the parlor, Clifford appeared, stepping out from inside! His face was unnaturally pale; so deathly white, in fact, that even through the hazy dimness of the hallway, Hepzibah could see his features, as if a spotlight was on them alone. Their intense and wild expression seemed bright enough to light them up; it conveyed a mix of scorn and mockery, aligning with the emotions shown by his gesture. As Clifford stood at the threshold, partly turning back, he pointed inside the parlor and shook his finger slowly as if he wanted not just Hepzibah but the whole world to look at something unbelievably absurd. This gesture, so poorly timed and extravagant, along with a look that seemed more joyful than anything else, made Hepzibah fear that her serious relative’s ominous visit had pushed her poor brother into complete madness. She couldn’t explain the Judge’s calm demeanor in any other way than to assume he was sneakily watching while Clifford displayed these signs of a troubled mind.

“Be quiet, Clifford!” whispered his sister, raising her hand to impress caution. “Oh, for Heaven’s sake, be quiet!”

“Be quiet, Clifford!” his sister whispered, raising her hand to signal caution. “Oh, for heaven’s sake, be quiet!”

“Let him be quiet! What can he do better?” answered Clifford, with a still wilder gesture, pointing into the room which he had just quitted. “As for us, Hepzibah, we can dance now!—we can sing, laugh, play, do what we will! The weight is gone, Hepzibah! It is gone off this weary old world, and we may be as light-hearted as little Phœbe herself.”

“Let him be quiet! What else can he do?” Clifford replied, waving his arm wildly and pointing into the room he had just left. “As for us, Hepzibah, we can dance now! We can sing, laugh, play, do whatever we want! The burden is gone, Hepzibah! It has lifted off this tired old world, and we can be as carefree as little Phœbe herself.”

And, in accordance with his words, he began to laugh, still pointing his finger at the object, invisible to Hepzibah, within the parlor. She was seized with a sudden intuition of some horrible thing. She thrust herself past Clifford, and disappeared into the room; but almost immediately returned, with a cry choking in her throat. Gazing at her brother with an affrighted glance of inquiry, she beheld him all in a tremor and a quake, from head to foot, while, amid these commoted elements of passion or alarm, still flickered his gusty mirth.

And, true to his words, he started laughing, still pointing at something in the parlor that Hepzibah couldn’t see. She was suddenly hit with a sense of dread about something terrible. She pushed past Clifford and went into the room, but almost immediately came back out, her cry stuck in her throat. Looking at her brother with a frightened expression, she saw him trembling all over, yet, amidst this whirlwind of emotion and fear, his laughter still flickered.

“My God! what is to become of us?” gasped Hepzibah.

“My God! What’s going to happen to us?” gasped Hepzibah.

“Come!” said Clifford in a tone of brief decision, most unlike what was usual with him. “We stay here too long! Let us leave the old house to our cousin Jaffrey! He will take good care of it!”

“Come on!” said Clifford in a surprisingly decisive tone that was very different from his usual manner. “We've been here too long! Let’s leave the old house to our cousin Jaffrey! He’ll take good care of it!”

Hepzibah now noticed that Clifford had on a cloak,—a garment of long ago,—in which he had constantly muffled himself during these days of easterly storm. He beckoned with his hand, and intimated, so far as she could comprehend him, his purpose that they should go together from the house. There are chaotic, blind, or drunken moments, in the lives of persons who lack real force of character,—moments of test, in which courage would most assert itself,—but where these individuals, if left to themselves, stagger aimlessly along, or follow implicitly whatever guidance may befall them, even if it be a child’s. No matter how preposterous or insane, a purpose is a Godsend to them. Hepzibah had reached this point. Unaccustomed to action or responsibility,—full of horror at what she had seen, and afraid to inquire, or almost to imagine, how it had come to pass,—affrighted at the fatality which seemed to pursue her brother,—stupefied by the dim, thick, stifling atmosphere of dread which filled the house as with a death-smell, and obliterated all definiteness of thought,—she yielded without a question, and on the instant, to the will which Clifford expressed. For herself, she was like a person in a dream, when the will always sleeps. Clifford, ordinarily so destitute of this faculty, had found it in the tension of the crisis.

Hepzibah now noticed that Clifford was wearing a cloak—an old garment—one he had wrapped himself in during this days of stormy weather. He gestured with his hand, indicating, as much as she could understand, that they should leave the house together. There are chaotic, aimless, or drunken moments in the lives of those who lack real strength of character—moments of trial when courage would most stand out—but when left on their own, these individuals stumble along or follow whatever guidance they encounter, even if it comes from a child. No matter how ridiculous or irrational, having a purpose is a blessing for them. Hepzibah had reached this point. Unfamiliar with action or responsibility—terrified of what she had witnessed, and afraid to ask or even think about how it had happened—frightened by the inevitability that seemed to pursue her brother—dazed by the thick, oppressive atmosphere of dread that filled the house like the smell of death and clouded her thoughts—she yielded without a second thought, instantly obeying Clifford's wishes. For her, it felt like being in a dream, where the will always lies asleep. Clifford, usually so lacking in this ability, had found it in the intensity of the crisis.

“Why do you delay so?” cried he sharply. “Put on your cloak and hood, or whatever it pleases you to wear! No matter what; you cannot look beautiful nor brilliant, my poor Hepzibah! Take your purse, with money in it, and come along!”

“Why are you taking so long?” he said sharply. “Put on your cloak and hood, or whatever you want to wear! It doesn’t matter; you won’t look beautiful or amazing, my poor Hepzibah! Take your purse with some money in it and let’s go!”

Hepzibah obeyed these instructions, as if nothing else were to be done or thought of. She began to wonder, it is true, why she did not wake up, and at what still more intolerable pitch of dizzy trouble her spirit would struggle out of the maze, and make her conscious that nothing of all this had actually happened. Of course it was not real; no such black, easterly day as this had yet begun to be; Judge Pyncheon had not talked with, her. Clifford had not laughed, pointed, beckoned her away with him; but she had merely been afflicted—as lonely sleepers often are—with a great deal of unreasonable misery, in a morning dream!

Hepzibah followed these instructions as if there was nothing else to do or think about. She started to question why she hadn't woken up and at what even more unbearable level of confusion her mind would break free from the chaos, making her realize that none of this had actually happened. Of course, it wasn't real; no such dark, dreary day had even started; Judge Pyncheon hadn't spoken to her. Clifford hadn't laughed, pointed, or signaled for her to come with him; she had just been troubled—like many lonely sleepers often are—by an overwhelming sense of misery in a morning dream!

“Now—now—I shall certainly awake!” thought Hepzibah, as she went to and fro, making her little preparations. “I can bear it no longer I must wake up now!”

“Now—now—I’m definitely going to wake up!” thought Hepzibah as she paced back and forth, making her small preparations. “I can’t take it anymore; I have to wake up now!”

But it came not, that awakening moment! It came not, even when, just before they left the house, Clifford stole to the parlor-door, and made a parting obeisance to the sole occupant of the room.

But that moment of awakening never came! It didn’t come, even when, just before they left the house, Clifford quietly approached the parlor door and nodded a goodbye to the only person in the room.

“What an absurd figure the old fellow cuts now!” whispered he to Hepzibah. “Just when he fancied he had me completely under his thumb! Come, come; make haste! or he will start up, like Giant Despair in pursuit of Christian and Hopeful, and catch us yet!”

“What an absurd figure that old guy is now!” he whispered to Hepzibah. “Right when he thought he had me completely under his control! Come on, hurry up! Otherwise, he’ll jump up like Giant Despair chasing Christian and Hopeful, and he’ll catch us!”

As they passed into the street, Clifford directed Hepzibah’s attention to something on one of the posts of the front door. It was merely the initials of his own name, which, with somewhat of his characteristic grace about the forms of the letters, he had cut there when a boy. The brother and sister departed, and left Judge Pyncheon sitting in the old home of his forefathers, all by himself; so heavy and lumpish that we can liken him to nothing better than a defunct nightmare, which had perished in the midst of its wickedness, and left its flabby corpse on the breast of the tormented one, to be gotten rid of as it might!

As they stepped into the street, Clifford pointed out something on one of the posts of the front door to Hepzibah. It was just the initials of his own name, which, with a bit of his usual elegance in the shapes of the letters, he had carved there as a kid. The brother and sister left, leaving Judge Pyncheon alone in the old family home; he was so heavy and awkward that he could be compared to a dead nightmare, which had died in the middle of its evil deeds, leaving its limp body on the chest of the tormented one, waiting to be dealt with however it could be!

XVII.
The Flight of Two Owls

Summer as it was, the east wind set poor Hepzibah’s few remaining teeth chattering in her head, as she and Clifford faced it, on their way up Pyncheon Street, and towards the centre of the town. Not merely was it the shiver which this pitiless blast brought to her frame (although her feet and hands, especially, had never seemed so death-a-cold as now), but there was a moral sensation, mingling itself with the physical chill, and causing her to shake more in spirit than in body. The world’s broad, bleak atmosphere was all so comfortless! Such, indeed, is the impression which it makes on every new adventurer, even if he plunge into it while the warmest tide of life is bubbling through his veins. What, then, must it have been to Hepzibah and Clifford,—so time-stricken as they were, yet so like children in their inexperience,—as they left the doorstep, and passed from beneath the wide shelter of the Pyncheon Elm! They were wandering all abroad, on precisely such a pilgrimage as a child often meditates, to the world’s end, with perhaps a sixpence and a biscuit in his pocket. In Hepzibah’s mind, there was the wretched consciousness of being adrift. She had lost the faculty of self-guidance; but, in view of the difficulties around her, felt it hardly worth an effort to regain it, and was, moreover, incapable of making one.

Summer as it was, the east wind made poor Hepzibah’s few remaining teeth chatter in her head as she and Clifford walked up Pyncheon Street toward the town center. It wasn’t just the shiver that this harsh wind brought to her body (although her feet and hands, in particular, had never felt so freezing as they did now), but there was also a deeper feeling, mixing with the cold, making her tremble more in spirit than in body. The world’s broad, bleak atmosphere felt so comfortless! This is the impression it leaves on every new adventurer, even if they dive into it while the warmest tide of life flows through their veins. What must it have been like for Hepzibah and Clifford—so worn by time yet so childlike in their inexperience—as they left the doorstep and moved out from under the wide shelter of the Pyncheon Elm! They were wandering aimlessly on a quest similar to what a child often dreams about, aiming for the world’s end, perhaps with a little change and a biscuit in their pocket. In Hepzibah’s mind, there was the miserable awareness of being lost. She had lost the ability to guide herself; yet, given the challenges surrounding her, she felt it wasn’t even worth the effort to try to regain it, and besides, she felt incapable of making an attempt.

As they proceeded on their strange expedition, she now and then cast a look sidelong at Clifford, and could not but observe that he was possessed and swayed by a powerful excitement. It was this, indeed, that gave him the control which he had at once, and so irresistibly, established over his movements. It not a little resembled the exhilaration of wine. Or, it might more fancifully be compared to a joyous piece of music, played with wild vivacity, but upon a disordered instrument. As the cracked jarring note might always be heard, and as it jarred loudest amidst the loftiest exultation of the melody, so was there a continual quake through Clifford, causing him most to quiver while he wore a triumphant smile, and seemed almost under a necessity to skip in his gait.

As they continued on their strange journey, she occasionally glanced at Clifford and couldn’t help but notice that he was filled with a powerful excitement. This was, in fact, what gave him the control that he had established so quickly and irresistibly over his actions. It resembled the buzz of being tipsy, or, more poetically, it could be compared to a lively piece of music played on a chaotic instrument. Just like the off-key notes could always be heard, especially loud amid the most triumphant parts of the melody, there was a constant tremor in Clifford, making him tremble even more while he wore a triumphant smile and seemed almost compelled to skip as he walked.

They met few people abroad, even on passing from the retired neighborhood of the House of the Seven Gables into what was ordinarily the more thronged and busier portion of the town. Glistening sidewalks, with little pools of rain, here and there, along their unequal surface; umbrellas displayed ostentatiously in the shop-windows, as if the life of trade had concentrated itself in that one article; wet leaves of the horse-chestnut or elm-trees, torn off untimely by the blast and scattered along the public way; an unsightly accumulation of mud in the middle of the street, which perversely grew the more unclean for its long and laborious washing,—these were the more definable points of a very sombre picture. In the way of movement and human life, there was the hasty rattle of a cab or coach, its driver protected by a waterproof cap over his head and shoulders; the forlorn figure of an old man, who seemed to have crept out of some subterranean sewer, and was stooping along the kennel, and poking the wet rubbish with a stick, in quest of rusty nails; a merchant or two, at the door of the post-office, together with an editor and a miscellaneous politician, awaiting a dilatory mail; a few visages of retired sea-captains at the window of an insurance office, looking out vacantly at the vacant street, blaspheming at the weather, and fretting at the dearth as well of public news as local gossip. What a treasure-trove to these venerable quidnuncs, could they have guessed the secret which Hepzibah and Clifford were carrying along with them! But their two figures attracted hardly so much notice as that of a young girl, who passed at the same instant, and happened to raise her skirt a trifle too high above her ankles. Had it been a sunny and cheerful day, they could hardly have gone through the streets without making themselves obnoxious to remark. Now, probably, they were felt to be in keeping with the dismal and bitter weather, and therefore did not stand out in strong relief, as if the sun were shining on them, but melted into the gray gloom and were forgotten as soon as gone.

They encountered few people while out, even when passing from the quiet area of the House of the Seven Gables into the usually busier part of town. The sidewalks sparkled with little puddles of rain scattered along their uneven surface; umbrellas displayed prominently in shop windows, as if the entire business had focused solely on that one item; wet leaves from the horse-chestnut or elm trees, ripped off prematurely by the wind and strewn across the street; a messy pile of mud in the middle of the road that annoyingly looked even more filthy after its long and hard washing—these were the clearer aspects of a rather gloomy scene. In terms of movement and life, there was the hurried clatter of a cab or carriage, with the driver protected by a waterproof cap covering his head and shoulders; the lonely figure of an old man, who appeared to have emerged from some underground sewer, hunched over as he shuffled along the gutter, poking at the soggy debris with a stick in search of rusty nails; a couple of merchants standing outside the post office alongside an editor and a random politician, waiting for a delayed mail delivery; a few aged sea captains peering out from an insurance office window, staring blankly at the empty street, cursing the weather and lamenting the lack of both public news and local chatter. What a goldmine of gossip these old busybodies would have found if they had known the secret that Hepzibah and Clifford were carrying with them! But the two of them drew hardly more attention than a young girl who happened to pass by at that moment, lifting her skirt just a bit too high above her ankles. Had it been a sunny and cheerful day, they likely would have drawn more attention in the streets. Now, though, they seemed to blend into the dreary and cold weather, and therefore didn’t stand out sharply, as if the sun were shining on them, but faded into the gray gloom and were quickly forgotten as soon as they passed.

Poor Hepzibah! Could she have understood this fact, it would have brought her some little comfort; for, to all her other troubles,—strange to say!—there was added the womanish and old-maiden-like misery arising from a sense of unseemliness in her attire. Thus, she was fain to shrink deeper into herself, as it were, as if in the hope of making people suppose that here was only a cloak and hood, threadbare and woefully faded, taking an airing in the midst of the storm, without any wearer!

Poor Hepzibah! If only she could have understood this fact, it would have given her a bit of comfort; for, along with all her other troubles—strangely enough!—she also dealt with the womanly and spinster-like misery of feeling out of place in her clothes. So, she felt compelled to retreat further into herself, almost hoping to make people think that there was just an old, worn-out cloak and hood airing out in the storm, without anyone wearing them!

As they went on, the feeling of indistinctness and unreality kept dimly hovering round about her, and so diffusing itself into her system that one of her hands was hardly palpable to the touch of the other. Any certainty would have been preferable to this. She whispered to herself, again and again, “Am I awake?—Am I awake?” and sometimes exposed her face to the chill spatter of the wind, for the sake of its rude assurance that she was. Whether it was Clifford’s purpose, or only chance, had led them thither, they now found themselves passing beneath the arched entrance of a large structure of gray stone. Within, there was a spacious breadth, and an airy height from floor to roof, now partially filled with smoke and steam, which eddied voluminously upward and formed a mimic cloud-region over their heads. A train of cars was just ready for a start; the locomotive was fretting and fuming, like a steed impatient for a headlong rush; and the bell rang out its hasty peal, so well expressing the brief summons which life vouchsafes to us in its hurried career. Without question or delay,—with the irresistible decision, if not rather to be called recklessness, which had so strangely taken possession of him, and through him of Hepzibah,—Clifford impelled her towards the cars, and assisted her to enter. The signal was given; the engine puffed forth its short, quick breaths; the train began its movement; and, along with a hundred other passengers, these two unwonted travellers sped onward like the wind.

As they moved on, the feeling of confusion and unreality lingered around her, creeping into her being so much that one of her hands felt barely tangible to the touch of the other. Any certainty would have been better than this. She kept whispering to herself, “Am I awake?—Am I awake?” and sometimes faced the cold splash of the wind, seeking its harsh reassurance that she indeed was. Whether it was Clifford’s intention or just by chance that brought them here, they found themselves passing under the arched entrance of a large gray stone building. Inside, there was a spacious area with a high ceiling, partially filled with smoke and steam that swirled up and formed a faux cloud above them. A train was just about to depart; the locomotive was chuffing and steaming like a restless horse ready to bolt; and the bell rang out a hurried peal, perfectly capturing the brief call life gives us in its swift journey. Without any hesitation or doubt—driven by an irresistible determination, which could almost be seen as recklessness—that had oddly taken over him, and through him, Hepzibah—Clifford urged her toward the train and helped her board. The signal was given; the engine released short, quick puffs; the train started to move; and, along with a hundred other passengers, these two unexpected travelers sped away like the wind.

At last, therefore, and after so long estrangement from everything that the world acted or enjoyed, they had been drawn into the great current of human life, and were swept away with it, as by the suction of fate itself.

At last, after being so far removed from everything the world did or enjoyed, they had been pulled into the big flow of human life and were carried away by it, almost like the pull of fate itself.

Still haunted with the idea that not one of the past incidents, inclusive of Judge Pyncheon’s visit, could be real, the recluse of the Seven Gables murmured in her brother’s ear,—

Still haunted by the thought that none of the past events, including Judge Pyncheon's visit, could be real, the recluse of the Seven Gables murmured in her brother’s ear,—

“Clifford! Clifford! Is not this a dream?”

“Clifford! Clifford! Is this not a dream?”

“A dream, Hepzibah!” repeated he, almost laughing in her face. “On the contrary, I have never been awake before!”

“A dream, Hepzibah!” he said again, almost laughing in her face. “Actually, I’ve never been awake until now!”

Meanwhile, looking from the window, they could see the world racing past them. At one moment, they were rattling through a solitude; the next, a village had grown up around them; a few breaths more, and it had vanished, as if swallowed by an earthquake. The spires of meeting-houses seemed set adrift from their foundations; the broad-based hills glided away. Everything was unfixed from its age-long rest, and moving at whirlwind speed in a direction opposite to their own.

Meanwhile, looking out the window, they could see the world zooming by. One moment, they were speeding through an empty landscape; the next, a village appeared around them; just a few moments later, it disappeared, as if consumed by an earthquake. The steeples of churches seemed to float away from their bases; the wide hills slid past. Everything was unanchored from its long-standing stillness and was rushing by at a breakneck pace in the opposite direction.

Within the car there was the usual interior life of the railroad, offering little to the observation of other passengers, but full of novelty for this pair of strangely enfranchised prisoners. It was novelty enough, indeed, that there were fifty human beings in close relation with them, under one long and narrow roof, and drawn onward by the same mighty influence that had taken their two selves into its grasp. It seemed marvellous how all these people could remain so quietly in their seats, while so much noisy strength was at work in their behalf. Some, with tickets in their hats (long travellers these, before whom lay a hundred miles of railroad), had plunged into the English scenery and adventures of pamphlet novels, and were keeping company with dukes and earls. Others, whose briefer span forbade their devoting themselves to studies so abstruse, beguiled the little tedium of the way with penny-papers. A party of girls, and one young man, on opposite sides of the car, found huge amusement in a game of ball. They tossed it to and fro, with peals of laughter that might be measured by mile-lengths; for, faster than the nimble ball could fly, the merry players fled unconsciously along, leaving the trail of their mirth afar behind, and ending their game under another sky than had witnessed its commencement. Boys, with apples, cakes, candy, and rolls of variously tinctured lozenges,—merchandise that reminded Hepzibah of her deserted shop,—appeared at each momentary stopping-place, doing up their business in a hurry, or breaking it short off, lest the market should ravish them away with it. New people continually entered. Old acquaintances—for such they soon grew to be, in this rapid current of affairs—continually departed. Here and there, amid the rumble and the tumult, sat one asleep. Sleep; sport; business; graver or lighter study; and the common and inevitable movement onward! It was life itself!

Inside the train, the typical atmosphere of the railroad was present, offering little to the notice of other passengers but filled with excitement for this pair of oddly liberated captives. It was certainly exciting that there were fifty people close to them, all beneath one long and narrow roof, propelled by the same powerful force that had pulled them into its grip. It was amazing how all these people could stay so calmly in their seats while so much noisy power worked on their behalf. Some, with tickets tucked in their hats (experienced travelers with a hundred miles of railroad ahead), had immersed themselves in English scenery and adventures from pamphlet novels, mingling with dukes and earls. Others, whose shorter journeys didn’t allow for such deep reading, entertained themselves with penny newspapers. A group of girls and one young man on opposite sides of the car found great enjoyment in a ball game. They tossed it back and forth, their laughter echoing for miles; faster than the quick ball could fly, the joyful players raced along, leaving behind a trail of smiles and finishing their game under a different sky than where it started. Boys selling apples, cakes, candy, and assorted lozenges—merchandise that reminded Hepzibah of her empty shop—popped up at each brief stop, rushing to make sales or cutting them short to avoid being swept away by the crowd. New passengers constantly boarded, while familiar faces—who quickly became old friends in this fast-paced journey—continuously left. Here and there, amidst the noise and chaos, someone was asleep. Sleep; fun; business; serious or light study; and the unavoidable movement forward! It was life itself!

Clifford’s naturally poignant sympathies were all aroused. He caught the color of what was passing about him, and threw it back more vividly than he received it, but mixed, nevertheless, with a lurid and portentous hue. Hepzibah, on the other hand, felt herself more apart from human kind than even in the seclusion which she had just quitted.

Clifford’s natural empathy was fully engaged. He picked up on the emotions around him and reflected them back with even greater intensity, though still tinged with a dark and ominous tone. Hepzibah, on the other hand, felt more disconnected from people than she had in the solitude she had just left behind.

“You are not happy, Hepzibah!” said Clifford, apart, in a tone of reproach. “You are thinking of that dismal old house, and of Cousin Jaffrey”—here came the quake through him,—“and of Cousin Jaffrey sitting there, all by himself! Take my advice,—follow my example,—and let such things slip aside. Here we are, in the world, Hepzibah!—in the midst of life!—in the throng of our fellow beings! Let you and I be happy! As happy as that youth and those pretty girls, at their game of ball!”

“You're not happy, Hepzibah!” said Clifford, stepping aside, with a tone of disappointment. “You're thinking about that gloomy old house and Cousin Jaffrey”—he shuddered at the thought—“and Cousin Jaffrey sitting there, all alone! Take my advice—follow my example—and let those things go. Here we are, in the world, Hepzibah!—in the middle of life!—among our fellow human beings! Let’s be happy! Just as happy as that young guy and those pretty girls playing their game!”

“Happy—” thought Hepzibah, bitterly conscious, at the word, of her dull and heavy heart, with the frozen pain in it,—“happy. He is mad already; and, if I could once feel myself broad awake, I should go mad too!”

“Happy—” thought Hepzibah, bitterly aware, at the word, of her dull and heavy heart, with the frozen pain in it,—“happy. He’s already lost his mind; and if I could just feel fully awake, I’d lose mine too!”

If a fixed idea be madness, she was perhaps not remote from it. Fast and far as they had rattled and clattered along the iron track, they might just as well, as regarded Hepzibah’s mental images, have been passing up and down Pyncheon Street. With miles and miles of varied scenery between, there was no scene for her save the seven old gable-peaks, with their moss, and the tuft of weeds in one of the angles, and the shop-window, and a customer shaking the door, and compelling the little bell to jingle fiercely, but without disturbing Judge Pyncheon! This one old house was everywhere! It transported its great, lumbering bulk with more than railroad speed, and set itself phlegmatically down on whatever spot she glanced at. The quality of Hepzibah’s mind was too unmalleable to take new impressions so readily as Clifford’s. He had a winged nature; she was rather of the vegetable kind, and could hardly be kept long alive, if drawn up by the roots. Thus it happened that the relation heretofore existing between her brother and herself was changed. At home, she was his guardian; here, Clifford had become hers, and seemed to comprehend whatever belonged to their new position with a singular rapidity of intelligence. He had been startled into manhood and intellectual vigor; or, at least, into a condition that resembled them, though it might be both diseased and transitory.

If a fixed idea is madness, she was perhaps not far from it. Fast and far as they rattled along the iron track, they might as well have been traveling back and forth on Pyncheon Street, at least in Hepzibah’s mind. Despite the miles of varied scenery between them, she could only see the seven old gable peaks, covered in moss, a tuft of weeds in one corner, the shop window, and a customer shaking the door, making the little bell jingle loudly without bothering Judge Pyncheon! This one old house was everywhere! It carried its heavy bulk faster than a train and settled itself down wherever she looked. Hepzibah’s mind was too rigid to take in new impressions as easily as Clifford’s. He had a free spirit; she was more like a plant that would struggle to survive if pulled up by the roots. As a result, the relationship that had existed between her and her brother had changed. At home, she had been his guardian; now, Clifford had become hers and seemed to grasp their new dynamic with a remarkable quickness of understanding. He had been pushed into a form of adulthood and intellectual strength, or at least into a state that resembled them, even if it was both unhealthy and likely temporary.

The conductor now applied for their tickets; and Clifford, who had made himself the purse-bearer, put a bank-note into his hand, as he had observed others do.

The conductor now requested their tickets; and Clifford, who had taken on the role of carrying the money, handed a banknote to him, just like he had seen others do.

“For the lady and yourself?” asked the conductor. “And how far?”

“For you and the lady?” asked the conductor. “And how far?”

“As far as that will carry us,” said Clifford. “It is no great matter. We are riding for pleasure merely.”

“As far as that takes us,” said Clifford. “It’s not a big deal. We’re just riding for fun.”

“You choose a strange day for it, sir!” remarked a gimlet-eyed old gentleman on the other side of the car, looking at Clifford and his companion, as if curious to make them out. “The best chance of pleasure, in an easterly rain, I take it, is in a man’s own house, with a nice little fire in the chimney.”

“You've picked a weird day for this, sir!” said a sharp-eyed old gentleman on the other side of the car, observing Clifford and his companion, as if trying to figure them out. “I suppose the best chance for enjoyment on a rainy day like this is at home, with a cozy fire in the fireplace.”

“I cannot precisely agree with you,” said Clifford, courteously bowing to the old gentleman, and at once taking up the clew of conversation which the latter had proffered. “It had just occurred to me, on the contrary, that this admirable invention of the railroad—with the vast and inevitable improvements to be looked for, both as to speed and convenience—is destined to do away with those stale ideas of home and fireside, and substitute something better.”

“I can't completely agree with you,” Clifford said, politely bowing to the older gentleman and immediately picking up the thread of conversation that the man had introduced. “It just occurred to me, on the contrary, that this amazing invention of the railroad—with the huge and inevitable improvements we can expect, both in speed and convenience—is set to replace those outdated notions of home and hearth with something better.”

“In the name of common-sense,” asked the old gentleman rather testily, “what can be better for a man than his own parlor and chimney-corner?”

“In the name of common sense,” asked the old gentleman somewhat irritably, “what could be better for a man than his own living room and fireplace?”

“These things have not the merit which many good people attribute to them,” replied Clifford. “They may be said, in few and pithy words, to have ill served a poor purpose. My impression is, that our wonderfully increased and still increasing facilities of locomotion are destined to bring us around again to the nomadic state. You are aware, my dear sir,—you must have observed it in your own experience,—that all human progress is in a circle; or, to use a more accurate and beautiful figure, in an ascending spiral curve. While we fancy ourselves going straight forward, and attaining, at every step, an entirely new position of affairs, we do actually return to something long ago tried and abandoned, but which we now find etherealized, refined, and perfected to its ideal. The past is but a coarse and sensual prophecy of the present and the future. To apply this truth to the topic now under discussion. In the early epochs of our race, men dwelt in temporary huts, of bowers of branches, as easily constructed as a bird’s-nest, and which they built,—if it should be called building, when such sweet homes of a summer solstice rather grew than were made with hands,—which Nature, we will say, assisted them to rear where fruit abounded, where fish and game were plentiful, or, most especially, where the sense of beauty was to be gratified by a lovelier shade than elsewhere, and a more exquisite arrangement of lake, wood, and hill. This life possessed a charm which, ever since man quitted it, has vanished from existence. And it typified something better than itself. It had its drawbacks; such as hunger and thirst, inclement weather, hot sunshine, and weary and foot-blistering marches over barren and ugly tracts, that lay between the sites desirable for their fertility and beauty. But in our ascending spiral, we escape all this. These railroads—could but the whistle be made musical, and the rumble and the jar got rid of—are positively the greatest blessing that the ages have wrought out for us. They give us wings; they annihilate the toil and dust of pilgrimage; they spiritualize travel! Transition being so facile, what can be any man’s inducement to tarry in one spot? Why, therefore, should he build a more cumbrous habitation than can readily be carried off with him? Why should he make himself a prisoner for life in brick, and stone, and old worm-eaten timber, when he may just as easily dwell, in one sense, nowhere,—in a better sense, wherever the fit and beautiful shall offer him a home?”

“These things don’t have the value that many good people think they do,” replied Clifford. “In simple terms, they have poorly served a weak purpose. I believe that our greatly increased and still expanding means of transportation are set to bring us back to a nomadic lifestyle. You know, my dear sir—you must have noticed it in your own life—that all human progress is circular; or, to put it more accurately and elegantly, it follows an upward spiral. While we think we’re moving straight ahead and achieving a completely new situation at every step, we are actually returning to something that was tried and abandoned long ago, but which we now find has been elevated, refined, and perfected to its ideal state. The past is just a rough and physical prediction of the present and future. To relate this truth to what we’re discussing now: in the early days of our species, humans lived in temporary huts or shelters made of branches, as easy to create as a bird’s nest. They built—if that can even be called building, when such lovely summer homes seem to grow naturally rather than being crafted by hands—which Nature, let’s say, helped them to establish in places abundant with fruit, plenty of fish and game, and especially where the sense of beauty could be satisfied by a more delightful shade than elsewhere and a more exquisite arrangement of lakes, woods, and hills. This way of life had a charm that has vanished from existence since humans left it. And it symbolized something greater than itself. Of course, it had its downsides: hunger and thirst, harsh weather, scorching sun, and exhausting marches over barren and unattractive land that lay between the desirable fertile and beautiful spots. But in our upward spiral, we can escape all that. These railroads—if only the whistle could be made melodic and if we could eliminate the rumble and jolt—are truly the greatest blessing that the ages have provided for us. They give us wings; they eliminate the drudgery and dust of travel; they elevate the experience of journeying! Since transition is so easy, what reason does anyone have to stay in one place? Why, then, should one build a more cumbersome home than something they could easily take with them? Why should one become a permanent prisoner in brick, stone, and old, decaying wood when they could just as easily live, in one sense, nowhere—and in a better sense, wherever beauty and suitability provide a home?”

Clifford’s countenance glowed, as he divulged this theory; a youthful character shone out from within, converting the wrinkles and pallid duskiness of age into an almost transparent mask. The merry girls let their ball drop upon the floor, and gazed at him. They said to themselves, perhaps, that, before his hair was gray and the crow’s-feet tracked his temples, this now decaying man must have stamped the impress of his features on many a woman’s heart. But, alas! no woman’s eye had seen his face while it was beautiful.

Clifford's face lit up as he shared this theory; a youthful spirit emerged from within, turning the wrinkles and pale dullness of age into nearly a transparent mask. The cheerful girls dropped their ball on the floor and stared at him. They probably thought to themselves that, before his hair turned gray and crow's feet formed around his temples, this now fading man must have left a lasting impression on many women’s hearts. But, sadly, no woman's eye had ever seen his face when it was beautiful.

“I should scarcely call it an improved state of things,” observed Clifford’s new acquaintance, “to live everywhere and nowhere!”

“I can hardly say it’s an improvement,” said Clifford’s new acquaintance, “to be everywhere and nowhere at the same time!”

“Would you not?” exclaimed Clifford, with singular energy. “It is as clear to me as sunshine,—were there any in the sky,—that the greatest possible stumbling-blocks in the path of human happiness and improvement are these heaps of bricks and stones, consolidated with mortar, or hewn timber, fastened together with spike-nails, which men painfully contrive for their own torment, and call them house and home! The soul needs air; a wide sweep and frequent change of it. Morbid influences, in a thousand-fold variety, gather about hearths, and pollute the life of households. There is no such unwholesome atmosphere as that of an old home, rendered poisonous by one’s defunct forefathers and relatives. I speak of what I know. There is a certain house within my familiar recollection,—one of those peaked-gable (there are seven of them), projecting-storied edifices, such as you occasionally see in our older towns,—a rusty, crazy, creaky, dry-rotted, dingy, dark, and miserable old dungeon, with an arched window over the porch, and a little shop-door on one side, and a great, melancholy elm before it! Now, sir, whenever my thoughts recur to this seven-gabled mansion (the fact is so very curious that I must needs mention it), immediately I have a vision or image of an elderly man, of remarkably stern countenance, sitting in an oaken elbow-chair, dead, stone-dead, with an ugly flow of blood upon his shirt-bosom! Dead, but with open eyes! He taints the whole house, as I remember it. I could never flourish there, nor be happy, nor do nor enjoy what God meant me to do and enjoy.”

“Wouldn't you?” exclaimed Clifford, with remarkable energy. “It’s as obvious to me as sunshine—if there were any in the sky—that the biggest obstacles to human happiness and progress are these piles of bricks and stones, held together with mortar, or cut timber, nailed together with spikes, which people painfully create for their own misery, and call them a house and home! The soul needs fresh air; a wide expanse and frequent change of it. Toxic influences, in countless forms, gather around fireplaces and ruin the lives of families. There’s no atmosphere more unhealthy than that of an old home, poisoned by deceased ancestors and relatives. I speak from experience. There’s a house I remember well—one of those peaked-gable (there are seven of them), multi-storied buildings you occasionally see in our older towns—a rusty, rickety, creaky, dry-rotted, dingy, dark, and miserable old dungeon, with an arched window over the porch, and a little shop door on one side, and a big, gloomy elm in front of it! Now, whenever my thoughts drift back to this seven-gabled mansion (the fact is so peculiar that I must mention it), I immediately envision an elderly man, with an exceptionally stern face, sitting in an oak armchair, dead—stone dead—with a gruesome stain of blood on his shirt! Dead, but with open eyes! He taints the whole house, as I recall it. I could never thrive there, nor be happy, nor do or enjoy what God intended for me to do and enjoy.”

His face darkened, and seemed to contract, and shrivel itself up, and wither into age.

His face darkened, seemed to tighten, and shrank, as if it was wilting with age.

“Never, sir!” he repeated. “I could never draw cheerful breath there!”

“Never, sir!” he repeated. “I could never breathe freely there!”

“I should think not,” said the old gentleman, eyeing Clifford earnestly, and rather apprehensively. “I should conceive not, sir, with that notion in your head!”

“I don't think so,” said the old gentleman, looking at Clifford intently and somewhat nervously. “I can't imagine, sir, with that idea in your head!”

“Surely not,” continued Clifford; “and it were a relief to me if that house could be torn down, or burnt up, and so the earth be rid of it, and grass be sown abundantly over its foundation. Not that I should ever visit its site again! for, sir, the farther I get away from it, the more does the joy, the lightsome freshness, the heart-leap, the intellectual dance, the youth, in short,—yes, my youth, my youth!—the more does it come back to me. No longer ago than this morning, I was old. I remember looking in the glass, and wondering at my own gray hair, and the wrinkles, many and deep, right across my brow, and the furrows down my cheeks, and the prodigious trampling of crow’s-feet about my temples! It was too soon! I could not bear it! Age had no right to come! I had not lived! But now do I look old? If so, my aspect belies me strangely; for—a great weight being off my mind—I feel in the very heyday of my youth, with the world and my best days before me!”

“Definitely not,” continued Clifford. “I would be relieved if that house could just be torn down or burned to the ground, and the land completely cleared for fresh grass. Not that I’d ever want to go back there! Because, sir, the farther I get away from it, the more the joy, the lightness, the excitement, the intellectual buzz, the youth—yes, my youth, my youth!—returns to me. Just this morning, I felt old. I remember looking in the mirror and being shocked at my gray hair, the deep wrinkles across my forehead, the lines down my cheeks, and the numerous crow’s feet around my temples! It was too soon! I couldn’t stand it! Age had no right to show up! I hadn’t really lived yet! But do I look old now? If so, my appearance is deceiving; because—with a huge weight lifted off my mind—I feel like I’m in the prime of my youth, with the world and my best days ahead of me!”

“I trust you may find it so,” said the old gentleman, who seemed rather embarrassed, and desirous of avoiding the observation which Clifford’s wild talk drew on them both. “You have my best wishes for it.”

“I hope you find it that way,” said the old gentleman, who looked a bit embarrassed and wanted to steer clear of the attention that Clifford’s wild talk brought to both of them. “You have my best wishes for it.”

“For Heaven’s sake, dear Clifford, be quiet!” whispered his sister. “They think you mad.”

“For heaven's sake, dear Clifford, be quiet!” his sister whispered. “They think you’re crazy.”

“Be quiet yourself, Hepzibah!” returned her brother. “No matter what they think! I am not mad. For the first time in thirty years my thoughts gush up and find words ready for them. I must talk, and I will!”

“Be quiet yourself, Hepzibah!” her brother shot back. “It doesn’t matter what they think! I’m not crazy. For the first time in thirty years, my thoughts are flowing out and I have the words to express them. I need to talk, and I will!”

He turned again towards the old gentleman, and renewed the conversation.

He turned back to the old man and continued the conversation.

“Yes, my dear sir,” said he, “it is my firm belief and hope that these terms of roof and hearth-stone, which have so long been held to embody something sacred, are soon to pass out of men’s daily use, and be forgotten. Just imagine, for a moment, how much of human evil will crumble away, with this one change! What we call real estate—the solid ground to build a house on—is the broad foundation on which nearly all the guilt of this world rests. A man will commit almost any wrong,—he will heap up an immense pile of wickedness, as hard as granite, and which will weigh as heavily upon his soul, to eternal ages,—only to build a great, gloomy, dark-chambered mansion, for himself to die in, and for his posterity to be miserable in. He lays his own dead corpse beneath the underpinning, as one may say, and hangs his frowning picture on the wall, and, after thus converting himself into an evil destiny, expects his remotest great-grandchildren to be happy there. I do not speak wildly. I have just such a house in my mind’s eye!”

“Yes, my dear sir,” he said, “I truly believe and hope that these terms of home and shelter, which have long been seen as something sacred, will soon fade from everyday use and be forgotten. Just think for a moment about how much human evil will disappear with this one change! What we call real estate—the solid ground for building a house—is the broad foundation on which almost all the guilt in this world rests. A person will commit almost any wrongdoing—he will accumulate an enormous amount of wickedness, as solid as granite, which will weigh heavily on his soul for eternity—just to create a grand, dark, chamber-filled mansion, where he will die and his descendants will suffer. He buries his own lifeless body beneath the foundation, so to speak, and hangs his scowling portrait on the wall, and after turning himself into a source of misfortune, expects his distant great-grandchildren to find happiness there. I’m not speaking wildly. I have just such a house in my mind!”

“Then, sir,” said the old gentleman, getting anxious to drop the subject, “you are not to blame for leaving it.”

“Then, sir,” said the old gentleman, eager to change the topic, “you’re not at fault for leaving it.”

“Within the lifetime of the child already born,” Clifford went on, “all this will be done away. The world is growing too ethereal and spiritual to bear these enormities a great while longer. To me, though, for a considerable period of time, I have lived chiefly in retirement, and know less of such things than most men,—even to me, the harbingers of a better era are unmistakable. Mesmerism, now! Will that effect nothing, think you, towards purging away the grossness out of human life?”

“Within the lifetime of the child already born,” Clifford continued, “all of this will be gone. The world is becoming too ethereal and spiritual to tolerate these extremes for much longer. For a long time, I have mostly lived in seclusion and know less about such things than most people—even I can clearly see the signs of a better era coming. Mesmerism, now! Do you think it won’t do anything to help eliminate the coarseness from human life?”

“All a humbug!” growled the old gentleman.

“All a scam!” grumbled the old man.

“These rapping spirits, that little Phœbe told us of, the other day,” said Clifford,—“what are these but the messengers of the spiritual world, knocking at the door of substance? And it shall be flung wide open!”

“These rapping spirits that little Phoebe told us about the other day,” said Clifford, “what are they other than messengers from the spiritual world, knocking at the door of reality? And it will be thrown wide open!”

“A humbug, again!” cried the old gentleman, growing more and more testy at these glimpses of Clifford’s metaphysics. “I should like to rap with a good stick on the empty pates of the dolts who circulate such nonsense!”

“A scam, again!” shouted the old man, getting more and more irritated by these hints of Clifford’s philosophy. “I would love to knock some sense into the empty heads of the fools who spread such nonsense!”

“Then there is electricity,—the demon, the angel, the mighty physical power, the all-pervading intelligence!” exclaimed Clifford. “Is that a humbug, too? Is it a fact—or have I dreamt it—that, by means of electricity, the world of matter has become a great nerve, vibrating thousands of miles in a breathless point of time? Rather, the round globe is a vast head, a brain, instinct with intelligence! Or, shall we say, it is itself a thought, nothing but thought, and no longer the substance which we deemed it!”

“Then there’s electricity—the demon, the angel, the incredible physical force, the all-encompassing intelligence!” exclaimed Clifford. “Is that just nonsense, too? Is it real—or have I imagined it—that, through electricity, the physical world has turned into a massive nerve, vibrating thousands of miles in an instant? Instead, the whole planet is like a huge head, a brain full of intelligence! Or should we say it's just a concept, nothing but thought, and no longer the solid matter we once believed it to be?”

“If you mean the telegraph,” said the old gentleman, glancing his eye toward its wire, alongside the rail-track, “it is an excellent thing,—that is, of course, if the speculators in cotton and politics don’t get possession of it. A great thing, indeed, sir, particularly as regards the detection of bank-robbers and murderers.”

“If you’re talking about the telegraph,” said the old gentleman, looking over at its wire next to the train tracks, “it’s a fantastic invention—unless, of course, the cotton and politics speculators take control of it. It’s truly remarkable, especially for catching bank robbers and murderers.”

“I don’t quite like it, in that point of view,” replied Clifford. “A bank-robber, and what you call a murderer, likewise, has his rights, which men of enlightened humanity and conscience should regard in so much the more liberal spirit, because the bulk of society is prone to controvert their existence. An almost spiritual medium, like the electric telegraph, should be consecrated to high, deep, joyful, and holy missions. Lovers, day by day—hour by hour, if so often moved to do it,—might send their heart-throbs from Maine to Florida, with some such words as these ‘I love you forever!’—‘My heart runs over with love!’—‘I love you more than I can!’ and, again, at the next message ‘I have lived an hour longer, and love you twice as much!’ Or, when a good man has departed, his distant friend should be conscious of an electric thrill, as from the world of happy spirits, telling him ‘Your dear friend is in bliss!’ Or, to an absent husband, should come tidings thus ‘An immortal being, of whom you are the father, has this moment come from God!’ and immediately its little voice would seem to have reached so far, and to be echoing in his heart. But for these poor rogues, the bank-robbers,—who, after all, are about as honest as nine people in ten, except that they disregard certain formalities, and prefer to transact business at midnight rather than ’Change-hours,—and for these murderers, as you phrase it, who are often excusable in the motives of their deed, and deserve to be ranked among public benefactors, if we consider only its result,—for unfortunate individuals like these, I really cannot applaud the enlistment of an immaterial and miraculous power in the universal world-hunt at their heels!”

“I don’t quite agree with that perspective,” Clifford replied. “A bank robber, and what you call a murderer, also has his rights, which people of enlightened compassion and conscience should view more liberally, especially since the majority of society tends to dispute their existence. A medium almost spiritual, like the electric telegraph, should be dedicated to noble, profound, joyful, and holy purposes. Lovers, day by day—hour by hour, if they feel called to do so—might send their heartbeats from Maine to Florida, using messages like ‘I love you forever!’—‘My heart is overflowing with love!’—‘I love you more than I can express!’ and then with the next message, ‘I’ve lived an hour longer, and I love you twice as much!’ Or, when a good man has passed away, his distant friend should feel an electric thrill, as though from the world of happy spirits, telling him, ‘Your dear friend is in bliss!’ Or, to an absent husband, the message might come, ‘An immortal being, of whom you are the father, has just come from God!’ and immediately it would seem as though that little voice had traveled far and was echoing in his heart. But for these poor outlaws, the bank robbers—who, after all, are about as honest as nine out of ten people, except that they ignore certain formalities and prefer to conduct business at midnight instead of during normal hours—and for these murderers, as you put it, who are often justified in their motives and deserve to be seen as public benefactors if we consider only the outcome— for unfortunate individuals like these, I really can’t support the enlistment of an immaterial and miraculous force in the universal hunt that's on their heels!”

“You can’t, hey?” cried the old gentleman, with a hard look.

“You can’t, can you?” exclaimed the old man, with a stern expression.

“Positively, no!” answered Clifford. “It puts them too miserably at disadvantage. For example, sir, in a dark, low, cross-beamed, panelled room of an old house, let us suppose a dead man, sitting in an arm-chair, with a blood-stain on his shirt-bosom,—and let us add to our hypothesis another man, issuing from the house, which he feels to be over-filled with the dead man’s presence,—and let us lastly imagine him fleeing, Heaven knows whither, at the speed of a hurricane, by railroad! Now, sir, if the fugitive alight in some distant town, and find all the people babbling about that self-same dead man, whom he has fled so far to avoid the sight and thought of, will you not allow that his natural rights have been infringed? He has been deprived of his city of refuge, and, in my humble opinion, has suffered infinite wrong!”

“Definitely not!” replied Clifford. “It puts them at a huge disadvantage. For example, imagine a dark, low, cross-beamed, panelled room in an old house, where there’s a dead man sitting in an armchair with a bloodstain on his shirt. Now, let's add another guy who is coming out of the house, feeling overwhelmed by the dead man's presence, and then picture him fleeing, who knows where, as fast as a hurricane, by train! If he arrives in some far-off town and finds everyone talking about that very dead man he tried so hard to escape, wouldn’t you agree that his basic rights have been violated? He’s been denied his safe place, and, in my opinion, he has been wronged beyond measure!”

“You are a strange man; Sir!” said the old gentleman, bringing his gimlet-eye to a point on Clifford, as if determined to bore right into him. “I can’t see through you!”

“You're a strange guy, sir!” said the old gentleman, narrowing his sharp gaze at Clifford, as if he was determined to see right through him. “I can't figure you out!”

“No, I’ll be bound you can’t!” cried Clifford, laughing. “And yet, my dear sir, I am as transparent as the water of Maule’s well! But come, Hepzibah! We have flown far enough for once. Let us alight, as the birds do, and perch ourselves on the nearest twig, and consult wither we shall fly next!”

“No, I bet you can't!” cried Clifford, laughing. “And yet, my dear sir, I’m as clear as the water from Maule’s well! But come on, Hepzibah! We've drifted far enough for now. Let's land, like the birds do, and sit on the nearest branch, and decide where we should go next!”

Just then, as it happened, the train reached a solitary way-station. Taking advantage of the brief pause, Clifford left the car, and drew Hepzibah along with him. A moment afterwards, the train—with all the life of its interior, amid which Clifford had made himself so conspicuous an object—was gliding away in the distance, and rapidly lessening to a point which, in another moment, vanished. The world had fled away from these two wanderers. They gazed drearily about them. At a little distance stood a wooden church, black with age, and in a dismal state of ruin and decay, with broken windows, a great rift through the main body of the edifice, and a rafter dangling from the top of the square tower. Farther off was a farm-house, in the old style, as venerably black as the church, with a roof sloping downward from the three-story peak, to within a man’s height of the ground. It seemed uninhabited. There were the relics of a wood-pile, indeed, near the door, but with grass sprouting up among the chips and scattered logs. The small rain-drops came down aslant; the wind was not turbulent, but sullen, and full of chilly moisture.

Just then, as it happened, the train reached a lonely stop. Taking advantage of the brief pause, Clifford left the car and pulled Hepzibah along with him. A moment later, the train—with all the energy of its interior, where Clifford had made himself so noticeable—was gliding away in the distance, quickly shrinking to a point that, in another moment, disappeared. The world had slipped away from these two travelers. They looked around bleakly. A short distance away stood an old wooden church, black with age, in a sad state of disrepair, with broken windows, a large crack running through the main part of the building, and a rafter hanging from the top of the square tower. Further off was a farmhouse, in a traditional style, as aged and black as the church, with a roof sloping down from the three-story peak to just above a man's height. It looked unoccupied. There were remnants of a woodpile near the door, but grass was growing up among the chips and scattered logs. The small raindrops fell at an angle; the wind wasn't fierce, but gloomy and heavy with moisture.

Clifford shivered from head to foot. The wild effervescence of his mood—which had so readily supplied thoughts, fantasies, and a strange aptitude of words, and impelled him to talk from the mere necessity of giving vent to this bubbling-up gush of ideas had entirely subsided. A powerful excitement had given him energy and vivacity. Its operation over, he forthwith began to sink.

Clifford shivered from head to toe. The wild excitement of his mood—which had easily generated thoughts, fantasies, and a peculiar knack for words, and pushed him to speak just to release this overflowing rush of ideas—had completely faded. A strong thrill had given him energy and liveliness. Once that feeling passed, he immediately began to retreat.

“You must take the lead now, Hepzibah!” murmured he, with a torpid and reluctant utterance. “Do with me as you will!” She knelt down upon the platform where they were standing and lifted her clasped hands to the sky. The dull, gray weight of clouds made it invisible; but it was no hour for disbelief,—no juncture this to question that there was a sky above, and an Almighty Father looking from it!

“You need to take charge now, Hepzibah!” he murmured, his voice slow and hesitant. “Do whatever you want with me!” She knelt on the platform where they stood and raised her clasped hands to the sky. The dull, gray clouds obscured it, but this wasn't a time for doubt—now wasn't the moment to question whether there was a sky above and an Almighty Father watching from it!

“O God!”—ejaculated poor, gaunt Hepzibah,—then paused a moment, to consider what her prayer should be,—“O God,—our Father,—are we not thy children? Have mercy on us!”

“O God!” exclaimed poor, thin Hepzibah, then paused for a moment to think about what her prayer should be, “O God, our Father, aren’t we your children? Have mercy on us!”

XVIII.
Governor Pyncheon

Judge Pyncheon, while his two relatives have fled away with such ill-considered haste, still sits in the old parlor, keeping house, as the familiar phrase is, in the absence of its ordinary occupants. To him, and to the venerable House of the Seven Gables, does our story now betake itself, like an owl, bewildered in the daylight, and hastening back to his hollow tree.

Judge Pyncheon, while his two relatives have rushed away in such thoughtless haste, still sits in the old parlor, maintaining the household, as the saying goes, in the absence of its usual residents. To him, and to the venerable House of the Seven Gables, does our story now turn, like an owl, confused in the daylight, racing back to its hollow tree.

The Judge has not shifted his position for a long while now. He has not stirred hand or foot, nor withdrawn his eyes so much as a hair’s-breadth from their fixed gaze towards the corner of the room, since the footsteps of Hepzibah and Clifford creaked along the passage, and the outer door was closed cautiously behind their exit. He holds his watch in his left hand, but clutched in such a manner that you cannot see the dial-plate. How profound a fit of meditation! Or, supposing him asleep, how infantile a quietude of conscience, and what wholesome order in the gastric region, are betokened by slumber so entirely undisturbed with starts, cramp, twitches, muttered dreamtalk, trumpet-blasts through the nasal organ, or any slightest irregularity of breath! You must hold your own breath, to satisfy yourself whether he breathes at all. It is quite inaudible. You hear the ticking of his watch; his breath you do not hear. A most refreshing slumber, doubtless! And yet, the Judge cannot be asleep. His eyes are open! A veteran politician, such as he, would never fall asleep with wide-open eyes, lest some enemy or mischief-maker, taking him thus at unawares, should peep through these windows into his consciousness, and make strange discoveries among the reminiscences, projects, hopes, apprehensions, weaknesses, and strong points, which he has heretofore shared with nobody. A cautious man is proverbially said to sleep with one eye open. That may be wisdom. But not with both; for this were heedlessness! No, no! Judge Pyncheon cannot be asleep.

The Judge hasn’t moved in a long time. He hasn’t stirred a hand or foot, nor has he shifted his gaze even slightly from where it’s fixed at the corner of the room since Hepzibah and Clifford’s footsteps creaked along the hallway, and the outer door was quietly closed behind them. He’s holding his watch in his left hand, but in such a way that you can’t see the face. What a deep state of reflection! Or, if he’s asleep, what an innocent peace of mind, and what a healthy state in his stomach, indicated by slumber so completely undisturbed by starts, cramps, twitches, mumbling in dreams, snoring, or any slight irregularity in his breathing! You have to hold your breath to check if he’s breathing at all. It’s completely silent. You can hear the ticking of his watch, but not his breathing. He must be having a very refreshing sleep! And yet, the Judge can’t be asleep. His eyes are open! A seasoned politician like him would never fall asleep with his eyes wide open, for fear that some enemy or troublemaker would take advantage of his vulnerability, peeking into his mind and uncovering secrets among the memories, plans, hopes, fears, weaknesses, and strengths that he has never shared with anyone. Cautious people are said to sleep with one eye open. That might be wise. But not with both; that would be careless! No, no! Judge Pyncheon can’t be asleep.

It is odd, however, that a gentleman so burdened with engagements,—and noted, too, for punctuality,—should linger thus in an old lonely mansion, which he has never seemed very fond of visiting. The oaken chair, to be sure, may tempt him with its roominess. It is, indeed, a spacious, and, allowing for the rude age that fashioned it, a moderately easy seat, with capacity enough, at all events, and offering no restraint to the Judge’s breadth of beam. A bigger man might find ample accommodation in it. His ancestor, now pictured upon the wall, with all his English beef about him, used hardly to present a front extending from elbow to elbow of this chair, or a base that would cover its whole cushion. But there are better chairs than this,—mahogany, black walnut, rosewood, spring-seated and damask-cushioned, with varied slopes, and innumerable artifices to make them easy, and obviate the irksomeness of too tame an ease,—a score of such might be at Judge Pyncheon’s service. Yes! in a score of drawing-rooms he would be more than welcome. Mamma would advance to meet him, with outstretched hand; the virgin daughter, elderly as he has now got to be,—an old widower, as he smilingly describes himself,—would shake up the cushion for the Judge, and do her pretty utmost to make him comfortable. For the Judge is a prosperous man. He cherishes his schemes, moreover, like other people, and reasonably brighter than most others; or did so, at least, as he lay abed this morning, in an agreeable half-drowse, planning the business of the day, and speculating on the probabilities of the next fifteen years. With his firm health, and the little inroad that age has made upon him, fifteen years or twenty—yes, or perhaps five-and-twenty!—are no more than he may fairly call his own. Five-and-twenty years for the enjoyment of his real estate in town and country, his railroad, bank, and insurance shares, his United States stock,—his wealth, in short, however invested, now in possession, or soon to be acquired; together with the public honors that have fallen upon him, and the weightier ones that are yet to fall! It is good! It is excellent! It is enough!

It's strange, though, that a man so busy with commitments—and known for being punctual—would hang around an old, lonely mansion that he doesn’t seem to care much for visiting. Sure, the oaken chair might draw him in with its spaciousness. It is, indeed, a roomy seat, and considering the rough times it was made in, it's fairly comfortable, with enough room for the Judge’s bulk. A bigger man could fit in it just fine. His ancestor, now painted on the wall, with all his English beef, barely took up the space from elbow to elbow of this chair, nor did he have a base that filled its entire cushion. But there are much better chairs than this—made of mahogany, black walnut, or rosewood, with spring seats and damask cushions, varied angles, and countless designs to make them comfortable while avoiding the boredom of being too comfortably lazy—at least twenty of such chairs could be at Judge Pyncheon's disposal. Yes! In numerous drawing-rooms, he would be more than welcome. Mom would come forward to greet him with an outstretched hand; the unmarried daughter, now as old as he is—an old widower, as he cheerfully calls himself—would fluff the cushion for the Judge and do her best to make him comfortable. The Judge is a successful man. He has dreams, like everyone else, and his are reasonably brighter than most; or so he did this morning, lying in bed, half-asleep, planning his day and wondering about the possibilities for the next fifteen years. With his good health and the minimal effects of aging, fifteen years, twenty—yes, maybe even twenty-five!—are more than he can reasonably expect to call his own. Twenty-five years to enjoy his real estate in town and country, his railroad, bank, and insurance stocks, his U.S. government bonds—his wealth, no matter how it's invested, whether he already possesses it or is about to acquire it; along with the public honors he has received and the greater ones yet to come his way! It’s good! It’s excellent! It’s enough!

Still lingering in the old chair! If the Judge has a little time to throw away, why does not he visit the insurance office, as is his frequent custom, and sit awhile in one of their leathern-cushioned arm-chairs, listening to the gossip of the day, and dropping some deeply designed chance-word, which will be certain to become the gossip of to-morrow. And have not the bank directors a meeting at which it was the Judge’s purpose to be present, and his office to preside? Indeed they have; and the hour is noted on a card, which is, or ought to be, in Judge Pyncheon’s right vest-pocket. Let him go thither, and loll at ease upon his moneybags! He has lounged long enough in the old chair!

Still hanging out in the old chair! If the Judge has a bit of free time, why doesn’t he stop by the insurance office, as he often does, and relax in one of their leather-cushioned armchairs, listening to the latest gossip and dropping some cleverly chosen remark that will definitely be the talk of tomorrow? And don’t the bank directors have a meeting that the Judge intended to attend, where he’s supposed to be in charge? They do, and the time is marked on a card that should be in Judge Pyncheon’s right vest pocket. He should go there and lounge comfortably on his pile of money! He has wasted enough time in the old chair!

This was to have been such a busy day. In the first place, the interview with Clifford. Half an hour, by the Judge’s reckoning, was to suffice for that; it would probably be less, but—taking into consideration that Hepzibah was first to be dealt with, and that these women are apt to make many words where a few would do much better—it might be safest to allow half an hour. Half an hour? Why, Judge, it is already two hours, by your own undeviatingly accurate chronometer. Glance your eye down at it and see! Ah; he will not give himself the trouble either to bend his head, or elevate his hand, so as to bring the faithful time-keeper within his range of vision! Time, all at once, appears to have become a matter of no moment with the Judge!

This was supposed to be such a busy day. First of all, the interview with Clifford. The Judge figured that half an hour would be enough for that; it might even take less time, but considering that Hepzibah needed to be dealt with first, and these women tend to use a lot of words when just a few would work better—it might be safer to plan for half an hour. Half an hour? Judge, it’s already been two hours, according to your own perfectly accurate watch. Just look at it and see! Ah, he won’t even bother to bend his head or raise his hand to bring the reliable timekeeper into his view! Suddenly, time seems to have become completely unimportant to the Judge!

And has he forgotten all the other items of his memoranda? Clifford’s affair arranged, he was to meet a State Street broker, who has undertaken to procure a heavy percentage, and the best of paper, for a few loose thousands which the Judge happens to have by him, uninvested. The wrinkled note-shaver will have taken his railroad trip in vain. Half an hour later, in the street next to this, there was to be an auction of real estate, including a portion of the old Pyncheon property, originally belonging to Maule’s garden ground. It has been alienated from the Pyncheons these four-score years; but the Judge had kept it in his eye, and had set his heart on reannexing it to the small demesne still left around the Seven Gables; and now, during this odd fit of oblivion, the fatal hammer must have fallen, and transferred our ancient patrimony to some alien possessor. Possibly, indeed, the sale may have been postponed till fairer weather. If so, will the Judge make it convenient to be present, and favor the auctioneer with his bid, on the proximate occasion?

And has he forgotten all the other items on his to-do list? With Clifford’s matter settled, he was supposed to meet a broker on State Street, who agreed to secure a substantial return and high-quality securities for a few extra thousands that the Judge has sitting around, uninvested. The old loan shark will have made his railroad trip for nothing. Half an hour later, just down the street, there was going to be a real estate auction, including part of the old Pyncheon property, which originally belonged to Maule’s garden. It has been separated from the Pyncheons for eighty years; but the Judge had been keeping an eye on it and hoped to bring it back into the small estate still surrounding the Seven Gables. Now, during this strange lapse of memory, the fateful gavel must have fallen and passed our ancient inheritance to someone else. It’s possible that the sale was postponed due to bad weather. If that’s the case, will the Judge make it a point to be there and give the auctioneer his bid at the next opportunity?

The next affair was to buy a horse for his own driving. The one heretofore his favorite stumbled, this very morning, on the road to town, and must be at once discarded. Judge Pyncheon’s neck is too precious to be risked on such a contingency as a stumbling steed. Should all the above business be seasonably got through with, he might attend the meeting of a charitable society; the very name of which, however, in the multiplicity of his benevolence, is quite forgotten; so that this engagement may pass unfulfilled, and no great harm done. And if he have time, amid the press of more urgent matters, he must take measures for the renewal of Mrs. Pyncheon’s tombstone, which, the sexton tells him, has fallen on its marble face, and is cracked quite in twain. She was a praiseworthy woman enough, thinks the Judge, in spite of her nervousness, and the tears that she was so oozy with, and her foolish behavior about the coffee; and as she took her departure so seasonably, he will not grudge the second tombstone. It is better, at least, than if she had never needed any! The next item on his list was to give orders for some fruit-trees, of a rare variety, to be deliverable at his country-seat in the ensuing autumn. Yes, buy them, by all means; and may the peaches be luscious in your mouth, Judge Pyncheon! After this comes something more important. A committee of his political party has besought him for a hundred or two of dollars, in addition to his previous disbursements, towards carrying on the fall campaign. The Judge is a patriot; the fate of the country is staked on the November election; and besides, as will be shadowed forth in another paragraph, he has no trifling stake of his own in the same great game. He will do what the committee asks; nay, he will be liberal beyond their expectations; they shall have a check for five hundred dollars, and more anon, if it be needed. What next? A decayed widow, whose husband was Judge Pyncheon’s early friend, has laid her case of destitution before him, in a very moving letter. She and her fair daughter have scarcely bread to eat. He partly intends to call on her to-day,—perhaps so—perhaps not,—accordingly as he may happen to have leisure, and a small bank-note.

The next task is to buy a horse for his own use. His favorite horse stumbled this very morning on the way to town and needs to be gotten rid of right away. Judge Pyncheon's neck is too valuable to risk on a stumbling horse. If all the above tasks are taken care of in time, he might make it to a meeting of a charitable society; however, he can't even remember the name of it due to his numerous philanthropic commitments, so this arrangement might end up falling through without any real consequences. And if he has time, among more urgent matters, he needs to arrange for the replacement of Mrs. Pyncheon's tombstone, which, according to the sexton, has fallen on its face and is cracked in two. He thinks she was quite a worthy woman, despite her nervousness, her constant tears, and her silly habits regarding coffee. Given that she left this world at a convenient time, he won't mind the expense of a new tombstone. It's certainly better than if she had never needed one! The next item on his list is to order some rare fruit trees to be delivered to his country home this autumn. Yes, buy them for sure; may the peaches be delicious, Judge Pyncheon! Next comes something more pressing. A committee from his political party has asked him for a couple hundred dollars in addition to his past contributions to support the upcoming fall campaign. The Judge is a patriot; the future of the country relies on the November election, and besides, as will be hinted at later, he has a substantial stake in this game. He will give the committee what they’re asking for; in fact, he'll be even more generous than they expect; they’ll receive a check for five hundred dollars, and he may provide more if needed. What comes next? A destitute widow, whose husband was an old friend of Judge Pyncheon, has reached out to him in a very heartfelt letter describing her situation. She and her beautiful daughter barely have enough to eat. He plans to visit her today—maybe yes, maybe no—depending on whether he has the time and a small bill on him.

Another business, which, however, he puts no great weight on (it is well, you know, to be heedful, but not over-anxious, as respects one’s personal health),—another business, then, was to consult his family physician. About what, for Heaven’s sake? Why, it is rather difficult to describe the symptoms. A mere dimness of sight and dizziness of brain, was it?—or disagreeable choking, or stifling, or gurgling, or bubbling, in the region of the thorax, as the anatomists say?—or was it a pretty severe throbbing and kicking of the heart, rather creditable to him than otherwise, as showing that the organ had not been left out of the Judge’s physical contrivance? No matter what it was. The doctor probably would smile at the statement of such trifles to his professional ear; the Judge would smile in his turn; and meeting one another’s eyes, they would enjoy a hearty laugh together! But a fig for medical advice. The Judge will never need it.

Another matter, which he doesn’t think is very important (it's good to be careful, but not overly worried about one’s health), was to check in with his family doctor. About what, for goodness' sake? Well, it’s kind of hard to explain the symptoms. Was it just a slight blurriness in his vision and some dizziness? Or maybe an annoying feeling of choking, or tightness, or gurgling, or bubbling in his chest, as the doctors would say? Or was it a pretty strong heartbeat, which was actually a good sign, showing that his heart was still functioning? It doesn’t really matter what it was. The doctor would probably think it’s funny to hear about such trivial issues; the Judge would chuckle in response, and when their eyes met, they would share a good laugh together! But who needs medical advice? The Judge will never need it.

Pray, pray, Judge Pyncheon, look at your watch, Now! What—not a glance! It is within ten minutes of the dinner hour! It surely cannot have slipped your memory that the dinner of to-day is to be the most important, in its consequences, of all the dinners you ever ate. Yes, precisely the most important; although, in the course of your somewhat eminent career, you have been placed high towards the head of the table, at splendid banquets, and have poured out your festive eloquence to ears yet echoing with Webster’s mighty organ-tones. No public dinner this, however. It is merely a gathering of some dozen or so of friends from several districts of the State; men of distinguished character and influence, assembling, almost casually, at the house of a common friend, likewise distinguished, who will make them welcome to a little better than his ordinary fare. Nothing in the way of French cookery, but an excellent dinner, nevertheless. Real turtle, we understand, and salmon, tautog, canvas-backs, pig, English mutton, good roast beef, or dainties of that serious kind, fit for substantial country gentlemen, as these honorable persons mostly are. The delicacies of the season, in short, and flavored by a brand of old Madeira which has been the pride of many seasons. It is the Juno brand; a glorious wine, fragrant, and full of gentle might; a bottled-up happiness, put by for use; a golden liquid, worth more than liquid gold; so rare and admirable, that veteran wine-bibbers count it among their epochs to have tasted it! It drives away the heart-ache, and substitutes no head-ache! Could the Judge but quaff a glass, it might enable him to shake off the unaccountable lethargy which (for the ten intervening minutes, and five to boot, are already past) has made him such a laggard at this momentous dinner. It would all but revive a dead man! Would you like to sip it now, Judge Pyncheon?

Come on, Judge Pyncheon, check your watch, now! What—not even a glance! It's less than ten minutes to dinner! You surely can't have forgotten that tonight's dinner is going to be the most important one you've ever had. Yes, it's definitely the most important; even though you've sat at the head of the table at fancy banquets and wowed crowds with your speeches, this isn't just another public dinner. It’s just a gathering of about a dozen friends from different parts of the state; men of notable character and influence, casually coming together at the home of a mutual friend, who happens to be distinguished himself and will treat them to something better than his usual meals. No fancy French cooking, but still a great dinner. We're talking real turtle soup, salmon, tautog, canvas-back ducks, pork, English mutton, good roast beef, or hearty dishes like those, ideal for solid country gentlemen, which most of these men are. The finest seasonal delicacies, too, paired with an old Madeira that has been cherished for many years. It's the Juno brand; a fantastic wine, fragrant, and softly powerful; a bottled happiness, saved for special occasions; a golden liquid that's worth more than its weight in gold; so rare and admirable that seasoned wine lovers remember the times they've tasted it! It eases the heartache without bringing on a headache! If the Judge could just have a glass, it might help him shake off the strange lethargy that's made him such a slowpoke at this important dinner (ten minutes have already passed, plus another five!). It could almost revive a dead man! Would you like to have a sip now, Judge Pyncheon?

Alas, this dinner. Have you really forgotten its true object? Then let us whisper it, that you may start at once out of the oaken chair, which really seems to be enchanted, like the one in Comus, or that in which Moll Pitcher imprisoned your own grandfather. But ambition is a talisman more powerful than witchcraft. Start up, then, and, hurrying through the streets, burst in upon the company, that they may begin before the fish is spoiled! They wait for you; and it is little for your interest that they should wait. These gentlemen—need you be told it?—have assembled, not without purpose, from every quarter of the State. They are practised politicians, every man of them, and skilled to adjust those preliminary measures which steal from the people, without its knowledge, the power of choosing its own rulers. The popular voice, at the next gubernatorial election, though loud as thunder, will be really but an echo of what these gentlemen shall speak, under their breath, at your friend’s festive board. They meet to decide upon their candidate. This little knot of subtle schemers will control the convention, and, through it, dictate to the party. And what worthier candidate,—more wise and learned, more noted for philanthropic liberality, truer to safe principles, tried oftener by public trusts, more spotless in private character, with a larger stake in the common welfare, and deeper grounded, by hereditary descent, in the faith and practice of the Puritans,—what man can be presented for the suffrage of the people, so eminently combining all these claims to the chief-rulership as Judge Pyncheon here before us?

Unfortunately, this dinner. Have you really forgotten its real purpose? Then let's quietly remind you, so you can get up from that oak chair, which honestly feels like it's enchanted, just like the one in Comus or the one where Moll Pitcher trapped your grandfather. But ambition is a stronger charm than any witchcraft. So, get up and hurry through the streets, and join the gathering before the fish goes bad! They’re waiting for you; it's not in your best interest for them to wait. These gentlemen—should I even tell you?—have gathered from all over the State with a clear purpose. They are seasoned politicians, every single one, skilled at setting up measures that quietly take away the people's power to choose their own leaders. The popular vote in the next gubernatorial election, no matter how loud it is, will really just reflect what these gentlemen say quietly at your friend’s festive gathering. They are there to decide on their candidate. This small group of clever strategists will control the convention and dictate terms to the party. And what better candidate—more wise and knowledgeable, more recognized for generosity, more aligned with safe principles, more frequently tested in public office, more impeccable in personal character, with a greater stake in the community, and deeply rooted, through family ties, in the beliefs and practices of the Puritans—what man is there who combines all these qualities for the people’s vote as Judge Pyncheon does?

Make haste, then! Do your part! The meed for which you have toiled, and fought, and climbed, and crept, is ready for your grasp! Be present at this dinner!—drink a glass or two of that noble wine!—make your pledges in as low a whisper as you will!—and you rise up from table virtually governor of the glorious old State! Governor Pyncheon of Massachusetts!

Hurry up, then! Do your part! The reward for all your hard work, the fights, the struggles, and the efforts, is ready for you to take! Attend this dinner!—have a glass or two of that fine wine!—make your promises as quietly as you like!—and you’ll get up from the table effectively as the governor of the great old State! Governor Pyncheon of Massachusetts!

And is there no potent and exhilarating cordial in a certainty like this? It has been the grand purpose of half your lifetime to obtain it. Now, when there needs little more than to signify your acceptance, why do you sit so lumpishly in your great-great-grandfather’s oaken chair, as if preferring it to the gubernatorial one? We have all heard of King Log; but, in these jostling times, one of that royal kindred will hardly win the race for an elective chief-magistracy.

And isn't there something powerful and exciting about a certainty like this? You've spent half your life trying to achieve it. Now, when all it takes is to show your acceptance, why are you sitting there slumped in your great-great-grandfather’s wooden chair, as if you’d rather be there than in the governor’s chair? We’ve all heard of King Log; but in these competitive times, someone like that won’t stand a chance in a race for an elected position.

Well; it is absolutely too late for dinner! Turtle, salmon, tautog, woodcock, boiled turkey, South-Down mutton, pig, roast-beef, have vanished, or exist only in fragments, with lukewarm potatoes, and gravies crusted over with cold fat. The Judge, had he done nothing else, would have achieved wonders with his knife and fork. It was he, you know, of whom it used to be said, in reference to his ogre-like appetite, that his Creator made him a great animal, but that the dinner-hour made him a great beast. Persons of his large sensual endowments must claim indulgence, at their feeding-time. But, for once, the Judge is entirely too late for dinner! Too late, we fear, even to join the party at their wine! The guests are warm and merry; they have given up the Judge; and, concluding that the Free-Soilers have him, they will fix upon another candidate. Were our friend now to stalk in among them, with that wide-open stare, at once wild and stolid, his ungenial presence would be apt to change their cheer. Neither would it be seemly in Judge Pyncheon, generally so scrupulous in his attire, to show himself at a dinner-table with that crimson stain upon his shirt-bosom. By the bye, how came it there? It is an ugly sight, at any rate; and the wisest way for the Judge is to button his coat closely over his breast, and, taking his horse and chaise from the livery stable, to make all speed to his own house. There, after a glass of brandy and water, and a mutton-chop, a beefsteak, a broiled fowl, or some such hasty little dinner and supper all in one, he had better spend the evening by the fireside. He must toast his slippers a long while, in order to get rid of the chilliness which the air of this vile old house has sent curdling through his veins.

Well, it’s definitely too late for dinner! Turtle, salmon, tautog, woodcock, boiled turkey, South-Down mutton, pig, and roast beef have all vanished or exist only in bits, accompanied by lukewarm potatoes and gravies hardened with cold fat. The Judge, if he had done nothing else, could have performed wonders with his knife and fork. He was the one, you know, who was often said to have such an ogre-like appetite that his Creator made him a great animal, but the dinner hour turned him into a great beast. People with such enormous appetites deserve some understanding during mealtime. But, for once, the Judge is way too late for dinner! Too late, we fear, even to join the guests for wine! They’re warm and cheerful; they’ve given up on the Judge and, assuming that the Free-Soilers have him, are planning to go with someone else. If our friend were to walk in among them now, with that wide-open stare—both wild and blank—his unwelcoming presence would likely dampen their spirits. It wouldn’t look good for Judge Pyncheon, who is usually so careful about his appearance, to show himself at a dinner table with that crimson stain on his shirt. By the way, how did it get there? It’s an ugly sight, in any case; and the best move for the Judge is to button his coat tightly over his chest, then grab his horse and carriage from the livery stable and head straight home. There, after a glass of brandy and water and a quick meal like a mutton chop, beef steak, or broiled chicken—something simple for dinner and supper all at once—he should spend the evening by the fire. He’ll need to warm his slippers for a while to shake off the chill from the air of this awful old house that has crept into his bones.

Up, therefore, Judge Pyncheon, up! You have lost a day. But to-morrow will be here anon. Will you rise, betimes, and make the most of it? To-morrow. To-morrow! To-morrow. We, that are alive, may rise betimes to-morrow. As for him that has died to-day, his morrow will be the resurrection morn.

Get up, Judge Pyncheon, get up! You’ve wasted a day. But tomorrow will be here soon. Will you get up early and make the most of it? Tomorrow. Tomorrow! Tomorrow. We, who are alive, can get up early tomorrow. For the one who has died today, their tomorrow will be the day of resurrection.

Meanwhile the twilight is glooming upward out of the corners of the room. The shadows of the tall furniture grow deeper, and at first become more definite; then, spreading wider, they lose their distinctness of outline in the dark gray tide of oblivion, as it were, that creeps slowly over the various objects, and the one human figure sitting in the midst of them. The gloom has not entered from without; it has brooded here all day, and now, taking its own inevitable time, will possess itself of everything. The Judge’s face, indeed, rigid and singularly white, refuses to melt into this universal solvent. Fainter and fainter grows the light. It is as if another double-handful of darkness had been scattered through the air. Now it is no longer gray, but sable. There is still a faint appearance at the window; neither a glow, nor a gleam, nor a glimmer,—any phrase of light would express something far brighter than this doubtful perception, or sense, rather, that there is a window there. Has it yet vanished? No!—yes!—not quite! And there is still the swarthy whiteness,—we shall venture to marry these ill-agreeing words,—the swarthy whiteness of Judge Pyncheon’s face. The features are all gone: there is only the paleness of them left. And how looks it now? There is no window! There is no face! An infinite, inscrutable blackness has annihilated sight! Where is our universe? All crumbled away from us; and we, adrift in chaos, may hearken to the gusts of homeless wind, that go sighing and murmuring about in quest of what was once a world!

Meanwhile, the twilight is creeping up from the corners of the room. The shadows of the tall furniture deepen and become more defined at first; then, as they spread wider, they lose their sharp outlines in the dark gray tide of oblivion that slowly washes over everything, including the lone human figure sitting among them. The gloom hasn’t come from outside; it has lingered here all day, and now, taking its time, it will engulf everything. The Judge’s face, however, stiff and unusually white, refuses to dissolve into this all-consuming darkness. The light grows fainter and fainter. It’s as if another handful of darkness has been tossed into the air. Now it’s no longer gray, but black. There’s still a faint hint at the window; it’s neither a glow, nor a gleam, nor a glimmer—any word for light would imply something much brighter than this uncertain perception, or rather, a sense that a window exists there. Has it disappeared? No!—yes!—not quite! And there’s still the dark whiteness—we’ll dare to combine those conflicting words—the dark whiteness of Judge Pyncheon’s face. The features have all faded away; only the pallor remains. And how does it look now? There’s no window! There’s no face! An infinite, unfathomable darkness has erased sight! Where is our universe? All has crumbled away from us, and we, lost in chaos, can only listen to the gusts of homeless wind that sigh and murmur in search of what was once a world!

Is there no other sound? One other, and a fearful one. It is the ticking of the Judge’s watch, which, ever since Hepzibah left the room in search of Clifford, he has been holding in his hand. Be the cause what it may, this little, quiet, never-ceasing throb of Time’s pulse, repeating its small strokes with such busy regularity, in Judge Pyncheon’s motionless hand, has an effect of terror, which we do not find in any other accompaniment of the scene.

Is there no other sound? Yes, one more, and it's a frightening one. It's the ticking of the Judge’s watch, which he has been holding in his hand ever since Hepzibah left the room to look for Clifford. Whatever the reason, this small, quiet, relentless pulse of time, ticking away with such busy regularity in Judge Pyncheon’s still hand, creates a feeling of terror that we don’t get from anything else in the scene.

But, listen! That puff of the breeze was louder. It had a tone unlike the dreary and sullen one which has bemoaned itself, and afflicted all mankind with miserable sympathy, for five days past. The wind has veered about! It now comes boisterously from the northwest, and, taking hold of the aged framework of the Seven Gables, gives it a shake, like a wrestler that would try strength with his antagonist. Another and another sturdy tussle with the blast! The old house creaks again, and makes a vociferous but somewhat unintelligible bellowing in its sooty throat (the big flue, we mean, of its wide chimney), partly in complaint at the rude wind, but rather, as befits their century and a half of hostile intimacy, in tough defiance. A rumbling kind of a bluster roars behind the fire-board. A door has slammed above stairs. A window, perhaps, has been left open, or else is driven in by an unruly gust. It is not to be conceived, before-hand, what wonderful wind-instruments are these old timber mansions, and how haunted with the strangest noises, which immediately begin to sing, and sigh, and sob, and shriek,—and to smite with sledge-hammers, airy but ponderous, in some distant chamber,—and to tread along the entries as with stately footsteps, and rustle up and down the staircase, as with silks miraculously stiff,—whenever the gale catches the house with a window open, and gets fairly into it. Would that we were not an attendant spirit here! It is too awful! This clamor of the wind through the lonely house; the Judge’s quietude, as he sits invisible; and that pertinacious ticking of his watch!

But listen! That gust of wind was louder. It had a sound unlike the dreary and gloomy one that has been lamenting and making everyone feel miserable for the past five days. The wind has changed direction! It's now blowing boisterously from the northwest and shaking the old structure of the Seven Gables, like a wrestler testing his strength against an opponent. Another and another strong clash with the wind! The old house creaks again and lets out a loud but somewhat unclear rumble from its sooty throat (we mean the big flue of its wide chimney), partly complaining about the rude wind but mostly, given their century and a half of tense relationship, defiantly holding its ground. A rumbling kind of bluster roars behind the fireboard. A door has slammed upstairs. A window might have been left open or is being shoved in by a wild gust. It's hard to imagine beforehand what amazing wind instruments these old wooden houses are, and how filled with the strangest noises they become, immediately starting to sing, sigh, sob, and shriek—and to slam down with heavy but airy sounds in some distant room—and to march along the halls with stately footsteps, and rustle up and down the staircase with mysteriously stiff silks—whenever the gale catches the house with a window open and fully enters. If only we weren't a spirit here! It's too terrifying! This noise of the wind through the empty house; the Judge’s stillness as he sits unseen; and that persistent ticking of his watch!

As regards Judge Pyncheon’s invisibility, however, that matter will soon be remedied. The northwest wind has swept the sky clear. The window is distinctly seen. Through its panes, moreover, we dimly catch the sweep of the dark, clustering foliage outside, fluttering with a constant irregularity of movement, and letting in a peep of starlight, now here, now there. Oftener than any other object, these glimpses illuminate the Judge’s face. But here comes more effectual light. Observe that silvery dance upon the upper branches of the pear-tree, and now a little lower, and now on the whole mass of boughs, while, through their shifting intricacies, the moonbeams fall aslant into the room. They play over the Judge’s figure and show that he has not stirred throughout the hours of darkness. They follow the shadows, in changeful sport, across his unchanging features. They gleam upon his watch. His grasp conceals the dial-plate,—but we know that the faithful hands have met; for one of the city clocks tells midnight.

Regarding Judge Pyncheon’s invisibility, that issue will soon be resolved. The northwest wind has cleared the sky. The window is clearly visible. Through its panes, we can faintly see the movement of the dark, clustered foliage outside, fluttering irregularly and allowing bits of starlight to peek through, now here, now there. More than any other object, these glimpses illuminate the Judge’s face. But now here comes a stronger light. Look at the silvery dance on the upper branches of the pear tree, now a bit lower, now across the entire mass of branches, while the moonbeams fall at an angle through their shifting patterns into the room. They play over the Judge’s figure, revealing that he hasn’t moved throughout the hours of darkness. They follow the shadows in a playful manner across his unchanging features. They shine on his watch. His hand hides the dial plate—but we know that the hands are aligned; one of the city clocks strikes midnight.

A man of sturdy understanding, like Judge Pyncheon, cares no more for twelve o’clock at night than for the corresponding hour of noon. However just the parallel drawn, in some of the preceding pages, between his Puritan ancestor and himself, it fails in this point. The Pyncheon of two centuries ago, in common with most of his contemporaries, professed his full belief in spiritual ministrations, although reckoning them chiefly of a malignant character. The Pyncheon of to-night, who sits in yonder arm-chair, believes in no such nonsense. Such, at least, was his creed, some few hours since. His hair will not bristle, therefore, at the stories which—in times when chimney-corners had benches in them, where old people sat poking into the ashes of the past, and raking out traditions like live coals—used to be told about this very room of his ancestral house. In fact, these tales are too absurd to bristle even childhood’s hair. What sense, meaning, or moral, for example, such as even ghost-stories should be susceptible of, can be traced in the ridiculous legend, that, at midnight, all the dead Pyncheons are bound to assemble in this parlor? And, pray, for what? Why, to see whether the portrait of their ancestor still keeps its place upon the wall, in compliance with his testamentary directions! Is it worth while to come out of their graves for that?

A man of solid understanding, like Judge Pyncheon, cares no more for midnight than for noon. While the comparison made earlier between him and his Puritan ancestor is valid, it falls short here. The Pyncheon from two centuries ago, like most of his peers, fully believed in spiritual beings, though he mostly saw them as evil. The Pyncheon of tonight, sitting in that armchair, doesn't buy into such nonsense. At least, that was his belief a few hours ago. His hair won't stand on end at the stories that, back when old folks sat by the fireplace digging through the ashes of the past and pulling out traditions like hot coals, were told about this very room in his ancestral house. In fact, these tales are too silly to even frighten a child. What sense, meaning, or lesson, such as even ghost stories should have, can be found in the absurd legend that at midnight, all the dead Pyncheons must gather in this parlor? And, why? To check if their ancestor's portrait is still hanging on the wall, as per his last wishes! Is it really worth getting out of their graves for that?

We are tempted to make a little sport with the idea. Ghost-stories are hardly to be treated seriously any longer. The family-party of the defunct Pyncheons, we presume, goes off in this wise.

We’re inclined to have a bit of fun with the idea. Ghost stories really aren’t taken seriously anymore. The family gathering of the late Pyncheons, we imagine, goes something like this.

First comes the ancestor himself, in his black cloak, steeple-hat, and trunk-breeches, girt about the waist with a leathern belt, in which hangs his steel-hilted sword; he has a long staff in his hand, such as gentlemen in advanced life used to carry, as much for the dignity of the thing as for the support to be derived from it. He looks up at the portrait; a thing of no substance, gazing at its own painted image! All is safe. The picture is still there. The purpose of his brain has been kept sacred thus long after the man himself has sprouted up in graveyard grass. See! he lifts his ineffectual hand, and tries the frame. All safe! But is that a smile?—is it not, rather a frown of deadly import, that darkens over the shadow of his features? The stout Colonel is dissatisfied! So decided is his look of discontent as to impart additional distinctness to his features; through which, nevertheless, the moonlight passes, and flickers on the wall beyond. Something has strangely vexed the ancestor! With a grim shake of the head, he turns away. Here come other Pyncheons, the whole tribe, in their half a dozen generations, jostling and elbowing one another, to reach the picture. We behold aged men and grandames, a clergyman with the Puritanic stiffness still in his garb and mien, and a red-coated officer of the old French war; and there comes the shop-keeping Pyncheon of a century ago, with the ruffles turned back from his wrists; and there the periwigged and brocaded gentleman of the artist’s legend, with the beautiful and pensive Alice, who brings no pride out of her virgin grave. All try the picture-frame. What do these ghostly people seek? A mother lifts her child, that his little hands may touch it! There is evidently a mystery about the picture, that perplexes these poor Pyncheons when they ought to be at rest. In a corner, meanwhile, stands the figure of an elderly man, in a leathern jerkin and breeches, with a carpenter’s rule sticking out of his side pocket; he points his finger at the bearded Colonel and his descendants, nodding, jeering, mocking, and finally bursting into obstreperous, though inaudible laughter.

First comes the ancestor himself, wearing his black cloak, tall hat, and trunk-breeches, held up by a leather belt from which hangs his steel-hilted sword. He carries a long staff, like gentlemen of old age used to, both for dignity and support. He looks up at the portrait; a mere shadow, staring at its own painted image! All is secure. The picture is still there. The intent of his mind has remained preserved long after the man himself has become part of the graveyard grass. Look! he raises his useless hand and tests the frame. All secure! But is that a smile?—or is it more like a grimace of deep annoyance shadowing his features? The stout Colonel is clearly unhappy! His look of discontent sharpens the outline of his face; yet the moonlight still passes through, flickering on the wall beyond. Something has unusually troubled the ancestor! With a grim shake of his head, he turns away. Here come the other Pyncheons, the whole clan, through their six generations, pushing and shoving one another to reach the painting. We see elderly men and women, a clergyman with that old Puritan stiffness in his clothing and demeanor, and a red-coated officer from the old French war; and there’s the shopkeeper Pyncheon from a century ago, with his cuffs turned back; and over there is the periwigged and brocade gentleman of the artist’s tale, alongside the beautiful and thoughtful Alice, who brings no pride from her virgin grave. They all test the picture frame. What do these ghostly figures want? One mother lifts her child so that his little hands can touch it! There’s clearly a mystery surrounding the picture that troubles these poor Pyncheons when they should be resting. Meanwhile, in a corner stands an elderly man, dressed in a leather vest and breeches, with a carpenter’s ruler sticking out of his side pocket; he points at the bearded Colonel and his descendants, nods, jeers, mocks, and finally bursts into loud, though silent, laughter.

Indulging our fancy in this freak, we have partly lost the power of restraint and guidance. We distinguish an unlooked-for figure in our visionary scene. Among those ancestral people there is a young man, dressed in the very fashion of to-day: he wears a dark frock-coat, almost destitute of skirts, gray pantaloons, gaiter boots of patent leather, and has a finely wrought gold chain across his breast, and a little silver-headed whalebone stick in his hand. Were we to meet this figure at noonday, we should greet him as young Jaffrey Pyncheon, the Judge’s only surviving child, who has been spending the last two years in foreign travel. If still in life, how comes his shadow hither? If dead, what a misfortune! The old Pyncheon property, together with the great estate acquired by the young man’s father, would devolve on whom? On poor, foolish Clifford, gaunt Hepzibah, and rustic little Phœbe! But another and a greater marvel greets us! Can we believe our eyes? A stout, elderly gentleman has made his appearance; he has an aspect of eminent respectability, wears a black coat and pantaloons, of roomy width, and might be pronounced scrupulously neat in his attire, but for a broad crimson stain across his snowy neckcloth and down his shirt-bosom. Is it the Judge, or no? How can it be Judge Pyncheon? We discern his figure, as plainly as the flickering moonbeams can show us anything, still seated in the oaken chair! Be the apparition whose it may, it advances to the picture, seems to seize the frame, tries to peep behind it, and turns away, with a frown as black as the ancestral one.

Indulging our imagination in this bizarre scene, we've partly lost our ability to hold back and guide ourselves. We notice an unexpected figure in our vision. Among those ancient people is a young man, dressed in today's style: he wears a dark frock coat with almost no skirt, gray pants, patent leather boots, and a finely crafted gold chain across his chest, holding a little silver-headed whalebone cane in his hand. If we were to see him at noon, we would greet him as young Jaffrey Pyncheon, the Judge’s only surviving child, who has spent the last two years traveling abroad. If he's still alive, why is his shadow here? If he's dead, what a tragedy! The old Pyncheon property, along with the vast estate owned by the young man’s father, would go to whom? To poor, foolish Clifford, gaunt Hepzibah, and little rustic Phœbe! But another and an even greater wonder confronts us! Can we trust our eyes? A stout, elderly gentleman has appeared; he looks very respectable, wearing a black coat and roomy pants, and he seems impeccably neat in his attire, except for a broad crimson stain across his pristine neckcloth and down his shirt. Is it the Judge, or not? How could it be Judge Pyncheon? We can see his figure, as clearly as the flickering moonlight allows, still sitting in the oak chair! Whoever this apparition is, it moves toward the picture, seems to grasp the frame, tries to look behind it, and turns away with a frown as dark as the ancestral one.

The fantastic scene just hinted at must by no means be considered as forming an actual portion of our story. We were betrayed into this brief extravagance by the quiver of the moonbeams; they dance hand-in-hand with shadows, and are reflected in the looking-glass, which, you are aware, is always a kind of window or doorway into the spiritual world. We needed relief, moreover, from our too long and exclusive contemplation of that figure in the chair. This wild wind, too, has tossed our thoughts into strange confusion, but without tearing them away from their one determined centre. Yonder leaden Judge sits immovably upon our soul. Will he never stir again? We shall go mad unless he stirs! You may the better estimate his quietude by the fearlessness of a little mouse, which sits on its hind legs, in a streak of moonlight, close by Judge Pyncheon’s foot, and seems to meditate a journey of exploration over this great black bulk. Ha! what has startled the nimble little mouse? It is the visage of grimalkin, outside of the window, where he appears to have posted himself for a deliberate watch. This grimalkin has a very ugly look. Is it a cat watching for a mouse, or the devil for a human soul? Would we could scare him from the window!

The amazing scene just mentioned should definitely not be seen as part of our story. We got carried away by the flickering moonlight; it dances in tandem with shadows and is reflected in the mirror, which, as you know, is always a sort of window or doorway into the spiritual realm. We also needed a break from our long and intense focus on that figure in the chair. This wild wind has thrown our thoughts into a strange mess, but they remain anchored to a single point. That heavy Judge looms immovably over our soul. Will he ever move again? We’ll go insane if he doesn’t! You can better appreciate his stillness by watching a little mouse, which sits up on its hind legs in a beam of moonlight, right by Judge Pyncheon’s foot, seemingly contemplating an adventurous exploration of this massive dark figure. Ha! What startled the quick little mouse? It’s the face of a cat outside the window, where it seems to be lurking for a careful watch. This cat looks very menacing. Is it just a cat waiting for a mouse, or something more sinister waiting for a human soul? If only we could scare it away from the window!

Thank Heaven, the night is well-nigh past! The moonbeams have no longer so silvery a gleam, nor contrast so strongly with the blackness of the shadows among which they fall. They are paler now; the shadows look gray, not black. The boisterous wind is hushed. What is the hour? Ah! the watch has at last ceased to tick; for the Judge’s forgetful fingers neglected to wind it up, as usual, at ten o’clock, being half an hour or so before his ordinary bedtime,—and it has run down, for the first time in five years. But the great world-clock of Time still keeps its beat. The dreary night—for, oh, how dreary seems its haunted waste, behind us!—gives place to a fresh, transparent, cloudless morn. Blessed, blessed radiance! The daybeam—even what little of it finds its way into this always dusky parlor—seems part of the universal benediction, annulling evil, and rendering all goodness possible, and happiness attainable. Will Judge Pyncheon now rise up from his chair? Will he go forth, and receive the early sunbeams on his brow? Will he begin this new day,—which God has smiled upon, and blessed, and given to mankind,—will he begin it with better purposes than the many that have been spent amiss? Or are all the deep-laid schemes of yesterday as stubborn in his heart, and as busy in his brain, as ever?

Thank goodness, the night is almost over! The moonlight doesn’t shine as brightly anymore and doesn’t contrast as much with the darkness of the shadows where it falls. It’s paler now; the shadows look gray instead of black. The loud wind has calmed down. What time is it? Ah! The watch has finally stopped ticking because the Judge’s forgetful fingers didn’t wind it up, as usual, at ten o’clock, which is about half an hour before he normally goes to bed—and it has run down for the first time in five years. But the great world clock of Time still keeps ticking. The gloomy night—oh, how dreary it seems, with its haunted emptiness behind us!—gives way to a new, clear, cloudless morning. Blessed, blessed light! The sunlight—even the little bit that makes its way into this always dim parlor—feels like part of a universal blessing, washing away evil and making all goodness possible, and happiness attainable. Will Judge Pyncheon now get up from his chair? Will he step outside and feel the morning sun on his face? Will he start this new day—which God has smiled upon, blessed, and given to humanity—with better intentions than the many that have gone to waste? Or are all the deep plans from yesterday still firmly rooted in his heart and as active in his mind as ever?

In this latter case, there is much to do. Will the Judge still insist with Hepzibah on the interview with Clifford? Will he buy a safe, elderly gentleman’s horse? Will he persuade the purchaser of the old Pyncheon property to relinquish the bargain in his favor? Will he see his family physician, and obtain a medicine that shall preserve him, to be an honor and blessing to his race, until the utmost term of patriarchal longevity? Will Judge Pyncheon, above all, make due apologies to that company of honorable friends, and satisfy them that his absence from the festive board was unavoidable, and so fully retrieve himself in their good opinion that he shall yet be Governor of Massachusetts? And all these great purposes accomplished, will he walk the streets again, with that dog-day smile of elaborate benevolence, sultry enough to tempt flies to come and buzz in it? Or will he, after the tomb-like seclusion of the past day and night, go forth a humbled and repentant man, sorrowful, gentle, seeking no profit, shrinking from worldly honor, hardly daring to love God, but bold to love his fellow man, and to do him what good he may? Will he bear about with him,—no odious grin of feigned benignity, insolent in its pretence, and loathsome in its falsehood,—but the tender sadness of a contrite heart, broken, at last, beneath its own weight of sin? For it is our belief, whatever show of honor he may have piled upon it, that there was heavy sin at the base of this man’s being.

In this case, there’s a lot to consider. Will the Judge still insist that Hepzibah meet with Clifford? Will he buy a reliable, older gentleman’s horse? Will he convince the buyer of the old Pyncheon property to back out of the deal in his favor? Will he see his family doctor and get a medicine that will keep him alive, being an honor and blessing to his lineage, until he reaches the maximum age possible? Will Judge Pyncheon, most importantly, apologize to that group of honorable friends and assure them that his absence from the celebration was unavoidable, fully redeeming himself in their eyes so that he can still become Governor of Massachusetts? And after achieving all these important goals, will he walk the streets again with that over-the-top smile of false kindness, warm enough to attract flies? Or will he, after the tomb-like isolation of the past day and night, go out as a humbled and repentant man, sorrowful, gentle, seeking no gain, avoiding worldly recognition, hardly daring to love God but brave enough to love his fellow man and do whatever good he can? Will he carry with him—not a distasteful grin of fake kindness, arrogant in its pretense and repulsive in its dishonesty—but the gentle sadness of a remorseful heart, finally broken under the weight of its own sins? For we believe, despite any facade of honor he may have constructed, that there was a deep sin at the core of this man's existence.

Rise up, Judge Pyncheon! The morning sunshine glimmers through the foliage, and, beautiful and holy as it is, shuns not to kindle up your face. Rise up, thou subtle, worldly, selfish, iron-hearted hypocrite, and make thy choice whether still to be subtle, worldly, selfish, iron-hearted, and hypocritical, or to tear these sins out of thy nature, though they bring the lifeblood with them! The Avenger is upon thee! Rise up, before it be too late!

Rise up, Judge Pyncheon! The morning sun shines through the trees, and as beautiful and sacred as it is, it doesn’t hesitate to light up your face. Get up, you cunning, worldly, selfish, cold-hearted hypocrite, and decide whether you want to remain cunning, worldly, selfish, cold-hearted, and hypocritical, or to rid yourself of these sins, even though they’re part of your very being! The Avenger is here! Rise up, before it’s too late!

What! Thou art not stirred by this last appeal? No, not a jot! And there we see a fly,—one of your common house-flies, such as are always buzzing on the window-pane,—which has smelt out Governor Pyncheon, and alights, now on his forehead, now on his chin, and now, Heaven help us! is creeping over the bridge of his nose, towards the would-be chief-magistrate’s wide-open eyes! Canst thou not brush the fly away? Art thou too sluggish? Thou man, that hadst so many busy projects yesterday! Art thou too weak, that wast so powerful? Not brush away a fly? Nay, then, we give thee up!

What! You're not moved by this last appeal? Not at all! And look, there’s a fly—one of those common house-flies that always buzz around the window pane—which has found Governor Pyncheon and is now landing on his forehead, then his chin, and now, oh no! it’s creeping over the bridge of his nose, heading straight for the would-be chief magistrate’s wide-open eyes! Can’t you brush the fly away? Are you too sluggish? You, who had so many plans yesterday! Are you too weak, when you were so powerful? Can’t even swat a fly? Well then, we give up on you!

And hark! the shop-bell rings. After hours like these latter ones, through which we have borne our heavy tale, it is good to be made sensible that there is a living world, and that even this old, lonely mansion retains some manner of connection with it. We breathe more freely, emerging from Judge Pyncheon’s presence into the street before the Seven Gables.

And listen! The shop bell rings. After long hours like these, during which we’ve endured our difficult story, it’s comforting to be reminded that there’s a living world out there and that even this old, lonely house still has some connection to it. We breathe easier as we step out from Judge Pyncheon's presence into the street in front of the Seven Gables.

XIX.
Alice’s Posies

Uncle Venner, trundling a wheelbarrow, was the earliest person stirring in the neighborhood the day after the storm.

Uncle Venner, pushing a wheelbarrow, was the first person up in the neighborhood the day after the storm.

Pyncheon Street, in front of the House of the Seven Gables, was a far pleasanter scene than a by-lane, confined by shabby fences, and bordered with wooden dwellings of the meaner class, could reasonably be expected to present. Nature made sweet amends, that morning, for the five unkindly days which had preceded it. It would have been enough to live for, merely to look up at the wide benediction of the sky, or as much of it as was visible between the houses, genial once more with sunshine. Every object was agreeable, whether to be gazed at in the breadth, or examined more minutely. Such, for example, were the well-washed pebbles and gravel of the sidewalk; even the sky-reflecting pools in the centre of the street; and the grass, now freshly verdant, that crept along the base of the fences, on the other side of which, if one peeped over, was seen the multifarious growth of gardens. Vegetable productions, of whatever kind, seemed more than negatively happy, in the juicy warmth and abundance of their life. The Pyncheon Elm, throughout its great circumference, was all alive, and full of the morning sun and a sweet-tempered little breeze, which lingered within this verdant sphere, and set a thousand leafy tongues a-whispering all at once. This aged tree appeared to have suffered nothing from the gale. It had kept its boughs unshattered, and its full complement of leaves; and the whole in perfect verdure, except a single branch, that, by the earlier change with which the elm-tree sometimes prophesies the autumn, had been transmuted to bright gold. It was like the golden branch that gained Aeneas and the Sibyl admittance into Hades.

Pyncheon Street, in front of the House of the Seven Gables, looked far nicer than a narrow lane surrounded by shabby fences and lined with run-down houses. That morning, nature made up for the five gloomy days that came before. Just looking up at the expansive sky, or what little of it was visible between the buildings, was enough to make it worth being alive, especially with the warmth of the sunshine returning. Everything was pleasing to the eye, whether in broad view or close-up. For instance, there were the well-cleaned pebbles and gravel on the sidewalk, the puddles reflecting the sky in the middle of the street, and the freshly green grass growing along the bases of the fences. If you peeked over, you could see a variety of garden growths on the other side. Plants of every kind seemed to thrive joyfully in the warm and rich abundance of life. The Pyncheon Elm, with its wide branches, was alive and filled with morning sunlight and a gentle breeze that floated through its leafy space, making a thousand leaves whisper all at once. This ancient tree appeared to have weathered the storm without issue. It had kept its branches intact and a full set of leaves, all perfectly green, except for one branch that had turned a bright gold, an early change that elm trees sometimes show as a sign of autumn. It was like the golden branch that allowed Aeneas and the Sibyl entry into Hades.

This one mystic branch hung down before the main entrance of the Seven Gables, so nigh the ground that any passer-by might have stood on tiptoe and plucked it off. Presented at the door, it would have been a symbol of his right to enter, and be made acquainted with all the secrets of the house. So little faith is due to external appearance, that there was really an inviting aspect over the venerable edifice, conveying an idea that its history must be a decorous and happy one, and such as would be delightful for a fireside tale. Its windows gleamed cheerfully in the slanting sunlight. The lines and tufts of green moss, here and there, seemed pledges of familiarity and sisterhood with Nature; as if this human dwelling-place, being of such old date, had established its prescriptive title among primeval oaks and whatever other objects, by virtue of their long continuance, have acquired a gracious right to be. A person of imaginative temperament, while passing by the house, would turn, once and again, and peruse it well: its many peaks, consenting together in the clustered chimney; the deep projection over its basement-story; the arched window, imparting a look, if not of grandeur, yet of antique gentility, to the broken portal over which it opened; the luxuriance of gigantic burdocks, near the threshold; he would note all these characteristics, and be conscious of something deeper than he saw. He would conceive the mansion to have been the residence of the stubborn old Puritan, Integrity, who, dying in some forgotten generation, had left a blessing in all its rooms and chambers, the efficacy of which was to be seen in the religion, honesty, moderate competence, or upright poverty and solid happiness, of his descendants, to this day.

This one mystic branch hung low just outside the main entrance of the Seven Gables, so close to the ground that anyone passing by could have easily reached up and picked it. If it had been offered at the door, it would have been a symbol of the right to enter and learn all the secrets of the house. There's so little trust to be placed in appearances that the venerable building actually had a welcoming look about it, suggesting a history that must be decent and joyful, fitting for a cozy fireside story. Its windows sparkled happily in the slanting sunlight. Patches of green moss, here and there, seemed to promise a sense of closeness and connection with nature; as if this dwelling, having been around for so long, had earned its rightful place among the ancient oaks and other enduring elements that have a natural claim to exist. Someone with a vivid imagination, while passing the house, would pause, turn back, and take a good look: its many peaks, harmonizing at the clustered chimney; the deep overhang above the basement; the arched window giving a sense, if not of grandeur, then of old-world charm to the worn entryway it framed; the abundance of large burdocks near the doorstep; they would note all these details and feel something deeper than what was visible. They might imagine that the mansion had once been home to the steadfast old Puritan, Integrity, who, having passed away in some forgotten time, left a blessing in every room and corner—its influence evident in the values of religion, honesty, modest means, or honest hard work and true happiness found in his descendants even today.

One object, above all others, would take root in the imaginative observer’s memory. It was the great tuft of flowers,—weeds, you would have called them, only a week ago,—the tuft of crimson-spotted flowers, in the angle between the two front gables. The old people used to give them the name of Alice’s Posies, in remembrance of fair Alice Pyncheon, who was believed to have brought their seeds from Italy. They were flaunting in rich beauty and full bloom to-day, and seemed, as it were, a mystic expression that something within the house was consummated.

One thing, above all else, would stick in the imaginative observer’s mind. It was the large cluster of flowers—what you would have called weeds just a week ago—that had crimson spots, located in the corner between the two front gables. The older folks used to call them Alice’s Posies, in memory of the lovely Alice Pyncheon, who was thought to have brought their seeds from Italy. They were boldly vibrant and in full bloom today, seeming like a mystical sign that something important inside the house had come to completion.

It was but little after sunrise, when Uncle Venner made his appearance, as aforesaid, impelling a wheelbarrow along the street. He was going his matutinal rounds to collect cabbage-leaves, turnip-tops, potato-skins, and the miscellaneous refuse of the dinner-pot, which the thrifty housewives of the neighborhood were accustomed to put aside, as fit only to feed a pig. Uncle Venner’s pig was fed entirely, and kept in prime order, on these eleemosynary contributions; insomuch that the patched philosopher used to promise that, before retiring to his farm, he would make a feast of the portly grunter, and invite all his neighbors to partake of the joints and spare-ribs which they had helped to fatten. Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon’s housekeeping had so greatly improved, since Clifford became a member of the family, that her share of the banquet would have been no lean one; and Uncle Venner, accordingly, was a good deal disappointed not to find the large earthen pan, full of fragmentary eatables, that ordinarily awaited his coming at the back doorstep of the Seven Gables.

It was just after sunrise when Uncle Venner showed up, as mentioned earlier, pushing a wheelbarrow down the street. He was making his morning rounds to collect cabbage leaves, turnip tops, potato skins, and all the leftover bits from dinner that the resourceful housewives in the neighborhood set aside, considering them only good enough to feed a pig. Uncle Venner’s pig was entirely fed and kept in great shape on these generous donations; in fact, the patched philosopher often promised that before he went back to his farm, he would throw a feast with the fat pig and invite all his neighbors to enjoy the joints and spare ribs they had helped to fatten. Miss Hepzibah Pyncheon’s housekeeping had improved so much since Clifford joined the family that her share of the banquet would have been quite generous; so Uncle Venner was quite disappointed not to find the large earthen pan filled with leftover food that usually awaited him at the back doorstep of the Seven Gables.

“I never knew Miss Hepzibah so forgetful before,” said the patriarch to himself. “She must have had a dinner yesterday,—no question of that! She always has one, nowadays. So where’s the pot-liquor and potato-skins, I ask? Shall I knock, and see if she’s stirring yet? No, no,—’twon’t do! If little Phœbe was about the house, I should not mind knocking; but Miss Hepzibah, likely as not, would scowl down at me out of the window, and look cross, even if she felt pleasantly. So, I’ll come back at noon.”

“I’ve never seen Miss Hepzibah this forgetful before,” the old man thought to himself. “She must have had dinner yesterday—no doubt about it! She always does these days. So where are the leftovers and potato peels, I wonder? Should I knock and see if she’s up yet? No, that wouldn’t work! If little Phoebe were around, I wouldn’t mind knocking; but Miss Hepzibah would probably frown down at me from the window and look annoyed, even if she was in a good mood. So, I’ll come back at noon.”

With these reflections, the old man was shutting the gate of the little back-yard. Creaking on its hinges, however, like every other gate and door about the premises, the sound reached the ears of the occupant of the northern gable, one of the windows of which had a side-view towards the gate.

With these thoughts, the old man was closing the gate to the small backyard. It creaked on its hinges, just like every other gate and door on the property, and the sound caught the attention of the person in the northern gable, one of whose windows had a side view of the gate.

“Good-morning, Uncle Venner!” said the daguerreotypist, leaning out of the window. “Do you hear nobody stirring?”

“Good morning, Uncle Venner!” said the daguerreotypist, leaning out of the window. “Do you hear anyone moving around?”

“Not a soul,” said the man of patches. “But that’s no wonder. ’Tis barely half an hour past sunrise, yet. But I’m really glad to see you, Mr. Holgrave! There’s a strange, lonesome look about this side of the house; so that my heart misgave me, somehow or other, and I felt as if there was nobody alive in it. The front of the house looks a good deal cheerier; and Alice’s Posies are blooming there beautifully; and if I were a young man, Mr. Holgrave, my sweetheart should have one of those flowers in her bosom, though I risked my neck climbing for it! Well, and did the wind keep you awake last night?”

"Not a single person," said the patched man. "But that’s not surprising. It’s barely half an hour past sunrise. Still, I’m really glad to see you, Mr. Holgrave! There’s a strange, lonely feeling on this side of the house; it made my heart drop a bit, and I felt like there was nobody alive in here. The front of the house looks a lot cheerier, though; Alice’s Posies are blooming beautifully there, and if I were a young man, Mr. Holgrave, I’d make sure my sweetheart had one of those flowers in her dress, even if it meant risking my neck to get it! So, did the wind keep you up last night?"

“It did, indeed!” answered the artist, smiling. “If I were a believer in ghosts,—and I don’t quite know whether I am or not,—I should have concluded that all the old Pyncheons were running riot in the lower rooms, especially in Miss Hepzibah’s part of the house. But it is very quiet now.”

“It really did!” responded the artist with a smile. “If I believed in ghosts—and I’m not sure if I do or not—I would have thought all the old Pyncheons were causing a scene in the lower rooms, especially in Miss Hepzibah’s section of the house. But it's very quiet now.”

“Yes, Miss Hepzibah will be apt to over-sleep herself, after being disturbed, all night, with the racket,” said Uncle Venner. “But it would be odd, now, wouldn’t it, if the Judge had taken both his cousins into the country along with him? I saw him go into the shop yesterday.”

“Yes, Miss Hepzibah will probably oversleep after being kept up all night by the noise,” said Uncle Venner. “But wouldn’t it be strange if the Judge took both his cousins out to the country with him? I saw him go into the shop yesterday.”

“At what hour?” inquired Holgrave.

"What time?" asked Holgrave.

“Oh, along in the forenoon,” said the old man. “Well, well! I must go my rounds, and so must my wheelbarrow. But I’ll be back here at dinner-time; for my pig likes a dinner as well as a breakfast. No meal-time, and no sort of victuals, ever seems to come amiss to my pig. Good morning to you! And, Mr. Holgrave, if I were a young man, like you, I’d get one of Alice’s Posies, and keep it in water till Phœbe comes back.”

“Oh, sometime this morning,” said the old man. “Well, well! I have my rounds to make, and so does my wheelbarrow. But I'll be back here for lunch; my pig enjoys a lunch just as much as a breakfast. No meal or kind of food ever seems to be wrong for my pig. Good morning to you! And, Mr. Holgrave, if I were a young man like you, I’d get one of Alice’s Posies and keep it in water until Phœbe comes back.”

“I have heard,” said the daguerreotypist, as he drew in his head, “that the water of Maule’s well suits those flowers best.”

“I’ve heard,” said the daguerreotypist, pulling his head in, “that the water from Maule’s well is best for those flowers.”

Here the conversation ceased, and Uncle Venner went on his way. For half an hour longer, nothing disturbed the repose of the Seven Gables; nor was there any visitor, except a carrier-boy, who, as he passed the front doorstep, threw down one of his newspapers; for Hepzibah, of late, had regularly taken it in. After a while, there came a fat woman, making prodigious speed, and stumbling as she ran up the steps of the shop-door. Her face glowed with fire-heat, and, it being a pretty warm morning, she bubbled and hissed, as it were, as if all a-fry with chimney-warmth, and summer-warmth, and the warmth of her own corpulent velocity. She tried the shop-door; it was fast. She tried it again, with so angry a jar that the bell tinkled angrily back at her.

Here the conversation stopped, and Uncle Venner continued on his way. For another half hour, nothing disturbed the calm of the Seven Gables; there were no visitors except for a delivery boy who tossed one of his newspapers onto the front steps, as Hepzibah had recently started taking it regularly. After a while, a hefty woman came running up the steps to the shop door in a hurry, stumbling as she went. Her face was flushed and, since it was a pretty warm morning, she was practically steaming, as if she were heating up from the combination of the warm chimney, the summer heat, and her own heavy speed. She tried the shop door, but it was locked. She tried again, giving it such a forceful bang that the bell inside rang back at her angrily.

“The deuce take Old Maid Pyncheon!” muttered the irascible housewife. “Think of her pretending to set up a cent-shop, and then lying abed till noon! These are what she calls gentlefolk’s airs, I suppose! But I’ll either start her ladyship, or break the door down!”

“The hell with Old Maid Pyncheon!” grumbled the cranky housewife. “Can you believe she pretends to run a little shop but stays in bed until noon? I guess this is what she calls acting like high society! But I’ll either force her out, or I’ll break the door down!”

She shook it accordingly, and the bell, having a spiteful little temper of its own, rang obstreperously, making its remonstrances heard,—not, indeed, by the ears for which they were intended,—but by a good lady on the opposite side of the street. She opened the window, and addressed the impatient applicant.

She shook it as needed, and the bell, with its own annoying attitude, rang loudly, making its complaints known—not to the intended audience—but to a kind lady across the street. She opened her window and spoke to the restless person waiting.

“You’ll find nobody there, Mrs. Gubbins.”

“You won’t find anyone there, Mrs. Gubbins.”

“But I must and will find somebody here!” cried Mrs. Gubbins, inflicting another outrage on the bell. “I want a half-pound of pork, to fry some first-rate flounders for Mr. Gubbins’s breakfast; and, lady or not, Old Maid Pyncheon shall get up and serve me with it!”

“But I have to and will find someone here!” yelled Mrs. Gubbins, ringing the bell again. “I need half a pound of pork to fry up some top-notch flounders for Mr. Gubbins’s breakfast; and whether she likes it or not, Old Maid Pyncheon is going to get up and serve me!”

“But do hear reason, Mrs. Gubbins!” responded the lady opposite. “She, and her brother too, have both gone to their cousin’s, Judge Pyncheon’s at his country-seat. There’s not a soul in the house, but that young daguerreotype-man that sleeps in the north gable. I saw old Hepzibah and Clifford go away yesterday; and a queer couple of ducks they were, paddling through the mud-puddles! They’re gone, I’ll assure you.”

“But please listen to reason, Mrs. Gubbins!” replied the woman across from her. “She and her brother have both gone to visit their cousin, Judge Pyncheon, at his country house. There’s no one in the house except that young guy who takes photos and sleeps in the north gable. I saw old Hepzibah and Clifford leave yesterday, and they looked like a strange pair, wading through the puddles! They’re gone, I assure you.”

“And how do you know they’re gone to the Judge’s?” asked Mrs. Gubbins. “He’s a rich man; and there’s been a quarrel between him and Hepzibah this many a day, because he won’t give her a living. That’s the main reason of her setting up a cent-shop.”

“And how do you know they went to the Judge’s?” asked Mrs. Gubbins. “He’s wealthy, and there’s been an argument between him and Hepzibah for quite a while because he won’t provide her with a living. That’s the primary reason she started a general store.”

“I know that well enough,” said the neighbor. “But they’re gone,—that’s one thing certain. And who but a blood relation, that couldn’t help himself, I ask you, would take in that awful-tempered old maid, and that dreadful Clifford? That’s it, you may be sure.”

“I know that well enough,” said the neighbor. “But they’re gone—that much is certain. And who but a blood relative, who couldn’t help themselves, I ask you, would take in that awful-tempered old maid and that dreadful Clifford? That’s for sure.”

Mrs. Gubbins took her departure, still brimming over with hot wrath against the absent Hepzibah. For another half-hour, or, perhaps, considerably more, there was almost as much quiet on the outside of the house as within. The elm, however, made a pleasant, cheerful, sunny sigh, responsive to the breeze that was elsewhere imperceptible; a swarm of insects buzzed merrily under its drooping shadow, and became specks of light whenever they darted into the sunshine; a locust sang, once or twice, in some inscrutable seclusion of the tree; and a solitary little bird, with plumage of pale gold, came and hovered about Alice’s Posies.

Mrs. Gubbins left, still full of anger toward the missing Hepzibah. For another half-hour or maybe even longer, it was almost just as quiet outside the house as it was inside. The elm, however, made a nice, cheerful sigh in response to a breeze that was barely noticeable elsewhere; a swarm of insects buzzed happily under its drooping shade, becoming little specks of light whenever they darted into the sunshine; a locust sang once or twice from some hidden spot in the tree; and a lone little bird with pale golden feathers came and hovered near Alice’s Posies.

At last our small acquaintance, Ned Higgins, trudged up the street, on his way to school; and happening, for the first time in a fortnight, to be the possessor of a cent, he could by no means get past the shop-door of the Seven Gables. But it would not open. Again and again, however, and half a dozen other agains, with the inexorable pertinacity of a child intent upon some object important to itself, did he renew his efforts for admittance. He had, doubtless, set his heart upon an elephant; or, possibly, with Hamlet, he meant to eat a crocodile. In response to his more violent attacks, the bell gave, now and then, a moderate tinkle, but could not be stirred into clamor by any exertion of the little fellow’s childish and tiptoe strength. Holding by the door-handle, he peeped through a crevice of the curtain, and saw that the inner door, communicating with the passage towards the parlor, was closed.

Finally, our young friend, Ned Higgins, trudged up the street on his way to school; and happening, for the first time in two weeks, to have a cent, he couldn't resist stopping at the shop door of the Seven Gables. But it wouldn't open. Again and again, and several more times, with the relentless determination of a child focused on something important to him, he kept trying to get inside. He must have really wanted an elephant; or maybe, like Hamlet, he intended to eat a crocodile. In response to his more aggressive efforts, the bell chimed softly now and then, but it wouldn't ring loudly no matter how hard the little guy pushed with all his childlike strength on tiptoes. Clinging to the door handle, he peeked through a gap in the curtain and saw that the inner door, leading to the hallway towards the parlor, was closed.

“Miss Pyncheon!” screamed the child, rapping on the window-pane, “I want an elephant!”

“Miss Pyncheon!” shouted the child, banging on the window, “I want an elephant!”

There being no answer to several repetitions of the summons, Ned began to grow impatient; and his little pot of passion quickly boiling over, he picked up a stone, with a naughty purpose to fling it through the window; at the same time blubbering and sputtering with wrath. A man—one of two who happened to be passing by—caught the urchin’s arm.

With no response after calling several times, Ned started to get frustrated; and his little pot of anger quickly boiled over. He picked up a stone, with the mischievous intention of throwing it through the window, while also crying and stuttering with rage. A man—one of two who happened to be walking by—grabbed the kid's arm.

“What’s the trouble, old gentleman?” he asked.

“What’s the problem, sir?” he asked.

“I want old Hepzibah, or Phœbe, or any of them!” answered Ned, sobbing. “They won’t open the door; and I can’t get my elephant!”

“I want old Hepzibah, or Phœbe, or any of them!” replied Ned, crying. “They won’t open the door, and I can’t get my elephant!”

“Go to school, you little scamp!” said the man. “There’s another cent-shop round the corner. ’Tis very strange, Dixey,” added he to his companion, “what’s become of all these Pyncheon’s! Smith, the livery-stable keeper, tells me Judge Pyncheon put his horse up yesterday, to stand till after dinner, and has not taken him away yet. And one of the Judge’s hired men has been in, this morning, to make inquiry about him. He’s a kind of person, they say, that seldom breaks his habits, or stays out o’ nights.”

“Go to school, you little rascal!” said the man. “There’s another thrift store around the corner. It’s really odd, Dixey,” he added to his friend, “what’s happened to all these Pyncheons! Smith, the stable owner, told me Judge Pyncheon put his horse here yesterday, intending to pick him up after dinner, and he still hasn’t come back for him. And one of the Judge’s hired hands was in this morning asking about him. They say he’s the kind of guy who rarely breaks his routines or stays out at night.”

“Oh, he’ll turn up safe enough!” said Dixey. “And as for Old Maid Pyncheon, take my word for it, she has run in debt, and gone off from her creditors. I foretold, you remember, the first morning she set up shop, that her devilish scowl would frighten away customers. They couldn’t stand it!”

“Oh, he’ll show up just fine!” said Dixey. “And as for Old Maid Pyncheon, believe me, she’s racked up some debts and disappeared from her creditors. I told you, remember, on the first morning she opened her shop, that her nasty scowl would scare off customers. They just couldn’t handle it!”

“I never thought she’d make it go,” remarked his friend. “This business of cent-shops is overdone among the women-folks. My wife tried it, and lost five dollars on her outlay!”

“I never thought she’d actually make it happen,” his friend said. “This whole thing with penny shops is way too much with the women. My wife tried it and lost five dollars on what she spent!”

“Poor business!” said Dixey, shaking his head. “Poor business!”

“Bad business!” said Dixey, shaking his head. “Bad business!”

In the course of the morning, there were various other attempts to open a communication with the supposed inhabitants of this silent and impenetrable mansion. The man of root-beer came, in his neatly painted wagon, with a couple of dozen full bottles, to be exchanged for empty ones; the baker, with a lot of crackers which Hepzibah had ordered for her retail custom; the butcher, with a nice titbit which he fancied she would be eager to secure for Clifford. Had any observer of these proceedings been aware of the fearful secret hidden within the house, it would have affected him with a singular shape and modification of horror, to see the current of human life making this small eddy hereabouts,—whirling sticks, straws and all such trifles, round and round, right over the black depth where a dead corpse lay unseen!

During the morning, there were several attempts to communicate with the supposed residents of this quiet and mysterious mansion. The root-beer man arrived in his neatly painted wagon, carrying a couple dozen full bottles to exchange for empty ones; the baker brought a bunch of crackers that Hepzibah had ordered for her store; and the butcher came with a nice treat that he thought she would want to get for Clifford. If anyone watching these events had known the terrifying secret hidden inside the house, it would have filled them with a strange and intense horror to see the flow of human life creating this small whirlpool here—whirling sticks, straws, and other trivial things round and round, right over the dark abyss where a dead body lay unseen!

The butcher was so much in earnest with his sweetbread of lamb, or whatever the dainty might be, that he tried every accessible door of the Seven Gables, and at length came round again to the shop, where he ordinarily found admittance.

The butcher was so focused on his lamb sweetbreads, or whatever the delicacy was, that he tried every door at the Seven Gables, and eventually came back to the shop where he usually got in.

“It’s a nice article, and I know the old lady would jump at it,” said he to himself. “She can’t be gone away! In fifteen years that I have driven my cart through Pyncheon Street, I’ve never known her to be away from home; though often enough, to be sure, a man might knock all day without bringing her to the door. But that was when she’d only herself to provide for.”

“It’s a great article, and I know the old lady would love it,” he thought to himself. “She can’t be out of town! In the fifteen years I’ve been driving my cart down Pyncheon Street, I’ve never seen her away from home; although, to be fair, a person could knock all day without her answering the door. But that was when she only had herself to take care of.”

Peeping through the same crevice of the curtain where, only a little while before, the urchin of elephantine appetite had peeped, the butcher beheld the inner door, not closed, as the child had seen it, but ajar, and almost wide open. However it might have happened, it was the fact. Through the passage-way there was a dark vista into the lighter but still obscure interior of the parlor. It appeared to the butcher that he could pretty clearly discern what seemed to be the stalwart legs, clad in black pantaloons, of a man sitting in a large oaken chair, the back of which concealed all the remainder of his figure. This contemptuous tranquillity on the part of an occupant of the house, in response to the butcher’s indefatigable efforts to attract notice, so piqued the man of flesh that he determined to withdraw.

Looking through the same gap in the curtain where, not long before, the kid with a huge appetite had peered, the butcher saw the inner door, not closed as the child had seen it, but slightly open, almost wide open. Whatever the reason, that was the way it was. Through the opening, there was a dark view into the lighter but still shadowy interior of the parlor. The butcher thought he could clearly make out what looked like the strong legs, dressed in black pants, of a man sitting in a large oak chair, the back of which hid the rest of his body. This indifferent calmness from someone inside the house, in response to the butcher's relentless attempts to get attention, annoyed the man so much that he decided to leave.

“So,” thought he, “there sits Old Maid Pyncheon’s bloody brother, while I’ve been giving myself all this trouble! Why, if a hog hadn’t more manners, I’d stick him! I call it demeaning a man’s business to trade with such people; and from this time forth, if they want a sausage or an ounce of liver, they shall run after the cart for it!”

“So,” he thought, “there sits Old Maid Pyncheon’s bloody brother, while I’ve been putting myself through all this trouble! Honestly, if a pig had more manners, I’d tell him off! I find it beneath a man to deal with people like this; from now on, if they want a sausage or some liver, they can chase after the cart for it!”

He tossed the titbit angrily into his cart, and drove off in a pet.

He angrily threw the snack into his cart and drove off in a huff.

Not a great while afterwards there was a sound of music turning the corner and approaching down the street, with several intervals of silence, and then a renewed and nearer outbreak of brisk melody. A mob of children was seen moving onward, or stopping, in unison with the sound, which appeared to proceed from the centre of the throng; so that they were loosely bound together by slender strains of harmony, and drawn along captive; with ever and anon an accession of some little fellow in an apron and straw-hat, capering forth from door or gateway. Arriving under the shadow of the Pyncheon Elm, it proved to be the Italian boy, who, with his monkey and show of puppets, had once before played his hurdy-gurdy beneath the arched window. The pleasant face of Phœbe—and doubtless, too, the liberal recompense which she had flung him—still dwelt in his remembrance. His expressive features kindled up, as he recognized the spot where this trifling incident of his erratic life had chanced. He entered the neglected yard (now wilder than ever, with its growth of hog-weed and burdock), stationed himself on the doorstep of the main entrance, and, opening his show-box, began to play. Each individual of the automatic community forthwith set to work, according to his or her proper vocation: the monkey, taking off his Highland bonnet, bowed and scraped to the by-standers most obsequiously, with ever an observant eye to pick up a stray cent; and the young foreigner himself, as he turned the crank of his machine, glanced upward to the arched window, expectant of a presence that would make his music the livelier and sweeter. The throng of children stood near; some on the sidewalk; some within the yard; two or three establishing themselves on the very door-step; and one squatting on the threshold. Meanwhile, the locust kept singing in the great old Pyncheon Elm.

Not long after, music could be heard turning the corner and coming down the street, with occasional pauses and then bursts of lively melody getting closer. A group of children moved along or paused in rhythm with the sound, which seemed to come from the center of the crowd. They were loosely connected by delicate threads of harmony, drawn along as if enchanted, with a little kid in an apron and straw hat occasionally bouncing out from a door or gateway. When they reached the shade of the Pyncheon Elm, it turned out to be the Italian boy, who had previously played his hurdy-gurdy beneath the arched window with his monkey and puppet show. He still remembered the cheerful face of Phœbe—and probably the generous tip she had given him. His expressive features lit up as he recognized the spot where this little episode from his wandering life had taken place. He entered the overgrown yard (now wilder than ever, filled with hog-weed and burdock), positioned himself on the main entrance steps, and opened his showbox to start playing. Each figure in his little mechanical community immediately began their routine: the monkey, removing his Highland bonnet, bowed and scraped to the bystanders, always on the lookout for a stray coin; and the young foreigner, as he turned the crank of his machine, glanced up at the arched window, hoping to see someone who would make his music feel even livelier and sweeter. The group of children gathered nearby; some on the sidewalk, some in the yard, two or three settling right on the doorstep, and one squatting on the threshold. Meanwhile, the locust continued singing in the great old Pyncheon Elm.

“I don’t hear anybody in the house,” said one of the children to another. “The monkey won’t pick up anything here.”

“I don’t hear anyone in the house,” said one of the children to another. “The monkey won’t pick up anything here.”

“There is somebody at home,” affirmed the urchin on the threshold. “I heard a step!”

“There’s someone home,” the kid on the doorstep insisted. “I heard a sound!”

Still the young Italian’s eye turned sidelong upward; and it really seemed as if the touch of genuine, though slight and almost playful, emotion communicated a juicier sweetness to the dry, mechanical process of his minstrelsy. These wanderers are readily responsive to any natural kindness—be it no more than a smile, or a word itself not understood, but only a warmth in it—which befalls them on the roadside of life. They remember these things, because they are the little enchantments which, for the instant,—for the space that reflects a landscape in a soap-bubble,—build up a home about them. Therefore, the Italian boy would not be discouraged by the heavy silence with which the old house seemed resolute to clog the vivacity of his instrument. He persisted in his melodious appeals; he still looked upward, trusting that his dark, alien countenance would soon be brightened by Phœbe’s sunny aspect. Neither could he be willing to depart without again beholding Clifford, whose sensibility, like Phœbe’s smile, had talked a kind of heart’s language to the foreigner. He repeated all his music over and over again, until his auditors were getting weary. So were the little wooden people in his show-box, and the monkey most of all. There was no response, save the singing of the locust.

Still, the young Italian glanced up sideways; and it genuinely seemed like the touch of real, though slight and almost playful, emotion added a richer sweetness to the dry, mechanical act of his music. These wanderers are quick to respond to any natural kindness—whether it’s just a smile or a word they don’t understand but can feel warmth in— that comes their way in life. They remember these moments because they are the little charms that, for an instant—like a landscape reflected in a soap bubble—create a sense of home around them. So, the Italian boy wouldn’t be discouraged by the heavy silence with which the old house seemed determined to stifle the liveliness of his playing. He continued his melodious calls; he kept looking up, hoping that his dark, foreign face would soon be brightened by Phœbe’s sunny smile. He also couldn’t bear to leave without seeing Clifford again, whose sensitivity, like Phœbe’s smile, had spoken a kind of heartfelt language to him. He repeated all his tunes over and over until his listeners began to tire. So did the little wooden figures in his showbox, especially the monkey. There was no reply, only the sound of the locust singing.

“No children live in this house,” said a schoolboy, at last. “Nobody lives here but an old maid and an old man. You’ll get nothing here! Why don’t you go along?”

“There's no one living in this house,” a schoolboy finally said. “Nobody's here except for an old maid and an old man. You won't get anything here! Why don't you just go away?”

“You fool, you, why do you tell him?” whispered a shrewd little Yankee, caring nothing for the music, but a good deal for the cheap rate at which it was had. “Let him play as he likes! If there’s nobody to pay him, that’s his own lookout!”

“You idiot, why are you telling him?” whispered a clever little Yankee, not caring about the music but really focused on the low price for it. “Let him play however he wants! If no one’s paying him, that’s his problem!”

Once more, however, the Italian ran over his round of melodies. To the common observer—who could understand nothing of the case, except the music and the sunshine on the hither side of the door—it might have been amusing to watch the pertinacity of the street-performer. Will he succeed at last? Will that stubborn door be suddenly flung open? Will a group of joyous children, the young ones of the house, come dancing, shouting, laughing, into the open air, and cluster round the show-box, looking with eager merriment at the puppets, and tossing each a copper for long-tailed Mammon, the monkey, to pick up?

Once again, the Italian went through his set of tunes. To the average onlooker—who understood nothing of the situation beyond the music and the sunshine outside the door—it might have been amusing to watch the determination of the street performer. Will he finally succeed? Will that stubborn door swing open all of a sudden? Will a group of happy children, the little ones from the house, come running out, shouting and laughing, to gather around the show box, eagerly watching the puppets and tossing coins for long-tailed Mammon, the monkey, to pick up?

But to us, who know the inner heart of the Seven Gables as well as its exterior face, there is a ghastly effect in this repetition of light popular tunes at its door-step. It would be an ugly business, indeed, if Judge Pyncheon (who would not have cared a fig for Paganini’s fiddle in his most harmonious mood) should make his appearance at the door, with a bloody shirt-bosom, and a grim frown on his swarthily white visage, and motion the foreign vagabond away! Was ever before such a grinding out of jigs and waltzes, where nobody was in the cue to dance? Yes, very often. This contrast, or intermingling of tragedy with mirth, happens daily, hourly, momently. The gloomy and desolate old house, deserted of life, and with awful Death sitting sternly in its solitude, was the emblem of many a human heart, which, nevertheless, is compelled to hear the thrill and echo of the world’s gayety around it.

But for us, who know the true heart of the Seven Gables as well as its outward appearance, there's something eerie about the repeated light pop tunes at its doorstep. It would be quite a disturbing scene if Judge Pyncheon (who wouldn’t have cared at all for Paganini’s violin in his most pleasant moments) were to show up at the door with a blood-stained shirt and a grim scowl on his darkly pale face, shooing the wandering musician away! Has there ever been such a relentless playing of jigs and waltzes when no one is ready to dance? Yes, all the time. This clash, or blending, of tragedy with joy occurs every day, every hour, every moment. The gloomy and abandoned old house, empty of life and with a stern Death sitting alone in its stillness, symbolized many human hearts that, nonetheless, must endure the sounds and echoes of the world’s cheer around them.

Before the conclusion of the Italian’s performance, a couple of men happened to be passing, On their way to dinner. “I say, you young French fellow!” called out one of them,—“come away from that doorstep, and go somewhere else with your nonsense! The Pyncheon family live there; and they are in great trouble, just about this time. They don’t feel musical to-day. It is reported all over town that Judge Pyncheon, who owns the house, has been murdered; and the city marshal is going to look into the matter. So be off with you, at once!”

Before the Italian’s performance ended, a couple of guys were walking by on their way to dinner. “Hey, you young French guy!” one of them shouted, “get away from that doorstep and take your nonsense somewhere else! The Pyncheon family lives there, and they're going through a tough time right now. They’re not in the mood for music today. Rumor has it that Judge Pyncheon, who owns the house, has been murdered, and the city marshal is looking into it. So scram, right now!”

As the Italian shouldered his hurdy-gurdy, he saw on the doorstep a card, which had been covered, all the morning, by the newspaper that the carrier had flung upon it, but was now shuffled into sight. He picked it up, and perceiving something written in pencil, gave it to the man to read. In fact, it was an engraved card of Judge Pyncheon’s with certain pencilled memoranda on the back, referring to various businesses which it had been his purpose to transact during the preceding day. It formed a prospective epitome of the day’s history; only that affairs had not turned out altogether in accordance with the programme. The card must have been lost from the Judge’s vest-pocket in his preliminary attempt to gain access by the main entrance of the house. Though well soaked with rain, it was still partially legible.

As the Italian picked up his hurdy-gurdy, he noticed a card on the doorstep that had been covered all morning by a newspaper that the delivery person had thrown down, but now it was visible. He grabbed it, and seeing something written in pencil, handed it to the man to read. It was actually an engraved card of Judge Pyncheon’s with some penciled notes on the back, relating to various tasks he intended to handle the day before. It summarized the expected events of the day; however, things hadn’t gone exactly as planned. The card must have slipped from the Judge’s vest pocket during his initial attempt to enter the house through the main door. Although it was soaked with rain, it was still somewhat readable.

“Look here; Dixey!” cried the man. “This has something to do with Judge Pyncheon. See!—here’s his name printed on it; and here, I suppose, is some of his handwriting.”

“Hey, Dixey!” the man shouted. “This has to do with Judge Pyncheon. Look!—here’s his name printed on it; and here, I guess, is some of his handwriting.”

“Let’s go to the city marshal with it!” said Dixey. “It may give him just the clew he wants. After all,” whispered he in his companion’s ear, “it would be no wonder if the Judge has gone into that door and never come out again! A certain cousin of his may have been at his old tricks. And Old Maid Pyncheon having got herself in debt by the cent-shop,—and the Judge’s pocket-book being well filled,—and bad blood amongst them already! Put all these things together and see what they make!”

“Let’s take this to the city marshal!” said Dixey. “It might give him the lead he needs. After all,” he whispered to his companion, “it wouldn’t be surprising if the Judge went through that door and never came back out! A certain cousin of his might be up to his old tricks. Plus, Old Maid Pyncheon has gotten herself in debt from the cent-shop, and the Judge has a full wallet—there’s already bad blood between them! Put all these pieces together and see what you come up with!”

“Hush, hush!” whispered the other. “It seems like a sin to be the first to speak of such a thing. But I think, with you, that we had better go to the city marshal.”

“Hush, hush!” whispered the other. “It feels wrong to be the first to mention something like this. But I agree with you that we should go see the city marshal.”

“Yes, yes!” said Dixey. “Well!—I always said there was something devilish in that woman’s scowl!”

“Yes, yes!” said Dixey. “Well!—I always thought there was something really dark in that woman’s scowl!”

The men wheeled about, accordingly, and retraced their steps up the street. The Italian, also, made the best of his way off, with a parting glance up at the arched window. As for the children, they took to their heels, with one accord, and scampered as if some giant or ogre were in pursuit, until, at a good distance from the house, they stopped as suddenly and simultaneously as they had set out. Their susceptible nerves took an indefinite alarm from what they had overheard. Looking back at the grotesque peaks and shadowy angles of the old mansion, they fancied a gloom diffused about it which no brightness of the sunshine could dispel. An imaginary Hepzibah scowled and shook her finger at them, from several windows at the same moment. An imaginary Clifford—for (and it would have deeply wounded him to know it) he had always been a horror to these small people—stood behind the unreal Hepzibah, making awful gestures, in a faded dressing-gown. Children are even more apt, if possible, than grown people, to catch the contagion of a panic terror. For the rest of the day, the more timid went whole streets about, for the sake of avoiding the Seven Gables; while the bolder signalized their hardihood by challenging their comrades to race past the mansion at full speed.

The men turned around and walked back up the street. The Italian also quickly left, casting one last glance at the arched window. The children, in unison, took off running as if some giant or monster was chasing them, and stopped just as suddenly and simultaneously as they had started, a good distance from the house. Their sensitive nerves had picked up an undefined fear from what they had overheard. Looking back at the strange peaks and dark corners of the old mansion, they imagined a gloom surrounding it that no amount of sunshine could lift. In their minds, an imaginary Hepzibah glared and shook her finger at them from several windows at once. An imaginary Clifford—for it would have hurt him deeply to know this—had always been a source of fear for these little ones, stood behind the fake Hepzibah, making terrifying gestures in a worn-out dressing gown. Children are even more likely than adults to catch the feeling of panic. For the rest of the day, the more timid ones went out of their way to avoid the Seven Gables, while the braver kids showed off their courage by daring each other to race past the mansion as fast as they could.

It could not have been more than half an hour after the disappearance of the Italian boy, with his unseasonable melodies, when a cab drove down the street. It stopped beneath the Pyncheon Elm; the cabman took a trunk, a canvas bag, and a bandbox, from the top of his vehicle, and deposited them on the doorstep of the old house; a straw bonnet, and then the pretty figure of a young girl, came into view from the interior of the cab. It was Phœbe! Though not altogether so blooming as when she first tripped into our story,—for, in the few intervening weeks, her experiences had made her graver, more womanly, and deeper-eyed, in token of a heart that had begun to suspect its depths,—still there was the quiet glow of natural sunshine over her. Neither had she forfeited her proper gift of making things look real, rather than fantastic, within her sphere. Yet we feel it to be a questionable venture, even for Phœbe, at this juncture, to cross the threshold of the Seven Gables. Is her healthful presence potent enough to chase away the crowd of pale, hideous, and sinful phantoms, that have gained admittance there since her departure? Or will she, likewise, fade, sicken, sadden, and grow into deformity, and be only another pallid phantom, to glide noiselessly up and down the stairs, and affright children as she pauses at the window?

It couldn't have been more than half an hour after the Italian boy vanished, with his out-of-season tunes, when a cab drove down the street. It stopped beneath the Pyncheon Elm; the driver took a trunk, a canvas bag, and a hatbox from the top of the cab and set them down on the doorstep of the old house. A straw bonnet appeared first, followed by the lovely figure of a young girl coming out of the cab. It was Phœbe! Although she wasn't as radiant as when she first entered our story—since the past few weeks had made her more serious, more womanly, and gave her deeper eyes, hinting at a heart that had started to explore its own depths—there was still a gentle glow of natural sunlight about her. She hadn’t lost her natural ability to make things seem real instead of fantastical in her surroundings. Yet, we can’t help but think it's a risky move, even for Phœbe, to step into the Seven Gables at this moment. Is her vibrant presence strong enough to drive away the host of pale, ugly, and sinful spirits that have taken residence there since she left? Or will she also fade, grow sick, become sorrowful, and transform into a ghostly figure, wandering silently up and down the stairs and scaring children as she stops at the window?

At least, we would gladly forewarn the unsuspecting girl that there is nothing in human shape or substance to receive her, unless it be the figure of Judge Pyncheon, who—wretched spectacle that he is, and frightful in our remembrance, since our night-long vigil with him!—still keeps his place in the oaken chair.

At the very least, we would happily warn the unsuspecting girl that there’s nothing in human form or essence to welcome her, except for the image of Judge Pyncheon, who—such a pitiful sight he is, and terrifying in our memory after our sleepless night with him!—still occupies the old wooden chair.

Phœbe first tried the shop-door. It did not yield to her hand; and the white curtain, drawn across the window which formed the upper section of the door, struck her quick perceptive faculty as something unusual. Without making another effort to enter here, she betook herself to the great portal, under the arched window. Finding it fastened, she knocked. A reverberation came from the emptiness within. She knocked again, and a third time; and, listening intently, fancied that the floor creaked, as if Hepzibah were coming, with her ordinary tiptoe movement, to admit her. But so dead a silence ensued upon this imaginary sound, that she began to question whether she might not have mistaken the house, familiar as she thought herself with its exterior.

Phoebe first tried the shop door. It wouldn’t budge; and the white curtain drawn across the window at the top of the door struck her keen perception as something odd. Without making another attempt to get in here, she headed to the big entrance under the arched window. Finding it locked, she knocked. An echo came from the emptiness inside. She knocked again, and a third time; and, listening closely, she thought she heard the floor creak, as if Hepzibah were coming with her usual tiptoe to let her in. But after that imagined sound, an eerie silence followed, making her start to wonder if she might have confused the house, despite being so sure of its exterior.

Her notice was now attracted by a child’s voice, at some distance. It appeared to call her name. Looking in the direction whence it proceeded, Phœbe saw little Ned Higgins, a good way down the street, stamping, shaking his head violently, making deprecatory gestures with both hands, and shouting to her at mouth-wide screech.

Her attention was caught by a child's voice from a distance. It seemed to be calling her name. Looking in the direction it was coming from, Phoebe saw little Ned Higgins a good way down the street, stomping, shaking his head vigorously, making dismissive gestures with both hands, and shouting to her at the top of his lungs.

“No, no, Phœbe!” he screamed. “Don’t you go in! There’s something wicked there! Don’t—don’t—don’t go in!”

“No, no, Phoebe!” he yelled. “Don’t go in there! There’s something evil inside! Don’t—don’t—don’t go in!”

But, as the little personage could not be induced to approach near enough to explain himself, Phœbe concluded that he had been frightened, on some of his visits to the shop, by her cousin Hepzibah; for the good lady’s manifestations, in truth, ran about an equal chance of scaring children out of their wits, or compelling them to unseemly laughter. Still, she felt the more, for this incident, how unaccountably silent and impenetrable the house had become. As her next resort, Phœbe made her way into the garden, where on so warm and bright a day as the present, she had little doubt of finding Clifford, and perhaps Hepzibah also, idling away the noontide in the shadow of the arbor. Immediately on her entering the garden gate, the family of hens half ran, half flew to meet her; while a strange grimalkin, which was prowling under the parlor window, took to his heels, clambered hastily over the fence, and vanished. The arbor was vacant, and its floor, table, and circular bench were still damp, and bestrewn with twigs and the disarray of the past storm. The growth of the garden seemed to have got quite out of bounds; the weeds had taken advantage of Phœbe’s absence, and the long-continued rain, to run rampant over the flowers and kitchen-vegetables. Maule’s well had overflowed its stone border, and made a pool of formidable breadth in that corner of the garden.

But since the little figure wouldn’t come close enough to explain himself, Phœbe figured he had been scared by her cousin Hepzibah during one of his visits to the shop. The good lady had a knack for either scaring children out of their minds or making them laugh inappropriately. Still, this incident made her feel more aware of how inexplicably quiet and impenetrable the house had become. As her next step, Phœbe headed into the garden, where on such a warm and bright day, she had little doubt she would find Clifford, and maybe Hepzibah too, lounging in the shade of the arbor. As soon as she entered the garden gate, the flock of hens half ran, half flew to greet her, while a strange cat prowling under the parlor window bolted away, scrambled over the fence, and disappeared. The arbor was empty, and its floor, table, and circular bench were still damp and scattered with twigs and debris from the recent storm. The garden had clearly grown wild; the weeds had taken advantage of Phœbe’s absence and the prolonged rain to spread unchecked over the flowers and vegetables. Maule’s well had overflowed its stone border, creating a sizable pool in that corner of the garden.

The impression of the whole scene was that of a spot where no human foot had left its print for many preceding days,—probably not since Phœbe’s departure,—for she saw a side-comb of her own under the table of the arbor, where it must have fallen on the last afternoon when she and Clifford sat there.

The overall impression of the scene was that it was a place where no human footsteps had touched the ground for many days, likely not since Phœbe left. She noticed a side-comb of hers under the table of the arbor, where it must have fallen the last afternoon she and Clifford were there.

The girl knew that her two relatives were capable of far greater oddities than that of shutting themselves up in their old house, as they appeared now to have done. Nevertheless, with indistinct misgivings of something amiss, and apprehensions to which she could not give shape, she approached the door that formed the customary communication between the house and garden. It was secured within, like the two which she had already tried. She knocked, however; and immediately, as if the application had been expected, the door was drawn open, by a considerable exertion of some unseen person’s strength, not wide, but far enough to afford her a sidelong entrance. As Hepzibah, in order not to expose herself to inspection from without, invariably opened a door in this manner, Phœbe necessarily concluded that it was her cousin who now admitted her.

The girl knew that her two relatives were capable of much stranger behavior than just locking themselves away in their old house, as they seemed to have done now. Still, with vague feelings that something was off and worries she couldn’t quite define, she walked up to the door that usually connected the house and garden. It was locked on the inside, just like the two she had already tried. However, she knocked anyway; and right away, as if her knock had been anticipated, the door was pulled open by a strong force from some unseen person, not wide, but just enough for her to slip in sideways. Since Hepzibah always opened a door this way to avoid being seen from outside, Phœbe naturally assumed it was her cousin who had let her in.

Without hesitation, therefore, she stepped across the threshold, and had no sooner entered than the door closed behind her.

Without hesitation, she stepped through the doorway, and as soon as she entered, the door shut behind her.

XX.
The Flower of Eden

Phœbe, coming so suddenly from the sunny daylight, was altogether bedimmed in such density of shadow as lurked in most of the passages of the old house. She was not at first aware by whom she had been admitted. Before her eyes had adapted themselves to the obscurity, a hand grasped her own with a firm but gentle and warm pressure, thus imparting a welcome which caused her heart to leap and thrill with an indefinable shiver of enjoyment. She felt herself drawn along, not towards the parlor, but into a large and unoccupied apartment, which had formerly been the grand reception-room of the Seven Gables. The sunshine came freely into all the uncurtained windows of this room, and fell upon the dusty floor; so that Phœbe now clearly saw—what, indeed, had been no secret, after the encounter of a warm hand with hers—that it was not Hepzibah nor Clifford, but Holgrave, to whom she owed her reception. The subtile, intuitive communication, or, rather, the vague and formless impression of something to be told, had made her yield unresistingly to his impulse. Without taking away her hand, she looked eagerly in his face, not quick to forebode evil, but unavoidably conscious that the state of the family had changed since her departure, and therefore anxious for an explanation.

Phoebe, suddenly coming in from the bright daylight, felt completely overshadowed by the thick darkness that lingered in most of the hallways of the old house. At first, she didn’t realize who had let her in. Before her eyes adjusted to the dim light, a hand took hers with a strong but gentle and warm grip, giving her a welcoming feeling that made her heart race with an indescribable thrill of pleasure. She found herself being led, not to the parlor, but into a large, empty room that had once been the grand reception area of the Seven Gables. Sunlight streamed in through all the bare windows of this room, illuminating the dusty floor, so that Phoebe could clearly see—what had certainly been evident after her warm hand was clasped in his—that it was not Hepzibah or Clifford, but Holgrave, to whom she owed her warm welcome. The subtle, instinctive connection, or rather, the vague feeling that there was something important to hear, made her follow his lead without resistance. Without pulling her hand away, she eagerly gazed at his face, not expecting anything bad, but acutely aware that the family situation had shifted since she left, leaving her anxious for an explanation.

The artist looked paler than ordinary; there was a thoughtful and severe contraction of his forehead, tracing a deep, vertical line between the eyebrows. His smile, however, was full of genuine warmth, and had in it a joy, by far the most vivid expression that Phœbe had ever witnessed, shining out of the New England reserve with which Holgrave habitually masked whatever lay near his heart. It was the look wherewith a man, brooding alone over some fearful object, in a dreary forest or illimitable desert, would recognize the familiar aspect of his dearest friend, bringing up all the peaceful ideas that belong to home, and the gentle current of every-day affairs. And yet, as he felt the necessity of responding to her look of inquiry, the smile disappeared.

The artist looked paler than usual; there was a thoughtful and serious crease on his forehead, creating a deep vertical line between his eyebrows. However, his smile was genuinely warm and radiated a joy that was by far the most vivid expression Phœbe had ever seen, breaking through the New England reserve that Holgrave typically used to hide his feelings. It was the look of a man, deep in thought over some frightening thing in a gloomy forest or endless desert, who suddenly sees the familiar face of his closest friend, bringing all the comforting thoughts of home and the smooth flow of everyday life. Yet, as he sensed the need to respond to her questioning gaze, the smile faded away.

“I ought not to rejoice that you have come, Phœbe,” said he. “We meet at a strange moment!”

“I shouldn’t be too happy that you’re here, Phœbe,” he said. “We’re meeting at a weird time!”

“What has happened!” she exclaimed. “Why is the house so deserted? Where are Hepzibah and Clifford?”

“What happened?” she exclaimed. “Why is the house so empty? Where are Hepzibah and Clifford?”

“Gone! I cannot imagine where they are!” answered Holgrave. “We are alone in the house!”

“Gone! I can’t believe where they went!” replied Holgrave. “We're the only ones in the house!”

“Hepzibah and Clifford gone?” cried Phœbe. “It is not possible! And why have you brought me into this room, instead of the parlor? Ah, something terrible has happened! I must run and see!”

“Hepzibah and Clifford gone?” cried Phœbe. “It can't be true! And why did you bring me into this room instead of the living room? Ah, something awful has happened! I have to go and check!”

“No, no, Phœbe!” said Holgrave holding her back. “It is as I have told you. They are gone, and I know not whither. A terrible event has, indeed happened, but not to them, nor, as I undoubtingly believe, through any agency of theirs. If I read your character rightly, Phœbe,” he continued, fixing his eyes on hers with stern anxiety, intermixed with tenderness, “gentle as you are, and seeming to have your sphere among common things, you yet possess remarkable strength. You have wonderful poise, and a faculty which, when tested, will prove itself capable of dealing with matters that fall far out of the ordinary rule.”

“No, no, Phœbe!” Holgrave said, holding her back. “It’s just like I told you. They’re gone, and I have no idea where. A terrible event has indeed happened, but not to them, and, as I firmly believe, not because of anything they did. If I understand your character correctly, Phœbe,” he continued, looking into her eyes with a mix of serious concern and tenderness, “although you seem gentle and grounded in everyday life, you have remarkable strength. You have incredible composure, and when tested, you’ll show yourself capable of handling situations that are far beyond the usual.”

“Oh, no, I am very weak!” replied Phœbe, trembling. “But tell me what has happened!”

“Oh no, I feel really weak!” Phoebe replied, shaking. “But please tell me what happened!”

“You are strong!” persisted Holgrave. “You must be both strong and wise; for I am all astray, and need your counsel. It may be you can suggest the one right thing to do!”

“You're strong!” Holgrave insisted. “You have to be both strong and wise because I'm completely lost and need your advice. Maybe you can suggest the one right thing to do!”

“Tell me!—tell me!” said Phœbe, all in a tremble. “It oppresses,—it terrifies me,—this mystery! Anything else I can bear!”

“Tell me!—tell me!” said Phoebe, completely shaken. “This mystery is weighing on me—it frightens me! I can handle anything else!”

The artist hesitated. Notwithstanding what he had just said, and most sincerely, in regard to the self-balancing power with which Phœbe impressed him, it still seemed almost wicked to bring the awful secret of yesterday to her knowledge. It was like dragging a hideous shape of death into the cleanly and cheerful space before a household fire, where it would present all the uglier aspect, amid the decorousness of everything about it. Yet it could not be concealed from her; she must needs know it.

The artist hesitated. Despite what he had just said, and truly believed, about the self-balancing power that Phœbe had over him, it still felt wrong to reveal the terrible secret from yesterday to her. It was like bringing a horrifying image of death into the clean and cheerful space around a family fire, where it would stand out for all the wrong reasons against the neatness of everything else. But he couldn’t hide it from her; she had to know.

“Phœbe,” said he, “do you remember this?” He put into her hand a daguerreotype; the same that he had shown her at their first interview in the garden, and which so strikingly brought out the hard and relentless traits of the original.

“Phoebe,” he said, “do you remember this?” He placed a daguerreotype in her hand; the same one he had shown her during their first meeting in the garden, which vividly highlighted the hard and unyielding features of the original.

“What has this to do with Hepzibah and Clifford?” asked Phœbe, with impatient surprise that Holgrave should so trifle with her at such a moment. “It is Judge Pyncheon! You have shown it to me before!”

“What does this have to do with Hepzibah and Clifford?” Phœbe asked, feeling impatient that Holgrave would joke with her at a time like this. “It’s Judge Pyncheon! You’ve shown it to me before!”

“But here is the same face, taken within this half-hour” said the artist, presenting her with another miniature. “I had just finished it when I heard you at the door.”

“But here is the same face, taken just half an hour ago,” said the artist, handing her another miniature. “I had just finished it when I heard you at the door.”

“This is death!” shuddered Phœbe, turning very pale. “Judge Pyncheon dead!”

“This is death!” shuddered Phœbe, turning very pale. “Judge Pyncheon is dead!”

“Such as there represented,” said Holgrave, “he sits in the next room. The Judge is dead, and Clifford and Hepzibah have vanished! I know no more. All beyond is conjecture. On returning to my solitary chamber, last evening, I noticed no light, either in the parlor, or Hepzibah’s room, or Clifford’s; no stir nor footstep about the house. This morning, there was the same death-like quiet. From my window, I overheard the testimony of a neighbor, that your relatives were seen leaving the house in the midst of yesterday’s storm. A rumor reached me, too, of Judge Pyncheon being missed. A feeling which I cannot describe—an indefinite sense of some catastrophe, or consummation—impelled me to make my way into this part of the house, where I discovered what you see. As a point of evidence that may be useful to Clifford, and also as a memorial valuable to myself,—for, Phœbe, there are hereditary reasons that connect me strangely with that man’s fate,—I used the means at my disposal to preserve this pictorial record of Judge Pyncheon’s death.”

“Just as it's shown here,” Holgrave said, “he's in the next room. The Judge is dead, and Clifford and Hepzibah are gone! I don't know anything more. Everything else is just speculation. When I returned to my empty room last night, I saw no light in the parlor, Hepzibah’s room, or Clifford’s; there was no movement or sound in the house. This morning, it was just as eerily quiet. From my window, I overheard a neighbor saying that your relatives were spotted leaving the house during yesterday’s storm. I also heard a rumor that Judge Pyncheon is missing. I felt something I can't quite explain—an unclear sense of a disaster or conclusion—that drove me to come to this part of the house, where I found what you see. As a piece of evidence that might be important for Clifford, and also as a meaningful reminder for myself—because, Phœbe, there are family ties that connect me in a strange way to that man's fate—I took the steps necessary to keep this visual record of Judge Pyncheon’s death.”

Even in her agitation, Phœbe could not help remarking the calmness of Holgrave’s demeanor. He appeared, it is true, to feel the whole awfulness of the Judge’s death, yet had received the fact into his mind without any mixture of surprise, but as an event preordained, happening inevitably, and so fitting itself into past occurrences that it could almost have been prophesied.

Even in her agitation, Phoebe couldn't help but notice how calm Holgrave was. It was true that he seemed to fully grasp the gravity of the Judge’s death, but he absorbed the news without any surprise, seeing it as something destined to happen, fitting seamlessly into past events as if it could have been predicted.

“Why have you not thrown open the doors, and called in witnesses?” inquired she with a painful shudder. “It is terrible to be here alone!”

“Why haven’t you opened the doors and called in witnesses?” she asked with a painful shudder. “It’s awful to be here alone!”

“But Clifford!” suggested the artist. “Clifford and Hepzibah! We must consider what is best to be done in their behalf. It is a wretched fatality that they should have disappeared! Their flight will throw the worst coloring over this event of which it is susceptible. Yet how easy is the explanation, to those who know them! Bewildered and terror-stricken by the similarity of this death to a former one, which was attended with such disastrous consequences to Clifford, they have had no idea but of removing themselves from the scene. How miserably unfortunate! Had Hepzibah but shrieked aloud,—had Clifford flung wide the door, and proclaimed Judge Pyncheon’s death,—it would have been, however awful in itself, an event fruitful of good consequences to them. As I view it, it would have gone far towards obliterating the black stain on Clifford’s character.”

“But Clifford!” suggested the artist. “Clifford and Hepzibah! We need to think about what’s best for them. It’s such a terrible twist of fate that they’ve vanished! Their disappearance will cast the worst light on this situation. Yet for those who know them, the explanation is so simple! Confused and terrified by how similar this death is to a previous one, which had such disastrous effects on Clifford, they only thought of getting away from here. How incredibly unfortunate! If only Hepzibah had screamed out loud—if only Clifford had thrown open the door and announced Judge Pyncheon’s death—it would have been, no matter how horrific, a situation that could have brought good things for them. I believe it would have helped lift the dark stain on Clifford’s reputation.”

“And how,” asked Phœbe, “could any good come from what is so very dreadful?”

“And how,” asked Phoebe, “can anything good come from something so horrible?”

“Because,” said the artist, “if the matter can be fairly considered and candidly interpreted, it must be evident that Judge Pyncheon could not have come unfairly to his end. This mode of death had been an idiosyncrasy with his family, for generations past; not often occurring, indeed, but, when it does occur, usually attacking individuals about the Judge’s time of life, and generally in the tension of some mental crisis, or, perhaps, in an access of wrath. Old Maule’s prophecy was probably founded on a knowledge of this physical predisposition in the Pyncheon race. Now, there is a minute and almost exact similarity in the appearances connected with the death that occurred yesterday and those recorded of the death of Clifford’s uncle thirty years ago. It is true, there was a certain arrangement of circumstances, unnecessary to be recounted, which made it possible nay, as men look at these things, probable, or even certain—that old Jaffrey Pyncheon came to a violent death, and by Clifford’s hands.”

“Because,” said the artist, “if we look at the situation fairly and interpret it honestly, it’s clear that Judge Pyncheon couldn’t have met his end unfairly. This kind of death has been a peculiar pattern in his family for generations; it doesn’t happen often, but when it does, it usually strikes individuals around the Judge’s age, generally during a moment of intense mental stress or possibly in a fit of anger. Old Maule’s prediction was probably based on an understanding of this physical tendency in the Pyncheon family. There’s an almost exact similarity between the circumstances surrounding the death that happened yesterday and those noted in the death of Clifford’s uncle thirty years ago. It’s true there were certain circumstances, which I won’t go into, that made it possible—some would say probable, or even certain—that old Jaffrey Pyncheon met a violent death at Clifford’s hands.”

“Whence came those circumstances?” exclaimed Phœbe. “He being innocent, as we know him to be!”

“Where did those circumstances come from?” exclaimed Phœbe. “He’s innocent, as we know him to be!”

“They were arranged,” said Holgrave,—“at least such has long been my conviction,—they were arranged after the uncle’s death, and before it was made public, by the man who sits in yonder parlor. His own death, so like that former one, yet attended by none of those suspicious circumstances, seems the stroke of God upon him, at once a punishment for his wickedness, and making plain the innocence of Clifford. But this flight,—it distorts everything! He may be in concealment, near at hand. Could we but bring him back before the discovery of the Judge’s death, the evil might be rectified.”

“They were organized,” Holgrave said, “at least that’s what I’ve believed for a long time—they were organized after the uncle’s death, and before it was made public, by the man sitting in that parlor over there. His own death, so similar to the first, yet without any of those suspicious circumstances, seems like a divine punishment for his wrongdoing, and it clears Clifford of any guilt. But this disappearance—it changes everything! He might be hiding close by. If we could only get him back before news of the Judge’s death gets out, we might be able to fix this.”

“We must not hide this thing a moment longer!” said Phœbe. “It is dreadful to keep it so closely in our hearts. Clifford is innocent. God will make it manifest! Let us throw open the doors, and call all the neighborhood to see the truth!”

“We can't keep this hidden for another second!” said Phœbe. “It’s terrible to hold it all in. Clifford is innocent. God will reveal the truth! Let’s open the doors and invite everyone in the neighborhood to see it for themselves!”

“You are right, Phœbe,” rejoined Holgrave. “Doubtless you are right.”

“You're right, Phœbe,” Holgrave replied. “You're definitely right.”

Yet the artist did not feel the horror, which was proper to Phœbe’s sweet and order-loving character, at thus finding herself at issue with society, and brought in contact with an event that transcended ordinary rules. Neither was he in haste, like her, to betake himself within the precincts of common life. On the contrary, he gathered a wild enjoyment,—as it were, a flower of strange beauty, growing in a desolate spot, and blossoming in the wind,—such a flower of momentary happiness he gathered from his present position. It separated Phœbe and himself from the world, and bound them to each other, by their exclusive knowledge of Judge Pyncheon’s mysterious death, and the counsel which they were forced to hold respecting it. The secret, so long as it should continue such, kept them within the circle of a spell, a solitude in the midst of men, a remoteness as entire as that of an island in mid-ocean; once divulged, the ocean would flow betwixt them, standing on its widely sundered shores. Meanwhile, all the circumstances of their situation seemed to draw them together; they were like two children who go hand in hand, pressing closely to one another’s side, through a shadow-haunted passage. The image of awful Death, which filled the house, held them united by his stiffened grasp.

Yet the artist didn’t share the horror that fit Phœbe’s sweet and orderly nature when she found herself at odds with society, encountering an event that went beyond ordinary rules. He wasn’t in a hurry, like her, to return to the normalcy of everyday life. Instead, he felt a wild joy—a kind of strange and beautiful flower blooming in a desolate place, thriving in the wind—this fleeting happiness came from his current situation. It set him and Phœbe apart from the world and connected them through their unique understanding of Judge Pyncheon’s mysterious death, and the discussions they felt compelled to have about it. The secret, as long as it remained one, kept them under a spell, isolated amid others, in a solitude as complete as an island in the ocean; once revealed, the sea would come between them, standing on its widely separated shores. Meanwhile, all the aspects of their situation seemed to pull them closer; they were like two children holding hands, pressing closely against each other as they moved through a shadowy corridor. The image of dreadful Death that filled the house kept them bound together with its unyielding grip.

These influences hastened the development of emotions that might not otherwise have flowered so. Possibly, indeed, it had been Holgrave’s purpose to let them die in their undeveloped germs. “Why do we delay so?” asked Phœbe. “This secret takes away my breath! Let us throw open the doors!”

These influences sped up the development of feelings that might not have emerged otherwise. In fact, Holgrave may have intended to let them remain undeveloped. “Why are we waiting?” asked Phoebe. “This secret is suffocating! Let’s open the doors!”

“In all our lives there can never come another moment like this!” said Holgrave. “Phœbe, is it all terror?—nothing but terror? Are you conscious of no joy, as I am, that has made this the only point of life worth living for?”

“In all our lives, there will never be another moment like this!” said Holgrave. “Phœbe, is it all just fear?—nothing but fear? Don’t you feel any joy, like I do, that makes this the only moment in life worth living for?”

“It seems a sin,” replied Phœbe, trembling, “to think of joy at such a time!”

“It feels wrong,” replied Phœbe, trembling, “to think about joy at a time like this!”

“Could you but know, Phœbe, how it was with me the hour before you came!” exclaimed the artist. “A dark, cold, miserable hour! The presence of yonder dead man threw a great black shadow over everything; he made the universe, so far as my perception could reach, a scene of guilt and of retribution more dreadful than the guilt. The sense of it took away my youth. I never hoped to feel young again! The world looked strange, wild, evil, hostile; my past life, so lonesome and dreary; my future, a shapeless gloom, which I must mould into gloomy shapes! But, Phœbe, you crossed the threshold; and hope, warmth, and joy came in with you! The black moment became at once a blissful one. It must not pass without the spoken word. I love you!”

“Do you know, Phœbe, how I felt in the hour before you arrived?” the artist exclaimed. “It was dark, cold, and miserable! The presence of that dead man cast a huge shadow over everything; he made the universe, as far as I could see, a place of guilt and retribution even worse than the crime itself. The weight of it took away my youth. I never thought I would feel young again! The world seemed strange, wild, evil, and hostile; my past felt so lonely and dreary; my future was a shapeless gloom that I had to mold into dark shapes! But, Phœbe, you stepped in the door, and hope, warmth, and joy came with you! That dark moment instantly turned into a blissful one. It can't go by without me saying it. I love you!”

“How can you love a simple girl like me?” asked Phœbe, compelled by his earnestness to speak. “You have many, many thoughts, with which I should try in vain to sympathize. And I,—I, too,—I have tendencies with which you would sympathize as little. That is less matter. But I have not scope enough to make you happy.”

“How can you love a simple girl like me?” asked Phœbe, driven by his sincerity to speak. “You have so many thoughts that I would struggle to understand. And I,—I, too,—have feelings you wouldn’t relate to at all. That’s not the main issue. But I don’t have what it takes to make you happy.”

“You are my only possibility of happiness!” answered Holgrave. “I have no faith in it, except as you bestow it on me!”

“You're my only chance for happiness!” replied Holgrave. “I don't believe in it, unless you give it to me!”

“And then—I am afraid!” continued Phœbe, shrinking towards Holgrave, even while she told him so frankly the doubts with which he affected her. “You will lead me out of my own quiet path. You will make me strive to follow you where it is pathless. I cannot do so. It is not my nature. I shall sink down and perish!”

“And then—I’m scared!” continued Phœbe, moving closer to Holgrave, even while she openly expressed the doubts he caused her. “You will lead me away from my own quiet path. You will make me try to follow you into the unknown. I can’t do that. It’s just not who I am. I will sink and be lost!”

“Ah, Phœbe!” exclaimed Holgrave, with almost a sigh, and a smile that was burdened with thought.

“Ah, Phoebe!” Holgrave exclaimed, almost sighing, a smile on his face that seemed heavy with thought.

“It will be far otherwise than as you forebode. The world owes all its onward impulses to men ill at ease. The happy man inevitably confines himself within ancient limits. I have a presentiment that, hereafter, it will be my lot to set out trees, to make fences,—perhaps, even, in due time, to build a house for another generation,—in a word, to conform myself to laws and the peaceful practice of society. Your poise will be more powerful than any oscillating tendency of mine.”

“It will be completely different than what you expect. The world owes all its progress to people who are uncomfortable. A happy person tends to stick to old boundaries. I have a feeling that, in the future, I will be planting trees, building fences—maybe even, in time, constructing a house for the next generation—in short, conforming to the rules and the peaceful practices of society. Your stability will be stronger than any of my fluctuations.”

“I would not have it so!” said Phœbe earnestly.

“I wouldn’t want it that way!” said Phœbe earnestly.

“Do you love me?” asked Holgrave. “If we love one another, the moment has room for nothing more. Let us pause upon it, and be satisfied. Do you love me, Phœbe?”

“Do you love me?” Holgrave asked. “If we love each other, there’s no space for anything else at this moment. Let’s take a moment to appreciate it and be content. Do you love me, Phœbe?”

“You look into my heart,” said she, letting her eyes drop. “You know I love you!”

“You see into my heart,” she said, lowering her gaze. “You know I love you!”

And it was in this hour, so full of doubt and awe, that the one miracle was wrought, without which every human existence is a blank. The bliss which makes all things true, beautiful, and holy shone around this youth and maiden. They were conscious of nothing sad nor old. They transfigured the earth, and made it Eden again, and themselves the two first dwellers in it. The dead man, so close beside them, was forgotten. At such a crisis, there is no death; for immortality is revealed anew, and embraces everything in its hallowed atmosphere.

And it was in this moment, filled with doubt and wonder, that the one miracle happened, without which every human life feels empty. The joy that makes everything true, beautiful, and sacred surrounded this young man and woman. They didn’t feel anything sad or old. They transformed the world and made it like Eden again, with themselves as the first two inhabitants. The dead man, lying so close beside them, was forgotten. In such a moment, there is no death; for immortality is revealed once more, wrapping everything in its sacred atmosphere.

But how soon the heavy earth-dream settled down again!

But how quickly the heavy earth-dream settled down again!

“Hark!” whispered Phœbe. “Somebody is at the street door!”

“Hush!” whispered Phœbe. “Someone is at the front door!”

“Now let us meet the world!” said Holgrave. “No doubt, the rumor of Judge Pyncheon’s visit to this house, and the flight of Hepzibah and Clifford, is about to lead to the investigation of the premises. We have no way but to meet it. Let us open the door at once.”

“Now let’s go face the world!” said Holgrave. “I’m sure the gossip about Judge Pyncheon visiting this house and the escape of Hepzibah and Clifford is going to spark an investigation here. We have no choice but to confront it. Let’s open the door right now.”

But, to their surprise, before they could reach the street door,—even before they quitted the room in which the foregoing interview had passed,—they heard footsteps in the farther passage. The door, therefore, which they supposed to be securely locked,—which Holgrave, indeed, had seen to be so, and at which Phœbe had vainly tried to enter,—must have been opened from without. The sound of footsteps was not harsh, bold, decided, and intrusive, as the gait of strangers would naturally be, making authoritative entrance into a dwelling where they knew themselves unwelcome. It was feeble, as of persons either weak or weary; there was the mingled murmur of two voices, familiar to both the listeners.

But, to their surprise, before they could reach the front door—even before they left the room where the earlier conversation had taken place—they heard footsteps in the hallway. So, the door they thought was securely locked—which Holgrave had checked, and at which Phœbe had unsuccessfully tried to enter—must have been opened from the outside. The sound of the footsteps wasn't harsh, bold, or assertive, like the stride of strangers would typically be when entering a home where they knew they weren’t welcome. Instead, it was weak, as if the people were either frail or tired; there was the soft murmur of two voices that both listeners recognized.

“Can it be?” whispered Holgrave.

“Could it be?” whispered Holgrave.

“It is they!” answered Phœbe. “Thank God!—thank God!”

“It’s them!” answered Phœbe. “Thank God!—thank God!”

And then, as if in sympathy with Phœbe’s whispered ejaculation, they heard Hepzibah’s voice more distinctly.

And then, as if echoing Phœbe’s whispered exclamation, they heard Hepzibah’s voice more clearly.

“Thank God, my brother, we are at home!”

“Thank God, my brother, we’re home!”

“Well!—Yes!—thank God!” responded Clifford. “A dreary home, Hepzibah! But you have done well to bring me hither! Stay! That parlor door is open. I cannot pass by it! Let me go and rest me in the arbor, where I used,—oh, very long ago, it seems to me, after what has befallen us,—where I used to be so happy with little Phœbe!”

“Well!—Yes!—thank God!” replied Clifford. “What a gloomy home, Hepzibah! But you did well to bring me here! Wait! That parlor door is open. I can’t just walk past it! Let me go and rest in the arbor, where I used to—oh, it feels like a lifetime ago, considering everything that's happened to us—where I used to be so happy with little Phœbe!”

But the house was not altogether so dreary as Clifford imagined it. They had not made many steps,—in truth, they were lingering in the entry, with the listlessness of an accomplished purpose, uncertain what to do next,—when Phœbe ran to meet them. On beholding her, Hepzibah burst into tears. With all her might, she had staggered onward beneath the burden of grief and responsibility, until now that it was safe to fling it down. Indeed, she had not energy to fling it down, but had ceased to uphold it, and suffered it to press her to the earth. Clifford appeared the stronger of the two.

But the house wasn’t as gloomy as Clifford thought it was. They hadn’t taken many steps—in fact, they were hanging out in the entry, feeling aimless after reaching their goal, unsure of what to do next—when Phœbe ran to greet them. As soon as Hepzibah saw her, she broke down in tears. She had struggled on, carrying the weight of sadness and duty, until now that it was safe to let it go. In truth, she didn’t even have the strength to throw it away, so she just stopped trying to hold it up and let it weigh her down. Clifford seemed stronger than she did.

“It is our own little Phœbe!—Ah! and Holgrave with, her” exclaimed he, with a glance of keen and delicate insight, and a smile, beautiful, kind, but melancholy. “I thought of you both, as we came down the street, and beheld Alice’s Posies in full bloom. And so the flower of Eden has bloomed, likewise, in this old, darksome house to-day.”

“It’s our own little Phoebe! — Ah! and Holgrave with her,” he exclaimed, with a look of sharp and gentle understanding, and a smile that was beautiful, kind, but somewhat sad. “I thought of both of you as we walked down the street and saw Alice’s Posies in full bloom. And so the flower of Eden has bloomed, too, in this old, gloomy house today.”

XXI.
The Departure

The sudden death of so prominent a member of the social world as the Honorable Judge Jaffrey Pyncheon created a sensation (at least, in the circles more immediately connected with the deceased) which had hardly quite subsided in a fortnight.

The unexpected death of such a well-known figure in society as the Honorable Judge Jaffrey Pyncheon caused quite a stir (at least in the circles closest to him) that had barely settled even after two weeks.

It may be remarked, however, that, of all the events which constitute a person’s biography, there is scarcely one—none, certainly, of anything like a similar importance—to which the world so easily reconciles itself as to his death. In most other cases and contingencies, the individual is present among us, mixed up with the daily revolution of affairs, and affording a definite point for observation. At his decease, there is only a vacancy, and a momentary eddy,—very small, as compared with the apparent magnitude of the ingurgitated object,—and a bubble or two, ascending out of the black depth and bursting at the surface. As regarded Judge Pyncheon, it seemed probable, at first blush, that the mode of his final departure might give him a larger and longer posthumous vogue than ordinarily attends the memory of a distinguished man. But when it came to be understood, on the highest professional authority, that the event was a natural, and—except for some unimportant particulars, denoting a slight idiosyncrasy—by no means an unusual form of death, the public, with its customary alacrity, proceeded to forget that he had ever lived. In short, the honorable Judge was beginning to be a stale subject before half the country newspapers had found time to put their columns in mourning, and publish his exceedingly eulogistic obituary.

It can be noted, however, that among all the events that make up a person’s life story, there’s hardly anything—certainly nothing of similar significance—that the world accepts as easily as their death. In most other situations, the person is present among us, involved in the daily flow of events, providing a clear point of reference. After they pass away, there’s just an emptiness and a brief ripple—very minor compared to the apparent size of the person who’s gone—and a bubble or two, rising from the dark depths and popping at the surface. As for Judge Pyncheon, it initially seemed likely that the manner of his passing might give him a greater and longer-lasting posthumous fame than usually follows a notable individual. But once it was clarified, by the highest professional sources, that the cause of death was natural and—aside from a few unimportant details indicating a slight peculiarity—by no means an uncommon way to die, the public, with its usual quickness, moved on and began to forget he ever existed. In short, the honorable Judge was becoming a dull topic before half the country’s newspapers had even found the time to put their columns in mourning and publish his highly flattering obituary.

Nevertheless, creeping darkly through the places which this excellent person had haunted in his lifetime, there was a hidden stream of private talk, such as it would have shocked all decency to speak loudly at the street-corners. It is very singular, how the fact of a man’s death often seems to give people a truer idea of his character, whether for good or evil, than they have ever possessed while he was living and acting among them. Death is so genuine a fact that it excludes falsehood, or betrays its emptiness; it is a touchstone that proves the gold, and dishonors the baser metal. Could the departed, whoever he may be, return in a week after his decease, he would almost invariably find himself at a higher or lower point than he had formerly occupied, on the scale of public appreciation. But the talk, or scandal, to which we now allude, had reference to matters of no less old a date than the supposed murder, thirty or forty years ago, of the late Judge Pyncheon’s uncle. The medical opinion with regard to his own recent and regretted decease had almost entirely obviated the idea that a murder was committed in the former case. Yet, as the record showed, there were circumstances irrefragably indicating that some person had gained access to old Jaffrey Pyncheon’s private apartments, at or near the moment of his death. His desk and private drawers, in a room contiguous to his bedchamber, had been ransacked; money and valuable articles were missing; there was a bloody hand-print on the old man’s linen; and, by a powerfully welded chain of deductive evidence, the guilt of the robbery and apparent murder had been fixed on Clifford, then residing with his uncle in the House of the Seven Gables.

Nevertheless, quietly spreading through the places that this remarkable person frequented in his lifetime, there was a hidden stream of private conversation that would have shocked anyone to discuss openly on street corners. It’s quite strange how a person's death often gives people a clearer picture of his true character, for better or worse, than they ever had while he was alive and interacting with them. Death is such a undeniable reality that it cuts through deceit or reveals its emptiness; it serves as a test that identifies true gold and dishonors the worthless metal. If the deceased, no matter who he is, were to come back a week after his death, he would almost always find himself viewed more favorably or unfavorably than he was before, according to public opinion. But the gossip we are referring to was about events dating back to the alleged murder, thirty or forty years ago, of the late Judge Pyncheon’s uncle. The medical conclusion regarding his own recent and deeply mourned death had largely diminished the notion that a murder took place in the earlier instance. Yet, as the records revealed, there were undeniable circumstances suggesting that someone had entered old Jaffrey Pyncheon’s private quarters, at or around the time of his death. His desk and personal drawers, in a room adjacent to his bedroom, had been rifled through; money and valuable items were missing; there was a bloody handprint on the old man's linen; and, through a compelling chain of deductive evidence, the responsibility for the robbery and apparent murder had pointed to Clifford, who was then living with his uncle in the House of the Seven Gables.

Whencesoever originating, there now arose a theory that undertook so to account for these circumstances as to exclude the idea of Clifford’s agency. Many persons affirmed that the history and elucidation of the facts, long so mysterious, had been obtained by the daguerreotypist from one of those mesmerical seers who, nowadays, so strangely perplex the aspect of human affairs, and put everybody’s natural vision to the blush, by the marvels which they see with their eyes shut.

Wherever it came from, a theory emerged that aimed to explain these circumstances without involving Clifford’s involvement. Many people claimed that the history and explanation of the facts, which had long been mysterious, were obtained by the photographer from one of those mesmerists who, nowadays, confuse the nature of human affairs and leave everyone else's sight embarrassed by the wonders they observe with their eyes closed.

According to this version of the story, Judge Pyncheon, exemplary as we have portrayed him in our narrative, was, in his youth, an apparently irreclaimable scapegrace. The brutish, the animal instincts, as is often the case, had been developed earlier than the intellectual qualities, and the force of character, for which he was afterwards remarkable. He had shown himself wild, dissipated, addicted to low pleasures, little short of ruffianly in his propensities, and recklessly expensive, with no other resources than the bounty of his uncle. This course of conduct had alienated the old bachelor’s affection, once strongly fixed upon him. Now it is averred,—but whether on authority available in a court of justice, we do not pretend to have investigated,—that the young man was tempted by the devil, one night, to search his uncle’s private drawers, to which he had unsuspected means of access. While thus criminally occupied, he was startled by the opening of the chamber-door. There stood old Jaffrey Pyncheon, in his nightclothes! The surprise of such a discovery, his agitation, alarm, and horror, brought on the crisis of a disorder to which the old bachelor had an hereditary liability; he seemed to choke with blood, and fell upon the floor, striking his temple a heavy blow against the corner of a table. What was to be done? The old man was surely dead! Assistance would come too late! What a misfortune, indeed, should it come too soon, since his reviving consciousness would bring the recollection of the ignominious offence which he had beheld his nephew in the very act of committing!

According to this version of the story, Judge Pyncheon, as we’ve described him in our narrative, was, in his youth, a reckless troublemaker. His brutish, animal instincts developed earlier than his intellectual strengths and the strong character he became known for later. He was wild, wasted, addicted to cheap thrills, nearly a thug in his behavior, and lived extravagantly, relying solely on his uncle’s generosity. This behavior drove a wedge between him and the old bachelor, who had once cared deeply for him. Now, it’s claimed—but we haven’t verified the evidence in a court of law—that one night, the young man was tempted by the devil to rummage through his uncle’s private drawers, for which he had secret access. While engaged in this wrongdoing, he was startled by the sudden opening of the chamber door. Old Jaffrey Pyncheon stood there in his nightclothes! The shock of this discovery, along with his agitation, fear, and horror, triggered a hereditary disorder that the old bachelor had. He seemed to choke on blood and collapsed on the floor, hitting his temple hard against the edge of a table. What could be done? Surely, the old man was dead! Help would arrive too late! What a disaster it would be if it came too soon, since the old man’s returning awareness would remind him of the shameful act he had just caught his nephew committing!

But he never did revive. With the cool hardihood that always pertained to him, the young man continued his search of the drawers, and found a will, of recent date, in favor of Clifford,—which he destroyed,—and an older one, in his own favor, which he suffered to remain. But before retiring, Jaffrey bethought himself of the evidence, in these ransacked drawers, that some one had visited the chamber with sinister purposes. Suspicion, unless averted, might fix upon the real offender. In the very presence of the dead man, therefore, he laid a scheme that should free himself at the expense of Clifford, his rival, for whose character he had at once a contempt and a repugnance. It is not probable, be it said, that he acted with any set purpose of involving Clifford in a charge of murder. Knowing that his uncle did not die by violence, it may not have occurred to him, in the hurry of the crisis, that such an inference might be drawn. But, when the affair took this darker aspect, Jaffrey’s previous steps had already pledged him to those which remained. So craftily had he arranged the circumstances, that, at Clifford’s trial, his cousin hardly found it necessary to swear to anything false, but only to withhold the one decisive explanation, by refraining to state what he had himself done and witnessed.

But he never came back to life. With the cool confidence that had always been part of him, the young man continued searching the drawers and found a recently made will in favor of Clifford—which he destroyed—and an older one in his own favor, which he left alone. But before leaving, Jaffrey realized that the evidence in these rummaged drawers showed that someone had entered the room with bad intentions. Suspicion, if not diverted, could fall on the real culprit. So, right there in front of the dead man, he devised a plan to clear himself at Clifford's expense, whom he simultaneously despised and loathed. It's unlikely that he had any deliberate intention of framing Clifford for murder. Knowing that his uncle hadn't died violently, it might not have crossed his mind, in the chaos of the moment, that such a conclusion could be made. However, once the situation took a darker turn, Jaffrey's earlier actions had already committed him to the path ahead. He had manipulated the circumstances so well that, at Clifford’s trial, his cousin barely needed to lie but only to withhold the one crucial explanation by not mentioning what he had done and seen himself.

Thus Jaffrey Pyncheon’s inward criminality, as regarded Clifford, was, indeed, black and damnable; while its mere outward show and positive commission was the smallest that could possibly consist with so great a sin. This is just the sort of guilt that a man of eminent respectability finds it easiest to dispose of. It was suffered to fade out of sight or be reckoned a venial matter, in the Honorable Judge Pyncheon’s long subsequent survey of his own life. He shuffled it aside, among the forgotten and forgiven frailties of his youth, and seldom thought of it again.

Jaffrey Pyncheon’s inner wrongdoing, as far as Clifford was concerned, was truly dark and terrible; meanwhile, its outward expression and clear action were the least that could be associated with such a serious sin. This is exactly the type of guilt that a highly respected person finds it easiest to dismiss. It was allowed to drift out of view or was considered a minor issue in the Honorable Judge Pyncheon’s later reflection on his life. He pushed it aside, along with the forgotten and forgiven weaknesses of his youth, and rarely thought about it again.

We leave the Judge to his repose. He could not be styled fortunate at the hour of death. Unknowingly, he was a childless man, while striving to add more wealth to his only child’s inheritance. Hardly a week after his decease, one of the Cunard steamers brought intelligence of the death, by cholera, of Judge Pyncheon’s son, just at the point of embarkation for his native land. By this misfortune Clifford became rich; so did Hepzibah; so did our little village maiden, and, through her, that sworn foe of wealth and all manner of conservatism,—the wild reformer,—Holgrave!

We leave the Judge to his rest. He couldn’t be called fortunate at the time of his death. Unknowingly, he was a man without children, while trying to add more wealth to his only child's inheritance. Just a week after he passed away, one of the Cunard steamers brought news of Judge Pyncheon’s son dying of cholera, right as he was about to board for his home country. Because of this tragedy, Clifford became wealthy; so did Hepzibah; so did our little village girl, and through her, that sworn enemy of wealth and all kinds of conservatism—the passionate reformer—Holgrave!

It was now far too late in Clifford’s life for the good opinion of society to be worth the trouble and anguish of a formal vindication. What he needed was the love of a very few; not the admiration, or even the respect, of the unknown many. The latter might probably have been won for him, had those on whom the guardianship of his welfare had fallen deemed it advisable to expose Clifford to a miserable resuscitation of past ideas, when the condition of whatever comfort he might expect lay in the calm of forgetfulness. After such wrong as he had suffered, there is no reparation. The pitiable mockery of it, which the world might have been ready enough to offer, coming so long after the agony had done its utmost work, would have been fit only to provoke bitterer laughter than poor Clifford was ever capable of. It is a truth (and it would be a very sad one but for the higher hopes which it suggests) that no great mistake, whether acted or endured, in our mortal sphere, is ever really set right. Time, the continual vicissitude of circumstances, and the invariable inopportunity of death, render it impossible. If, after long lapse of years, the right seems to be in our power, we find no niche to set it in. The better remedy is for the sufferer to pass on, and leave what he once thought his irreparable ruin far behind him.

It was now way too late in Clifford’s life for society’s approval to be worth the hassle and pain of a formal defense. What he needed was the love of just a few people; not the admiration or even the respect of the unknown masses. He might have gained the latter if those responsible for his well-being thought it was a good idea to expose Clifford to a wretched revival of past ideas, when the key to any comfort he might expect lay in the peace of forgetting. After all the wrongs he had endured, there’s no real way to make it right. The pathetic mockery that the world might have offered, coming so long after the pain had done its utmost damage, would have only provoked a harsher laughter than poor Clifford could ever muster. It’s a truth (and a sad one, but for the brighter hopes it brings) that no major mistake, whether committed or suffered, in our lives, is ever truly corrected. Time, the constant changes in circumstances, and the unavoidable timing of death make it impossible. If, after many years, the chance to set things right seems possible, we find no place to put it. The better solution is for the sufferer to move forward, leaving what he once thought was his irreparable ruin far behind.

The shock of Judge Pyncheon’s death had a permanently invigorating and ultimately beneficial effect on Clifford. That strong and ponderous man had been Clifford’s nightmare. There was no free breath to be drawn, within the sphere of so malevolent an influence. The first effect of freedom, as we have witnessed in Clifford’s aimless flight, was a tremulous exhilaration. Subsiding from it, he did not sink into his former intellectual apathy. He never, it is true, attained to nearly the full measure of what might have been his faculties. But he recovered enough of them partially to light up his character, to display some outline of the marvellous grace that was abortive in it, and to make him the object of no less deep, although less melancholy interest than heretofore. He was evidently happy. Could we pause to give another picture of his daily life, with all the appliances now at command to gratify his instinct for the Beautiful, the garden scenes, that seemed so sweet to him, would look mean and trivial in comparison.

The shock of Judge Pyncheon's death had a lasting uplifting and ultimately positive effect on Clifford. That imposing man had been Clifford’s nightmare. There was no sense of freedom to be found in the presence of such a toxic influence. The first response to this newfound freedom, as we saw in Clifford’s aimless escape, was a shaky excitement. After that initial rush faded, he didn’t fall back into his previous state of intellectual dullness. It’s true he never fully reached the potential of his abilities. But he recovered enough to brighten his character, showing some hints of the incredible grace that had been stifled in him, making him the subject of no less profound, though less sorrowful, interest than before. He was clearly happy. If we took a moment to picture his daily life now, with all the resources available to satisfy his appreciation for beauty, the garden scenes that once seemed so sweet to him would appear insignificant and trivial by comparison.

Very soon after their change of fortune, Clifford, Hepzibah, and little Phœbe, with the approval of the artist, concluded to remove from the dismal old House of the Seven Gables, and take up their abode, for the present, at the elegant country-seat of the late Judge Pyncheon. Chanticleer and his family had already been transported thither, where the two hens had forthwith begun an indefatigable process of egg-laying, with an evident design, as a matter of duty and conscience, to continue their illustrious breed under better auspices than for a century past. On the day set for their departure, the principal personages of our story, including good Uncle Venner, were assembled in the parlor.

Very soon after their change of fortune, Clifford, Hepzibah, and little Phœbe, with the artist's approval, decided to move from the gloomy old House of the Seven Gables and temporarily settle at the elegant country home of the late Judge Pyncheon. Chanticleer and his family had already been moved there, where the two hens immediately started laying eggs, clearly intending, out of a sense of duty and conscience, to continue their proud lineage under better circumstances than they had for the past century. On the day planned for their departure, the main characters of our story, including good Uncle Venner, gathered in the parlor.

“The country-house is certainly a very fine one, so far as the plan goes,” observed Holgrave, as the party were discussing their future arrangements. “But I wonder that the late Judge—being so opulent, and with a reasonable prospect of transmitting his wealth to descendants of his own—should not have felt the propriety of embodying so excellent a piece of domestic architecture in stone, rather than in wood. Then, every generation of the family might have altered the interior, to suit its own taste and convenience; while the exterior, through the lapse of years, might have been adding venerableness to its original beauty, and thus giving that impression of permanence which I consider essential to the happiness of any one moment.”

“The country house is definitely a really nice one, based on the layout,” Holgrave said as the group discussed their future plans. “But I’m surprised that the late Judge—being so wealthy and having a good chance to pass his fortune down to his own descendants—didn’t think it was appropriate to build such an excellent piece of domestic architecture in stone instead of wood. Then, every generation of the family could have changed the interior to match their own taste and needs, while the exterior could have gained a sense of age and character over the years, adding to its original beauty and creating that feeling of permanence that I think is essential for anyone’s happiness.”

“Why,” cried Phœbe, gazing into the artist’s face with infinite amazement, “how wonderfully your ideas are changed! A house of stone, indeed! It is but two or three weeks ago that you seemed to wish people to live in something as fragile and temporary as a bird’s-nest!”

“Why,” exclaimed Phoebe, staring at the artist in disbelief, “your ideas have changed so much! A stone house, really! Just two or three weeks ago, it felt like you wanted people to live in something as delicate and temporary as a bird’s nest!”

“Ah, Phœbe, I told you how it would be!” said the artist, with a half-melancholy laugh. “You find me a conservative already! Little did I think ever to become one. It is especially unpardonable in this dwelling of so much hereditary misfortune, and under the eye of yonder portrait of a model conservative, who, in that very character, rendered himself so long the evil destiny of his race.”

“Ah, Phœbe, I knew this would happen!” said the artist with a half-sad laugh. “You see me as a conservative already! I never thought I’d turn into one. It’s especially unforgivable in this place filled with so much inherited misfortune, and under the gaze of that portrait of a classic conservative, who, in that very role, became the long-lasting curse of his family.”

“That picture!” said Clifford, seeming to shrink from its stern glance. “Whenever I look at it, there is an old dreamy recollection haunting me, but keeping just beyond the grasp of my mind. Wealth, it seems to say!—boundless wealth!—unimaginable wealth! I could fancy that, when I was a child, or a youth, that portrait had spoken, and told me a rich secret, or had held forth its hand, with the written record of hidden opulence. But those old matters are so dim with me, nowadays! What could this dream have been?”

“That picture!” Clifford exclaimed, recoiling from its serious gaze. “Every time I look at it, an old, dreamy memory haunts me, just out of reach of my mind. It seems to whisper about wealth—limitless wealth—unimaginable wealth! I can almost imagine that, when I was a child or a young man, that portrait spoke to me, revealing a rich secret, or offered its hand with the written record of hidden treasures. But those old thoughts feel so blurry to me now! What could this dream have been?”

“Perhaps I can recall it,” answered Holgrave. “See! There are a hundred chances to one that no person, unacquainted with the secret, would ever touch this spring.”

“Maybe I can remember it,” Holgrave replied. “Look! There’s a hundred to one chance that anyone who doesn’t know the secret would ever touch this spring.”

“A secret spring!” cried Clifford. “Ah, I remember now! I did discover it, one summer afternoon, when I was idling and dreaming about the house, long, long ago. But the mystery escapes me.”

“A secret spring!” shouted Clifford. “Oh, I remember now! I found it one summer afternoon when I was daydreaming about the house, a long time ago. But the mystery slips my mind.”

The artist put his finger on the contrivance to which he had referred. In former days, the effect would probably have been to cause the picture to start forward. But, in so long a period of concealment, the machinery had been eaten through with rust; so that at Holgrave’s pressure, the portrait, frame and all, tumbled suddenly from its position, and lay face downward on the floor. A recess in the wall was thus brought to light, in which lay an object so covered with a century’s dust that it could not immediately be recognized as a folded sheet of parchment. Holgrave opened it, and displayed an ancient deed, signed with the hieroglyphics of several Indian sagamores, and conveying to Colonel Pyncheon and his heirs, forever, a vast extent of territory at the Eastward.

The artist touched the mechanism he had mentioned. In the past, this would likely have made the picture move forward. But after such a long time hidden away, the machinery had rusted through. So when Holgrave pressed it, the portrait, along with its frame, suddenly fell down and landed face-first on the floor. This revealed a recess in the wall, where an object lay so covered in dust from a century that it wasn’t immediately recognizable as a folded sheet of parchment. Holgrave opened it, revealing an ancient deed signed with the symbols of several Native American leaders, granting Colonel Pyncheon and his heirs a large expanse of land to the east, forever.

“This is the very parchment, the attempt to recover which cost the beautiful Alice Pyncheon her happiness and life,” said the artist, alluding to his legend. “It is what the Pyncheons sought in vain, while it was valuable; and now that they find the treasure, it has long been worthless.”

“This is the very parchment, the attempt to recover which cost the beautiful Alice Pyncheon her happiness and life,” said the artist, referencing his story. “It’s what the Pyncheons sought in vain while it was valuable, and now that they’ve found the treasure, it has long been worthless.”

“Poor Cousin Jaffrey! This is what deceived him,” exclaimed Hepzibah. “When they were young together, Clifford probably made a kind of fairy-tale of this discovery. He was always dreaming hither and thither about the house, and lighting up its dark corners with beautiful stories. And poor Jaffrey, who took hold of everything as if it were real, thought my brother had found out his uncle’s wealth. He died with this delusion in his mind!”

“Poor Cousin Jaffrey! This is what fooled him,” Hepzibah exclaimed. “When they were young, Clifford likely turned this discovery into a kind of fairy tale. He was always wandering around the house, bringing its dark corners to life with beautiful stories. And poor Jaffrey, who believed everything as if it were real, thought my brother had uncovered their uncle’s wealth. He died clinging to that delusion!”

“But,” said Phœbe, apart to Holgrave, “how came you to know the secret?”

“But,” said Phoebe, quietly to Holgrave, “how did you find out the secret?”

“My dearest Phœbe,” said Holgrave, “how will it please you to assume the name of Maule? As for the secret, it is the only inheritance that has come down to me from my ancestors. You should have known sooner (only that I was afraid of frightening you away) that, in this long drama of wrong and retribution, I represent the old wizard, and am probably as much a wizard as ever he was. The son of the executed Matthew Maule, while building this house, took the opportunity to construct that recess, and hide away the Indian deed, on which depended the immense land-claim of the Pyncheons. Thus they bartered their eastern territory for Maule’s garden-ground.”

“My dearest Phoebe,” said Holgrave, “how would you feel about taking the name Maule? As for the secret, it’s the only inheritance I’ve received from my ancestors. You should have known earlier (except I was worried I’d scare you away) that in this long story of injustice and revenge, I represent the old wizard and am probably just as much of a wizard as he ever was. The son of the executed Matthew Maule, while building this house, took the chance to create that hidden space and stash away the Indian deed, which was crucial for the huge land claim of the Pyncheons. So they traded their eastern territory for Maule’s garden.”

“And now” said Uncle Venner “I suppose their whole claim is not worth one man’s share in my farm yonder!”

“And now,” said Uncle Venner, “I guess their entire claim isn’t worth one person’s share in my farm over there!”

“Uncle Venner,” cried Phœbe, taking the patched philosopher’s hand, “you must never talk any more about your farm! You shall never go there, as long as you live! There is a cottage in our new garden,—the prettiest little yellowish-brown cottage you ever saw; and the sweetest-looking place, for it looks just as if it were made of gingerbread,—and we are going to fit it up and furnish it, on purpose for you. And you shall do nothing but what you choose, and shall be as happy as the day is long, and shall keep Cousin Clifford in spirits with the wisdom and pleasantness which is always dropping from your lips!”

“Uncle Venner,” cried Phœbe, taking the patched philosopher’s hand, “you must never talk about your farm again! You’re never going there, as long as you live! There’s a cottage in our new garden—the cutest little yellowish-brown cottage you’ve ever seen; it’s the sweetest place, looking just like it’s made of gingerbread—and we’re going to set it up and furnish it just for you. You’ll do nothing but what you want, be as happy as can be, and keep Cousin Clifford in good spirits with the wisdom and charm that always come from you!”

“Ah! my dear child,” quoth good Uncle Venner, quite overcome, “if you were to speak to a young man as you do to an old one, his chance of keeping his heart another minute would not be worth one of the buttons on my waistcoat! And—soul alive!—that great sigh, which you made me heave, has burst off the very last of them! But, never mind! It was the happiest sigh I ever did heave; and it seems as if I must have drawn in a gulp of heavenly breath, to make it with. Well, well, Miss Phœbe! They’ll miss me in the gardens hereabouts, and round by the back doors; and Pyncheon Street, I’m afraid, will hardly look the same without old Uncle Venner, who remembers it with a mowing field on one side, and the garden of the Seven Gables on the other. But either I must go to your country-seat, or you must come to my farm,—that’s one of two things certain; and I leave you to choose which!”

“Ah! my dear child,” said good Uncle Venner, completely taken aback, “if you talked to a young man the way you talk to an old one, he wouldn’t last a minute with his heart intact! And—goodness gracious!—that big sigh you made me let out has popped off the very last of my buttons! But, no worries! It was the happiest sigh I ever let out; it feels like I must have taken in a breath of pure heaven to make it. Well, well, Miss Phœbe! They’ll miss me around the gardens here and by the back doors; and Pyncheon Street, I’m afraid, won’t look the same without old Uncle Venner, who remembers it with a hayfield on one side and the garden of the Seven Gables on the other. But either I have to go to your country house, or you have to come to my farm—that’s for sure; and I’ll let you decide which!”

“Oh, come with us, by all means, Uncle Venner!” said Clifford, who had a remarkable enjoyment of the old man’s mellow, quiet, and simple spirit. “I want you always to be within five minutes, saunter of my chair. You are the only philosopher I ever knew of whose wisdom has not a drop of bitter essence at the bottom!”

“Oh, please come with us, Uncle Venner!” said Clifford, who really enjoyed the old man’s calm, gentle, and straightforward nature. “I want you to always be just a few minutes’ walk away from my chair. You’re the only philosopher I’ve ever met whose wisdom isn’t tainted by any bitterness!”

“Dear me!” cried Uncle Venner, beginning partly to realize what manner of man he was. “And yet folks used to set me down among the simple ones, in my younger days! But I suppose I am like a Roxbury russet,—a great deal the better, the longer I can be kept. Yes; and my words of wisdom, that you and Phœbe tell me of, are like the golden dandelions, which never grow in the hot months, but may be seen glistening among the withered grass, and under the dry leaves, sometimes as late as December. And you are welcome, friends, to my mess of dandelions, if there were twice as many!”

“Wow!” exclaimed Uncle Venner, starting to understand what kind of man he really was. “And yet people used to think of me as simple back in the day! But I guess I'm like a Roxbury russet—so much better the longer I stick around. Yes, and my wise words, that you and Phœbe keep mentioning, are like golden dandelions, which don’t bloom in the hot months but can be found shining among the dead grass and under the dry leaves, sometimes even as late as December. And you're all welcome to my bunch of dandelions, even if there were twice as many!”

A plain, but handsome, dark-green barouche had now drawn up in front of the ruinous portal of the old mansion-house. The party came forth, and (with the exception of good Uncle Venner, who was to follow in a few days) proceeded to take their places. They were chatting and laughing very pleasantly together; and—as proves to be often the case, at moments when we ought to palpitate with sensibility—Clifford and Hepzibah bade a final farewell to the abode of their forefathers, with hardly more emotion than if they had made it their arrangement to return thither at tea-time. Several children were drawn to the spot by so unusual a spectacle as the barouche and pair of gray horses. Recognizing little Ned Higgins among them, Hepzibah put her hand into her pocket, and presented the urchin, her earliest and staunchest customer, with silver enough to people the Domdaniel cavern of his interior with as various a procession of quadrupeds as passed into the ark.

A simple but stylish dark-green carriage had now pulled up in front of the crumbling entrance of the old mansion. The group stepped out, and (except for good Uncle Venner, who would be joining them in a few days) got into their seats. They were chatting and laughing happily together; and—as often happens in moments when we should be feeling emotional—Clifford and Hepzibah said a final goodbye to their ancestral home, showing hardly more feelings than if they had planned to return by tea time. A few children gathered around, curious about the rare sight of the carriage and the pair of gray horses. Spotting little Ned Higgins among them, Hepzibah reached into her pocket and gave the boy, her first and most loyal customer, enough silver to fill his pockets with as many toy animals as once entered the ark.

Two men were passing, just as the barouche drove off.

Two men were walking by just as the carriage pulled away.

“Well, Dixey,” said one of them, “what do you think of this? My wife kept a cent-shop three months, and lost five dollars on her outlay. Old Maid Pyncheon has been in trade just about as long, and rides off in her carriage with a couple of hundred thousand,—reckoning her share, and Clifford’s, and Phœbe’s,—and some say twice as much! If you choose to call it luck, it is all very well; but if we are to take it as the will of Providence, why, I can’t exactly fathom it!”

“Well, Dixey,” said one of them, “what do you think about this? My wife ran a small shop for three months and lost five dollars on her investment. Old Maid Pyncheon has been in business for about the same time and drives off in her carriage with a couple of hundred thousand—counting her share, and Clifford’s, and Phœbe’s—and some say it’s even twice that! If you want to call it luck, fine; but if we’re supposed to see it as the will of Providence, I really can’t understand it!”

“Pretty good business!” quoth the sagacious Dixey,—“pretty good business!”

“Pretty good business!” said the wise Dixey, — “pretty good business!”

Maule’s well, all this time, though left in solitude, was throwing up a succession of kaleidoscopic pictures, in which a gifted eye might have seen foreshadowed the coming fortunes of Hepzibah and Clifford, and the descendant of the legendary wizard, and the village maiden, over whom he had thrown love’s web of sorcery. The Pyncheon Elm, moreover, with what foliage the September gale had spared to it, whispered unintelligible prophecies. And wise Uncle Venner, passing slowly from the ruinous porch, seemed to hear a strain of music, and fancied that sweet Alice Pyncheon—after witnessing these deeds, this bygone woe and this present happiness, of her kindred mortals—had given one farewell touch of a spirit’s joy upon her harpsichord, as she floated heavenward from the HOUSE OF THE SEVEN GABLES!

Maule’s well, all this time, even though left alone, was producing a series of colorful images, in which a keen observer might have seen hints of the future fortunes of Hepzibah and Clifford, and the descendant of the legendary wizard, and the village girl, over whom he had cast love’s spell. The Pyncheon Elm, too, with the leaves the September wind had spared, seemed to whisper vague prophecies. And wise Uncle Venner, walking slowly away from the crumbling porch, appeared to hear a melody and imagined that sweet Alice Pyncheon—after witnessing these actions, this past sorrow, and this current joy of her relatives—had offered one last touch of a spirit’s joy on her harpsichord, as she floated upward from the HOUSE OF THE SEVEN GABLES!


Download ePUB

If you like this ebook, consider a donation!